Chapters Amidst the sea of vibrant costumes and the palpable buzz of fan-fueled excitement, Charlie navigated through the colorful chaos that was Comic-Con. Clad in the striking attire of Alastor, the Radio Demon from Hazbin Hotel, he was a spitting image of the infamous character, complete with a fiendishly charming smile and a sprouting atop his head. His crimson suit, meticulously crafted over countless nights, gleamed under the fluorescent lights of the convention center, drawing admiring glances and requests for photos from fellow enthusiasts who recognized the dedication in his portrayal.
Charlie reveled in the anonymity the costume provided, allowing him introverted true self to channel Alastor's enigmatic confidence. The convention floor was his stage, and he moved through it with a performer's grace, feeling for the first time the thrill of fully embracing the spirit of his beloved character. Today, he was not just a fan in a crowd; he was the embodiment of the wickedly charismatic demon, and the day had just begun.
Caught in the rhythmic current of the cheering crowd and the hypnotic flashing lights that illuminated the endless sea of costumes and props, Charlie navigated through the bustling alleyways of Comic-con. His eyes, wide with the pure joy and excitement that this celebration of fandom always stirred within his, flickered from one booth to the next, dazzled by displays ranging from intricately woven apparel to the most obscure memorabilia.
Charlie threaded his way through the cosplaying throng. Laced gloves concealed his eager hands, held close to his side to avoid catching on the props and costumes that brushed past.
Amidst the sea of stalls—an island of allure for any connoisseur of craftsmanship—he happened upon a spot that seemed to call out to him zeal for armaments and disguises, a treasure trove of prop weapons and masks. Swords, guns of high fantasy, and masks ranging from hauntingly beautiful to the downright diabolical were laid out with impeccable care, each one beckoning to be part of a story yet to be told.
Behind this cavalcade of make-believe munitions stood a figure so in place with his wares, it could only be described as serendipitous. Sporting the widest grin and the all-too-familiar single, off-kilter horn, the man was the picture-perfect embodiment of Blitzø from the equally beloved series Helluva Boss. Not a detail amiss, from the pointed tail to the maroon bow tie, he seemed to have leaped out from the screen and into the reality of the convention floor.
As Charlie approached, the Blitzø impersonator caught his eye with a wink so characteristic of the scheming showman he portrayed. The interaction was silent, but spoke volumes, as if acknowledging their shared secrecy, the silent camaraderie between characters from sibling series, woven by the same artistic hands.
There was a flicker of challenge, camaraderie, and commerce in his gaze, and Charlie, never one to shy away from a spirited haggle or the prospect of adding to his collection, stepped forward, ready to engage in the delightful dance of negotiation at Comic-con.
The Blitzø impersonator greeted Charlie with a mischievous smirk, his eyes sparkling with a shared understanding of the magic that surrounded them. He gestured towards the array of prop weapons and masks, inviting Charlie to explore their hidden wonders. As they perused the booth together, the air crackled with an unspoken connection, a kinship forged through their love for these fictional worlds.
Charlie's heart raced as they delved into discussions about the craftsmanship of each piece, trading anecdotes about their favorite moments from Hazbin Hotel and Helluva Boss. It felt as if they had known each other for years, despite this being their first encounter. The impersonator's knowledge and passion for the series was evident in every word he spoke, and Charlie found himself completely enthralled.
After much deliberation, Charlie settled on a stunning replica of Alastor's cane, intricately carved with demonic symbols and adorned with a crimson gem at its tip. The Blitzø impersonator, recognizing Charlie's enthusiasm and dedication, offered a knowing nod of approval.
A mischievous twinkle danced in his eye as he leaned in closer, his voice low and enticing. "The cane of the infamous Radio Demon himself. A most excellent choice, my friend. With that in your possession, all eyes will surely be on you."
"How much?" Charlie asked eagerly, unable to contain his excitement.
Blitzø rubbed his chin for effect before replying, "Hmm... how does 70,000 dollars sound?"
Charlie's face fell at the steep price, but he couldn't help but wait for Blitzø to burst into laughter and reveal it was all just a joke. But the man remained serious, and Charlie's disappointment grew as he realized he couldn't afford such a luxurious item.
His heart sinking, Charlie handed the coveted cane back to the vendor. "I'm sorry," he said with a hint of wavering in his voice. "That's way out of my budget."
Blitzø scowled at his lost sale. "Then fuck off," he spat.
But Charlie wasn't ready to give up just yet. He wanted that cane more than anything and was willing to do whatever it took to make it his own. In a moment of quick thinking, he pointed past Blitzø and exclaimed, "Hey, isn't that Loona over there?"
As Blitzø turned to look, Charlie snatched the cane and took off running. His heart pounding with exhilaration and adrenaline, he couldn't help but laugh at the absurdity of it all. It was Comic-Con after all; anything could happen in this chaos-filled event. And for Charlie, getting his hands on that one prop was worth every crazy risk he took along the way.
As Blitzø stood frozen, a look of pure shock and fury contorted his features. Without a moment's hesitation, he leaped over his stall in pursuit of Charlie, determined to reclaim the stolen cane now slipping through his grasp. However, his boot caught on a table and sent him careening face first onto the tiled ground. When he looked up, a growl escaped his lips as he noticed Charlie blending into the crowd.
Meanwhile, Charlie made a swift exit from the building with the cane clutched tightly in his hand. He was just entering the parking lot when a hand forcefully gripped his shoulder, spinning him around.
"You better enjoy your stolen prize while you can," Blitzø sneered, pressing the cold barrel of a gun against Charlie's forehead. "Because soon enough, you'll regret ever laying your hands on it."
Before Charlie could even utter a word in defense, Blitzø pulled the trigger. The sound of the gunshot echoed through the air as Charlie's body crumpled to the ground, darkness engulfing him as everything went black.
Charlie jolted upright in a cold sweat, his chest heaving as he let out a blood-curdling scream. His hand flew to his head, searching for the source of the intense pain that steadily pulsed through his skull. But there was no wound, no physical injury to explain the agony that consumed him.
As he thrashed on the ground, trying to escape the relentless torment, his screams echoed off the walls of the alleyway, drawing concerned voices and worried murmurs. A crowd quickly formed around him, but Charlie was beyond caring about their presence.
"It won't stop!" he wailed, his grip on his head tightening in desperation. "It won't..."
Through bleary, wild eyes, he scanned the faces above him, their features blurring and shifting in the dim light. The pain was all-consuming, a phantom torture that should not have been real, yet every nerve in his mind screamed otherwise.
People pressed closer, their lips moving in an attempt to comfort or help him, but their words were drowned out by the pounding in his head. A metallic taste flooded his mouth as he struggled to stand, swaying unsteadily.
"Get back," he managed to gasp between agonized breaths. Each step felt like a thousand knives piercing through his brain.
But as soon as the crowd caught sight of him, they scattered in fear and horror.
"MONSTER!!" they screamed, their voices fading into the distance as Charlie collapsed back onto the ground, consumed by pain and misery.
And there he lay, as if in a trance, his eyes wide with terror and disbelief. The pain in his skull had not abated, but now it was accompanied by a new sensation - a burning, searing feeling that seemed to be coursing through his veins.
Charlie tried to make sense of what was happening, but his mind was a blur of fragmented thoughts and images. He was sure he'd never experienced anything quite like this before.
Suddenly, a whisper came to him, so soft that it could have been his own imagination playing tricks on him. "They're scared of youuuuu. As they should," it murmured. "You're above them all, like helpless cattle in front of the butcher."
"Cattle..." Charlie started to grin despite the never-ending pain in his head.
Unknown to Charlie the constant pain was starting to break him mentally, his thoughts becoming more and more erratic.
The pain in his head continued to intensify, the torment in his mind growing ever more unbearable. He could no longer distinguish reality from fiction, his thoughts becoming a twisted concoction of paranoia and madness.
As Charlie lay writhing in agony, struggling to comprehend his newfound monstrous form, he realized that he had become the very nightmare he had once only observed from afar. No longer was he merely a fan of the Hazbin Hotel and Helluva Boss universes; now he was their embodiment, and there was no turning back.
His laughter echoed through the alleyway, a maniacal cackle that chilled the blood of those who dared to glance his way.
"It'll be a performance to die for..." Charlie said, his voice no longer the one he remembered. No, it was different. It sounded like he was speaking into an old radio with bits of static.
His hand reaching down and wrapped around his cane, lifting it up as he tapped the microphone at the tip, watching with glee as the little eye blinked and seemed to brighten up after looking up at Charlie.
"Showtime," he cackled, his eyes gleaming with twisted glee.
That fateful day, every radio in the world was tuned into the same channel, all hearing the terrifying screams of innocent ponies being massacred by a creature known only as "The Radio Demon". His voice echoed through the airwaves, sending shivers down the spines of all who heard it, and soon his name would be infamous in Equestria.
Chapter 1: Little Orphan Niffty
Author's Note
Warning! Going to get pretty dark in this chapter
Chapter 1: Little Orphan Niffty
Afternoon crept over the horizon of Equestria, the regal figures of Princess Celestia and Princess Luna stood side by side, their expressions a mixture of concern and disbelief. The royal sisters, guardians of day and night, had been roused not by the usual serenity of their kingdom, but by a chilling broadcast that had infiltrated every radio across the land.
The haunting voice of the Radio Demon, laced with static and malice, recounted a tale of massacre and madness, a stark contrast to the peaceful melodies that typically filled the afternoon air. The sisters exchanged a glance, a silent agreement passing between them that this ominous message could not be ignored.
Princess Celestia's voice, usually a beacon of warmth and comfort, carried a somber tone as she addressed her sister. "Luna, this is no ordinary broadcast. The fear it instills is palpable, and I fear for our subjects' safety. We must act swiftly to uncover the source of this terror and restore peace to Equestria."
Princess Luna nodded, her eyes reflecting the moon's resolve. "Indeed, sister. The night may be my domain, but this darkness is of another kind—one that threatens to engulf our realm in its shadow."
The sisters make their way through the dimly lit streets of ponyville. The atmosphere is thick with unease, palpable fear in the eyes of the ponies they pass. It's clear that the Radio Demon's chilling broadcast has left an indelible mark on the hearts of every citizen.
"I've never seen anything like this before, Not Even Discord's reign instilled such fear" Princess Luna whispers as she adjusts her crown, her eyes narrowing in determination. "But we cannot let fear dictate our actions. We must find the Radio Demon and put an end to this nightmare."
Princess Celestia nods in agreement, her ethereal pink mane billowing in the cool evening breeze. "That's right, Luna. We cannot allow ourselves to be consumed by fear, or by this evil. We are the guardians of Equestria, and it is our duty to protect her from such threats."
"Salutations ladies and gentleman" Charlie spoke into the mic in his cane. "Welcome to my show, a nightly spectacle of fear and despair. You're all in for a treat, as I take you on a journey through the darkest corners of your imagination." With that, Charlie began a sinister tune, his voice distorted as if coming from a haunted radio.
The music echoed through the streets, filling the hearts of the ponies with dread. They huddled together, trying to shield themselves from the chilling melody. Some tried to cover their ears, but it was futile; the Radio Demon's broadcast was everywhere, infecting the very air they breathed.
“The world is a stage, and the stage is a world of entertainment... so then... entertain me " Charlie said, one pony heard a whisper to their left and before they could even process, his head slid off his neck, falling to the ground with a wet meaty thud. the nearby ponies screamed in terror, a laugh was echoed as one by one each of the ponies were either whisked away into darkness leaving only a trial as well as a pool of blood behind, or was dragged into the air and skinned alive only so the radio demon can watch them writhe in agony or kill themselves to just to end their suffering. Charlie looked around, watching each of the ponies dying, getting eaten alive, skinned, sliced bit by bit, forced to either die an agonizing death or plain kill themselves, it was the exact entertainment he had been wanting for so long.
Charlie looked beyond his scope of vision and watched families run away toward the forest at the edge of the kingdom, a futile means of escape, one that made him chuckle in amusement. One simple snap was all it took, and he took possession of the father to a family of three.
"No fun in running away, perhaps this'll change their mind" Charlie said to himself, waving his hand and watched closely as the father picked up a thick branch from the ground and walked toward his wife.
"Honey, what are you-" The wife had no time to react as she was immediately bashed in the side of the head with the branch her husband had picked up causing her to buckled and fall to the floor in a heap, the husband kicked her over on her back and pressed his foot on her neck. A grotesque crunch was heard as he squished her throat like a bag air, he didn't stop their, he dropped the branch and fell to his knees before bashing his fists against his already dead wife's face, over and over again. Blood coated his hands, his face, his body, his wife's face was slowly caving in, making it unrecognizable with every point of contact.
A wet squelch soon rang in the air as both the wife's face and the husbands hands were almost nothing but stumps and a bloody pile of pulp. with one final slam of his fist, the husband rose back up to his feet with missing a beat and used the stumps that were once his hands to grab the branch and place the sharp end of it into his mouth. He turned toward his child and saw the looked of shock, horror, trauma and the sparkle in her eyes dim.
"I... Love you..." The father said before shoving the branch down his throat, blood spewed out of his eyes and his nose the more he shoved the branch down his throat, a large bulge was present from said throat and the more he shoved in, the bigger and bigger it got until his neck split open, causing a chain reaction that ripped open his chest and belly open, allowing his gut and the branch to spill out.
The echoing screams of the dying ponies continued to reverberate through the streets, but the Radio Demon's fiendish laughter filled the air like a dark symphony, drowning out the cries of the innocent. The once-peaceful town was now transformed into a macabre tableau, a place where the line between life and death was blurred by the hands of a madman.
As the night wore on, the broadcast continued to echo throughout Equestria, inciting fear and chaos wherever it reached.
As Charlie's laughter echoed through the town, he reveled in the mayhem and chaos he had created. But amidst the sound of destruction, a different noise caught his attention - the faint sound of crying.
Curiosity piqued, forcing the Radio Demon to shut off his broadcast, Charlie followed the sound to a secluded corner of the town, barely touched by the dim light of the moons. His jovial grin faded as he saw a young filly, no more than seven years old, sitting with her head in her hands, tears streaming down her face. A strange sensation tugged at Charlie's chest, drawing him towards the source of the sobs.
He approached the filly, leaving behind a trail of destruction in his wake. When he reached her, his heart skipped a beat at the sight before him. It was the daughter of the couple he had just killed.
A twisted smile crossed Charlie's face as he leaned down to whisper into the filly's ear, "Why are you crying, little one?"
Through her sobs, the filly choked out two words that made Charlie's grin widen even further - "Mommy... Daddy..."
With a sinister glint in his eye, Charlie offered a solution to end her pain - "Do you want the pain to stop? Because I can make it stop."
His voice, once an instrument of chaos, softened, a conspiratorial whisper against the silence of the night. “Little one, your heartache weighs upon this air like the must of autumn’s decay," he began, kneeling to meet her tear-filled eyes. “I can offer you respite from your despair. An elixir for your soul, a salve for your spirit.”
The filly's tears slowed as she searched the kindness in a stranger's face, her innocence a stark contrast to the havoc that had been unleashed upon her world. “How?” she sniffed, the question barely a breath.
“Simple, child,” Charlie responded, his tone a velvet promise, “I will take the shards of your shattered serenity and craft you a new reality. The sorrow that drowns you will be but a distant memory, a dream upon waking.”
The filly paused, the dim moons reflecting a fragile hope in her eyes. “What do I have to do?” she asked, her voice small and wavering.
“All I ask,” Charlie’s smirk now a warm grin as he held out a green glowing hand to the filly “is your pledge to aid me. A companion in my myriad of endeavors. A little hand to hold the lantern as we journey through the tapestry of night’s endless mystery.”
Eyes wide, the filly understood the weight of the bond she was to form with this enigmatic benefactor. Yet the allure of a painless heart, a spirit unburdened by loss, beckoned like the sun’s rays to a seedling under frost.
“I’ll do it,” she said, her resolve hardening like the setting of the final star at dawn as she shook Charlie's hand. “I’ll help you.”
“Splendid!” Charlie exclaimed with satisfaction, as they embarked on a journey together that would change both of their lives forever. “It's a deal!”
As the pact was sealed, a sense of relief washed over the filly and she wiped away her last tear. But with that pain, her memories also disappeared, leaving behind a clean slate for her to start anew. This first Deal struck by Charlie had not only granted him a new ally, but also the chance to shape someone into his own creation.
"Hmm..." Charlie stroked his chin thoughtfully as he pondered his next move. "Let's call you...Niffty." He placed his hand on her head, channeling his powers to grant her immortality and a new personality.
With a sudden burst of energy, Niffty stood tall with a wide, toothy grin plastered on her face. Her eyes took on a crazed glint as she let out a maniacal laugh. "Hehehe."
Charlie joined in her laughter, feeling a sense of satisfaction at his creation. "It's good to smile, my dear," he said as they left behind the carnage. "You're never fully dressed without one." The two made their way through the chaos with Niffty's laughter echoing in their wake.
Celestia and Luna arrived in Canterlot and gazed upon it in horror, the scene before them was something ripped from one's sick demented nightmares. Blood bathed the streets as the dismembered bodies covered the city, and it wasn't just the streets. Celestia and Luna found ponies nailed to the homes, impaled on tree branches and even one was hung from a lamp post with his own guts.
"Faust above!" Luna gasped in disgust
The sight was so disturbing that it caused Luna to double over and empty the contents of her stomach.
Celestia placed a comforting hoof on her sister's back, trying to calm her down. "We must act fast, Luna. We need to find our subjects who are still alive and protect them." She said with a stern voice.
"You're absolutely right, Celestia," Luna replied, her voice shaking slightly. "We will not let this monster go unpunished. We must find the source of this chaos and put an end to it."
As the sisters began their search for the remaining survivors, they encountered a group of panicked ponies fleeing from the scene of destruction. The ponies were filled with fear and despair, their eyes wide with terror. The sisters quickly calmed them down and asked what had happened.
The leader of the group, a gray pegasus stallion, simply pointed towards the center of town. "That's where...where it all started. The Radio Demon...he's the one responsible for all this."
Celestia and Luna exchanged a glance, their expressions hardening. "We will find this creature and put an end to his reign of terror," Celestia vowed.
Chapter 19: Poor Unfortunate Soul Pt. 1
The early morning sun peeked through the gaps in Vinyl Scratch's curtains, casting thin stripes of light across her messy bedroom. With a groan, she rolled over and squinted at her alarm clock. 8:30 AM. She had to get ready and head downstairs to work, the unicorn pulled herself out of bed with a sigh. Feeling the chill of her hardwood floor on her hooves, she ambled lethargically towards her wardrobe, the colors blurring together through her sleepy eyes.
Vinyl Scratch pulled a shirt with black and white stripes over her head, feeling the cool fabric against her fur. In the center of the shirt was a symbol resembling her cutie mark: two eighth notes bridged together. The V-neck design of the shirt showed off her C-cup breasts.
She then put on fingerless gloves that reached from her upper arms to her hands. The main color was black, but with thick blue bands around her wrists and upper arms for contrast.
For bottoms, Vinyl chose some form-fitting blue pants that hugged her thighs and flanks perfectly, adding a pop of color against her white fur. The fabric was soft and stretchy, providing comfort for the long hours she would spend working behind the front counter.
With her task finally completed, Vinyl made her way to the bathroom to freshen up. She stood in front of the mirror, gazing at her reflection through vibrant magenta eyes. Her electric blue mane was a wild tangle, defying any attempt at control as it stuck out in all directions, as if she had just emerged from a whirlwind.
Letting out a resigned sigh, Vinyl grabbed her trusty hairbrush and began the arduous process of smoothing out her mane. It took some effort, but soon her hair fell into place in a style that pleased her. Next, she retrieved her phone and keys from the counter, tucking them safely into her pocket. She then draped her beloved headphones around her neck, ready for another day of musical adventures.
After locking the door to her apartment, Vinyl descended the staircase towards the first floor. Each step echoed in the quiet morning as she turned on the lights, revealing shelf upon shelf of both CD's and vinyl records. The shelves were meticulously organized and filled with an impressive collection of music from all genres and eras. As the lights warmed up, they cast a soft glow over the store, creating a cozy atmosphere that enveloped Vinyl like a warm blanket.
This was where she felt most at home - surrounded by music. Each record and CD represented a unique world of sound, waiting to be explored and appreciated. Taking a moment to soak in the sight, Vinyl's magenta eyes reflected the colorful album covers and posters adorning the walls. The unmistakable smell of dust and old vinyl filled her nostrils as she took a deep breath, feeling a wave of nostalgia wash over her. There was something comforting about this scent; it reminded her of countless early mornings spent amongst these shelves, lost in the rhythmic hum of life and music intertwined.
Vinyl Scratch crossed to the front of the store, her tail swishing lightly to some silent beat only she could hear, and flipped on the neon 'Open' sign. Vinyl was proud of her store - 'Beats and Bobs', a place where music enthusiasts could find everything from retro vinyl records to the latest EDM releases.
With the 'Open' sign illuminating the front of her store in vibrant colors, Vinyl moved towards the counter behind which she would spend most of the day.
As the day progressed, Vinyl slipped on her headphones, losing herself in the rhythmic beats that pulsed through them. The familiar tunes helped her stay focused as she organized new arrivals and assisted the occasional customer.
The bell above the door chimed, barely audible over her music, but Vinyl's eyes instinctively flicked towards the entrance. Her breath caught in her throat as she saw the stallion who had just walked in.
His name was Tempo Blaze, an Earth Pony stallion who stood tall and lean. His light brown coat seemed to sparkle under the bright store lights. A burning treble clef with a bolt of lightning shooting from the bottom marked his neck as his Cutie Mark.
His mane and tail were a striking bright blonde, styled in a sleek ponytail that accentuated his sharp features. But it was his eyes that truly caught her attention - a mesmerizing blend of green and aquamarine that seemed to shift like the sea, cool and somewhat distant.
The stallion's attire exuded an air of effortless fashion. He wore a crisp white button-up shirt, the collar slightly popped, under a fitted navy blue blazer. The blazer's sleeves were rolled up to his elbows, revealing stylish silver cuff links. A pair of designer jeans hugged his legs, complementing his athletic build. A thin silver chain hung around his neck, disappearing beneath his shirt collar.
As he moved through the store with a confident stride, Vinyl felt her heart rate quicken. He was probably one of Vinyl’s most frequent customers, and suffice to say she held a small flame for him.
As if sensing her gaze on him, the stallion turned his head, locking eyes with Vinyl. His lips tugged into a small, knowing smile, and he wandered over to the counter.
"Morning, Vinyl," he greeted, his voice smooth as velvet and just as rich.
“H-Hey Tempo” Vinyl stammered out, her cheeks flushing a light pink. She quickly moved to adjust the headphone set upon her head, turning down the volume that had been drowning out the store's natural ambiance.
"Any new arrivals?" Tempo asked, raising a brow as he casually rested his elbow on the counter.
"Um, yes," Vinyl said, her voice faltered as she began rummaging beneath the counter. Her fingers moved through several records before she pulled out a brand-new album, still wrapped in its cellophane. "Just received this one. It's a solo album of a Cellist by the name of…" Vinyl said reading over the Album. "Octavia Melody,"
“Eh…not really into a Classical mood” Tempo Blaze replied, waving a dismissive hand at the album. His attention wandered briefly across the store as a new song started playing from the overhead speakers.
Vinyl was taken aback but quickly recovered. “Hey, Tempo…” Vinyl started, her eyes darting quickly to the side as she brushed a few strands of hair behind her ear. “The Store closes at 7 today, So I was wondering, um... would you maybe want to go grab a coffee or something?"
“Oh…I actually have plans for tonight, Vinyl,” Tempo’s voice was apologetic, his eyes meeting hers with a soft regret. He offered her a small smile, “I’m sorry.”
Vinyl felt her heart drop and she quickly masked her disappointment with a forced smile. "Oh, that's alright," she said, hoping her voice didn’t show her heartbreak. "Maybe some other time."
Tempo Blaze turned and walked out of the store. He gave her a brief wave of acknowledgment before the door closed behind him, leaving Vinyl alone to sulk in the her shop. The beats from the overhead speakers now seemed so intrusive, so she reached up to click it off. Instantly, the store was engulfed in silence, echoing her loneliness.
She slumped down behind the counter, her eyes fixed on the vinyl record on the counter. She looked over the songs but soon grimaced as the first song was ‘Love's Greeting, Opus 12’
“Shut up” Vinyl muttered to herself, her hand pushing the vinyl away as if it offended her personally. She scowled at it, feeling the loneliness creep onto her like a monster from a nightmare. The deafening silence was better than the love songs she was considering to play, she decided.
Hours passed slowly in Vinyl's shop, as if every ticking second was an angry reminder of her unrequited love. She tried to occupy herself with anything she could find - reorganizing the vinyls, dusting off the CD racks, attempting to fix a squeaky floorboard.
Vinyl continued to work through the slow hours, trying to drown out her disappointment with toil. She didn’t see the shadows lengthen nor notice the lights dimming outside as she stayed hunched behind the counter. Finally, 7pm came around and Vinyl closed up her store. The Unicorn walked through the streets with a blue hoodie covering her from autumn winds, soon Vinyl arrived at her preferred bar, ‘The Keg’. It wasn’t Manehattens top bar, but it had a homely quality that Vinyl appreciated. Off the beaten path, surrounded by neon-lit billboards and bustling city life, The Keg was a haven of stillness.
Pushing through the heavy wooden doors, she slipped into her usual spot in the corner, away from the softly murmuring crowd. The bartender, was already pouring her usual drink - a straight whiskey - before she even had a chance to order.
The bartender was a close friend of Vinyl’s, an older zebra stallion by the name of Buck Wild. The older zebra had been a bartender for as long as she could remember, his skill in listening and pouring stiff drinks unmatched. Despite his profession, he had a surprisingly muscular build that hinted at a more adventurous past. His mane, a striking contrast of black and white streaks, was styled in intricate Viking braids, giving him an air of ruggedness. Buck's clean-shaven face displayed a distaste for any form of facial hair. He wore a plain black cotton shirt, an apron hastily tied around his waist, and threadbare trousers that showed signs of countless washes. A worn bandana adorned his neck, the stripes matching those of his mane. Vinyl had once asked about its significance, only to receive a mischievous wink and the enigmatic response, "Part of my past, part of my present".
"Rough day?" he asked sympathetically, sliding the drink over to her.
“I tried to ask him out today," Vinyl confessed, her voice barely a whisper. She grabbed the glass and swirled the amber liquid around, not meeting the bartender's eyes.
The bartender merely nodded in understanding, leaning on the counter as he wiped a glass clean. "And?"
“I’m sitting in your bar drinking your signature Whiskey, Buck” Vinyl said downing the drink, "What do you think happened?"
Buck sighed, a sympathy etched on his burly face. He then reached beneath the counter and produced a second glass. "This one's on me," he said, filling it with the same amber liquid.
Vinyl managed to give him a small but grateful smile. “Thanks, Buck” Vinyl said taking the glass.
Vinyl drank in silence for a moment, staring into the amber whirlpool of her glass as if it held the answers to her heartbreak. The hum of laughter, clinking glasses, and the low murmur of conversations from the rest of bar provided a comforting backdrop to her ruminations.
Vinyl quickly finished her third glass of alcohol and her ears perked up as she heard two stallions conversing down the bar. One of them was sharing a rumor he had heard.
"What? Is he like some contractor or something?" A green Earth Pony snorted around the rim of his beer.
"No, moron.” a white Unicorn reprimanded, taking a sip from his own drink. “This guy, whatever you need, no matter how big or crazy it is he can grant it. But his deals are..."
"Spit it out, damnit."
"There's a rumor that his magic isn't... Normal." the white unicorn murmured, glancing nervously around the bar as though he expected this mysterious man to be hiding in the shadows. "They say he can make your wildest dreams come true, but at a cost. A terrible cost."
Vinyl’s ears perked up. She turned her head slightly to listen more keenly without drawing their attention.
"Quit Talkin out of your ass” the green earth pony laughed, slapping a hand onto the bar.
“It’s true” the white unicorn insisted, his voice barely a whisper now. “Remember Unlucky Jack?"
"That loser friend of yours?" The green Earth Pony asked, his laughter faded into a worried half-smile.
"Yes, that Unlucky Jack!" The white unicorn affirmed. He lowered his voice further, leaning in closer to the Earth pony. "He told me that he met this man on Mane street. He wanted to be the luckiest guy in town. The man agreed to grant his wish, but he warned him that there would be a cost. A month later, Jack hit the biggest jackpot in casino history. But then...”
"Then what?" the green earth pony asked.
"Then he lost it all," the white unicorn continued, his voice barely more than a whisper. "His house, his wife...even his own life."
The green Earth Pony’s worried half-smile faded into a look of bewilderment. "So what, he went bankrupt?"
"No," the white unicorn corrected, shaking his head. "He was killed, found dead in his mansion. No visible wounds, no signs of a struggle, nothing. Just gone."
“Heh,” Buck chuckled after hearing this rumor. “Hey Vinyl, why don’t you try and find this Magic Deal Maker and make Tempo fall in love with you”
But when his eyes scanned the area, he saw an unoccupied seat and a ten dollar bill sitting under a glass on the counter. The unicorn mare was nowhere to be seen.
Midnight rolled around on Mane Street when Vinyl Scratch finally gave up her hunt for the elusive Magic Deal Maker. Her hooves ached, her eyes were heavy with fatigue and her heart pounded in trepidation over the rumors she had heard. The street was desolate, save for a few stray cats and late-night wanderers.
Vinyl Scratch leaned against a flickering streetlamp, her neon blue mane catching the dim light. She pulled out her phone, scrolling through the multiple missed calls from Buck. She sighed heavily, her breath fogging in the cold night air.
Just as she was about to call it a night, a faint whisper caught her ear. It seemed to come from everywhere and nowhere at once, carried on a sudden chill breeze that ruffled her hoodie.
“Little late for a young mare to be out and about” a voice said from the shadows.
"Who's there?" she asked, trying to keep her voice steady.
“Just a humble passerby,” the voice replied.
The shadows shifted and out stepped a lean stallion, his red coat billowing in the wind and his cane tapping against the ground.
“Whatcha lookin' for, missy?" he said, his voice smooth as silk, a wide grin spread across his face.
Vinyl swallowed. “I...was hoping to find someone. Someone...special."
The stallion raised an eyebrow. “I’m afraid that you are looking in the wrong place” the Stallion said, a hint of amusement in his voice. "Unless you're looking for trouble."
“I’m looking for a Deal Maker” Vinyl said, holding the stallion's gaze. "Rumor has it he can make anything happen."
"Oh, is that so?" The stallion chuckled, tapping his cane against the concrete of the street, producing a strange rhythm that echoed down the empty thoroughfare. "And what makes you believe such tales?"
"I don’t know,” Vinyl admitted, her gaze shifting to the cracked pavement under her hooves. “Desperation, I suppose.”
The stallion's laughter echoed off the stone buildings around them. "Ah, desperation. The mother of foolish decisions." He paused, his eyes gleaming in the faint light. "What is it you want so badly, Miss?”
“There’s this Stallion” Vinyl started, her voice catching on the lump in her throat.
“Somepony you harbor feelings for, I presume?" the stranger pressed, leaning against his cane with an air of nonchalance.
"Yes," Vinyl admitted, looking down at her hooves. "His name is Tempo Blaze. I've known him for a while now, and we're... we're close…”
“But this feeling is only one sided, isn't it?" The stranger finished for her, as if reading her thoughts.
Vinyl nodded, her eyes welling up. "Yes...”
“Oh, tragic," the stallion said, shaking his head sympathetically. “To love someone who does not return the sentiment. A cruel twist of fate, wouldn't you say?”
“It’s the worst feeling in the world,” Vinyl whispered, the words catching in her throat.
He studied her for a moment, before sighing and tapping his cane on the stone once more. "Well, I suppose I could remedy your situation."
Vinyl looked at him and was surprised to see none other than the infamous Radio Demon standing before her. But she wasn't afraid; instead, she saw an opportunity to get what she wanted
“Can you really help me?” Vinyl asked, her voice filled with renewed hope.
“My dear sweet child” Alastor replied, the corners of his mouth lifting into a grin that stretched far too wide. “That’s what I do. it’s what I live for - to help unfortunate Ponyfolk..like yourself”
Vinyl Scratch grew confused as she began to hear music that seemed to come from nowhere.
“Poor souls…with nopony else to turn to” Alastor continued, tapping his cane again to the rhythm of the mysterious music. The tune was haunting yet enticing, pulling Vinyl deeper into this strange encounter.
"I admit that in the past I've been a nasty," he crooned, his voice sliding into a smooth melody. "They weren't kidding when they called me, well, a demon,”
"But you'll find that nowadays I’ve mended all my ways,” he sang, his voice taking on an uncharacteristically warm tone. "Repented, seen the light and made a switch - true? Yes!"
"And I fortunately know a little magic," Alastor twirled his cane, the tip blazing with a brilliant emerald flame. "It's a talent that I always have possessed."
"And here lately, please don't laugh," he continued, the flame dancing in rhythm with his voice, "I use it on behalf of the miserable, lonely, and depressed - pathetic."
"Poor unfortunate souls," Alastor began to circle Vinyl, the melody growing louder. "In pain, in need."
Soon Alastor’s flame grew before splitting into two flames and taking the shape of a frail stallion and a heavy set mare, each bearing expressions of unspeakable heartache.
"This one longing to be thinner," he pointed the cane at a portly mare before pointing at the frail stallion. "That one wants to get the girl, and do I help them?" he twirled his cane once more, the emerald flames shimmering in the night air. "Indeed, I do."
The spectral figures of the stallion soon turn from a frail stallion to one with a square jaw and flawless muscles and mare was transformed from a heavy figure into a slender, graceful mare with flowing mane. Their expressions shifted from despair to delight as they smiled at each other, the flame-images reaching out and touching hands in an ethereal dance that echoed Alastor's melody.
"Those poor unfortunate souls," Alastor sang, his grin widening, "so sad, so true."
"They come flocking to my feet, crying 'Spells, Alastor, please!' And I help them," he continued, twirling his cane and sending sparks of emerald light cascading around him. “Indeed, I do!"
“Now it’s happened once or twice,” Alastor continued, his voice falling into a more somber rhythm as she spoke in Vinyl’s ear. "Someone couldn't pay the price, and I'm afraid I had to rake them 'cross the coals."
Vinyl's eyes widened in terror as she witnessed the transformation of the two ponies engulfed in flames. The once familiar figures twisted and warped, their forms now resembling dark, horned demons from the shadows.
“Yes I’ve had the odd complaint,” The Radio Demon admitted, as he walked in front of the unicorn wearing what looked like a nun’s clothes “but on the whole I’ve been a saint... to those poor unfortunate souls.”
Stop Music at 1:35
The music abruptly stops, leaving a ringing silence in its wake. Alastor's red suit and bow tie return to their normal form, but his grin remains, now tinged with an eerie shadow. His slow, deliberate steps bring him closer to the terrified Vinyl.
"Now then," Alastor's honeyed voice fills the air like a deathly whisper, "here's the deal." His words land heavily on Vinyl's ears like a dark omen. "I will craft for you a special song, in the form of a vinyl record. All you have to do is get that stallion of yours to listen to it, and he will accept your true feelings."
"That...doesn't sound so..." Vinyl starts to protest, but Alastor cuts her off with a sharp laugh that echoes through the air like a sinister omen.
"However, this little spell will only last for three days," Alastor explained, his voice smooth as velvet as he circled around Vinyl. His words hung in the air like a sweet and tempting melody, beckoning her forward. "But to make it truly permanent, you must acquire a kiss from your beloved stallion - a kiss of true love." As he spoke, his piercing gaze seemed to bore into Vinyl's very soul.
A shiver of excitement and fear ran through Vinyl at the thought of winning her beloved's heart with a simple spell. But then Alastor's next words struck her like a bolt of lightning. "If you fail to achieve this," he paused for dramatic effect, relishing in the fear that flickered in Vinyl's eyes, "then you will belong to me for all eternity."
Vinyl's mind raced with conflicting thoughts. The price was steep - risking eternal servitude to the Radio Demon - but the promise of true love was too alluring to ignore. After all, her beloved stallion remained oblivious to her feelings; this could be her only chance.
Just as she was about to speak, Alastor interjected once more. "Oh, how foolish of me," he feigned an apologetic tone, but his eyes danced with amusement. "We haven't discussed payment yet. After all, you can't get something for nothing."
“What could I…” Vinyl's heart hammered in her chest as the Radio Demon silenced her with a clawed finger over her lips. She felt his cold, calculated gaze bore into her, sending shivers down her spine.
"I'm not asking for much," Alastor said, his tone dripping with malice. "Just a small token, a mere trinket. I assure you, you won't even notice it's missing."
The mare could feel the demon circling around her like a predator stalking its prey. His clawed fingers drummed menacingly on her shoulders before he came to a stop behind her. Leaning in closer, Alastor spoke in a chilling whisper that made Vinyl's blood run cold.
"What I desire from you is..." he paused, savoring the fear in her eyes before finishing his sentence with a sinister smile. "Your voice."
Vinyl's entire world crumbled around her as she felt her heart plummet into the pit of her stomach. The very essence of her being, her voice, was threatened to be taken from her. She was a singer, known for her unique sound and captivating performances. Without her voice, she feared she would fade away into oblivion.
“But… my voice is…” she stuttered, her mind replete with dread as Alastor’s triumphant chuckle echoed around her.
"I know," Alastor purred, his voice filled with a delight that was terrifying in its intensity as he let the mare go. "That's exactly why I want it, No more talking, Singing, Zip"
Panic consumed Vinyl as she struggled to find a way out of this nightmare. How could she possibly continue living without her voice? How could she fulfill her dreams of making it big in the music industry without the one thing that set her apart?
"But...without my voice, how can I convince Tempo to..." Vinyl's plea was cut off once again by Alastor's icy glare, silencing her completely.
Start Music again
“You won’t need your voice, Dearie” Alastor stated as the unfamiliar music resumed. “You’ll have your looks, Your Pretty Face…and don’t underestimate the importance of body language, ha!” He sang the last line with a sway in his hips, enjoying the terrified look on Vinyl's face.
Vinyl was trapped, cornered. Her eyes flitted around the dark street, looking for an escape, a way out of this conundrum.
“The men up there don’t like a lot of blabber” The Radio Demon sang on, delighting in the song as he danced around her with a giddiness that was both disconcerting and terrifying. "They think a girl who gossips is a bore! Yet on land it's much preferred for mares not to say a word and after all dear, what is idle prattle for?"
The melody swirled around them, carried on a cold wind that seemed to come from nowhere. Alastor's gaze was fixed on her, his red eyes glowing like coals, the intensity of his stare as intoxicating as it was terrifying.
“Come on,” he urged, almost gleefully. “They’re not all that impressed with conversation, true gentlemen avoid it if they can. But they dote and swoon and fawn on a lady who's withdrawn! It's she who holds her tongue who gets a man!”
"Stop it!" Vinyl shouted, her voice echoing through the deserted street. "You can't take my voice!"
“Come on, you Poor Unfortunate Soul!” Alastor mockingly belted out, his voice filled with unadulterated glee. “Go ahead, make your choice! I’m a very busy demon and I haven’t got all day, it won’t cost much...just your voice!"
Vinyl felt an invisible pressure in the pit of her stomach, the force of Alastor's allure pulling her forward. She stood on trembling legs, eyes wide, her heart pounding. The street stretched out behind her, dark and foreboding, while before her Alastor was a figure of light, a torrent of colour in the murky gloom.
“You poor Unfortunate Soul!” Alastor sang louder, Shadow demons surrounds the two, accompanied by the eerie rhythm of their own chant. "It's sad but true! If you want to cross a bridge, my sweet, you've got the pay the toll! Take a gulp and take a breath and go ahead and sign the scroll!"
The scroll and pen appeared from thin air, unfurling from nothingness, revealing lines of intricate, swirling text that danced before Vinyl's eyes. It was an otherworldly language she didn't recognize, a cacophony of jumbled letters and symbols that seemed to shift and morph with each passing second.
“Now I’ve got her boys!” Alastor crowed to the surrounding demons, his eyes gleaming with a triumphant, diabolical light. "The boss is on a roll! This poor unfortunate soul!”
With a swift movement, Vinyl found her hand guided towards the scroll, an ethereal quill held in her trembling fingers. She felt Alastor's cold smile radiating towards her as she began to etch her name across the bottom of the page. The letters came out beautiful and curvaceous, entirely out of her control. She watched as the ink seemed to glow for a moment before seeping into the scroll, permanently binding itself to the contract.
"Finally," Alastor said, his voice dripping with satisfaction as he watched Vinyl's hand drop back to her side. The quill evaporated into nothingness, leaving behind a faint trail of smoke in the air that smelled strangely like burning paper.
“A deal is a deal,” Alastor continued cheerfully, snapping his fingers. The scroll rolled back up and dematerialized before he lifted his cane and pointed it at Vinyl’s neck. “And now I think I’ll take my payment”
In an instant, there was a cold wave washing over Vinyl, her breath hitched, her heart pounded. A strange silence filled the space; even the demons seemed to hold their breath in anticipation. She felt something leap from within her, roaring past her lips in a soundless scream. She clutched at her throat, feeling an icy emptiness settle where her voice once was. Painful, aching silence echoed within her chest. blood gushed from her mouth and she fell onto her knees, clutching her throat whilst helplessly gasping for air. Her eyes widened in terror as she tried to scream, to call out, but only the dreadful silence replied.
Alastor's triumphant grin grew wider. He lifted his cane closer to him, a glowing orb which echoed soft melodies that sounded identical to Vinyl’s voice before it retreated to inside his microphone. Vinyl Scratch looked at the demon with helpless desperation, her own voice stolen and trapped within Alastor's cane. The surrounding demons cackled, their laughter echoing ominously throughout the cavernous space.
Magic swirled around his free hand before a Vinyl record materialized, its sheen reflecting the dim light around them.
"As promised, here's your precious record," Alastor crooned handing the record to the mare "Only fair, don't you think?"
Vinyl's hand reached out shakily, her fingers brushing against the smooth surface of the record. Her gaze was a mix of horror and disbelief, staring at the record as if it were a venomous snake. The demons' laughter grew louder and more twisted with each passing second, feeding off her palpable fear and despair.
“Remember, Once he hears the song on that record the spell will take hold” Alastor said as he and the shadow demons vanished into the thick, suffocating darkness, leaving Vinyl alone in her torment.
The unicorn mare slumped onto the ground, her body shaking violently as sobs wracked through her. The record was still clutched in her grasp, white-knuckled and trembling. The laughter of the demons was a haunting melody that echoed around her, seeping into her skin and twisting her gut. The taste of iron still lingered in her mouth as she tried to stand, her knees wobbling beneath her weight. She looked down at the record in her hand, her heart pounding like a war drum against her chest. She had paid the price, and now she was going to get what she wanted. Vinyl slowly made her way home, each step felt heavier than the last. Her hooves echoed on the concrete streets of Manehatten, a solemn counterpoint to the silence torn from her throat.
Once home, Vinyl shuffled to her music store, dragging herself upstairs into her room where the walls were lined with records of every variety. Her whole livelihood was built on those grooves and melodies that once brought joy, but now seemed meaningless.
Vinyl placed the magic record on her nightstand before collapsing on her bed, not even a second later her eyes shut and she fell asleep, her dreams filled with monstrous shadows and echoing laughter.
A pale shard of dawn peeked through the window when Vinyl awoke from her restless slumber. She rubbed her eyes, the record still lying untouched on the nightstand. Vinyl closed her eyes and shook her head as she pulled herself from her bed, the Unicorn slowly removed her closed from yesterday and proceeded to take a well needed shower. Stepping into the tub and pulling back the curtain, she turned the knob and was met with a cascade of warm water that fell onto her skin like rain. The heat seeped into her tired muscles, relaxing them and washing away a thin layer of the night's terror. But the chill that clung to her soul remained.
Despite the soothing warmth enveloping her, Vinyl could not shake off the cold dread that had lodged itself deep within her. The laughter of the demons seemed to echo in the falling water, their twisted merriment intertwining with the soft patter against the tiles. She grit her teeth, shaking her head in an attempt to dispel the chilling echoes. As the water washed away the tangible remnants of last night's ordeal, Vinyl steeled herself for what was to come.
Freshly showered, dressed for work and the vinyl record in hand, Vinyl trotted downstairs to her music store, taking in the sight of her passion. Music…Music was her life, her solace, and her fortress. But now she gave it up for the one she loved, Deep down Vinyl regretted making the deal, but at the same time she was about to finally get Tempo Blaze to return her feelings for him.
The now mute Unicorn trotted over to the front of the store, with a heavy sigh, Vinyl forced a smile before unlocking the front door and flicking on the neon “Open” sign.
The sun had fully risen by now, casting long beams of light that danced upon the dust particles in the air. The radiant sunlight also reflected off the record covers hanging on the back wall, creating a kaleidoscope of colors around the shop.
Vinyl saw her customers start to trickle in; regulars who always dropped in for their weekly music fix, casual browsers who liked to peruse the eclectic collection she had curated, and a few early birds hoping to find some rare gem before anyone else. She greeted each one with a nod and the same practiced smile that didn't quite reach her eyes.
Midday rolled around, and the moment of Vinyl’s resolve was now about to be tested. In walked in Tempo Blaze, the sole reason she sought out Alastor in the first place.
“Hey Vinyl” Tempo Blaze greeted her nonchalantly.
Vinyl merely waved at the earth pony stallion, Tempo took notice of the lack of a response immediately.
“You okay, Vinyl?” Tempo asked with a tinge of concern lacing his words.
the Unicorn knew she had no chance of answering him due to the deal she made with Alastor, However, she planned for this. Vinyl placed a hand to her neck, Tempo took this as a sign that said She lost her voice.
“Lost your voice recording another song?” Tempo asked.
Vinyl nodded, while it wasn’t technically a lie, it twisted something in her to mislead him like this, even by omission. The earth pony seemed satisfied with the answer, looking around before his eyes settled on the record Vinyl was clutching tightly.
"What's this?" He gestured towards her grasp.
With a deep breath, Vinyl placed the record on the on the turntable behind the counter. The needle dropped, and the sound of a haunting melody filled the air, it was much more horrifying to Vinyl considering that is was her voice on the record. The unicorn turned back to Tempo and found his gaze somewhat distant for a few seconds before he broke out of his trance and looked at Vinyl, his eyes wide and full of surprise.
“Hey Vinyl,” Tempo said, his green aquamarine eyes looking at Vinyl in a different way. “Did you want to…Maybe…go to my place and have a drink?"
Vinyl's eyes light up with excitement as she nods along to the music, her gaze bouncing back and forth between Tempo and the record spinning on the turntable.
“Cool” Tempo said texting his address to her “See you later, Vinyl”
The moment Tempo walked out the door, the unicorn had rushed to close her store early today and eagerly ushered everyone out as she flipped the sign to "Closed". Despite losing her voice, there was a small spark of hope in her heart, a flutter of anticipation that made it all worthwhile - maybe even more so than she could have imagined.
Vinyl Scratch stepped off the Elevator of Tempo's high-rise apartment building, her hooves clicking rhythmically on the marble flooring of the opulent lobby. She swallowed, feeling the pressure of the silence in her throat, a constant reminder of her pact with Alastor.
Suddenly, without warning, a pegasus mare ran passed Vinyl, her hand holding her face where a very large black bruise was forming. She was sobbing uncontrollably, her eyeliner running down her cheeks in streaks of black. The mare did not spare Vinyl a glance, despite the unicorn's wide eyes.
Vinyl watched as the pegasus disappeared around a corner, then she shook herself out of her stupor and continued her way towards Tempo's apartment. Vinyl walked up to the opulent entrance of Tempo's penthouse suite, located at the very top floor of this high-rise building. The faint sound of music slipping through the cracks around the door. Vinyl took one last glance around the silent and pristine hallway, then she knocked gently at the door. The music faltered, then stopped abruptly. Moments later, the door swung open to reveal Tempo in a simple white shirt and faded jeans.
"Hey Vinyl," he greeted her warmly, allowing her inside.
His aquamarine eyes shone with an excitement that mirrored her own. He led her into the spacious penthouse suite, decorated in a minimalistic yet refined style, large windows offering a breathtaking view of the city.
"Nice place," Vinyl attempted to say, but only managed to mouth silently.
“You want a drink?” Tempo asked.
Vinyl nodded and Tempo disappeared into the kitchen. As she waited, she took the time to admire the pieces of artwork adorning his walls, a mix of modern abstraction and vintage record covers that sung of his passion for music. She found herself pulled towards them like a moth to a flame, her eyes lingering particularly on a painting of a red and black analog radio. The unicorn mare shuddered at the sight as it reminded her of the Radio Demon, the very one she had struck her silent deal with. The fear of what she gave up to him returned in full force, but she shoved it away as Tempo reappeared with two glasses of whiskey.
The two of them, spent the day and even the rest of the night enjoying each others company. Every time she needed to speak she merely used her phone to communicate. Her messages were short and precise, efficiently conveying her thoughts. They discussed music, their shared love for vinyl records, and Tempo’s collection of vintage record covers. His eyes would glimmer with delight as they spoke about music and Vinyl couldn't help but appreciate his enthusiasm.
As the night went on, they played a few records. The rich, warm sound of the vinyl filled the room and seemed to wrap them in a comforting cocoon. It was a welcome distraction from the reality Vinyl had been thrust into - a world where she could no longer speak her own thoughts.
Tempo didn't seem to mind her silence, though. If anything, he appreciated the quiet reassurance of her presence. The way she listened to him, her eyes sparkling with life and interest as he spoke about his love for the art of music, the deep connection he felt to each note and rhythm; he's never felt so seen before.
Their time together ended sometime after 2 in the morning, but what they didn't realize was that a pair of watchful eyes were observing their every move from the top of a nearby building.
Alastor's laughter echoed through the room as he observed the two individuals before him. "How entertaining," he mused, drumming his clawed fingers against his cane. "I can't decide whether to let this situation continue…or to step in and watch her slowly succumb to serving me in despair."
Alastor was not one to meddle in the affairs of his deals too hastily. His demonic nature found joy in the slow burn of their struggles, their fights against destiny. It was music to his ears, a symphony composed of their anguished whispers and silent screams.
"She'll come to regret her choice," he murmured, his grin widening as he watched Vinyl part with Tempo at the doorstep of home. "In time, they all do."
In the End, Alastor chose not to intervene as he spent the next few days watching the two. And on the final night before Alastor’s spell wore off, Vinyl and Tempo shared true loves kiss making Alastor’s spell on Tempo Blaze permanent.
Unfortunately, Vinyl Scratch will learn in the worst way what kind of person Tempo Blaze is.
Author's Note
Wow...........................................................................................................................................................
Okay. I know I promised Two deals in this chapter....and I fully expected to write about 3k words worth of story with both deal stories....But....Vinyl's Deal went on longer than I imagined. So much so I need to break it into a Part 2.
Question Time, Bitches!!!
Thanks for yet another awesome chapter!
So Charlie does have the power to try and take control of his body back from Alastor. However, since we now know that Alastor genuinely loves his girls. I still really doubt that he'll be able to win a battle of wills with our favorite demon.
Also, going back to the armor the Knights of the Sun wear. Is it safe to assume that it does have a design flaw or a weakness to a specific material that can render all of its abilities useless?
So I haven't thought of a chink in the Sun Knight's Armor. their weapons on the other hand do have a very bad structural flaw
Looks like the two wills are at a impass.
Would Spike and Smolder be able to fight in their normal forms too and kick ass as well alongside the greed growth forms you mentioned?
Neither of them are gonna die, are they? Given how Razzle or Dazzle(forgot which) died.
I hope they both live
Okay So Spike and Smolder can fight in their base form, Spike is a straight up brawler who fight with his fists, Smolder is much more flexible and is a bit of a grappler and uses a combo of both fists and kicks....However I do apologize but I can not reveal if Spike or Smolder die in this fanfiction
Okay that's all the Questions. And remember if you want to ask something go for it. I will always address your questions right down here.
And As Always, Stay Tuned Folks
Chapter 2: Unleashing Chaos
Something has gone wrong. We don't seem to have an archived copy of that chapter. Luna's hooves traced a path around the castle grounds, her thoughts wandering with her as she reflected on the intense battle she and her sister had faced months ago with the powerful Radio demon. The memory was still vivid, every detail etched into her mind like a scar. She could almost feel the heat of the flames and hear the clash of swords all over again. Despite the time that had passed, the intensity of their fight still lingered in her mind like an ever-present storm cloud.
Despite Luna's slow recovery from their previous encounter, the nightmares continued to haunt her. But it was her older sister who seemed to suffer the most. With each passing day, Celestia withdrew further into herself, rarely leaving her rooms except for her duties and meals. Luna could hear the screams of their subjects and the static of the radio coming from behind the locked doors, a constant reminder of the chaos outside their safe haven. The once vibrant and bustling palace now felt cold and desolate, its halls echoing with emptiness. And Luna couldn't help but feel a sense of guilt, knowing that it was partly her fault for what had happened to her sister.
As Luna wandered through the castle grounds, her heart heavy with guilt, she made a decision. She couldn't bear to see her sister suffer any longer. With determination in her eyes, she marched towards Celestia's chambers, determined to break down the walls that had been built between them.
Upon reaching the closed doors, Luna hesitated for a moment, her hand hovering over the ornate handle. Taking a deep breath, she pushed it open and stepped inside.
The room was shrouded in darkness, only the faint glow of moonlight seeping through the heavy curtains. Celestia sat at her desk, hunched over a pile of papers, her face pale and drawn. Luna knew that her sister had been tirelessly working to restore order to their kingdom, but there was a deeper pain etched into her features.
"Celestia," Luna said softly, her voice barely above a whisper. "I cannot bear to see you like this."
Celestia's glare towards her sister was hard, like a blade of ice piercing through the air. As Celestia turned to face her, Luna caught sight of sisters missing left arm, the stump a constant reminder of the battle they fled.
"In what way do you mean, dear sister?" Celestia asked venom dripping with her voice. "Is it because of my lack of sleep? Or perhaps because I am not at full strength due to this injury?"
With a loud slam, Celestia stood up from her seat and loomed over Luna, her towering figure emphasizing the power dynamic between them. "Unlike you, I have been busy running our kingdom," she snapped back. "Why don't you go off and make somepony dream of candy instead of bothering me?"
Luna flinched at Celestia's harsh words, her heart aching with the sting of her sister's anger. The palpable chill of discord hung in the air as silence settled between them. Despite the sharpness of the moment, Luna remained resolute in her effort to repair their fractured relationship.
Taking a deep breath, she attempted to bridge the gap that her sister's words had widened. "Celestia, I understand how heavy your burden is," she said earnestly.
"Burden?" Celestia scoffed, her anger boiling over as she swiftly backhanded Luna across the cheek. "You have never understood my burden in all these years!"
"T-Tia," Luna whimpered as she held her reddening cheek in pain.
"Listen to this," Celestia seethed, pointing to a nearby radio blaring screams and chaos. "The Radio Demon is causing discord in our kingdom and because of your actions, I was unable to defeat him."
Luna's eyes widened in shock as she listened to the cacophony emanating from the radio. The screams, the cries for help, they tore at her heart, reminding her of the pain and suffering that she had inadvertently caused. And now, her sister's anger was directed towards her, a painful reminder of her own guilt.
Tears welled up in Luna's eyes as she struggled to find the right words to say. She reached out a trembling hand towards her sister, but Celestia jerked away, as if Luna's touch would burn her.
"I... I'm sorry," Luna choked out amidst sobs. "I never wanted any of this to happen. I never wanted you to get hurt."
Celestia's expression softened slightly, a flicker of pain crossing her features before she quickly masked it with a cold indifference.
The bitterness in her voice could have frozen the air around them. "Sorry doesn't change what has already transpired," she spat, her eyes blazing with anger and resentment. "It doesn't bring back the ponies we've lost nor does it give me back my arm!"
Before Luna could even form a retort, Celestia's fist connected with her face, sending her flying out of the room. The impact was so powerful that Luna felt her vision blur for a moment.
As she struggled to regain her composure, she touched her hand to her face and felt the warm trickle of blood from her nose. She looked up to see her sister walking towards the door, her hand resting on it as if preparing to leave.
But then something changed in Celestia's demeanor. Flames seemed to flicker around her form and her eyes took on a dangerous glint. "Next time you want to check on me," she growled, each word dripping with venom. "You'd better have the Radio Demon's head on a fucking platter!"
And with that, Celestia slammed the door shut with such force that cracks formed on the stone walls surrounding them. The sound echoed through the castle and Luna couldn't help but feel a shiver run down her spine at her sister's display of power and rage.
"I want his head just as much as she, but she is letting that anger blind her" Luna muttered, wiping the blood from her nose. "To strike her own sister as if I was her own enemy, Celestia is playing right into the devils hands, I have to watch my step around her now... I pray she only does this to me and not those around her" Luna said to herself before correcting her broken nose and walked over to the window.
The devastation Alastor had left behind was almost too much for Luna to look at, but with her sister caring very little about the now, she had to rebuild and help those recover from the loss.
Celestia stomped through the halls holding the stump that was once her arm, she growled like a wild animal before smashing her fist right through one of the castle walls.
"I dont care who or what I have to go through, I'll make the son of a whore regret taking my arm and killing my people. I'll kill him, I swear I'll kill him" Celestia repeatedly said to herself as she continued down the castle halls.
In the days that followed, a palpable tension clung to the air of the castle like a malevolent fog, seeping into every stone corridor and opulent chamber. Whispered fears threaded among the staff; the usually serene aura of their sovereign had curdled into a tempestuous storm. Celestia prowled the castle halls, a force of unchecked might and simmering wrath, her presence alone enough to silence the once lively chatter among her servants.
Staff who had served dutifully for years now tread lightly, their eyes downcast, words exchanged in cautious murmurs. Celestia, once a beacon of gentle guidance and steady support, seemed to warp before them—the grace and poise that characterized her rule gave way to an unyielding severity that turned orders into threats and simple mistakes into grave transgressions.
And it only grew worse, Luna saw her sister physically strike or harm the staff for just looking at her wrong. Luna saw much that made her stomach turn, and she knew she had to do something to stop her sister from causing further harm. But Celestia's wrath seemed to be an unstoppable force.
As days turned into weeks, Luna began to realize that her once-beloved sister had become a shell of her former self, incapable of compassion, empathy, or reason. And yet, Luna couldn't bring herself to 'defy' her sister outright, for fear of exacerbating the situation and drawing Celestia's wrath upon herself.
Instead Luna spent all her time in the infirmary tending to the wounds of the staff, eventually the Alicorn grew more and more tired of seeing her sister behave like this. the Lunar Princess swallowed her fear and searched the castle for her sister, that is until a scream echoed throughout the palace.
Luna's heart raced as she rushed towards the source of the scream, her hooves pounding against the marble floors of the castle. She burst into the dining hall to find one of her maids on the floor, clutching at a burn that marred her face. Luna's sister, Princess Celestia, stood nearby with a broken teacup in her hands.
"I...I'm...So..Sorry..Your majesty," the maid cried, tears streaming down her face.
"Celestia!" Luna called out, causing her older sister to shoot her a sharp side glare. "What are you doing?"
Luna reached for the struggling maid, but Celestia was quicker. She scooped up the maid in her arms and dragged a shard of the broken cup across her cheek, leaving behind a trail of blood. Luna watched in horror as her sister's usually gentle demeanor was replaced by one of rage and violence.
"Celestia!" Luna screamed, horrified by what she was seeing.
"She tried to poison me," Celestia spat, dropping the maid who crawled away from the alicorn in fear.
"Celestia, no pony here would ever try to harm you!" Luna cried out, her voice breaking with fear and disbelief.
Before Celestia could respond, one of the castle's blacksmiths entered with a box in their hands.
"Princess Celestia, it's ready," the pony announced as they approached.
"Show me," Celestia demanded, moving towards the pony with determination.
"Celestia!" Luna shouted after her sister. "We need to tal...!"
But before Luna could finish her sentence, she was thrown back by an invisible force and slammed into the wall. She groaned in pain as she looked up at her sister, whose hand was now glowing with magic.
Ignoring Luna's protests, Princess Celestia turned back to the pony and opened the box, revealing a beautifully crafted prosthetic arm inside. The princess picked up the artificial limb and examined it closely.
"Did you make it exactly how I wanted it?" Celestia asked, her attention fully on the prosthetic.
"I did, but I also took the liberty of adding a few modifications," the pony replied, as the arm suddenly split in half, revealing a hidden device within.
Celestia's eyes narrowed in suspicion as she stared at the strange device in front of her. The pony beside her grinned mischievously, his hoof gesturing towards the contraption.
"What is this?" Celestia demanded, her voice laced with a hint of anger.
"Test it out," the pony replied eagerly, his anticipation evident in his wide grin.
With a flick of her horn, Celestia activated the device and was met with a sudden burst of flames shooting out from its nozzle. Her brow furrowed as she turned to face the trembling maid who stood nearby, fear etched on her features.
"You tried to poison me," Celestia accused, her words seeping with warning.
Celestia's brow furrowed as she turned to the trembling maid. The princess's eyes narrowed in suspicion as the maid stuttered, "No, your Majesty, I would never try to poison you. I was just running late with your..."
But before she could finish her sentence, a sudden explosion of blistering heat engulfed her. The force of it tore at her clothes, disintegrating them into ash within seconds. Her skin sizzled and blistered, the pain searing through every nerve in her body as she collapsed to the ground. Her screams reverberated off the walls, filling the room with pure terror and agony. The air hung heavy with the acrid smell of burned flesh and charred remains.
Luna was stunned silent as she had just watched her sister murder one of her subjects, and in cold blood!
Celestia turned back to the pony. "What is this?" the alicorn asked.
"It's a new device of mine, I call it a 'Flame Thrower'" the pony explained. "It takes these small gas canisters and uses your magic as the ignition, I've also modified the fingers so they can unscrew to act as secret compartments, it gives the design a level of utility and hidden functionality. There's also a "retractable blade" in the forearm part of the prosthetic, further supporting the arm's multifunctional nature."
However as he was explaining Celestia had already extended the blade. "Are you the only one who could have made this?" the Princess asked
With a sense of pride, the pony declared, "Only my son and I possess the skill to create such a masterpiece." His voice filled with reverence for their shared craft.
But his words were cut short as he coughed up blood, the blacksmith looked down and noticed the glimmer of a blade deep in the his chest.
"You are no longer needed" Celestia said, her face devoid of emotion as she twisted the blade before flicking her arm to the right, tearing it through his side and disemboweling him. "Looks like it's your son's turn to work for me" she said, retracting the blade.
With a thud, the pony's lifeless body hit the ground, and Celestia turned to find her younger sister missing - swept away by the wind like a fleeting memory.
Luna sprinted through the dense thicket, her heart pounding with fear and determination. The sound of her hooves hitting the ground echoed through the trees, each step bringing her closer to safety as she put distance between herself and her sister. But even as she ran, Luna couldn't shake the sinking feeling in her stomach that the mare responsible for killing her subjects was none other than her own sister.
She knew she couldn't keep running forever, so as she finally came to a stop to catch her breath, Luna took a moment to reassess the situation. Celestia was clearly unstable and dangerous, but she was still family. Luna couldn't give up on her, not yet. She had to find a way to bring Celestia back to reason, to help her see the error of her ways and make things right for those who had suffered under her wrath.
"I need to bring Celestia back to her senses," Luna thought desperately, trying to come up with a plan. "If only I had access to all of the elements..."
Her train of thought was abruptly cut off when her hoof caught on a hidden tree root, sending her tumbling to the ground with a loud shriek. As she tried to collect herself, Luna felt a familiar presence nearby and looked up to see Alastor standing over her with a twisted smile on his face.
"That was quite the fall, my dear," he said in a voice filled with radio static. "Would you like some help, Princess?"
Luna's anger flared at the sight of him. "You...you did this to my sister!" she exclaimed, struggling against his grip. "How can you stand there and smile after knowing you caused her paranoia?!"
"My dear, I have done nothing that you yourself wouldn't have done in my position," Alastor replied calmly, chuckling slightly. "I simply defended myself while she made a less than successful attempt on my life. But you are correct, your dreadful sister has caused great harm not only to you, but to all those who trusted her."
Luna's eyes widened in surprise as she felt something small and furry crawl onto her back. She turned to see a one-eyed filly perched there, grinning mischievously before it hopped off and scurried behind the Radio Demon.
"You have been watching us?" Luna questioned, her voice filled with both curiosity and a hint of suspicion.
"He has," Niffty answered, gesturing towards Alastor. The demon simply chuckled, his red eyes sparkling with amusement.
"I must say, watching the two of you has been quite entertaining," he remarked, idly twirling a cane in his hand. Two shadowy tendrils emerged from behind him, gently helping Luna to her feet.
"Why... are you helping me?" Luna asked cautiously, eyeing Alastor warily.
"That's quite simple, my dear. I wish to help you," Alastor responded smoothly, a charming smile on his face. Luna couldn't help but feel even more confused. This was the same demon who had caused so much pain and suffering for her and her sister, yet here he was offering to help her?
"Allow me to explain a little clearer. Let us make a deal," Alastor continued, extending a hand that glowed with an eerie green light.
"A deal?" Luna repeated, still unsure.
"Yes, my dear. A deal. I will grant you immeasurable power in order to knock some sense back into your sister," Alastor told her, his tone almost too casual for such a serious offer.
"And... what do you get in return?" Luna asked again, suddenly feeling a chill run down her spine as she looked at his outstretched hand.
"You will owe me one favor," Alastor stated, his grin widening at the thought of having control over a powerful princess like Luna. Voices whispered in her head, warning her against making any deals with the demon. But as she remembered the suffering and chaos caused by her sister's actions, Luna knew she had to do something. She couldn't let her people suffer any longer.
She hesitated for a moment, her mind racing as she weighed her options. Ultimately, she made her decision.
"So my dear princess... do we have a deal?" Alastor's voice dripped with eagerness as he extended his hand towards Luna, the corners of his mouth curled in a wicked smile. She hesitated before finally placing her own hand in his, sealing their pact.
"Deal," Luna replied, her voice trembling slightly as she grasped Alastor's hand. The moment their skin touched, Luna was hit with a surge of power that coursed through her body like a lightning bolt. She fell to her knees, gasping for air as the energy consumed her.
"Now, go and save your sister," Alastor spoke smoothly, his words rolling off his tongue like silk. "And make it an entertaining show."
As Luna struggled to stand, Alastor placed a hand on her shoulder. "But remember, my dear, one favor may seem innocent enough, but it could cost you your life."
His chilling cackle echoed through the air as he and Niffty dissolved into shadows, disappearing from view. Luna stood still, shock and confusion overwhelming her mind as she processed what had just transpired. Was this truly her only choice?
But then, a wave of newfound power surged through her veins, filling her with determination. She couldn't let her sister be consumed by darkness any longer. With a steely resolve, Luna charged forward in a blur of movement, determined to save her sister and bring her back to the light.
However, even as she used her strengthened powers to fuel her actions, they also fed into her deepest insecurities and desires. A seductive voice whispered in the depths of her mind, reminding her of how the ponies of Equestria reveled in Celestia's radiant sun while shunning the beauty of her night sky.
The wind whipped through Luna's hair as she raced towards the ancient castle. Her heart thundered in her chest, filled with a sense of both exhilaration and dread. The power that Alastor had granted her pulsed through her veins, tempting her with its dark promises.
As she ran, the voices in her head grew louder and more insistent, urging her to embrace her newfound abilities and give in to her darkest desires. With each step, the allure of power grew stronger, like a siren's song luring her towards the rocks.
Luna could feel the darkness creeping into her soul, threatening to consume her and corrupt her once pure heart. She could almost taste the bitterness of vengeance on her tongue, fueled by the raw energy coursing through her body.
Luna's lips twisted into a sneer as she muttered to herself, her voice filled with resentment and bitterness. "She thinks she's better than us, and they all love her more for it. Even though they suffer beatings and maimings, they still fawn over her," she seethed.
But Luna knew the truth. She was the one who healed them, reassured them, defended them. Yet not once did they offer a simple thank you or show any appreciation. No smiles, no nods, no hugs. Nothing.
The darkness in Luna's heart spread like a stain, sinking deeper and deeper into the darkest pit of her body. She blamed it on the demon inside her, but deep down she relished in its influence.
"I'll make her pay," she declared through gritted teeth. "She'll regret thinking she was above me. I'll ensure that there will never be another sunrise for thousands of years...I'll make this night last forever."
A wicked smile stretched across Luna's face, followed by a giggle that turned into a haunting laugh. The smile that didn't seem to fade slowly began losing teeth one by one and replacing itself with sharp shark like teeth, the same as Alastor's. Her fur darkened to a near pitch black and her fingers throbbed with pain as her nails fell out and were replaced by talon-like claws.
"It hurts... it hurts and yet... I love it " Luna hissed with exhilaration as she embraced the darkness within her.
Celestia's eyes widened in shock as she gazed towards the sky. Her sister's moon, usually a gentle companion to her own sun, now blocked out its light and plunged the land of Equestria into eternal darkness. Shadows crept across the once-vibrant hues of the sun-drenched earth, replacing them with a grim twilight. The princess watched in horror as the moon loomed above her, a malevolent presence casting an inky blanket across the sky. A low, guttural laugh echoed through the air, freezing Celestia's blood.
"Luna..." she growled, her voice barely audible through clenched teeth. "What have you done?!"
With panicked determination, Celestia ran through the castle searching for her younger sister. She pushed and shoved ponies out of her way, leaving chaos in her wake. Finally, she burst into the throne room and found Luna sitting on her throne, her feet resting on the broken fragments of Celestia's own throne. Luna's entire form was shrouded in shadows.
"What do you think you are doing, Luna?!" Celestia shouted at her sister.
"My dear, isn't it obvious?" a smooth, sinister voice spoke from behind Celestia.
Alastor emerged from the shadows and walked into view. "You are the reason she is as she is now."
"What are you talking about? What did you do to her?!" Celestia demanded answers.
"I simply offered a helping hand," Alastor said with a sly smile. "I took pity on the poor girl and decided to make a deal."
"You dare interfere with my sister's powers?" Celestia seethed.
"Oh please," Alastor chuckled. "I merely granted her the power to stop you in exchange for one simple favor."
"What have you-" Alastor cut her off by grabbing her face and covering her mouth, silencing her protests.
"I've done nothing, the fault, is of your own" Alastor spoke, a wave a dread washed over Celestia hearing his words. "You broke her my dear, you did this to her, I merely granted her the power to play with you... now you have a choice, you can try to kill me here and now... or deal with this Nightmare "
Celestia's magic surged through her, the vibrant energy pulsing from her arm as she aimed the flame thrower at Alastor. But the demon was quick, swiftly using his cane to knock the device away from him with a loud clang.
As Celestia stumbled back, Alastor released his grip on her face and she could feel the heat of his breath on her cheek. Her eyes locked onto his, filled with fear and betrayal. Luna's shrill laughter echoed throughout the throne room, sending chills down Celestia's spine.
"Tell me, sister," Luna demanded with venom dripping from her words. "Did you honestly believe I would sit idly by while my subjects basked in your light?"
"Luna...return the Moon to its rightful place..." Celestia pleaded, but her words were drowned out by Luna's savage growl that seemed to shake the very foundations of the castle.
"You always favored your sun!" Luna raged, her voice twisting and distorting into something dark and menacing. "Leaving me in the shadows to gather dust! My light is just as bright as yours, sister! You've never appreciated it, never realized its power! Well, no longer! I'm done being relegated to the sidelines!"
With an unearthly roar, Luna rose from her throne and stepped forward into the light. Her once beautiful features now twisted and grotesque, a reflection of the darkness that consumed her.
"Equestria can only have one princess," she declared, crushing what remained of Celestia's throne under her hooves. "And it shall be me!"
As Alastor smirked victoriously from the shadows, he spoke up with amusement in his voice. "The bond between you two has always been frail, Celestia. And now it's shattered beyond repair. I've given Luna the power she always craved and you know she'll use it to her advantage. I'll take my leave now, but I'll be watching from the shadows. Enjoy your newfound darkness, dear sisters."
And with that final ominous statement, Alastor disappeared into his shadow once more.
Luna's eyes flashed red as she was engulfed by a burgeoning shadow within her soul. Despite her noble intentions and deep love for her subjects, a searing loneliness took root, bred by the apathy of those she tirelessly watched over. The populace adored the day and reveled in the warm embrace of her sister's sunlight, while Luna's equally splendid nightscapes were met with closed eyes and dreams.
Her once majestic indigo mane now cascaded down her back in a torrent of ethereal energy, flickering with a coldness that resembled distant stars. Her eyes burned with a deep red hue, two incandescent pools reflecting the vast emptiness of the cosmos. This transformation was a stark departure from the harmonious protector she was meant to be.
"You truly plan to betray me Luna?" Celestia growled as her prosthetic arm returned to normal
"I am Luna no longer!" the Alicorn sneered with venom dripping from her voice. "You may call me....Nightmare Moon"
"So be it," Celestia snarled back, her own eyes flashing with a hint of anger and determination. "I won't let you rule Equestria in darkness."
With a snarl, Nightmare Moon hurled a sparking orb of dark energy towards Celestia, a physical manifestation of her pent-up wrath and desolation. Celestia, her posture a mix of sorrow and resolve, deftly maneuvered, her own magic flaring up like the cresting dawn to meet the offensive onslaught. Magic clashed with magic, a symphony of light and shadow dancing chaotically around the stone walls, illuminating centuries of history with every strike and parry.
"Is this the best the princess of the sun can do!?" Nightmare moon shouted, swiftly ducking beneath Celestia's arm blade. "How pathetic" She growled, knocking it away and slamming her fist against her sisters side, the impact of the strike made her feel as though a wall had slammed right against her side.
Celestia tumbled to the other side of the room but quickly jumped back to his feet only to barely dodge a stone spear that Nightmare had ripped from the wall and chucked right at her head. Celestia wiped the blood seeping from her mouth and changed her prosthetic back to normal before converting it to her flame thrower, pointing it at her former sister.
The two stared at each other, Celestia hated to admit it but she felt a little afraid at how much her sister had gotten stronger. If that punch had told her anything, it was that if she was hit with a few more of those punches. She would be killed.
Spitting out more blood that covered her tongue, Celestia continued pointing her flamethrower at Nightmare. The two circled around another until Nightmare was near the castles entrance and Celestia was standing where her old throne use to sit.
"Last chance Luna, before we really start getting serious" Celestia warned, Nightmare only grabbed a sword from one of the armor sets strewn about the throne room, and ripped it out of its sheath. "Fine, have it your way"
"You talk quite a lot for a dead mare" Nightmare said, her fist firmly planting itself against Celestia's stomach causing the woman to nearly faint from the sheer force of the attack. Nightmare dug her foot into the ground and launched her sister toward the wall, Celestia's body bounced off the wall as if she was a rubber ball being toyed with. Nightmare grabbed her by her throat and pushed back against the wall then kick her right in the middle of her chest and sent her right through it.
Celestia felt her body become heavier, it was just as she thought, even though those attacks were few in number, they would definitely kill her if she let anymore land. Celestia pulled herself up to her hands and knees then suddenly coughed out a glob of blood onto the floor.
"Ooooh... that bitch" Celestia growled, her anger reaching limits even she herself didn't know was possible. Pushing off of the ground, Celestia converted her prosthetic back to normal and side stepped to the right, dodging Nightmares thrust. Nightmare smiled seeing her bloody sister, and she couldn't wait to see more of her sisters blood covering her body.
Nightmare shifted her blade to face Celestia and swung upward, just barely grazing her as she dodged again. Celestia changed to her arm blade to quickly parry a vertical slash and two more slashes before the two pushed each other away, only for them two run at each other and continuously parried each other letting the sounds of metal hitting metal rung throughout the castle halls. Sparks flew as the two gracefully went back and forth with one another, hitting each other with an occasional kick or jab to get the upper hand with one another. Step by step, swing after swing, the two sister fought with only one thing in mind
To kill the other.
Nightmare Moon's eyes narrowed, a cold glint reflecting off her blade as she lunged at Celestia with a vengeance. With a cry of defiance, Celestia skillfully dodged the blow and countered with a swift slash of her own. The sparks from their weapons illuminated the room, casting eerie shadows from the stained-glass windows.
Their fight continued, each strike and counter-strike more brutal than the last. The air around them crackled with magic, a vicious force that sent tremors through the very foundations of the castle. The once opulent throne room was now a battlefield, the elegance of their surroundings lost in the chaos.
With the power Nightmare Moon gained from Alastor's deal, Celestia knew she had to end this soon otherwise her sister would rule her kingdom. Celestia's eyes searched for an opening, her muscles tensed as she parried Nightmare's relentless attacks. She could feel the life draining from her, the blood she lost; it only fueled her determination to survive.
Nightmare smirked, sensing her sister was weakening. "You're no match for me, Celestia. You never were!" She yelled, her voice booming through the room.
But Celestia knew that was untrue. She was the eldest, She was stronger Alicorn. And she would not let her treacherous little sister beat her.
With a battle cry, Celestia lunged at Luna, her arm blade thrusting towards her sister's heart. Unfortunately the blade connected with a magic barrier that Nightmare Moon had erected around herself. The impact sent shockwaves throughout the room, rattling the chandeliers and shattering the stained-glass windows. Nightmare Moon's eyes flashed with anger and amusement, her voice echoing in the now shattered chamber.
"It's over sister" Nightmare Moon gave a mocking laugh as she dropped the barrier and coated her hand in magic.
Before Celestia could react, Nightmare Moon blasted the alicorn with a bolt of magic that blasted her through the walls outside of the castle. Celestia landed hard on the cold stone steps leading to the garden, her senses reeling from the blow. She struggled to her hooves, pain radiating through her body. She glanced up at the shattered remains of the castle, her heart aching at the sight of the place she had once ruled with her sister.
As she stared at the ruins, Nightmare Moon materialized before her, a malevolent grin on her face. "Give up, Celestia," she taunted. "Your kingdom is lost to you. And soon, so will you be."
Celestia grimaced, her prosthetic arm whirring to life. "Not if I have anything to say about it, you treasonous bitch" she growled, her eyes flashing with anger.
Celestia spread her wings wide and gave them a powerful flap, lifting herself into the air. Her sister, Nightmare Moon, cackled as she trailed behind, firing magic beams relentlessly at Celestia as they flew through the sky. The two sisters engaged in a fierce chase, with Celestia desperately trying to outmaneuver her younger sibling.
The sky darkened as the sisters flew higher and higher, their magic clashing and lighting up the night like a terrible storm. Celestia knew she had to end this somehow, and her only hope was the ancient magic of the Elements of Harmony.
Nightmare Moon, sensing her sister's desperation, laughed cruelly. "What are you doing, Celestia? You're a fool to think that the Elements can save you now!"
But Celestia refused to give up. She channeled her magic into a beam of pure light and hurled it at her sister, but Nightmare Moon easily dodged the strike and retaliated with a barrage of dark magic. The beams crashed into each other, creating a bright explosion that lit up the sky.
As the dust settled, Celestia found Nightmare gone from sight. Pain soon flared from Celestia's back as she was thrown back into the castle, crashing hard against the ruins. She groaned loudly, her body aching everywhere from the one-sided skirmish. Celestia looked around and fortunately found herself in the chamber where she kept the Elements of Harmony.
As she struggled to her hooves again, Celestia felt the presence of her sister behind her, a menacing laugh echoing in her ears. She turned around, spitting out more blood that covered her tongue, and clenched her fists, preparing for the final confrontation.
"Show yourself coward!" Celestia shouted, snapping her head back an forth, her eyes scanning every inch of the room, looking for any inkling of her sister.
"How cute, you still cling to this idea that you're stronger" Nightmare chuckled, slamming her fist against her sisters face, knocking her to the other side of the room with little effort. "How much blood do you have to lose to know you lost, cause damn girl I'm starting to think you like getting hit" She continued as Celestia smacked against the wall with a meaty thud, Nightmare laughed as she watched Celestia stumble to her feet. The woman strode over to her sister with the confidence Celestia once held, and with each step Celestia saw less and less of her sister and more of a devil incarnate, doubt had entered Celestia's mind that even the Elements wouldn't do anything to this monster Alastor had created.
"Luna-"
"Who?" Nightmare asked, giggling seeing Celestia backing away against the wall. "Oh, that bitch, she's gone, no more asking your little sister for mercy anymore, no more beating her to a bloody pulp" Nightmare said, standing face to face with Celestia, grinning while the blood streamed out of her sisters mouth and nose. "This is what you wanted right, to get rid of the *problem?*" Nightmare asked, a wave of emotion washed over Celestia as she said those words.
This really was her fault.
But as quickly as that thought came, it left in a blink of an eye, being replaced with her endless rage and knowing nothing could ever be her fault, it was Alastor's fault, not hers. Celestia switched her prosthetic to her arm blade and went for a slash, aiming right for Nightmares face, to make her remember who was really the strongest and who was really in charge. To make her remember never to defy her.
But she caught it.
Nightmare pulled Celestia in for a headbutt and ripped her prosthetic off before crushing the blade, destroying Celestia's only defense. Nightmare dropped the broken hunk of scrap on the floor before reeling her arm back and shoved her claws into Celestia's right shoulder. Upon feeling her body get punctured, she let out a blood curdling scream, the pain felt hundreds, no, thousands of times worse than anything she and ever felt in her entire life, it was as if Celestia's skin was constantly being ripped and put back together over and over and over again, but it didn't stop their, Nightmare lifted her off the ground with the claw that was embedded inside of Celestia then went to hurl her over toward were the statues holding the elements were, pulling the claw out just far enough to launch Celestia as well as drag her claw right across her chest, leaving Celestia with gaping wounds.
Celestia couldn't move, she could barely breathe let alone more, how could Nightmare be so much stronger, it was impossible. Celestia's thoughts were interrupted feeling her mangled body get torn off of the ground suddenly by Nightmare, no longer even having the strength to put up a fight.
"That was for that blacksmith and Luna, however, this is for that maid you mutilated early" Nightmare said, placing a claw on Celestia's face and began carving three simple lines. "A reminder as to who gave me this power, hopefully everyone in hell can tell who's initial it is" Nightmare said with a chuckle, carving the letter 'A' on her left cheek. "Unfortunately my dear sister, this is were the battle comes to an end, bested by your younger sister, hilarious" Nightmare told he, raising her claw once more until she noticed one of the elements had vanished.
Not even a second after Nightmare had noticed this she was blasted in the chest by ray of rainbow light that caused her to lose grip of Celestia and blow her back toward the middle of the room. Nightmare Quickly regained her bearing and jumped back up to her feet, unfortunately, the Elements had already ensnared her into their magic, restricting her movements entirely. Thrashing about with all her strength given to her by Alastor, she was only able to lose her arm by the tiniest bit, that's when she realized that the table had been flipped.
"No... NO GODDAMN IT NO, I WAS SO CLOSE, YOU COCK SUCKING FUCKING BITCH, I WON AND YET YOURE STILL THE VICTOR!?" Nightmare screamed at her sister, being cheated out of her victory to finally get rid of the abuser. "WHY DO THEY ONLY ATTACK ME, YOUR THE EVIL ONE, YOU DID THIS TO ME, YOU KILLED THAT MAN IN COLD BLOOD, YOU CARVED INTO THAT POOR GIRLS FACE AND YET IM THE MONSTER, I HOPE YOU ROT IN HELL FOR ETERNITY, AND DONT YOU WORRY, ILL BE RIGHT THEIR WAITING JUST FOR YOU!!!" Nightmare roared, the fury and anger dripping with every word.
Celestia watched the elements lift her sister into the air and with a blinding light, she vanished, leaving not a trace of her sister in sight. Celestia let out a sigh of relief no longer seeing her sister and flipped onto her back, resting her wounded body. Celestia laid on the floor for what felt like hours to her, staring up through the hole in the ceiling and looked deep into the night sky, and looked at the moon her sister had once loved.
Chapter 4: Metamorphosis into Hunger
The aftermath of the battle raged across the once-pristine halls of the castle. Rubble and debris littered the floor, remnants of the explosive clash between the two regal sisters.
In the shattered Element Chamber, Princess Celestia lay crumpled amidst the ruin, her pristine coat matted with dirt and sticky pools of blood surrounded Celestia, the solar princess, her body battered and bruised despite the Elements of Harmony successfully defeating Nightmare Moon. She struggled to breathe, but the only sound that escaped her lips was one of anger and betrayal. In her mind, it was not just a battle between light and dark, but a betrayal from her own sister.
The sound of hoofsteps approaching interrupted Celestia's thoughts. Two royal guards, their armor damaged and scorched, rushed to her side with concern etched on their faces.
"Princess!" one cried out in distress. "What has happened here?"
Celestia's eyes snapped open, filled with a burning intensity that caused the guards to flinch. She gritted her teeth against the pain as she tried to sit up.
"Luna..." she hissed with venom. "My treacherous sister has committed the ultimate act of betrayal!"
The guards exchanged a worried glance, struggling to comprehend how the princess could make such an accusation towards her own kin.
"B-But Princess Luna..." the second guard stuttered. "Where is she? Surely there must be some mistake..."
Celestia's hateful gaze shifted upwards towards the moon, once under Luna's care but now corrupted by her presence - a haunting reminder of her sibling's descent into darkness.
"Gone!" she spat with bitterness. "Corrupted by her own lust for power! I had no choice but to use the ancient magic of the Elements to trap that...that monster, Nightmare Moon!"
The two ponies looked at each other in shock as Celestia's words sunk in. Gone? Trapped by the Elements of Harmony? How could this be possible?
"Your Highness," one of them cautiously spoke up. "What truly happened between you and Princess Luna? Surely there is more to this story..."
Celestia's eyes narrowed, her once bright and shimmering gaze now clouded with pain and determination. She heaved herself up from the cold stone floor, each breath rattling through her bruised and battered body. Her face was a mask of stoic resolve, betraying no weakness or fear.
"More to the story!?" she repeated, her voice dripping with rage. "There is no more! Luna betrayed me!"
Despite the excruciating pain that shot through her every movement, Celestia dragged herself across the floor, leaving a trail of blood in her wake. She glared up at the moon looming in the sky, its pale light casting an eerie glow over the scene below. A simmering hatred burned in her eyes.
"She betrayed all of Equestria," Celestia continued, her words laced with venom. "Do not mourn for Nightmare Moon - she brought this fate upon herself with her arrogance and deceit."
The ponies cowered before their ruler, unnerved by the viciousness in her tone. This was not the gentle, wise leader they knew and loved.
Turning her fiery gaze upon them, Celestia snarled, "Now go! Leave me be to regain my strength. We have much work ahead of us to restore order and eradicate all remnants of my sister's wicked influence from our kingdom."
As her subjects hastily retreated from the ruined room, Celestia allowed a cruel smile to spread across her bloodied features. She had emerged victorious from this battle against her fallen sister - but it was only the beginning.
"You will rot in that prison forever, dear Luna," she hissed towards the moon, a menacing glint in her eye. "But mark my words, I will find a way to shatter its hold on you. And when I do, there will be no mercy...only justice, carried out by my hand."
With a sharp exhale of pain, Celestia dragged her body towards the broken window, basking in the eerie light of the once-holy orb that had belonged to her sister.
Her narrowed eyes locked onto the pale visage of the moon, already plotting ways to break the seal placed on Nightmare Moon by the Elements of Harmony. She would find a way to shatter that mystical prison and finally defeat her sister, consequences be damned.
A movement caught her attention from outside her peripheral vision. Turning slightly, she saw a young pegasus guard lingering in the doorway, his eyes filled with fear and hesitation.
"You there!" she barked, adding a dangerous undertone to her regal voice. "Did I not order all of you to leave?"
The pegasus flinched but remained standing, gathering what little courage he had left.
"With all due respect, Princess," he stuttered. "I cannot simply abandon you in this state. You are wounded and need medical assistance immediately."
Celestia's rage flared at the defiance, no matter how well-intentioned it may have been. With a burst of magic, she sent the pegasus flying back through the doorway and tumbling down the hallway with a cry of pain.
"How dare you question my orders!" she roared, feeling the strain on her battered body reopen wounds. "I am your ruler! Your princess! When I give an order, it is to be followed without hesitation!"
Growling, Celestia struggled to stand upright, swaying as fresh blood seeped from her injuries. She glared contemptuously at the guard lying on the ground before her.
"Leave my presence!" she bellowed, her voice echoing through the ruins of the castle. "I will summon you when I am ready to address the destruction caused by my treacherous sister's rampage!"
The soldier scrambled to follow her command, fleeing for his life from his princess's wrath. As the last sound of footsteps faded away, Celestia let herself collapse once more with a pained groan.
Closing her eyes, the sun princess focused on using her magic to heal her most severe injuries, conserving her magical energy as best as she could.
For she could not afford to rest - not while her little sister's corruption still lingered in this land. Equestria deserved better than to remain under Nightmare Moon's eternal darkness.
No, Celestia vowed with determination as she lay back down on the floor. She would find a way to break Luna's hold and bring back daylight to her kingdom.
Emerging from the shadows like a dark cloud, Alastor stepped into the destroyed Harmony Chamber, his unnerving grin stretching even wider as he observed the aftermath of the sisters' violent clash. Scorch marks marred the walls and debris crunched underfoot - clear signs of mayhem unleashed that brought him great pleasure.
"Well, well...it seems the night has taken quite an interesting turn," the Radio Demon commented, his deep voice echoing through the cavernous space.
He strolled over to where Celestia lay amidst the wreckage, studying her battered form with a sly look. The princess's sides rose and fell with each labored breath, her once radiant coat now dull and stained red from the injuries inflicted by Luna.
"Poor thing, your little family feud didn't go exactly as planned," Alastor taunted. "But I must say, both you and Nightie put on quite a show - such delightful depravity!"
Celestia's eyes snapped open, her fiery glare fixed on the unholy being responsible for this chaotic mess. Even in her weakened state, she summoned whatever magic she could muster, a faint spark flickering around her horn.
"You..." she growled through bloody teeth. "This is all your fault, monster! You corrupted my sister and turned her against me!"
With a loud, booming laugh that sent shivers down the Alicorn's spine, Alastor threw his head back in amusement.
"Oh no, my dear Celestia," he countered with a smirk as his voice crackled with electricity. "Nightie and I simply opened some doors that were locked tight in her pretty little head. The resentment, envy, and burning desire to escape from your blinding light - those embers were just waiting to ignite!"
Smirking, the Radio Demon leaned down in front of Celestia, his eyes glimmering with cruel delight.
"I just gave your sister a little nudge in the right direction. The rest? Well, that was a masterpiece of destruction you both created together through your twisted relationship!"
With a snarl of fury, Celestia tried to turn away from Alastor's taunts, but he reappeared in her line of sight like a living nightmare.
"Stay...away from me..." she seethed, feeling her magical energy depleting rapidly.
"Now, now," Alastor chided with a devilish grin. "Is that any way to thank the mastermind behind the double-cross that led to such an entertaining evening?"
His gaze drifted up to the moon hanging above them, casting an eerie light over the ruined castle grounds.
"I must say, your dear sister has certainly given the night sky a new look," the demon mused, licking his lips hungrily. "One can almost taste the suffering and despair woven into this permanent darkness!"
Straightening up, Alastor gave a mocking bow to the enraged princess.
"Well, I'll leave you to revel in your failure, my dear," he purred maliciously. "Give my icy regards to Nightmare Moon next time you are in her company."
With one final jab, Alastor disappeared into the shadows, leaving behind only his chilling laughter ringing through the shattered remains of the once-glorious castle. As his voice faded into nothingness, the only sound left was Celestia's labored breathing as she struggled to stay conscious amidst her injuries.
Glaring up at the moon shaped like her fallen sister, Celestia's eyes burned with equal parts intensity and hatred for what had transpired.
Alastor and Nifty emerged from the castle's towering entrance, their dark silhouettes starkly contrasted against the moonlit sky. A trail of dismembered body parts lay behind them, a gruesome yet strangely beautiful sight. Despite the macabre scene, both Alastor and Nifty seemed giddy and carefree, their laughter echoing through the crisp night air.
Nifty skipped behind Alastor, her eye alight with excitement as she clutched her knife tightly in one hand. The other hand was stained with blood, but she didn't seem to mind.
"That was so much fun!" she exclaimed, her voice carrying excitement like a siren's call. "Did you see their faces when you did that thing with the—"
"Yes, my dear Nifty," interrupted Alastor smoothly, his voice a soothing melody tainted with sinister amusement. "Their expressions were indeed quite priceless."
He lifted a severed hand to take a bite, but noticed Nifty trying to jump up and reach it. With a sly smile, he offered the hand to her instead.
"Care for some Finger Food, Niffty?" he asked, amused by her eagerness.
Nifty let out a gleeful squeal as she grabbed the hand and took a ravenous bite with her sharp little teeth glinting in the moonlight.
"Thank you, thank you!" she chirped between bites.
As she ate, Nifty noticed that Alastor was looking in another direction instead of watching her enjoy her snack as he usually did. She followed his gaze and saw a forest looming ahead of them, its trees casting eerie shadows in the pale moonlight.
"What's on your mind, Alastor?" she asked curiously.
"Honestly, Niffty," replied Alastor as they walked deeper into the forest and the static in his voice dissipated, "I fear our main source of entertainment will be unavailable for several months."
"But then again," As Alastor spoke, his voice shifted from its usual playful tone to one of contemplation. "Every great show must have an intermission," he declared, his eyes sparkling with mischief. "And in that pause, the stage is set for even grander acts."
Niffty tilted her head, still gnawing on the severed digit she held in her hand. Her eye glinted with morbid curiosity, eagerly anticipating the next round of chaos. "Are we going to find new toys to play with?" she asked.
Alastor grinned, his laugh crackling like an untuned radio frequency. "Oh, my dear Niffty," he purred. "There is a whole world out there just waiting for us to pluck its fragile souls and bring forth delightful turmoil from the depths of despair."
The pair strolled deeper into the dark forest, their footsteps making little noise on the soft ground below. The twisted trees loomed over them like silent witnesses to their unhallowed conversation. In this realm of night, they were the undisputed sovereigns - and they reveled in it.
With each step they took, the darkness seemed to pulse and throb with a life of its own, becoming an extension of Alastor's eldritch influence. Niffty skipped beside him, her movements a blur of frenetic energy that contrasted sharply with his leisurely stride. She finished off her macabre snack, licking her lips in satisfaction before scampering ahead to explore their new hunting grounds alongside her master.
Several Months Later…
With the weight of responsibility heavy on her shoulders, Celestia had finally succeeded in ending Nightmare Moon's eternal night and restoring balance to the once vibrant city of Canterlot. However, even as she relocated her seat of rule here and constructed an imposing new castle to watch over the populace, a sense of grim unease hung over the streets and alleys. Each night, the ponies were haunted by screams emanating from unseen radios that seemed to materialize out of thin air.
Meanwhile, as Celestia's new castle was being built, the demonic duo known as Alastor and Nifty roamed freely through the badlands. Their laughter and sinister songs blended with the howling winds that carved through the barren, unforgiving landscape. For them, this desolate place was less a challenge and more like an amusement park for their twisted natures to roam free.
As they made their way across the rugged terrain, Alastor tapped his cane against the ground rhythmically, sending ripples of dark energy across the land. Each tap caused the scarce vegetation to wither and retreat into itself, further adding to the desolation of the badlands. And yet, this desolation only fueled their enjoyment.
But then, Niffty's keen eye caught sight of something in the distance - a massive, twisted hive carved into the side of a craggy mountain. The sight filled them with excitement and curiosity, drawing them closer to its ominous presence in the otherwise desolate landscape.
"Well now, what have we here?" Alastor's unnaturally wide grin stretched even further as his piercing gaze fell upon the ominous structure.
Niffty twirled her blade in anticipation, her giggles filling the air as she observed the twisted hive. "Looks like some kind of nasty nest! Maybe the locals will come out to play?" she teased, her voice dripping with excitement.
Alastor chuckled deeply, a darkness seeming to emanate from him and extend into the shadows around him. "Why don't we go extend our brand of hospitality?" he suggested, his voice laced with malice.
The duo made their way towards the hive, Alastor's cane tapping out an ominous rhythm against the parched earth. As they drew closer, the first of the insectoid creatures began to emerge - their ears twitching at the unnatural sounds defiling their territory.
Alastor threw his head back and let loose a haunting radio call. "Come out, come out, wherever you are! We've got quite the party planned for our new friends!" he taunted, relishing in the fear and agitation of the creatures as more and more appeared to defend their home.
Just as Alastor was about to bring his microphone to his mouth and start one of his sinister Radio broadcasts, he was interrupted by a sudden flash of orange light. A woman appeared between them with pitch black skin, a deep turquoise mane and tail, and dark cyan eyes with opal hues. On her back were a pair of insect-like wings and a jagged horn atop her head. Alastor couldn't help but notice the holes on her legs and arms, giving her an otherworldly appearance. She wore a mismatched rag made from different animal skins.
Alastor could sense the fear in her voice as she spoke to him. "Please Merciless Alastor... I beg you to please depart these lands," she pleaded, her voice trembling with urgency and desperation.
A wicked grin spread across Alastor's face as he heard the fear in her voice. "You lot know about me?" the Radio Demon purred, his crimson eyes gleaming with amusement.
"We have," the woman admitted, refusing to meet the demon's gaze. "Ever since the day those strange Radio devices appeared in my hive and those...screams they emit every night, my subjects have been in disarray. The terror you spread is like a plague upon our minds. I implore you, leave us be. We have no quarrel with you and seek only peace within our hive."
Alastor's grin only widened as he listened to her plea. He tilted his head mockingly, his cane digging into the cracked earth beneath his feet.
"Do it again," he commanded, relishing in the fear emanating from the Queen.
The green haired woman flinched, her delicate wings shuddering slightly. "Do what again?" she stammered, momentarily confused by his words.
"Beg," Alastor repeated, his voice crackling with static like a discordant symphony. "I find the quiver of fear in your voice to be quite...refreshing."
"P-please..." the woman began, groveling on the ground before him, "Please don't hurt my children...merciless Radio Demon."
Alastor walked closer and placed his foot on the back of her head, driving her face deeper into the dirt. A mirthless chuckle escaped him as he reveled in her desperation; the crunch of dirt beneath woman’s head mingling with her pitiful pleas.
"Now, now," he cooed in a tone dripping with false sympathy, "I do believe you're mistaken about one thing."
He leaned down closer to her trembling form, his voice a velvet purr next to her ear. "I am not merciless. On the contrary, I am merciful enough to provide you and your brood with the exquisite experience of true fear."
The woman's breath hitched, her chest heaving as she fought against the tears threatening to spill from her eyes. With a grand gesture, Alastor stepped away from her, twirling his cane between his fingers as he removed his foot from her head.
“P-Please! I-I’ll do anything!” The woman pleaded, her voice trembling with desperation. “Just spare my children!”
Alastor halted his cane twirling and slowly turned to look over his shoulder, his grin turning more crooked and eerie. His eyes glinted with amusement at the woman's pitiful begging.
“Anything?” He said in a venomously humorous tone, savoring the power he held over this desperate creature. “Would anything include…a deal?”
“A..Deal?” The woman's voice shook with fear and uncertainty.
"Yes," Alastor affirmed, his grin unyielding as he relished the terror in the woman's expression. "A deal.”
"What...kind of deal did you have in mind?" The woman's voice was barely above a whisper, filled with dread at what this powerful being could possibly ask of her.
“One that should not be discussed out in the open,” Alastor said, his tone dripping with dark amusement. "Come, let us converse within your... charming abode." He gestured toward the hive with an air of mocking courtesy. The shadows around him seemed to dance in anticipation.
The woman hesitated but knew she had little choice. With a heavy heart and the weight of her subjects' safety on her shoulders, she rose to lead the way, her wings limply dragging at her sides.
Niffty followed close behind, her eye darting about with morbid curiosity at the strange architecture and glowing caverns of the hive. Her fingers couldn't help but reach out to touch everything that caught her attention, much to the horror of the insect-like creatures scurrying about.
As they entered the central chamber of the hive, a throne made from an odd and twisted material stood at its heart. The hum of worried voices filled the air, their glistening eyes reflecting both fear and confusion.
"Splendid!" Alastor exclaimed, looking around with exaggerated approval. "Now then," he said as he conjured a table and some chairs in between him and the woman. “Shall we get down to business?” His eerie smile widened as he settled into the throne, enjoying every moment of this twisted game.
The woman's heart pounded in her chest, fear and uncertainty choking her as she took a seat opposite Alastor. His grin seemed to radiate a haunting glow in the dimly lit chamber. The creatures of the hive, with their skittering and buzzing, crowded at the edges of the room, their presence only adding to the unsettling atmosphere.
“Introductions” Alastor grinned taking his seat. “I am Alastor, the Radio Demon feared and hated across Equestria”
She forced herself to nod, her throat dry with trepidation. "I-I'm Arachne Trickweaver," she stammered, her voice trembling with fear. "Queen of...of the Chitin Clan."
Alastor leaned back in his chair, one hand tapping rhythmically against the armrest. "Ah, Queen Arachne Trickweaver," he repeated, as if tasting the name. "Well then, Queen Arachne, let's discuss this deal of ours."
Arachne felt her wings twitch nervously, but she forced herself to remain still. She may have been afraid of this infamous demon, but the safety of her clan was at stake.
"What do you want from us?" she asked cautiously, dreading the answer.
Alastor leaned forward, his elbows resting on the table as he intertwined his fingers. His static-filled voice was smooth as silk yet laced with malice. "You wish to protect your brood, correct?" he began.
"Yes," Arachne confirmed, meeting his gaze for the first time. There was determination in her eyes now, a fierce protective instinct that only a mother could possess.
Alastor's voice was smooth, but his words were laced with a hidden threat. "In exchange for their safety," he purred, "I require something precious from you."
The Queen's breath caught in her throat as she braced herself for his terms.
"Your unwavering loyalty, your services at my beck and call, and a favor to be named at a later date." Alastor's eyes gleamed with amusement as he delivered his demands.
The weight of the price hit the Queen like a blow to the chest. A lifetime of servitude to a demon whose very existence was torture and death personified. But she could feel the pleading gazes of her children and clan behind her, silently begging for salvation.
Her heart racing, Arachne mustered the courage to speak: "And if I refuse?" Her voice was barely above a whisper, but it echoed through the chamber like a death knell.
Alastor's smile faltered for a moment before returning full force. "Then I'm afraid I would have to decline your request for mercy. And we wouldn't want that now, would we?"
With a snap of his fingers, Niffty darted forward and disappeared behind the throne. The Queen's breath caught in her throat as she heard a child's scream pierce through the air moments later. Niffty emerged with a small figure clutched tightly in her arms, a dagger glinting dangerously in her hand.
"Chrysalis!" Arachne's motherly instincts kicked in, causing her to jump to her feet in an attempt to protect her daughter.
But before she could move any further, a black tendril shot out and gripped her arm tightly.
"Mommy!" Chrysalis cried out in terror.
Alastor's grin widened at the display of fear on the Queen's face. "Because if you were to refuse," he sneered, "she would be the first to feel my lack of mercy."
Violent tremors racked Arachne's petite frame as her primal instincts warred with her desperate desire to resist the demon's vile proposition. Her piercing gaze darted frantically between Niffty's wickedly sharp dagger and her terrified youngling, Chrysalis.
"Stop!" she demanded, her voice trembling with a mix of fear and desperation. "I will do as you ask. Just please, release her."
Alastor watched the display with an amused glint in his fiery crimson eyes, savoring the moment like a predator playing with its prey before going in for the kill. He nodded subtly at Niffty, who promptly set Chrysalis down with a frown and a shrug. The child scurried back to the safety of the hive's other inhabitants, disappearing into a swarm of anxious murmurs and clicking mandibles.
Alastor's grin never faltered; it was the expression of a cunning hunter reveling in its successful trap. "Excellent choice," he purred with gleeful malice.
Alastor's voice echoed in the dimly lit chamber, his tone dripping with malice as he spoke. "Now, let us formalize our agreement, shall we?" With a flick of his hand, he produced a parchment and an ornate pen from thin air, the items appearing with a aura of dark energy. He slid the paper across the table towards Arachne, a sly smile playing on his lips.
Her hands trembled as she reached for the pen, each click of its nib against the parchment sending shivers down her spine. It was as if each stroke of the pen was sealing her fate, marking the end of her freedom. But she had no choice, not when her people's lives were at stake.
Suddenly, a child's voice broke through the tense silence. "Mommy Don't!" The little one pushed through the crowd of Arachne's kin and ran to her mother's side.
Arachne's heart tightened in fear as she looked down at her child and then back to Alastor. She knew this deal would come at a high price, but she couldn't bear to lose any of her subjects.
"Do I have your word that if I sign this, you will protect my people?" Her voice wavered with emotion.
Alastor's grin widened as he replied smoothly, "Oh, but of course, dear Queen. I am many things, but I am not one to go back on a deal."
With a heavy heart and trembling hands, Arachne signed her name on the dotted line, the pen scratching across the paper like nails on a chalkboard. She felt as though she were signing away not just her clan's future, but also her own soul.
"Fantastic!" Alastor crowed, his voice ringing out in the dimly lit room. He gave the contract a cursory glance before rolling it up with precision.
The sound of the paper being rolled echoed in the silence that had fallen over them. With a mad grin, he tucked it somewhere within his coat, its location as mysterious as its appearance had been. "Oh and I hope you know that your clan's loyalty does not just extend to you and your subjects…but to your children and their children and so on."
Arachne's heart sank further with those words, the finality of their servitude etched into eternity. She had hoped, foolishly, for some semblance of a loophole—some way out that could be found in the future. But Alastor had just confirmed her worst fears. The deal was not just for her lifetime; it would bind her lineage forever to the whims of the Radio Demon.
With the agreement made, Alastor stood from his seat, towering over the table. "Well now, that wasn't so difficult, was it?" he said, his voice filled with mock sympathy as he looked down at the somber queen. "Your clan is under my protection. You have my word." He gave a dramatic bow, his hand sweeping through the air.
The Chitin Clan lurked in the shadows, their compound eyes reflecting myriad emotions. Relief flooded through them for being spared from total destruction, but it was mixed with sorrow for their queen's sacrifice. Little Chrysalis clung to her mother's leg, peering out with wide eyes filled with confusion and fear at the towering form of Alastor who now held their fate in his gloved hands.
Alastor's smile was both deadly and beguiling as he spoke with a silky, playful tone. "Shall we begin crafting our plans for the future, my dear? You now hold a vital position on the chessboard of my entertainment."
Queen Arachne stood up gracefully, her regal posture belying the troubled look in her eyes. She knew that the game had changed; she was no longer just a ruler, but a pawn to a higher power. Her wings twitched as she surveyed her uneasy subjects, sensing their fear.
"I understand," she replied calmly, masking her own fears with the composure expected of a queen. "What is your first order?"
Alastor stroked his chin thoughtfully before responding. "Firstly, I require information on the Equestrian princess, her enemies and allies alike. Knowledge is power, my dear, and I intend to be…omnipotent."
"I'm afraid that is not possible," Queen Arachne said firmly, moving to stand protectively in front of her daughter.
"Wrong answer, Your Majesty," Niffy interjected sharply, balancing a sharp blade delicately on one finger.
"And why is that?" Alastor asked, his eyes narrowing and glowing a brighter crimson.
"There is a reason why my children and I live in this desolate wasteland," Queen Arachne explained to the Radio Demon. "We cannot blend into pony society... If they were to see us, we would surely be killed."
“hmm...” Alastor hummed as he walked around the chamber. “Let's it's change that, shall we?”
With a confident stride, Alastor made his way to the center of the chamber, his presence commanding both awe and fear from the gathered members of the Chitin Clan. As he raised his hands, an eerie green light danced at his fingertips, casting eerie shadows that seemed to come alive on the walls.
In an instant, Queen Arachne and her clan were consumed by emerald flames. Panic spread among them until they realized that the flames did not burn or harm them. As quickly as they appeared, the flames vanished, leaving behind a startling transformation. Gone were their arthropod features, replaced by soft fur and two vibrant and expressive eyes. They now bore wings reminiscent of Pegasus ponies and had hands instead of claws.
But it was Queen Arachne who was truly transformed. Her majestic form was now equine but still radiated authority and grace as she stood tall before her people. A crown-like tuft of shimmering mane adorned her head, a symbol of her royal status among the Chitin Clan.
The queen's eyes widened in shock and a hint of gratitude as she gazed at Alastor. Her hooves nervously tapped against the stone floor, the only sound besides Alastor's eerie chuckle. "What have you done to us?" The queen's voice quivered with both horror and amazement.
Alastor let out a soft chuckle that reverberated throughout the chamber. "I've granted you the power of transformation," he replied, motioning towards the chitin creatures surrounding them. "With this ability, you can change your appearance at will and seamlessly blend in with those you wish to avoid... Think of it as a bonus."
But Niffty, ever the curious one, couldn't help but interject. "Can we change their names?" she called out, gaining everyone's attention.
A sly smile crossed Alastor's face as he approved of Niffty's suggestion. "Why not?" he replied, his hands clapping together with delight. "A new appearance for our Chitin friends should indeed be accompanied by new identities. What's in a name, after all? A rose by any other name would still smell just as sweet." As he spoke, his gaze flicked towards Arachne, already imagining the possibilities for their new personas.
The room was filled with a lively chatter as the clan members eagerly suggested different names to one another. The excitement of their transformation temporarily overshadowed the gravity of their situation. With each new name they tested and tried, their identities began to feel less foreign and more natural.
"Changelings..." Alastor's grin widened as the name came to him. "Queen Arachne of the Changeling Kingdom... doesn't that have a nice ring to it?"
"Changelings," she repeated, finding the name both fitting and surreal.
But before Queen Arachne could speak again, a sharp pain shot through her stomach. She doubled over in agony, only to see her fellow changelings experiencing the same symptoms around her. Confusion turned to fear as Niffty and Alastor's laughter echoed through the room.
"What's happening?" Queen Arachne cried out, struggling to understand as the pain intensified.
Alastor's voice cut through the chaos like a knife, his words dripping with a sinister charm. "Power always comes with a price, my dear queen. Your new forms, your abilities... they require sustenance of a different kind. No longer can you survive on mere food and drink."
Struggling to catch her breath, Queen Arachne looked up at him with wide eyes. "What kind of sustenance? What do we need?"
"The essence of emotions," Alastor replied with a dramatic flair, his grin never faltering. "Love, joy, sorrow... all those sweet little feelings that ponies have in abundance. Your survival now depends on them. You must feed on the emotional energy of others to maintain your strength and your new appearances."
The newly named Changelings writhed in hunger around her, their cries echoing through the chamber. Alastor and Niffty laughed as they left the hive behind.
“I wonder how you will manage this minor hiccup,” Alastor said, pausing at the threshold of the chamber and glancing back at the suffering changelings. "Remember, my dear queen," he called out, his voice reverberating through the halls, "you are now under my rule. Succeed in your new role, and I will ensure your kingdom thrives."
As their laughter faded into the distance, Queen Arachne forced herself to stand tall, her gaze sweeping over her subjects who were struggling with newfound hunger. She could feel their desperation, their craving for something they had never before needed. It was a weakness that she felt within herself as well.
“Listen to me, my children,” Queen Arachne spoke with authority, capturing the attention of the changelings despite their discomfort. "We are no strangers to adapting. We have survived in these unforgiving lands by being cunning and resourceful. This...hunger we feel is just another obstacle to overcome."
Author's Note
Okay So I know someone is going to comment on how the guards have damaged armor but don't know what happened....Let me say this....they are aware they were attacked, some even getting caught in the crossfire but how attacked they don't know.
Next chapter will probably take place within the next 200 to five hundred years .. I don't know yet, haven't figured out of yet
Chapter 5: Whispers of the Radio Demon
Three hundred years had passed since Celestia's legendary victory over her sister, Luna, using the powerful Elements of Harmony to defeat Nightmare Moon and banish her to a limbo-like realm. But with the burden of ruling Equestria alone weighing heavy on her shoulders, the once warm and benevolent princess had grown hardened and ruthless in her quest for control.
Sitting atop her throne, back rigid and eyes narrowed in scrutiny, Celestia surveyed the grand throne room. Her mane, a brilliant display of multicolored hues, swirled around her despite the absence of any breeze - a subtle manifestation of her immense magical powers.
Kneeling before her was a pegasus servant, carefully tending to Celestia's newest prosthetic arm with a set of precise tools. Though she maintained a regal façade, concealing any signs of pain or discomfort, the princess couldn't help but wince as the servant made adjustments to her metal appendage.
"Careful," she warned in a low, dangerous tone. "I require full mobility, not your incompetence."
The servant's trembling hands betrayed his fear as he redoubled his efforts to please his ruler. "O-Of course, Your Majesty. My deepest apologies."
With a derisive snort, Celestia expressed her disdain for the servant's lack of skill. Her gaze shifted towards the stained glass windows that lined the hall, each one depicting a pivotal moment from her reign as sole ruler of Equestria.
Her focus settled on the centermost window - an image of herself and Luna standing united in happier times before jealousy tore their sisterly bond apart. A muscle twitched in Celestia's jaw as she ground her teeth.
"If only you had embraced your role instead of craving power, dear sister," she mused aloud. "So much could have been avoided..."
Her words hung heavily in the air, filling the throne room with an ominous silence. The only sound that could be heard was the clinking of tools against metal as the servant continued his work on Celestia's prosthetic, a constant reminder of her inner turmoil and the consequences of her sister's betrayal.
“I’m almost finished, your majesty,” the servant said, his voice quivering. “But this next part...it will be excruciatingly painful.”
Celestia braced herself, knowing what was to come. The servant prepared to connect the nerve of her left arm to the prosthetic, steeling himself for the task at hand.
“Just do it,” she snapped curtly, her expression stoic even as her muscles tensed in anticipation.
With a nod and gulp, the servant positioned the wrench and pulled tightly, linking her flesh and metal together. Celestia let out a loud grunt as the pain shot through her body.
But as the sensation faded and was replaced by a tingling connection, she couldn't help but admire the skill of the servant - his fear clearly no match for his abilities.
A shuddering sigh escaped her lips as she felt relief wash over her. The pegasus mistook her grunt for satisfaction and quickly bowed before withdrawing from her presence. “Your Grace, if there is nothing else you require, I shall take my leave.”
“Wait...” Celestia commanded, her tone softer now but still commanding. She flexed the fingers of her new arm, marveling at their mechanical precision. “Did you create it exactly as I requested?”
“Y-Yes!” The servant stammered, his eyes widening with fear and awe. “It is made with all of the magical properties you specified beforehand. It will respond to your magic just like your old limb did.”
A surge of excitement coursed through Celestia's veins as she examined her new appendage. With a flick of her wrist, a gun popped out from her forearm. The cold steel of the weapon contrasted starkly with the warm glow of her magic, showcasing the perfect balance between technology and sorcery. She could already feel the power pulsing through her, ready to be unleashed at her command.
With no warning, she aimed the gun directly at the pegasus in beside her. His breath caught in his throat as fear flooded his mind - he was about to meet his end at the hands of his own creation, just like his father and grandfather before him.
The servant fell back onto his haunches, trembling and unable to form words as he saw his life flash before his eyes. But then, with a quick change of aim, Celestia fired a single round into the stained glass window she had been gazing at. The loud shattering echoed through the room as the pieces rained down around them, sparing the life of the terrified servant.
As the shards of stained glass shattered and cascaded to the ground with a tinkling sound, the servant instinctively crouched down, his wings unfurling protectively. Celestia observed the chaos with a satisfied expression, her metal firearm retracting into its holster before a sleek blade emerged from a hidden compartment in her prosthetic arm. The sharp edge glinted dangerously as it sliced through the air before disappearing back into its secret place. In its place, her fingers transformed into razor-sharp claws, their tips gleaming in the dim light before quickly returning to their normal state. Finally, a burst of fire erupted from her open palm, illuminating her features with a small smile of delight.
"A truly versatile tool indeed." Celestia purred in admiration, closing her hand and extinguishing the flame. "You have truly outdone yourself... this time."
Celestia's prosthetic arm trembled slightly as she flexed her fingers, the intricate design of weapons and magic intertwined hidden beneath its smooth surface. "Leave," she commanded in a low, commanding voice, causing the servant to stumble over his own hooves in his haste to exit the throne room.
The sound of his retreating steps echoed loudly against the marble floors as he fled, leaving only silence behind. But it was not long before six figures emerged from the shadowed archways that lined the hall. Led by the stoic Star Swirl the Bearded, they approached with a reverent demeanor befitting their presence in the great throne room.
Star Swirl bowed deeply before Celestia, his voice clear and resonant as he spoke. Behind him, his companions - Rockhoof the mighty, Mistmane the graceful, Flash Magnus the brave, Somnambula the wise, Mage Meadowbrook the healer, and Stygian the scribe - followed suit, each showing their fealty to their queen with a respectful bow.
Rockhoof was a towering earth pony, standing tall and proud among his kin. His muscular frame seemed to radiate strength and determination, each defined muscle rippling with power as he moved. His broad shoulders hinted at the immense force he possessed, capable of moving mountains with ease.
His mane, tail, and beard were a fiery shade of orange, reminiscent of the blazing sun on a scorching summer's day. The braid in his mane added a touch of sophistication to his rugged appearance. His eyes mirrored the deep blue of the ocean, reflecting the vast depths of his character and the wisdom he had gained throughout his years.
His coat was a rugged teal color, resembling the weather-worn boulders that made up the mountain ranges he called home. It was as if he had been chiseled from the very land he roamed, each angle and curve perfectly crafted by nature itself. And on his neck sat his Cutie Mark, three interlocking triangles that represented his unwavering strength and unbreakable spirit.
Wrapped around his sturdy frame was a sleeveless leather tunic, lined with soft fur for warmth in the chilly mountains. Dark brown linen pants covered his powerful legs, while sturdy leather boots protected his hooves with iron-reinforced studs. And slung across his back was his trusty shovel, a constant companion on all his adventures and a reminder of his storied past.
In this pony's presence, one could feel the weight of his history and the resilience that carried him through each challenge. Rockhoof was more than just a strong pony; he was a symbol of perseverance and fortitude in the face of adversity.
Mistmane was a unicorn of unparalleled beauty, with a mane and tail the color of turquoise that danced in the air as if caught by an invisible breeze. Her coat, a delicate shade of lilac, shimmered in the light of the room, radiating an ethereal glow. Her pale blue eyes held a gentle warmth that seemed to soothe even the most troubled souls.
Her Cutie Mark, a white cloud, adorned her neck and served as a symbol of her unique abilities. Dressed in a slender kimono robe that cascaded down to her feet, Mistmane exuded elegance and grace. The fabric was adorned with a stunning cloud pattern, featuring shades of blue that mimicked the ever-changing sky.
The outer layer of the kimono boasted a deeper hue of blue, intricately decorated with swirling white patterns that resembled waves or flowing lines. A lighter blue lining peeked out from underneath, adding depth and contrast to the overall design.
A broad obi sash in shades of blue and white accentuated her waistline, tying together the entire ensemble. Her sleeves billowed out like gentle clouds, adding to the enchanting aesthetic.
On her feet, she wore traditional tabi socks with intricate blue details and classic geta sandals. And tucked gracefully above her ear and within her vibrant mane, rested a pristine white flower - a perfect complement to her ethereal appearance.
Flash Magnus, a magnificent pegasus with a fiery red mane and tail that gleamed in the sunlight. His bright turquoise eyes shone with determination, matching the hue of his cutie mark - a campfire symbol - which proudly adorned his neck.
A vibrant red cape flowed behind him, made of a lightweight yet durable fabric that billowed dramatically. Underneath the cape, Flash wore armor crafted from sturdy gray metal, etched with stylized markings and pointed shoulder guards that extended upwards. Gold accents and large, round gemstones decorated the chest plate, adding an air of regality to his appearance.
On his arms were intricate gold vambraces, adorned with designs resembling wings or feathers. These arm guards provided protection from battle while showcasing Flash's skilled craftsmanship.
The lower half of his body was clad in a short, pointed gray battle dress, emphasizing his muscular frame. And atop his head sat an impressive helmet, also made of gray metal, completing his formidable look.
Resting on his hip was a gladius sword, symbolizing strength and courage. And strapped securely to his back was none other than his legendary Shield - the very same shield that had bravely defended against a dragon's fiery breath.
Mage Meadowbrook, the renowned earth pony healer, possessed a wealth of knowledge in both traditional and unconventional medicine that surpassed even the most skilled doctors in Princess Celestia's court. Her coat was a soft cerulean hue, reminiscent of the clear skies above, while her mane and tail were a vibrant blend of pink and scarlet streaks styled into an elegant upswept bun. A tan headband secured any stray hairs from falling into her intense, focused gaze.
In contrast to her delicate features, Meadowbrook wore a skirt made of layered green fabrics that resembled feathers or leaves, giving off an ethereal aura as she walked. The fluttering fabric at her sides gave the impression of wings on a graceful bird or fairy.
Her upper body was adorned with a light green blouse, its flowing sleeves providing comfort for her busy arms. Over this, she donned a sleeveless brown vest with intricate lace-up detailing in a crisscross pattern down the front, adding a touch of rustic charm to her outfit.
Covering her arms were warm brown sleeves that extended from her wrists to just below her shoulders, bearing horizontal stripes in varying shades of brown and yellow. And on her hooves, she wore knee-high brown boots with pointed toes and subtle heels, giving her an air of sophistication.
But what truly caught one's attention was the yellow and blue plague doctor's mask perched atop Meadowbrook's head, just above her face. Its haunting appearance served as a reminder of the dangers she faced daily in her profession as a healer. Yet despite it all, she stood tall and confident, ready to use her skills to help those in need.
Somnambula, a majestic pegasus mare from the Southern Equestria region, drew gasps of awe with her delicate pink coat and flowing pale blue mane and tail. Her eyes were like shimmering amethysts, sparkling in the sunlight.
Adorned on her neck was her cutie mark - a gold necklace with two flawless pearls on each end, symbolizing her grace and elegance. She was a vision of beauty as she gracefully glided through the air.
Her attire was equally stunning - a sleeveless white tunic dress that flowed down to her upper thighs, accentuating her slender figure. The neckline and hem were adorned with intricate blue trim, adding a touch of color to the otherwise pure white fabric.
A golden yellow sash cinched at her waist, not only adding a pop of contrast but also emphasizing her gentle curves. Golden armbands adorned her forearms, adding a touch of regality to her appearance.
But perhaps the most striking accessory was the golden laurel headpiece resting upon her head, a symbol of victory and triumph. And hanging loosely around her neck was the Blindfold she had used to best the Sphinx of her homeland, a testament to her courage and intelligence.
Star Swirl the Bearded, Leader of the Pillars of Equestria and master of magic, commanded a presence like no other. His mane and tail, a striking contrast of stark white and silvery gray, flowed behind him in a graceful wave. The streaks of gray hinted at his vast knowledge and experience, making him seem older than his physical appearance would suggest.
But it was his eyes that truly captivated those who stood before him. Like distant galaxies, they shimmered with unfathomable depths of wisdom and power, offering only a glimpse into the boundless knowledge he possessed.
Of course, one could not mention Star Swirl without acknowledging his most distinctive feature - his voluminous beard. It cascaded down from his chin in waves of starlight, moving as if infused with its own magical energy.
And speaking of magic, Star Swirl's Cutie Mark served as a testament to his unparalleled mastery over the arcane arts. An intricate swirl comprised of stars and magical symbols adorned his flank, symbolizing the immense power he held within.
As for his attire, it was befitting of a master of magic. He wore an ankle-length robe made of rich blue fabric, its wide sleeves and high collar framing his bearded face in regal elegance. A thick purple sash cinched around his waist completed the look, tied in an ornate knot at the front.
Upon closer inspection, one could see that the blue robe was adorned with delicate golden embellishments and embroidery. Along the chest area were several crescent moon and star symbols crafted in exquisite detail with golden thread. Similar golden designs adorned the hems of the sleeves and bottom edge of the robe.
His pointed hat matched the color of his robe perfectly, its wide brim casting shadows over his face. On the cone of the hat was a large crescent moon symbol, accompanied by a smaller star symbol - both rendered in vibrant golden hues.
And for the practicality of his magical endeavors, Star Swirl had several pouches attached to his sash. These pouches, adorned with golden embroidery and button accents, held various components and ingredients necessary for his spells and alchemical concoctions. In every aspect, Star Swirl exuded an air of power and wisdom, befitting of his esteemed position as master of magic.
The wizard's footwear consisted of sleek, knee-high boots crafted from a deep, dark leather. A subtle heel added height to his already imposing figure, while pointed toes hinted at a sense of mystery and otherworldliness.
In one hand, he wielded a massive staff crafted from a dark, unknown material. Its curved shape seemed to radiate energy and power, enhancing the aura that surrounded the skilled magician. In his other hand rested his personal grimoire - a book filled with ancient magic and spells penned by none other than Star Swirl himself.
Kneeling behind the Six Pillars was Stygian Nessus, a unicorn apprentice of Star Swirl and chronicler of their incredible adventures. Despite his meek appearance, he held himself with an air of dignity. His dull grey coat was contrasted by a mossy blue mane and tail, and his eyes were like dulled sapphires, constantly focused on the ground.
Stygian wore a simple sleeveless white tunic cinched at the waist by a dark gray sash, paired with matching trousers that were expertly tailored to his slender frame. A well-worn brown cloak hung from his shoulders, its edges frayed from countless journeys.
In contrast to the larger-than-life personas of his mentors, Stygian's presence was quiet and unassuming - hardly noticed among the legends that surrounded him. Even Princess Celestia barely spared him a glance.
Celestia's eyes scanned over them with careful scrutiny, each legendary figure representing a part of Equestria's rich history and power. "Please stand," she commanded, her voice leaving no room for hesitation. "I have not called you here for pleasantries, but to discuss matters of grave importance."
"If you are referring to the Sirens, your Majesty," Star Swirl said as he rose to his feet, followed by the rest of the pillars. "Although we were unable to defeat them directly, I was able to use an experimental spell to banish them to another dimension - one without magic."
"The Sirens are of little concern to me now," Celestia said, resting her new arm on the throne. "I have a more pressing target for you and your team."
Star Swirl the Bearded tilted his head slightly, a glint of curiosity in his ancient eyes. "Please tell us, Princess Celestia. What threat looms over Equestria now?"
The princess's gaze turned steely, and the room fell silent as the grand tapestries stopped their gentle swaying. She spoke with a weighty seriousness that hinted at an underlying urgency.
"Several weeks ago, I received a report from a wounded soldier stationed in a village near the border of dragon territory," Celestia said, using her magic to summon a blood-stained scroll.
"Don't tell me Dragon Lord Smaug has finally launched an attack on Equestria?!" Flash exclaimed in shock, his eyes widening at the thought of such a dire threat.
Celestia shook her head solemnly. "No, it is not Smaug. It is something far more insidious." Her expression grew cold and irritated. "The Radio Demon has returned."
The mention of the Radio Demon fell upon the room like a heavy blanket, silencing even the most talkative of Pillars. The whispered fears of ancient times were suddenly on every tongue, causing even the great Star Swirl to shift uncomfortably in his seat.
"Returned?" he repeated, his voice trembling slightly.
"Yes," Celestia affirmed with a nod. "It's been nearly three hundred years since Alastor set foot on Equestrian soil."
Star Swirl's beard bristled with electricity, his mind racing through history to place the name. "Alastor... the Radio Demon. His power was unlike anything we had ever encountered; a being fueled by chaos and disharmony, capable of spreading fear and manipulation across vast distances."
Mistmane spoke up, her voice gentle as flower petals. "I had prayed that such evil would have remained gone from our land."
Rockhoof stomped his hoof fiercely against the ground, the sound echoing like distant thunder in the chamber. "Then let us not cower before him! If this demon has returned, we shall simply send him packing!"
"Do not underestimate this entity, Rockhoof," Celestia cautioned, her voice stern. "His dark magic surpasses anything I have faced before; even Discord and Tirek pale in comparison to Alastor's capabilities. He thrives on chaos not for power or control, but for sheer entertainment, which makes him unpredictable and dangerous."
The Alicorn's grip tightened unconsciously on her metal arm, remembering how easily Alastor had bitten it off during their last encounter. It left her vulnerable and defenseless until Luna was able to teleport them away to safety.
As Star Swirl's eyes narrowed in intense focus, the gravity of the situation began to dawn upon him. His brow furrowed as he contemplated Princess Celestia's proposal. "Then what do you suggest we do, Princess? We are facing a force that even the combined might of Equestria's rulers could not contain."
Celestia sat on her throne, her regal form exuding an air of silent contemplation. Her gaze drifted to the stained glass window depicting her legendary triumph over the Lord of Chaos.
"Discord..." she murmured, lost in thought.
"Your Majesty?" Somnambula spoke up, breaking the silence.
"Even with the aid of other nations and races, we would not stand a chance against Alastor," Celestia finally spoke, rising from her throne and trotting over to the shattered window. "So instead of attempting to vanquish this creature, we must seal it away, as I did with Discord."
Star Swirl's expression turned contemplative, his mind racing as he processed the weight of Celestia's suggestion. "A sealing spell..." he muttered to himself. "It would need to be more powerful than any magic we have ever attempted before."
The rest of the Pillars exchanged uneasy glances, each fully aware of the monumental task that lay ahead. A heavy silence fell upon the group, tension thickening in the air.
Meadowbrook finally spoke up, her voice steady and calm as always. "We will need a vessel strong enough to contain such malevolent energy. Something that can withstand its sheer power."
"We already have such a vessel," Celestia said with a grin, confidence shining in her eyes.
“Your highness,” Mistmane spoke respectfully. “I do not wish to question your judgment, but what kind of vessel could withstand the immense power of such a being?”
“A vessel as large and formidable as the Radio Demon himself,” Celestia replied, turning to face the Pillars. “A vessel that can contain his chaos and darkness without faltering.”
“And what, may I ask, could this vessel be?” Starswirl pondered.
“Tartarus,” Celestia declared with determination. The word seemed to echo throughout the room, each syllable weighed down by ancient power and foreboding.
There was a collective gasp from the Pillars. They were familiar with Tartarus, a place where only the most dangerous creatures were kept imprisoned away from Equestria.
“But your majesty,” Meadowbrook interjected cautiously, “Tartarus is already home to many dangers. Wouldn't adding the might of the Radio Demon be like lighting a fuse on a powder keg?”
Celestia nodded in agreement with Meadowbrook's words. “Yes, it is a risk. But we will strengthen its wards and reinforce its bindings. We will make Tartarus into a fortress so impenetrable that even Alastor's chaotic essence cannot escape.”
“That is if we can even trick him,” Flash pointed out. “He's arguably more cunning than Discord himself.”
Starswirl stroked his beard thoughtfully. “Indeed, the Radio Demon is sly, but before we can devise a plan to deceive him, we must first find a way to locate him.”
“I may know of a way,” Celestia revealed. “Flash, do you still have that old radio you listen to when you're off duty?”
“It's not like I have a choice,” Flash Magnus grumbled. “Every time I throw it out, it reappears by mid-day.”
"Hmm...perhaps it possesses more than meets the eye," Celestia mused, her regal voice filled with curiosity and intrigue. "Bring it to me, if you would."
Flash Magnus nodded crisply, his muscles tensed with determination as he exited the chamber. The air was charged with excitement and anticipation as the others waited for his return. Minutes later, he reappeared with a dusty, rusted radio clutched in his hand. Though its appearance was unassuming, there was an undeniable energy emanating from it.
"Here is the radio, Princess," Flash announced, presenting the device to Celestia with reverence.
Taking the radio into her own hands, Celestia inspected it carefully. However, as soon as she made contact with it, the device burst to life with a crackling static that seemed to vibrate through the room.
Celestia gasped in amazement as she realized the true power of the ordinary radio. It spoke to them, causing shock and surprise among all present.
“I’m afraid your assumption is incorrect, Celestia,” the Radio said, sending shivers down their spines.
Everyone jumped back as the radio continued to speak.
“This is quite an interesting conversation,” Alastor interjected. “And what exactly was your plan?”
Celestia's anger boiled over, her grip on the radio tightening. "Alastor...I will say this only once...Leave these lands and never return or face the consequences."
The demon's laughter crackled through the static, a chilling sound. "Or what, dear Celestia? You'll scold me? Trap me in Tartarus with your magic spells?" His mocking tone sent chills down everyone's spine.
Star Swirl stepped forward, his expression grim. "We will do whatever it takes to protect Equestria and its inhabitants from you."
"Oh, I'm terrified," Alastor responded sarcastically. "But let me ask, old wizard, do you truly believe your magic can contain me?"
"Enough!" Celestia's voice cut through the static and spells alike, silencing the radio momentarily. "You underestimate the strength of Equestria's guardians. We will eliminate you as a threat, one way or another."
Alastor's chuckle resumed, dark and foreboding. "Eliminate? My dear Celestia, you are a source of entertainment for me! I look forward to watching you try." The radio fell silent then, though it still hummed with a menacing energy.
Celestia's fury grew until she screamed and threw the radio to the ground, shattering it into pieces.
The pieces of the shattered radio fizzled and popped, releasing their magic into the air. The remnants of Alastor's final taunt lingered in the room, causing the Princess's chest to heave with anger and frustration. While such outbursts were rare for those who held positions of power, they were all too familiar to the guards and staff of the castle.
"I don't care what it takes," Celestia seethed through gritted teeth. "We will stop him, even if it means sacrificing everything we hold dear."
"Celestia," Starswirl interjected sternly. "I understand your feelings, but you must not let his words get to you. And why are you acting so out of character? You used to be much more patient when you were younger."
"Because that demon is the cause of my subjects living in fear," Celestia shouted. "He's the reason I lost my arm, and if I have to give up my entire kingdom to seal him away, I will."
The Pillars were taken aback by her sudden outburst. But then Starswirl did something that always seemed to calm her - he placed a gentle hand on her shoulder. When she met his gaze, all she could see was genuine concern for her well-being.
Shame washed over Celestia as she realized how uncharacteristically she had been acting. She took a deep breath, reigning in her anger.
"You're right, old friend," she said, her voice strained. "I allowed Alastor's words to push me into a rage. But you must understand the weight I carry - to protect my little ponies from such an insidious evil."
Starswirl nodded solemnly, the wrinkles on his forehead furrowing with worry. "I know the burden well," he said, his voice heavy with the weight of experience and responsibility. "But we cannot let darkness cloud our judgment and drive us to acts of desperation that we may regret."
“He’s right,” Flash said, determination flashing in his eyes. “And don’t think we don’t feel the same way. We all wanna put that demon in his place.”
“Then let’s not waste time,” Celestia said, her tone now much calmer than before. She exuded a sense of regal confidence, as befitting a princess. “Star Swirl, if I gave you one of my father’s spells, how fast do you think you could master it?”
“Star Swirl is the master of all magic,” Mistmane declared, her voice brimming with unwavering faith in her fellow wizard. "If there's a spell to be learned, he can do it."
“I will have to consult my library then,” Starswirl replied, stroking his long beard thoughtfully. “I believe I may have just the thing. Something that my own teacher left behind.”
“Teacher?” Somnambula exclaimed in surprise. “You had a teacher?”
Starswirl's gaze turned distant as he reminisced about his past. "I may have made a name for myself as a wizard, but I didn't start on my own. My teacher, Stalwart the White, was the one who took me under his wing and taught me everything I know."
As Starswirl spoke of his mentor, his eyes took on a faraway glint, lost in memories and nostalgia. "Stalwart was a unicorn whose mastery of magic rivaled even the legends of old. He delved into magics that many feared to touch, seeking knowledge to protect this world from threats seen and unseen."
Stygian hesitantly spoke up, his voice quivering with unease. "Umm…Princess, this spell you mentioned...what exactly does it involve?"
"Tartarus Gate," Celestia replied without even looking at the timid pony. The air grew tense as everyone held their breath, knowing the gravity of what she had just said. Star Swirl's face paled and lit up with excitement at the same time. "It summons the gates of Tartarus and imprisons those who are sucked inside."
"The very same spell me and...Luna used to seal Tirek away," Celestia added with a hint of venom when mentioning her sister's name.
“Indeed,” Starswirl said, breaking the silence. “It may require a substantial amount of magic. However, even if we have the means to seal Alastor away, we still have yet to come up with a way to find him.”
"We follow his Broadcasts," Celestia said confidently. "He always telegraphs where his broadcasts are located, and that is how we will track him down."
"We could...perform a vast Teleportation spell over all of us," Star Swirl suggested.
"Us and the Entire Equestrian Army," Celestia finished determinedly. "If we coordinate our efforts, we can surround the area, and when Alastor lets his guard down, we'll pounce."
Celestia's hand was surrounded by a shimmering aura as she summoned a bound scroll into her grasp. "Here is the spell. Master it quickly," she commanded, offering it to Star Swirl.
Star Swirl accepted the ancient parchment with a respectful nod, carefully unrolling it and studying the intricate runes and incantations etched onto its surface. Each symbol seemed to pulse with powerful magic from a long-gone era. This was no ordinary spell - it was one born out of desperate measures, passed down through generations of Celestia's ancestors.
"I will begin immediately," declared Starswirl, determination evident in his voice.
Celestia turned to address the gathering of guardians in the war room. "While Star Swirl prepares the spell, I will inform my army of our attack plan. You are all dismissed."
The guardians scattered, each taking on their respective roles as they prepared for the daunting task ahead. They had faced many challenges before, but Alastor posed a different kind of threat - one that required careful planning and unwavering resolve.
"Stygian," Star Swirl said, turning to his apprentice and handing him the scroll. "Take this to my study while I confer with the others about what we know of the Radio Demon."
Stygian hesitated, hurt flashing across his face at being disregarded by his master.
"If I may speak..." he began tentatively, shuffling his hooves.
"I will be in my study after I finish speaking with the Pillars, Stygian," interrupted Star Swirl, dismissing his apprentice's concerns.
With a heavy heart, Stygian nodded and left the room with the scroll clutched tightly in his hand. As he made his way through the castle hallways, he couldn't shake off the feeling of anger, frustration, and betrayal that swirled within him.
For years, Stygian had worked in the shadow of his mentor, studying under Starswirl's vast knowledge. Despite this, he was often treated as nothing more than a scribe, never given the chance to prove himself in real magical conflicts.
As his hooves echoed in the quiet study lined with tomes of all shapes and ages, some as ancient as Equestria itself, Stygian carefully placed a scroll on Starswirl's ornate desk. He couldn't help but feel like a mere pawn in a game played by far more powerful beings.
Taking note of Starswirl's ongoing experiments and magical artifacts scattered around the room, Stygian couldn't resist his curiosity and found himself drawn to the scroll on his master's desk. As he unfurled it once again, his eyes traced over the intricate symbols.
However, something didn't sit right with him. Despite his extensive knowledge of magical theory and spell composition gained from years as Starswirl's pupil, there was an underlying feeling that something was missing from this particular spell. Determined to find any potential flaws, Stygian meticulously examined every curve and line of the ancient script. His instincts told him there was an oversight, a crucial element that could have catastrophic consequences if left unaddressed.
With the resolve of someone who had spent too many years being underestimated, Stygian decided to take a risk. If his suspicions were correct, he would have to approach Celestia herself - a daunting task for an apprentice usually hidden in the background. But first, he needed proof.
Author's Note
Oooo.....this is gonna be exciting....I can't wait to see how this plays out. Will Celestia's plan succeed or fail?...But only one thing will be certain
Blood...Oh yes. there will be blood.
So Stay Tuned Folks
It took Star Swirl several months to finally master the Tartarus Gate spell that Celestia had given him. At this time, he and the other Pillars, along with Celestia herself and the entire Equestrian Army, prepared for the upcoming battle. Despite his efforts, Stygian was unable to find the flaw in the spell.
"I know it's there," he muttered to himself. "I just need more time."
Suddenly, Star Swirl's voice cut through his thoughts.
"Stygian!" He barked sternly. "Quit babbling and stay close. We are waiting for the Demon's Broadcast."
Stygian flinched at his master's tone, feeling a sense of disappointment in himself. He quickly tucked away the scroll containing the Tartarus Gate spell and refocused on the task at hand.
All eyes were fixed on the old battered radio in the center of the courtyard as they waited for the signal from the demons. Meanwhile, Celestia paced nearby with her new mechanical arm glistening in the morning light. The Pillars stood ready with their magical auras shimmering around them. Rockhoof was visibly restless while Mistmane seemed to float above the ground with nervous energy. Even Flash Magnus, usually composed, couldn't help but grip his sword tightly in anticipation.
Stygian felt a lump form in his throat as he stood among the legendary figures, keenly aware of his own lack of experience. He stole a glance at Star Swirl, who shot him a warning look in return. The young apprentice bit his lip, struggling to keep his doubts at bay. If his master was confident in their plan's success, who was he to question it? Suddenly, a loud burst of static broke through the silence, causing everyone to jump.
Then, Alastor's smooth voice filled the room, sending shivers down their spines. "Hello, my dear listeners! It's your old pal Alastor here again on this lovely morning!" The Radio Demon's cheerful tone contradicted the sinister threat he represented. Celestia stopped pacing and narrowed her eyes as she tuned into the radio. "As always, I have an excellent show prepared for you all this morning. The opening act will take place shortly in the charming little village of Vanhoover. I hope you can attend - it promises to be a performance that will leave you…screaming for more!"
The radio crackled and then fell silent, prompting Celestia to quickly issue her commands.
"You all heard the demon! Star Swirl, be ready to teleport us to his location. The rest of you, prepare for battle!"
"As you wish, Princess," Star Swirl replied with a hint of apology in his voice. "But it will take time to teleport such a large group."
As the others scrambled to follow Celestia's orders, Stygian's doubts resurfaced with even more intensity. He opened his mouth to speak, but was met with Star Swirl's disapproving glare. With a defeated sigh, he retreated into himself, knowing that a conflict was inevitable.
Part of Stygian couldn't help but wonder - were they truly ready to face the chaos and power of the Radio Demon?
The broadcast had ended, the microphone falling silent as Alastor stepped away from a slew of dead and dismembered bodies around him. The metallic tang of blood filled the air, mixing with the pungent scent of death and decay. Some of the ponies that were still alive were strung up by their hooves, their screams echoing through the village as ravens with demonic red eyes painfully plucked their eyes out of their screaming heads. Others were being ripped apart by Alastor's black tentacles, their writhing bodies adding to the chaotic scene.
Amidst the carnage, Alastor hummed a tune, twirling his cane between his fingers as he walked through the pools of blood and innards at his feet. The macabre scene around him was his stage, and he prided himself on being the consummate showman, orchestrating horror with the same ease as conducting a symphony.
With a flourish, Alastor stabbed his cane into the ground before straightening his immaculate red coat, smoothing out any wrinkles with his clawed hands. A wicked grin spread across his features as he replayed the terrified screams from his latest "performance" in his mind. Such exquisite sounds of pure fear and agony - true music to his ears.
"Niffty!" he called out in a jovial tone. "Are you done playing with your toy?"
There was a blur of motion, and then the tiny filly appeared before him, her small form covered in blood. Despite her single eye and gruesome appearance, Niffty managed to convey an eager willingness to be with her friend.
"I am," she chirped, her voice high-pitched yet laced with underlying danger as she threw the heart behind her.
Alastor glanced down at her diminutive form, taking note of the fresh cut marring her porcelain-like skin. With a gentle yet firm grip, he reached for the filly's arm and inspected the rather deep bleeding cut. Tsking softly in mild disapproval, Alastor chided her.
"Now, now, we can't have you looking less than presentable," he said, his tone still light despite his words.
Using his powers with a flick of his wrist, Alastor summoned materials to dress Niffty's wound. As he focused on her injury, he couldn't help but notice that the usually bubbly and cheerful filly was uncharacteristically quiet, her usual smile absent from her face.
"What's wrong, Dearie?" Alastor inquired, gently completing the dressing of her wound.
Niffty remained silent, averting her gaze from Alastor's intense stare. But the Radio Demon would not be ignored; with a swift movement, he grabbed Niffty's face and turned it towards him. Using his thumb, he gently parted her lips to reveal several chipped teeth.
Alastor's signature grin faded slightly, a hint of genuine concern flashing across his otherwise devilish visage. "Tsk, tsk," he clucked disapprovingly, carefully examining her damaged teeth with a finger. "Can't have you without that winning smile of yours, now can we?"
With a wave of his hand, Alastor utilized his magic to heal the cracks in her teeth. However, he was still dissatisfied with how jagged and unkempt they appeared. Summoning a metal file into his hands, Alastor had an idea.
"Let's see if we can make those already vicious teeth even more deadly," he purred mischievously, gesturing for Niffty to open wide.
Without hesitation, Niffty obediently opened her mouth wider than seemed possible for her small frame. Alastor set to work with precision and finesse, treating each tooth like a precious work of art. With each stroke of the file against her teeth, sparks flew and the sharp edges became even sharper. He hummed a haunting melody under his breath - one that seemed to linger in the air long after it was uttered.
After a few moments, Alastor stepped back to admire his handiwork. "There we are," he exclaimed with satisfaction. "A smile to die for!"
Niffty beamed at him with gratitude, flashing a full-toothed smile that glinted dangerously in the light. "Thank you, Alastor," she said, her voice bubbling with joy and mischief.
Alastor nodded in response, his own grin returning as he retrieved his cane from its resting place. "It was my pleasure, my dear. Now, let's tidy up a bit, shall we? We have guests arriving shortly, and I do so hate to receive company in a mess.”
With a wave of his hand, the carnage began to rearrange itself. Limbs found their way into grotesque piles, neatly organized by size and type. The blood pooled into ornate patterns on the ground, as if it were intentional decoration rather than the remnants of a massacre.
Niffty clapped her hands with glee and danced around the spectacle, her twisted sense of mirth finding delight in the gruesome tidying. Alastor watched her dance for a moment before turning his attention back to the task at hand.
The air around them began to ripple and distort. Suddenly, The Pillars appeared in the village square, with Celestia and her Army leading the way. Their faces were filled with horror as they took in the gruesome scene before them. Star Swirl furrowed his brow in concentration, while Celestia's expression hardened with determination.
"Alastor," she called out with authority, her voice cutting through the tense silence. "This ends now!"
Slowly, Alastor turned to face the newly arrived forces of Celestia. A mocking smile spread across his face. "Why Princess, you've arrived just in time for the grand finale! Though I must say, your timing is a bit early..."
He chuckled darkly as black tentacles emerged from the shadows behind him, writhing eagerly. Niffty skipped over to Alastor's side, her unnaturally wide grin showing off her sharp teeth.
Celestia's eyes narrowed as she surveyed the chaotic scene before her. "I will only say this once, demon. Surrender now, or we will be forced to take action."
Alastor threw his head back in laughter, the sound laced with a menacing static. "You heard the princess, Niffty! She's giving me one last chance." He straightened his coat mockingly. "Very well then, I surrender!"
But before anyone could react, Alastor's tentacles shot out and pierced the skulls of several nearby soldiers. Their lifeless bodies were lifted into the air and constricted by the dark coils.
"Or perhaps not!" Alastor cackled maniacally. With a wave of his hand, he reanimated the corpses as grotesque undead creatures that stumbled towards The Pillars with outstretched arms and gnashing teeth.
With a maniacal grin, Alastor's eyes glowed with sadistic glee as he taunted his opponents. "Now then! Who wants to go out with a beautifully agonizing bang?"
Star Swirl bravely stepped forward, his horn ablaze with powerful magic. "We gave you a chance, demon. Now face the consequences!" With a resounding thud, Star Swirl slammed his staff into the ground, igniting stark runic circles that blazed around them. The other Pillars quickly joined their magic together, creating a shimmering defensive barrier to protect the village.
"Now! Attack!" Star Swirl shouted over the escalating chaos.
Rockhoof let out a mighty bellow as he charged forward. With a swift swing of his massive shovel, he smashed through Alastor's reanimated horrors and cleared a path for his allies. Flash Magnus was hot on his heels, his sword flashing as he skillfully cut down the shambling undead.
Meadowbrook swiftly flanked them, her staff in hand as she pulled wounded soldiers to safety and administered healing tonics where they were needed. Stygian and Somnambula stood tall beside her, armed with bow and arrows from her homeland. Together, they provided ranged support, their magic and arrows flying through the air to strike down any creatures who dared to threaten their allies.
Meanwhile, Alastor twirled his cane with elegant menace as he watched the chaos unfold. He reveled in the destruction and chaos before him - this was truly shaping up to be one of his finest performances yet. The battlefield was now his stage, and each clash of magic and metal was like a note in his symphony of destruction.
Emboldened by Alastor's presence, Niffty leapt into the fray with feral agility. Her single eye gleamed with excitement as she moved through the soldiers like a specter of death. With each swift movement, she took down her opponents with brutal efficiency, using her prized knife to deliver the deadly blows.
Celestia herself soared through the battlefield, her magnificent wings outstretched and flaring as she summoned bolts of solar energy from the sun itself. The unstoppable force rained down on the unholy army, but with each strike, it seemed to only grow stronger as more and more of her soldiers fell under Alastor's dark influence.
"You're getting sloppy, Celestia," the Radio Demon taunted, his antlers growing in size and darkness. "So much anger, so much contempt."
Celestia grunted in exertion as she unleashed another powerful beam from her mechanical arm, incinerating a wave of undead soldiers. Her brow furrowed in determination as she fought against her nemesis. "This ends today, Alastor!" she shouted over the deafening clash of metal and magic.
The Radio Demon merely laughed, his antlers twisting into an intricate spiral as dark magic pulsed through them. With a dramatic flourish, he slammed the end of his cane into the ground, unleashing a massive shockwave that knocked Celestia and her forces off-balance.
Stygian stumbled, his concentration broken as the magical attacks he was deflecting faltered. An undead horror lunged at him, jaws agape, before being killed by a well-aimed arrow from Somnambula's bow.
"Stay focused!" the elegant pegasus called out, her wings carrying her through the chaos with poise. She spun through the air with graceful precision, raining down pinpoint shafts on Alastor's minions.
On the other side of the village square, Rockhoof bellowed as he swung his massive shovel like a bat, crushing entire groups of undead with each mighty swing. His powerful hooves pounded against the ground as he charged forward fearlessly. Flash Magnus fought at his side, his sword a blur of motion as he cut through the endless horde with expert strikes.
Mistmane glided between the combatants, her vibrant magic glowing in the darkness. She created gusts of wind to buffer her allies while hindering the enemy's movements, using her powers to their full potential. At one point she concentrated intensely, summoning a dense fog bank to blind Alastor's line of sight and give her comrades an advantage in battle. The air was thick with the smell of smoke and blood, but Mistmane remained resolute as she fought alongside her friends against the formidable enemy.
But the Radio Demon was not going to be stopped so easily. With a chilling chuckle, he waved his hand and instantly dispersed the fog that concealed him. Niffty appeared by his side, cackling wildly as she leaped onto a bewildered Meadowbrook.
The healer let out a cry as Niffty's razor-sharp teeth sank into her leg. She swung her staff in panic, managing to push the demented cyclops away but not before getting a nasty wound.
"Enough games!" Celestia yelled, her horn glowing as she channeled all of her magic into a powerful spell. “Star Swirl!”
“Oh ho ho!” Alastor laughed, sensing the ancient magic in Starswirl's attack. "Looks like I need to...get a little serious...! "
Alastor's shadow grew larger and more twisted, transforming into an abyssal monstrosity that seemed to swallow up all light around it. The ground shook with each step he took, his laughter resounding like a chorus of tormented souls.
But Celestia stood steadfast, her determination unshaken. "Now is our chance, Star Swirl!" she commanded, her voice cutting through the chaos.
Starswirl thrust his hands down, creating a massive magic circle on the ground. The earth began to tremble violently, cracks forming as if an earthquake were tearing through it. Suddenly, a large door materialized behind Alastor.
[Pic here]
With the combined magic of Star Swirl and Celestia, the two began to cast the sealing spell. Stygian watched uneasily as they channeled their powers.
"No!" he finally blurted out, interrupting the casting. "Don't cast the spell!"
“Stygian! Do not interrupt!” Celestia commanded.
Alastor chuckled as the doors began to open. But before he could make a move, chains shot out and bound his wrists, forcing him to shrink back to his normal size. “I see! You ponies are more clever than I gave you credit for! However…YOUR METHOD IS FLAWED!! ”
“Flawed?!” Celestia exclaimed in confusion.
"There's a flaw in the spell," Stygian said urgently. "I noticed it when you first gave us the spell...But I couldn't figure it out until now."
"What kind of flaw?" Star Swirl asked as a gust of wind picked up towards the Gates of Tartarus.
"The spell won't just seal away the Demon," Stygian explained as he struggled to maintain his balance in the growing wind. "It will seal everything within this village."
As if on cue, several of the dead and still living Equestrian soldiers were sucked into the gate, screaming as they would never see Celestia's sun again. Alastor tried to resist by stabbing his tendrils into the ground, but with the chains around his wrists, he was ultimately being pulled back.
Stygian's warning was nearly lost in the powerful gusts of magic, as he struggled to keep his footing. "We have to stop this spell!"
But Celestia refused to listen, her mane crackling with reddish-orange sparks of fire. "NO!" she roared. "We must imprison him now... or we'll never get another chance."
"Are you insane? Look at what's happening around us!" Rockhoof shouted, holding onto Mage and Somnambula while gripping his shovel tightly.
"This is chaos! Everypony will end up in Tartarus if we don't stop it!" Mistmane yelled, struggling to maintain her shield and protect Flash.
But Celestia was determined. "I won't allow this monster to remain free!"
Alastor taunted from within the chains that were pulling him towards the gates of Tartarus. "Takes one…to know one, my dear!"
"Shut up, demon!" Celestia screamed in anger.
Despite Stygian's efforts, his magic wasn't strong enough to keep himself grounded. The unicorn was caught in the gusts of the spell and soon found himself soaring towards the gates.
"Stygian!" Star Swirl cried out in concern.
The leader of the Pillars stopped casting the sealing spell in order to save his pupil. He fired a magical tether that wrapped around Stygian's wrists, pulling him back towards safety.
But Celestia wouldn't back down. "No! Don't stop the spell!"
Without Star Swirl's assistance, the gates of Tartarus began to slowly close.
Alastor grinned upon seeing this. "Achilles... I've found your heel."
He pulled one of his tendrils from the ground and launched it at Stygian, coiling around the unicorn's ankle and crushing it with a sickening crunch.
"STYGIAN!" Star Swirl cried out in horror.
"What will you do now, Celestia?" Alastor taunted. "Your plan is falling apart bit by bit."
Celestia's face twisted into a scowl as Alastor taunted her. His words were like daggers, piercing through her mind and causing doubt to creep in. She could feel the demon struggling against the seal spell, but she knew that time was running out. The gate to Tartarus was slowly closing, and if she didn't act fast, Alastor would remain free to wreak havoc on Equestria.
But then, she spotted his companion - a small, one-eyed filly holding onto the ground with a knife buried deep within the earth. A glimmer of hope sparked within Celestia as she realized this could be their chance to defeat the demon once and for all.
"You found our heel," she grinned, withdrawing her prosthetic from the spell. "And I found yours, demon!"
With a flick of her arm, a firearm emerged from her forearm and she fired several bullets at the filly. The wind created by the Gate of Tartarus made it difficult to aim, but she managed to hit her target. Niffty's hands were struck by the bullets, causing her to scream in pain and lose her grip on both her knife and the ground. She was now caught in the pull of the spell.
Alastor quickly reacted, pulling his tentacles from the ground and leaping to catch Niffty by her arm. But in doing so, he left himself vulnerable - his only tether to safety now wrapped around Stygian's crushed ankle.
"Well played, Celestia!" Alastor seethed as Niffty whimpered in agony. "Your heart is much darker and colder than I anticipated! However, I will not allow you to have the last laugh!" His tendril tightened its grip on Stygian's ankle. "I will be taking this one with me!"
"You will not!" Star Swirl roared, his eyes blazing with determination.
But Star Swirl wasn't about to let that happen. With a fierce determination, he fired a beam of magic at the tendril, cutting through it and causing it to slowly tear. The battle was far from over, but they were one step closer to victory.
Alastor's grin widened as the last line of his safety slowly dwindled, a glint of malicious glee in his eyes. "My final order for a while," he declared, his voice dripping with dark amusement. "Go forth and sow the seeds of distrust, weave fear through the streets with my smile. Show everyone who they should truly fear, my loyal pets."
Before the Radio Demon could utter another cryptic word, the tentacle snapped and Alastor and Niffty were violently pulled into the gate of Tartarus. The air was thick with the stench of sulfur and brimstone, and the ground shook beneath their feet.
But even as he was dragged towards his inevitable fate, Alastor managed to grab hold of the gate's heavy door, clinging on for dear life.
"Mark my words, Celestia," he warned, his twisted smile still present on his face. "I will get out, and when I do...I will take great pleasure in turning this world into my own personal hell."
Celestia's expression hardened as she stopped her father's spell. "May you spend all of eternity in the pit," she spat, her voice filled with anger.
As Celestia's power waned and the spell holding open the Gates of Tartarus began to falter, Alastor and Niffty exchanged a knowing look. The air was thick with tension as magic crackled in both of their hands.
"Looks like this is where we part ways, my dear," Alastor said, his voice filled with genuine affection as he gave Niffty a small smile.
"S-sir?" Niffty stammered, her own smile fading as she tried to hide her fear. "W-what do you mean? Y-you know I'll stay by your side until the very end. R-right?"
Niffty's eyes glistened with unshed tears as she looked up at Alastor, who seemed determined to carry out his plan. With a swift and effortless motion, he flung Niffty away from the gates of Tartarus, her small form soaring through the air and away from the gaping maw of the underworld. As she flew, Niffty couldn't help but feel a sense of betrayal and heartache.
Meanwhile, Alastor turned his attention back to Celestia, who had just fired a powerful beam of magic at him. He stood firm against the blast, his grip on the gate's edge loosening slightly under its force. But instead of fighting back or trying to escape, Alastor simply grinned wickedly as he allowed himself to be consumed by the darkness of Tartarus.
With a resounding clang, the gates slammed shut behind him, sealing him in the abyssal depths of the underworld for eternity.
Niffty landed with a heavy thud, her body skidding across the grass and wildflowers before coming to a stop several yards from the imposing gates of Tartarus. Disoriented and trembling, she struggled to push herself up, her limbs feeling like lead weights. As she rose to her feet, she could feel the pain pulsing through her hands, blood trickling from the wounds left by Celestia's bullets. But despite the agony, Niffty forced herself to run towards the gates, her heart pounding in her chest.
"Alastor!" she screamed as she pounded her bloodied hands against the cold metal doors. Tears streamed down her face, mixing with both clear and blood from her good and missing eye. Her cries echoed through the empty field, filled with desperation and grief. She continued to pound on the unyielding gates until her knuckles split open, leaving streaks of blood on the ancient doors.
"No! You can't leave me! Please...come back!" she wailed, her small frame shaking with sobs. In that moment, all she could see was Alastor's warm smile - the one he had given her right before sacrificing himself for her. It was seared into her memory, a stark contrast to the coldness of the gates that had taken him away.
Exhausted and defeated, Niffty sank to her knees, her bloody hands sliding down the gates as she pressed her forehead against them. The chill of the metal against her skin only added to the numbness in her heart.
"We were supposed to be together," she whispered brokenly. "What am I supposed to do without you, Al?"
A ragged whisper escaped her lips, barely audible over the sound of her own heart breaking. He was gone. Trapped in the depths of Tartarus for eternity. She had failed in her duty, her one purpose. Hot tears streamed down her cheeks, blurring her vision as memories of their time together flickered through her mind like a cruel taunt. Each memory felt like a sharp knife twisting in her chest.
Niffty's body shook with grief and anger as she turned her gaze towards Celestia, her single eye burning with a mixture of anguish and rage. Pushing herself up from the ground, she stalked over to where her knife lay, leaving a trail of bloody footprints in her wake. Every step felt heavy and painful, as if she were carrying the weight of the world on her shoulders.
"You..." Niffty's voice was a guttural growl as she glared up at Celestia. "You did this. You took him from me!" Her words were filled with venom and hatred, directed towards the one responsible for her pain and loss.
Shaking with a tumultuous mix of emotions, Niffty's small frame quivered as she crouched in the dirt. Heartbreak, anger, and loss churned within her, threatening to overwhelm her fragile form. With trembling hands, she reached down and retrieved the knife from where it had fallen, clutching the handle so tightly that her knuckles turned white.
"Give him back to me!" Her voice cracked with desperation as she lunged towards Celestia, the knife raised high above her head. "You have to bring Alastor back! He doesn't belong in that place!"
Driven by grief and desperation, Niffty's attack was frenzied and wild. She swung the blade wildly at Celestia, each strike accompanied by droplets of blood arcing through the air. Tears streamed down her face, mixing with the crimson stains on her clothes and fur.
But Celestia was not defenseless. With a glow of her horn, the powerful artifacts known as the Elements of Harmony materialized around her. In a blinding flash, rainbow-colored beams of energy erupted forth, slamming into Niffty's small form.
The sheer force of the magic blast sent Niffty hurtling backwards like a ragdoll thrown by an unseen giant's hand. She crashed through the wall of a nearby building, debris and shattered glass raining down around her.
As Celestia cautiously approached the rubble where Niffty lay motionless, the dust began to settle. The princess's eyes widened in astonishment at the dramatic transformation that had taken place. The once-tan coat was now a pristine snowy white, while Niffty's mane and tail had turned into a shimmering amber red that seemed to glow from within. But most striking of all was her eye - once yellow sclera and pitch-black iris were now replaced by a brilliant white surrounding an almost molten orange iris.
With a subtle flick of her wrist, Celestia activated the mechanism in her prosthetic forearm. The hidden gun within popped out and took aim with deadly precision at Niffty's unconscious form.
"The last trace of that Demon's corruption," Celestia said coldly, her voice like ice slicing through the air.
The Gunshot rang throughout the village of Vanhoover, its sharp report echoing off the nearby buildings and sending birds scattering into the sky. However, the bullet never met its mark. Lying on the ground over the filly was Stygian, his body twisted in pain from his shattered foot. Fortunately for Niffty, Stygian had used his own body as a shield to knock off Celestia’s aim in a desperate attempt to save her.
"Princess, what are you doing?" Stygian gasped, trying to ignore the searing pain in his injured foot. "She's just a filly!"
Celestia's jaw clenched as she glared down at Stygian, her eyes blazing with fury. She had been so close to executing the child and erasing the last remnants of Alastor's evil from their world.
"Step aside, Stygian," she commanded, her voice dripping with icy authority. "That 'filly' is not innocent. She was Alastor's loyal accomplice, his attack dog. Her hands are stained with blood just as much as his."
The princess took a menacing step towards Stygian, her horn glowing with fierce golden magic. The air crackled with raw power as she continued to speak.
"Do you forget what that demon did? The atrocities he committed? The lives he destroyed without remorse?" Her voice rose with each word, filled with righteous anger.
Stygian opened his mouth to protest further, but Celestia cut him off with a single stomp of her hoof.
Her eyes narrowed to slits as she declared, "That filly is a threat to everything we have fought for, everything we have sacrificed to rid Equestria of Alastor's darkness." The ethereal glow of her magic intensified as she prepared to take action against the defiant scribe.
"Now stand down, Stygian. That is an order from your princess. I will eliminate this last remnant before it has a chance to spread and undo all our hard-won peace."
Celestia's words were filled with conviction and determination. In her mind, there was no room for compromise or hesitation when it came to protecting her kingdom.
"Look at her, Princess!" Stygian demanded. "You used the Elements on her... any trace of the demon's influence is gone from her body."
"I was trying to kill her with the Elements," Celestia seethed as she aimed her weapon at Stygian. "Step aside before I end you too."
Stygian stood his ground, meeting Celestia's furious gaze with unwavering resolve.
"...I knew it," he muttered.
His voice remained steady, showing no fear as he faced Celestia's gun. His eyes shifted to Niffty's unconscious form, then back to Celestia. "Your fear of Alastor's legacy has clouded your judgment. The Elements have purified her, transformed her. She is no longer the creature you fight against but a victim herself."
"How dare you speak to me like that?!" Celestia hissed. "Everything I have done has been for the sake of Equestria! I will not be questioned by someone of low birth like you!"
But despite Celestia's venomous words and threats, Stygian remained resolute in his defense of Niffty. He held her gaze without flinching, determined to protect the innocent filly from harm.
"Everything you've done was driven by vengeance and fear, not justice," Stygian stated, his tone even but carrying a subtle undercurrent of reproach. "You've become so consumed by your crusade against Alastor that you can no longer see the forest for the trees."
Stygian swept his hand towards Niffty's unconscious, reformed figure. "Look at her, Celestia! Truly look. The Elements have purged every last trace of corruption. What you see before you is an innocent soul, reborn into this world untainted."
Stygian met Celestia's blazing glare with an insistent stare of his own. "If you carry through with this mad act, you'll be silencing the very light you claim to fight for. This path leads only to more darkness, more death, until you become the very monster you profess to despise."
The air was thick with tension as the two remained locked in a tense standoff. Celestia's magical aura flared brilliantly, backlighting her in an auric glow as she took an aggressive step forward.
"Listen to yourself, Stygian!" she snarled. "You honestly believe a few harmonic light shows can undo a lifetime of evil? That demon defiled her from foalhood, twisting her mind and soul into an instrument of cruelty!"
Her gun followed her movements, its barrel now inches away from Stygian's face. "No magic can undo such deep-seated depravity! Death is the only way to cleanse such profound corruption!"
She bared her teeth and trembled with anger and conviction. "I WILL eradicate every trace of Alastor's vile legacy from existence, no matter what it takes. Even if I have to go through you to do it!"
Stygian's voice remained steady and resolute. "You would even harm your own kind," he stated. "Perhaps that is what truly happened to Princess Luna."
After hearing this, Celestia raised her metal hand and struck the scribe across the face. Stygian stumbled from the force of the blow but managed to stay on his hoof. He tasted blood in his mouth as it dripped from a split lip, serving as a reminder of how far Celestia was willing to go.
"My sister was a power-hungry fool who let Alastor corrupt her!" Celestia yelled as she turned and stormed away.
"And in some ways...he is corrupting you too," Stygian muttered to himself.
Once Celestia had left, Stygian released a breath he didn't realize he had been holding. The sound of her hoofsteps faded, leaving him alone with the filly and the weight of his decisions. Soon, the Six Pillars gathered around him, with Star Swirl being the first to speak.
"Have you lost your mind?!" Star Swirl exclaimed to his pupil. "On what grounds do you have to speak to the Princess like that, Stygian?"
"She tried to kill her," Stygian replied, gesturing towards the filly behind him. "She has been cleansed of the demon's influence."
Stygian's words hung heavily in the air, and an uneasy silence fell among the Six Pillars. Each one, representing a virtue of Equestria, exchanged concerned glances. They all knew the gravity of the situation unfolding before them.
Finally, Star Swirl spoke up again. "Celestia...tried to kill this child?" he asked in disbelief.
Rockhoof, his normally jovial face crinkled with concern, was the next to speak up. "We've all seen what the demon's magic can do," he said, his voice a low rumble like distant thunder, "but if the Elements have truly cleansed her, then isn't it our duty to protect the innocent? To give them a chance at a new life?"
Mage Meadowbrook chimed in, her soft southern accent soothing like a gentle stream. "I agree with Rockhoof. If there's even the smallest possibility that this filly has been purified, then we ought to nurture that purity – not snuff it out on account of fear."
Somnambula, whose wisdom had guided many through darkness, stepped forward, her eyes reflecting a deep inner light. "Fear clouds our path. If we allow it to lead us, we fall into the trap of becoming the very evil we seek to banish. Celestia must find her way back to the light, as must this child."
Flash Magnus, typically known for his courage in battle, placed a hand on his chest. "We've fought too hard to secure peace," he said firmly. "The last thing we need is to create more enemies out of fear. We should stand for what's right and give this filly the chance she deserves."
Finally, Mistmane, with grace befitting her legendary beauty and kindness, offered her perspective. "Every life is precious, and every soul deserves redemption," she spoke softly, yet every word carried weight. "What kind of example would we set if we deny someone their chance at redemption? Our strength lies in compassion, not in cruelty. If we forsake that, then we forsake the very essence of what makes us Pillars."
Star Swirl the Bearded nodded slowly, taking in each of the Pillars' wise words. The air around them seemed to shimmer with a shared understanding that they were at a crossroads; their choices now would shape the very fabric of Equestria's future.
He turned his attention back to Stygian, his expression softened by the counsel of his compatriots. "You have acted with great courage today, Stygian," Star Swirl acknowledged, his voice tinged with newfound respect. "And perhaps with greater wisdom than even I possess. It is clear that we stand not only as protectors of Equestria but as guardians of its ideals."
Rockhoof planted his hoof firmly into the ground, bracing himself for what was to come. "It's settled then," he declared confidently. "We'll take this young filly under our wing and show her that her past does not determine her future. Together, we will guide her towards healing and light."
"No," Stygian interjected with a determined tone, struggling to stand on his unbroken hoof. "I'll take care of her."
"My dear boy, I do not question your heart, which is as strong and true as any I have ever known," Star Swirl said, his eyes reflecting both concern and pride. "But this will be a heavy burden for you to bear."
"It is not a burden," Stygian insisted, his voice filled with determination. "She is no burden. She will have no one in this new life of hers."
"But still," Meadowbrook chimed in with genuine concern. "Raising a filly is no easy task. It was just me and my mother back home, and even she struggled at times. You would be taking on a great responsibility."
"I grew up without my parents," Stygian replied as he knelt down and gently lifted the unconscious filly from the ground. "My uncle raised me with love and taught me the value of family, even if they are not related by blood. If he could do it for me, then I can do it for her."
Somnambula stepped closer, placing a reassuring hand on Stygian's shoulder. “You have a heart as vast as the endless skies,” she said warmly. “But remember, just as stars shine brighter together, you need not carry this responsibility alone. We are here for you, as family in spirit if not by blood.”
Stygian looked up at her, gratitude evident in his eyes. "Thank you. I... I would welcome any wisdom and support you can offer."
Flash Magnus adjusted his helmet, a sign that he was preparing himself mentally for whatever challenge lay ahead. “We’ve battled monsters and faced down armies," he said resolutely. "Raising a filly? How hard can it be?”
Everyone looked at Flash Magnus with a look that said one thing: 'You have no idea.'
“What?” Flash asked not understanding the reason behind the look everyone gave him.
Laughter erupted from the group before Mistmane take the filly from Stygian's arms. Rockhoof, with his immense strength, easily carried Stygian back to Canterlot where he could tend to his injured hoof. However, amidst the jovial atmosphere, two things went unnoticed by all: the first being that more than half of the surviving Equestrian Army had briefly shown green eyes, and the second being that Stygian's shadow was not his own...It bore a striking resemblance to the sealed demon.
According to the History Books of Equestria, Alastor the Radio Demon was sealed away on the sixth month, on the sixth day, at the sixth hour that morning...Though the Radio Demon may have been gone, his presence in Equestria was far from over.
Author's Note
Whoa! What a twist at the end of this chapter! Just when you thought the dust had settled, a new storm of uncertainty swirls around the so-called heroes of the land. Celestia's actions have driven a wedge between allies, while sinister forces lurk unseen.
Questions linger in the air like the smoke from battle. What fate awaits those who crossed paths with the fallen? Whose side will the sands of time favor? And at what cost may come the answers?
As the embers of conflict dim, the shadows grow longer. New challenges and choices loom on the horizon, threatening to unravel the fragile peace. The road ahead is shrouded in mystery.
What revelations await in the next chapter? Stay tuned, folks!
Chapter 7: Voices in the Dark
Seven long and somewhat peaceful years had passed since the Radio Demon, Alastor, was sealed away in the depths of Tartarus. In the aftermath, The Six Pillars had defected from Celestia's command, choosing to remain neutral in the cosmic struggle between the high heavens and deepest hells.
As guardians of Equestria, they protected the delicate balance rather than taking sides. Meanwhile, Stygian Nessus, former apprentice of Star Swirl, left the Pillars behind and moved to San Franciscolt with his adoptive daughter, Squeaky Clean. Once a vicious companion of the feared Radio Demon, she now had a much more docile demeanor... except for her tendency to brutally kill insects with a sewing needle or cooking knife. Stygian also noticed an obsessive need to keep their home immaculately clean.
While the Pillars made a name for themselves by independently protecting Equestria, Stygian found comfort in the simple rhythms of San Franciscolt - the clattering of cart wheels over cobblestone streets, murmurs of gossip at market stalls, and steady scratching of quills on parchment as he taught at the town's schoolhouse. He was well-respected and his teachings were imbued with wisdom from a life that had experienced both the darkest depths and highest peaks of magic and power.
Under the watchful eye of Stygian, Squeaky Clean grew into an odd filly – her quirks endearing to some and a mystery to others. Her obsession with cleanliness bordered on the compulsive; every book in their home was arranged with precise alignment, every surface was polished to a mirror-like shine. Stygian often wondered if her need for order stemmed from the chaotic world they had left behind – a way for her to have control over at least one aspect of their new, more mundane lives.
As she entered Stygian's study, Squeaky spoke in her usual soft tone, "Father, I've prepared dinner. And I've made sure everything is...in order. " Her voice trailed off, hinting at the effort it took to maintain such strict control over their surroundings.
Stygian carefully placed his quill back into its inkwell and closed his tome before turning to face his daughter. She wore a simple cotton dress in a gentle shade of blue, the fabric crisp and neatly pressed. A white apron with multiple pockets covered her front – most likely used as protection while she worked around the house.
"I'll join you shortly, Squeaky," Stygian replied as he returned to his desk.
Squeaky nodded and quickly scanned the room for any sign of disorder before exiting on her hooves. Stygian watched her go before returning his attention to the scattered papers on his desk. They were essays written by students, the pages filled with looping handwriting that reflected young minds still learning the art of writing with a quill. As he sat in silence, Stygian appreciated these rare moments of solitude – they were precious and few.
As he slowly rose from his plush armchair, his aged gaze lingered on a worn leather-bound journal tucked away in one of the desk's secret compartments. It was a relic of his past life, filled with intricate notes and diagrams on spells and incantations that no pony in San Franciscolt had any need or desire to learn. For a moment, he reached for it, his hand hovering over the dusty tome before hesitating. That part of his world was behind him now. He shut the compartment firmly and turned towards the dining room.
The mahogany table was set with wooden cups and spoons, a warm and inviting sight after a long day of studying in his private study. His daughter, Squeaky Clean, stood by the stove, stirring a large pot of stew that sent delicious aromas wafting through the air. As Stygian took his seat, his daughter brought him a steaming bowl of stew, her bright blue eyes sparkling with pride.
"Is this the Stew I taught you last week?" Stygian asked with a raised eyebrow.
Squeaky Clean nodded eagerly, a small smile playing at the corners of her mouth. "Yes, Father. But I added some fresh herbs from the garden to enhance the flavor."
Just as Stygian was about to take his first bite, there was a sudden knock at the door. “I’ll get it”
With a sigh, he set down his spoon and stood up to answer it. Perhaps it was just a neighbor seeking some late-night advice on magic or potions.
However, when he opened the door, he was met with an unexpected sight. Standing before him was Star Swirl the Bearded - his former master and friend. Time had etched deep lines of wisdom and hardship into the ancient wizard's face, but his piercing blue eyes still held the same intensity they always had.
"Star Swirl?" Stygian blinked in surprise.
“Hello, Stygian my boy," Star Swirl greeted with a warm smile. “How fares you this evening?"
“We were just about to have dinner, Sir," Stygian responded, still taken aback by the unexpected visit. “Would you like to join us?"
“Stygian, You are no longer my apprentice," Star Swirl said with a wistful chuckle, the sound rich with memories of their time together. “You no longer have a need to address me as 'Sir'."
Squeaky Clean's face lit up at the sight of her old mentor, and she dashed forward to give him a tight hug. "Uncle Beardo!" she exclaimed, using a nickname only known between the two of them.
In return, Star Swirl enveloped Squeaky in his arms, laughing warmly as he ruffled her mane like he used to do when she was just a filly. "My dear, how you've grown!"
As they released each other, Squeaky couldn't help but beam up at him with adoration. But her excitement was quickly tempered by Stygian's serious words. "Come in, Uncle Beardo. You must be tired from your journey."
The elder unicorn hesitated for a moment before responding, his voice carrying a hint of urgency beneath the warmth. "I'm afraid I can't stay long, little one. I'm here on a matter of great importance."
With that, Stygian stepped aside and allowed Star Swirl to enter their home. "Squeaky, why don't you start dinner without me?"
Squeaky Clean's eyes darted between her father and their famous guest, sensing the sudden shift in atmosphere. "But Father," she protested softly, "we rarely have company—"
"Go ahead, dear," Stygian interrupted gently, giving her a reassuring glance that conveyed an unspoken message. With a reluctant nod, Squeaky obeyed and retreated to the dining room.
As they were left alone, Stygian's brow furrowed in concern. "I take it this isn't just a social visit?"
"I'm afraid not, Stygian," the wizard replied, his gaze lingering on Squeaky's retreating form. The girl's small frame and innocent expression seemed to tug at his heartstrings. "How is she faring?"
"She still has no memory, just like the last time you checked on her. All she remembers is that her parents died and her name," Stygian informed his old teacher with a tinge of worry. "But aside from her obsessive need to clean and kill insects, she seems perfectly normal...except..."
"Except?" Star Swirl prompted, his curiosity piqued.
Stygian leaned in closer, lowering his voice to a whisper. "It's been seven years...and she hasn't aged. Even now, after seven years, she still looks like an eight-year-old."
Star Swirl's expression turned serious, his mind whirring with various thoughts. He stroked his long beard in a contemplative manner, a gesture he always did when deeply pondering something. "It could be...this is just a hypothesis," he whispered, glancing suspiciously towards the dining room where Squeaky Clean had gone. "There's a chance that the Demon still has hold over her...According to all records of Alastor, his companion Niffty has been by his side for over three centuries since he first appeared in this world...It's possible that she still possesses the Demon's Immortality."
Stygian's eyes widened in alarm at Star Swirl's hypothesis. "Immortality? But...how is that possible? She's just a filly!"
Star Swirl held up a hand, his gaze turning solemn. "Niffty may have appeared as a child, but we both know demonic entities are not bound by the same rules as mortal beings. If even a fragment of her true nature remains, it could manifest in unusual ways."
Stygian's head was throbbing as he sank into a nearby chair, the weight of this revelation bearing down on him like a heavy cloak. His mind raced with thoughts and fears at the possibility of his dear daughter being cursed with eternal youth. The thought of her never growing old or experiencing the joys and challenges of life was too much to bear. His voice trailed off, unable to voice his deepest worries.
The elder unicorn, Star Swirl, placed a comforting hand on Stygian's shoulder. "We cannot be certain yet," he said in a calming tone. "But we will find our answer in time." His wise eyes studied Stygian's weary features, the dark circles beneath his eyes betraying many sleepless nights. "And how are you holding up in all of this? Caring for the child cannot be easy, especially with so much uncertainty surrounding her condition."
Stygian managed a weak smile, grateful for his mentor's concern. "It has had its challenges," he admitted. "But she brings me more joy than hardship. To see her innocent smile and her determination to create order amidst chaos...it reminds me of why we fought so hard that day." He glanced towards the dining room, where the sounds of Meadowlark humming a tuneless melody could be heard. "As long as she is happy and safe, I can endure any trial."
Star Swirl gave Stygian's shoulder a gentle squeeze, conveying understanding and compassion. "You have become a remarkable pony, Stygian. Your parents would be proud." He straightened himself, urgency returning to his tone. "I must leave now, but before I go, there is something I need your help with."
Stygian stood up, his resolve strengthening at the request. "Anything, Star Swirl. Just name it."
"We have been receiving reports of Timberwolves attacking a newly formed village outside the borders of the Everfree Forest," Star Swirl explained. "The other Pillars and I would greatly appreciate any information you could provide us with on these creatures."
A voice called out from the grand dining room, interrupting Stygian's thoughts. "Father? Are you coming? Dinner is growing cold!"
Stygian's mind raced as he quickly responded, "I'm coming. I heard the same news as you. You'll find everything I know in my study."
He motioned towards a door on the left-hand side of the corridor, his dark cloak swishing behind him as he spoke. "The top shelf, behind the treatise on Equestrian Flora. There's a scroll bound in green leather; it contains all my recent findings and speculations about Timberwolves. I believe you'll find what you need there."
Star Swirl nodded his gratitude, his long, flowing cloak billowing around him as he prepared to depart. "Your work has always been thorough; I have no doubt it will prove invaluable."
Stygian watched his former master enter his study before muttering to himself, "And the pillars are apparently too busy to research the creatures themselves."
After Star Swirl thanked him and left, Stygian joined his daughter at the dinner table. The room was quiet as they ate in silence.
A voice whispered in Stygian's ear, its words dripping with disdain. "They don't need you...they believe you are nothing more than a fool they can leech from. They do not give you the credit you deserve."
Stygian's response was barely audible, almost lost among the clinking of silverware and distant chatter. "Yes...yes they do," he murmured to himself.
"Really now?" The voice scoffed with heavy sarcasm. "Ponies recognize Star Swirl the Bearded, Rockhoof the Mighty, Mistmane the Graceful, Flash Magnus the Brave, Somnambula the Wise, and even Mage Meadowbrook the Healer. But what about you? No pony has ever heard of Stygian Nessus the lowly scribe. The pillars leave you out, they steal all the attention you could have if they just once mentioned that it was you who researched every creature and monster they have ever faced. They. Are. Using. You. Stygian Nessus."
Stygian squeezed his eyes shut, trying to block out the insidious whispers that clawed at the edges of his mind. His hand trembled as he lifted the spoon halfway to his mouth, only to set it down with deliberate slowness onto the bowl. The thunk of wood against wood seemed to shatter the illusion of normalcy that dinner had held.
Squeaky Clean looked up from her bowl, her wide-eyed gaze filled with a child-like innocence that belied the otherworldly nature Star Swirl had suggested. She was like a porcelain doll come to life, her perfect features and delicate frame giving off an ethereal aura.
"Father?" she asked timidly, sensing the sudden tension in the air. "Is something wrong?"
Stygian forced a smile, his lips quivering slightly. He reached across the table to gently pat her tiny hand, feeling a sense of guilt wash over him for involving her in his dark world. "No, my dear," he lied smoothly, his words coated in honey and deception. "Just tired from all the studying." His heart twisted at the thought of Squeaky Clean being tainted by his inner demons.
Stygian opened the doors to his study, their creaking hinges echoing through the large room. He hastily excused himself from his guests, eager to escape the strange whispers that seemed to fill his head.
Running a hand over his face, he paced back and forth before finally sinking into the worn leather of his chair. The deep furrows on his brow relaxed slightly as he tried to push aside the unsettling thoughts that plagued him.
The silence of the study enveloped him, broken only by the soft crackling of logs in the fireplace. The walls were lined with shelves upon shelves of books and scrolls, each one a testament to Stygian's unquenchable thirst for knowledge and understanding. They were also a silent reminder of his role as the scribe for Star Swirl and the Pillars.
His gaze fell upon a particular green leather-bound scroll, containing intricate details about Timberwolf behavior and weaknesses. It was a crowning achievement in his research, yet it brought little satisfaction. A bitter pang shot through him as he remembered that his hard work would never be recognized by the others. The voice in his head had been right about that much.
"Stygian Nessus, the lowly scribe..." he muttered bitterly, his voice laced with resentment. "I was Star Swirl's one and only student, and I played a crucial role in helping the Pillars defeat our enemies."
“Indeed…” a sinister whisper echoed mockingly. “But when was the last time any of them truly thanked you for your efforts? Did they even acknowledge you once?”
Stygian's grip on the armrests tightened until his knuckles turned white. He knew the answer all too well - his contributions were often overlooked or overshadowed by the grandeur of the Pillars' accomplishments. He was reduced to nothing more than a footnote in their history, if he was even mentioned at all.
The weight of Stygian's thoughts pressed heavily upon him as he sat in his study, surrounded by towering shelves of books and scrolls. His mind replayed the words that had been spoken to him, each one like a dagger stabbing at his heart. "Not once have they ever thanked me," he muttered, a realization dawning on him. "I'm bent over backwards for them and not once have they thanked me. Not once have they looked at me and seen an equal."
“It’s because they don’t,” the voice cackled, its tone dripping with malice. “All you are to them…is insignificant.”
Stygian's jaw clenched as he pushed himself up from his chair, his heart hammering against his ribcage. The voice was cruel, yet its words cut through him with the precision of a scalpel, laying bare the insecurities that he had long struggled to keep at bay. His study, once a sanctuary of wisdom and discovery, now felt like a prison—a place where his unseen and unrecognized efforts were chained to the shelves.
"No," Stygian whispered fiercely, refusing to accept the harsh truth being thrust upon him.
Suddenly, as if summoned by his inner turmoil, the doors to his study swung open and Squeaky walked in. Her bright blue eyes widened in concern when she saw her father's distressed state.
“Father?” she called out, her small voice breaking through the tense silence. “What’s wrong? You left in the middle of eating.”
“I…I…” Stygian stammered, feeling disoriented as the voice fell silent within him. “I’m Sorry Squeaky, I think I’m not feeling too well.” He dropped down to one knee and pulled her into a tight embrace.
Squeaky wrapped her arms around her father's neck, hugging him back just as tightly. “Don't worry about dinner, Father,” she said softly. “You work so hard all the time. Maybe you just need some rest.”
Stygian held his daughter close for a moment longer, finding comfort in her embrace before gently releasing her and standing up. He offered her a weak smile, trying to reassure her despite the turmoil that churned within him. "Yes, perhaps you're right," he said with a nod. "I'll go to bed early tonight."
With a heavy heart, Stygian left the comforting walls of his study and trudged towards his room. Squeaky Clean followed closely behind, her eyes glued to her father's worried face. As they walked, she couldn't help but notice a dark presence looming near him, invisible to anyone else. It flickered and danced around him like a ghostly aura, at times clinging to him protectively, while other times seeming to mock or taunt. Squeaky couldn't comprehend what it was, but she knew it wasn't something she wanted around her father.
She mustered up the courage to confront him about this strange apparition multiple times, but each time the shadowy figure would simply place a finger over its lips in a hushing gesture, silencing her words before they could escape. The filly felt both fear and familiarity towards the entity, unable to explain why.
Squeaky was abruptly awoken by a loud crash and a scream. Her heart raced as she hurried down the hallway, following the sounds of distress. In the living room, she found Stygian trembling in the center of the room. His eyes were wild, filled with a mix of rage and despair as he looked at the scattered newspaper on the floor.
"Father?" Squeaky spoke softly, trying to ease her way into his turmoil. "What's happened?"
It took a moment for Stygian to register her presence, his focus fixed on the offending paper. When he finally spoke, his words were strained and forced. "They did it again. Took all the credit. Erased me from their story."
Squeaky cautiously approached, scanning through the pages until she saw what had upset her father. The headline boasted about another heroic feat of the legendary Pillars, but there was no mention of Stygian's name and his crucial contribution.
As she reached to pick up the scattered papers, something caught her eye. A dark figure hovered next to her father, twisting and shifting in an eerie manner that seemed to feed off his anguish.
"Please, Father," Squeaky pleaded, her voice shaking. "Don't let it affect you like this. You know the truth, and that's what matters."
Stygian's bitterness was etched into every line of his face, making it clear that he was beyond consolation. "The truth?" he spat bitterly. "I've given everything for them, time and time again, only to be cast aside like a useless tool."
As if in response, the shadowy figure seemed to expand, reaching out towards Stygian with dark tendrils as if to embrace him. A chill ran down Squeaky's spine, a sense of dread gripping her inexplicably.
"Yessss," the eerie voice hissed, its whispers slithering into Squeaky's mind without a discernible source. "He sees the truth now. They never valued you, Stygian. But I can give you the power to make them pay..."
Defeat weighed heavily on Stygian's shoulders, his features lined with resignation. "What other choice do I have?" he murmured, his voice hollow and empty.
"No!" Squeaky cried out desperately, driven by a fierce urge to protect her father. She flung herself at him, wrapping her hooves around his neck in a tight embrace. "Don't listen to it, Father! You're stronger than this!"
For a brief moment, the darkness retreated and Stygian shook himself out of his trance. His eyes focused on Squeaky, and a glimmer of warmth returned to them. "You're right, my dear," he said with a gentle but forced smile as he scooped her up in his arms. "Why don't we surprise 'Uncle Beardo' and the others? How does that sound?"
Squeaky's eyes sparkled with excitement and relief, grateful for the distraction and her father's return to his usual self. "Yes! They won't see it coming!" she exclaimed, holding onto him tightly as they schemed their little surprise.
Stygian used his magical abilities to summon one of his books from his study. With a nod and an incantation whispered under his breath, he enveloped himself and his daughter in a glowing aura before disappearing from the room, leaving behind the tattered newspaper and looming shadows.
"One more round!" Rockhoof hollered as he slammed his mug down on the table.
"Easy there, Rock. Let's not get carried away," Flash cautioned. "Today has been a good day, but let's not overdo it."
"I couldn't agree more," Mistmane chimed in. "May our victories continue for the sake of Equestria."
"If only Princess Celestia could join us and celebrate instead of being stuck at the castle," Meadowbrook sighed sadly.
"With all due respect," Star Swirl interrupted, slamming his mug down forcefully. "I'd rather not speak of that mare."
"Did you run into her again?" Somnambula asked the elder wizard curiously.
"I did," Star Swirl confirmed, downing his entire drink in one gulp. "She approached me on my way back from Stygian's and demanded we resume serving under the crown."
"And what did you say?" Somnambula prodded.
"I refused, and then she tried to have me arrested! Another!" Star Swirl exclaimed, pushing his empty mug away from him. "That mare is missing a few spells from her grimoire!"
"Speaking of our former ally," Somnambula said as Star Swirl signaled for another drink. "How is Stygian? And our little Squeaky?"
"He's not doing well," Star Swirl replied with concern evident in his voice. "And I can tell he hasn't been getting much sleep...I fear taking care of the demon's child may be too overwhelming for him."
"We all knew it would be a heavy burden for Stygian," Somnambula sympathized, taking a sip from her own drink. "Perhaps some of us could offer to help more often."
"What do you have in mind?" Star Swirl asked.
"I was thinking that one or two of us could take turns helping to watch Squeaky while Stygian takes a break," Somnambula suggested with newfound enthusiasm. "After all, we are Equestria's protectors; surely we can spare some time for our comrade."
Star Swirl pondered for a moment, swirling the contents of his new mug as Somnambula's suggestion lingered in the air. It seemed to soften the lines of concern etched on his face.
"An intriguing proposition," he eventually replied, a slight upward quirk appearing at the corner of his mouth. "Stygian has always been one to bear his burdens alone, but perhaps we should offer him more support."
Meadowbrook nodded in agreement. "He's done so much for each of us, it's only fair that we return the favor. And Squeaky is such a joy - I wouldn't mind spending more time with her."
“Agreed,” Star Swirl declared, setting down his mug. “If not for Stygian and his tireless research on every creature and monster we've faced, we surely would have perished long ago.”
As the Pillars settled into their newfound determination to help their old friend, the door to the tavern swung open with a creak. A hush fell over the rowdy patrons as a young filly burst through and ran towards the largest and strongest of the pillars.
“Uncle Rock!” she exclaimed with delight, latching onto his large arm.
“Well, would ya look at that,” Rockhoof chuckled as he raised his arm with Squeaky still clinging onto it. “Is that our little Squeaky holding onto me arm like a mighty limpet? And what brings ye here, lassie?" he boomed with a wide grin that illuminated his rugged face.
“Father and I came to surprise you all in celebration of your latest victory against the T...timbor...” Squeaky began, struggling to pronounce the creature's name.
“Timberwolves,” Star Swirl interjected kindly to help out the small filly.
Squeaky nodded determinedly, her mane bouncing with every movement. "Yes, Timberwolves," she corrected herself. "We wanted to celebrate with you!"
"And where is your father, Squirt?" Flash asked, attempting to pry the filly away from Rockhoof's arms. "I doubt he would allow you to enter a tavern all by yourself."
"H-He said he needed to get a few things first," Squeaky stammered as Flash gently placed her on the ground. "He said he had something special planned."
Star Swirl narrowed his eyes slightly, a hint of concern hidden behind his gaze. The wise wizard was very familiar with the young child after seven years of knowing her. He knew her likes, dislikes, and even her compulsive habits - including when she was lying. And in this moment, Star Swirl could tell that Squeaky Clean was not telling the truth.
Sensing the change in the room's mood, Somnambula leaned forward with kind but inquisitive eyes. "Dear one, it is important to be honest among friends. Is there something troubling you or your father that we should know?"
Squeaky's eyes darted around at the Pillars of Old Equestria gathered before her, and for a moment, she seemed ready to reveal something weighing on her heart. But just as the words were about to escape, she shut her lips tightly and shook her head with determination.
"No, everything is fine," she insisted with a forced cheer that didn't quite reach her worried eyes.
Mistmane placed a gentle hand on Squeaky's shoulder and emitted a calming aura. "My dear, we are more than just guardians; we are family. If there is any darkness lurking, allow us to be your light," she spoke softly.
"Father...He..." Squeaky hesitated, unsure if she should share with them or not.
Rockhoof leaned down with a comforting rumble in his voice. "Lassie, we have faced dragons and conquered nightmares. There is nothing you can tell us that will scare us away."
Squeaky's small frame quivered with fear as she struggled under the weight of her burden. Her wide, fearful eyes searched the faces of the Pillars for reassurance, but found only stoic gazes in return. She braced herself and spoke again, her voice barely audible but heavy with regret.
"Father... he's been taking them," she confessed, her voice trembling like a leaf in a storm. "The relics... Your relics. He says... he says it's the only way."
A stunned silence fell over the tavern as the words hung in the air like a dark cloud, casting a chill over the once joyful atmosphere. The Pillars exchanged worried glances as they noticed that their own relics were missing - Somnambula’s Blindfold and Mistmane’s Flower.
Suddenly, Star Swirl disappeared in a burst of light and thunderous crack, only to reappear moments later with panic etched on his aged face.
"My Grimoire... it's gone!" he exclaimed frantically. "And not just mine... all of our relics are missing."
The realization hit them like a bolt of lightning, filling the air with an electric sense of dread. Somnambula stood up abruptly, causing her chair to scrape loudly against the floorboards.
"The relics are crucial to our power, our promise to protect Equestria," she said urgently, her warm voice now edged with urgency. "We must act quickly."
Meadowbrook's expression was grave as she gathered her healing herbs and pouches. "We've faced threats before, but never so close to home," she said somberly. "This betrayal cuts deeper than any blade."
Flash Magnus tightened his grip on his helmet, his determination evident on his furrowed brow. "We must retrieve what was taken and confront Stygian," he declared, clenching his fists at his sides.
Mistmane gently brushed a stray hair away from Squeaky's face. "Squeaky, you need to tell us where your father went."
"I...I don't know," Squeaky Clean whispered fearfully as the gravity of the situation sank in.
Her voice was barely audible amidst the chaos brewing in the tavern. Rockhoof softened his stance, his usual bravado replaced with sincere concern. He kneeled down before Squeaky, resting his large hands lightly on her small shoulders.
"You did the right thing by telling us, lass," he reassured her, his voice a steady presence in the midst of turmoil. "But we need a bit more help. Can you remember anything else that might give us a clue about where your father could be? Any words he said or places he mentioned?"
The filly furrowed her brow in concentration, trying to recall any helpful details for the Pillars. Her eyes widened as she remembered something. "He...he mentioned a stone structure once. He said it was necessary to harness the power of the relics."
"That must be Ponhenge!" Star Swirl exclaimed as he lit up his horn with magic. "It's an ancient site used for stealing the power of both ponies and objects of power."
The Pillars exchanged worried glances as Ponhenge was mentioned. This was not a simple act of thievery; it posed a grave threat to the very essence of Equestria's magic and harmony.
Flash Magnus sprang into action, swiftly strapping on his armor. "We must hurry," he ordered with the authority of a seasoned warrior. "Ponhenge is no place for dark rituals to take place unchecked."
Star Swirl's beard crackled with magical energy, signaling that he was about to cast a spell to transport them to the ancient site. "We must hurry," he cautioned, as his horn glowed even brighter. Suddenly, in a blinding flash of light, the Six Pillars and Squeaky vanished from the tavern.
Standing within the towering stones of Ponhenge, a place shrouded in ancient magic and enigma, Stygian Nessus wore a determined expression. For months, he had been engrossed in researching this ritual site, diverting his attention from studying the creatures his friends and former comrades fought. In his findings, he uncovered the true purpose of this place - to drain the power from any being or artifact with strong magical abilities. The key to this was the intricate runic markings etched into the ancient rocks.
But amidst his studies, Stygian stumbled upon something even more intriguing than stealing power - sharing it. His theory was that by placing six powerful items under specific sigils, their powers could be shared with the caster rather than being selfishly absorbed.
“Take it…You deserve the powers not them,” a voice echoed in Stygian's ear.
"Shut up!" He angrily yelled back. "I have no interest in stripping them of their power... I just want to fight alongside them and finally earn the recognition I deserve."
With a determined spirit, Stygian carefully placed each item under its respective rune at the ancient site known as Ponhenge - Somnambula's Blindfold under the symbol of Hope, Flash Magnus' Shield under Bravery, Mistmane's Flower under Beauty, Rockhoof's Shovel under Strength, Meadowbrook's Doctor's Mask under Wisdom, and Star Swirl's Grimoire under Magic.
"There.” With steady hands and a sense of purpose, Stygian examined his work with satisfaction. “Now, if my research is correct, by aligning items belonging to those who personify each rune's meaning, I can tap into the power of all six for myself."
Stygian began to channel his magic into the ancient site, activating its hidden abilities. However, before he could fully engage in the ritual, a brilliant flash of arcane light announced the arrival of the Pillars. They materialized in a circle around Ponhenge, their expressions a vivid tapestry of dismay, anger, and unwavering determination. The luminous glow from Star Swirl's spell still danced upon their forms, casting ethereal shadows against the towering stone pillars.
“No, Stygian!” Star Swirl's powerful voice boomed through the air, reverberating off the towering monoliths and resonating with authority. “Cease this at once!” His words echoed and lingered in the air like an ominous warning, the weight of his disappointment visible.
But it was too late. The ancient runes carved into the pillars began to pulse with an eerie glow, starting at a slow rhythm before quickening like the beat of a frenetic heart. The ground trembled beneath their hooves as they watched in horror.
“No wait!” Stygian pleaded to his former comrades, desperation evident in his voice.
"Spare us your words, Stygian!" Flash Magnus thundered, his anger and betrayal clear. "You've betrayed us, and for what? Power?"
“No…I…” Stygian tried to speak but Star Swirl cut off the small unicorn, his voice laced with disappointment and sorrow.
“Be Silent, Stygian Nessus!” Star Swirl commanded, using his powerful magic to forcefully return the stolen relics to their rightful place in the pillars possession.
“No! Stop!” Stygian surged forward, desperate to complete the ritual that would bring him the power he craved.
However, his efforts were halted by a beam of magic from Star Swirl himself. The unicorn was slammed against the stone pillars of the ritual site, his consciousness fading in and out as he struggled against the grasp of his former mentor.
Through blurry vision, Stygian caught sight of his daughter running towards him, tears streaming down her face as she called out for her father.
“Father!” Squeaky's small voice cried out, but she was stopped by Mistmane.
"Squeaky, stay back!" Mistmane urged gently, her words wrapping around the filly like a protective cocoon.
“Let’s go” Star Swirl ordered coldly as he and the others left Stygian on the ground, his body trembling with exhaustion and defeat.
“But Father…” Squeaky began, her heart breaking at the sight of her father's downfall, until Star Swirl spoke over her.
“Your father has chosen his path,” Star Swirl said gravely, his eyes not meeting those of the young filly. His heart heavy with disappointment and regret.
“Squeaky” Stygian whispered weakly as his world went dark.
Chapter 8: When Darkness Falls
The gentle breeze rustled the leaves of the tall oaks, casting flickering shadows across the worn path that wound through the Equestrian countryside. Hoofsteps echoed with a hollow, weary rhythm as a lone figure trudged onward, his gait slow and his expression grim.
Stygian Nessus, once a proud member of the Pillars of Old Equestria, now found himself consumed by a bitter resentment that darkened his very soul. His once-vibrant eyes were now haunted and hollow, the light of purpose extinguished long before the passing weeks, replaced by a gnawing sense of failure and a growing thirst for revenge.
As he walked, the mysterious voice whispered in his ear, a sinister caress that danced around the edges of his consciousness.
"They abandoned you, Stygian," it murmured, its words dripping with venomous sweetness. "The Pillars, your so-called friends, they took everything from you…your respect…your trust…your power…and your daughter. They cast you aside, left you to wander, unappreciated, unworthy, and alone."
Stygian's pace quickened, his hooves crunching on the dirt and gravel. The Shadow's words struck a chord within him, awakening the embers of resentment that had been smoldering since that fateful day at Ponhenge.
The memory of that disastrous confrontation played out in his mind, a vivid tapestry of failure and anger. He had been so close, so tantalizingly close, to harnessing the combined power of the Pillars' relics, a power that would have secured his place among the revered guardians of Equestria. But their greed and selfishness for their power stopped him, and the Pillars had seen fit to abandon him, leaving him defeated and alone with nothing but the clothes on his back. Stygian had nothing…he had even been striped of his daughter…the child that always seemed to save him from his darkest days.
"They saw you as a threat, Stygian," the Voice continued, its seductive tone twisting the knife in Stygian's heart. "They were afraid of your potential, afraid that you would surpass them. So they cast you aside, like a broken tool no longer of use."
Stygian's breathing became shallow and uneven, his strides becoming increasingly unsteady as the Voice's words burrowed deeper into his mind. The sting of betrayal, the intense longing for recognition, all swirled inside him, threatening to consume him entirely.
"But you are more than they ever were, Stygian," the Voice whispered seductively. "You possess the power to claim what is rightfully yours, to reveal your true potential to those who doubted you. All you have to do is embrace the darkness within and let it guide you towards your destiny."
Stygian abruptly halted in his tracks, standing still as he struggled against conflicting emotions raging within him.
"Fuck!" He yelled at the shadow looming beneath his hooves. "Who are you anyway?"
The voice chuckled, a sound that seemed to come from all around him, as though the very air carried its sinister mirth. "Who am I?" it whispered, now a gentle breeze against his fur. "I am the one who sees your worth, Stygian—the one who acknowledges your pain and your potential. I am the friend you never knew you had, the ally in the darkness."
Stygian's eyes darted around, seeking the source of the voice but finding nothing but the rustling trees and the fading light of day. His heart hammered in his chest, each beat a drum of war against the calm deceit of the voice.
His words were filled with bitterness and anger as he declared, "I have no need for friends, especially not one who lurks in the shadows and speaks of betrayal."
"But you do," the voice persisted, smooth and unyielding like the tide. "Alone, you are vulnerable and directionless. With me, you will have purpose. Together, we can right the wrongs that have been done to you and claim the power that has been denied. Why should they be praised as heroes while you suffer in silence? You deserve more than this, Stygian. So much more."
Stygian's eyes narrowed, his heart a tangled mess of thorns and his mind a raging storm. He knew he should resist the tempting words of the voice, hold on to his last shreds of honor. But a part of him couldn't help but feel drawn towards the soothing promises of power and justice. And yet another part of him recognized these promises for what they truly were – manipulations feeding on his insecurities.
A slow realization dawned on Stygian, hardening his expression as determination took over him. The Shadow Voice's words had struck a chord deep within him, awakening a darkness that he had long suppressed. Now, it stirred within him, whispering seductively of rising above the constraints placed upon him.
"Yes," Stygian murmured, barely audible over rustling leaves. "I will show them all."
With those words, the world seemed to hold its breath, the soft rustle of the breeze fading into a hush. The shadows stretched and grew longer, as if anticipating their moment to dance in the dimming light. And in the midst of this shifting darkness, something stirred within Stygian, a subtle yet exhilarating change that made his heart race with both excitement and fear.
The Voice purred with satisfaction, its whisper now a melodic hum that resonated with the fading light. "Embrace the shadows, Stygian. Let them become your armor," it echoed as the shadows coiled around him like serpents. "The shadows shall be your weapon..." As if on cue, they transformed into razor-sharp claws upon his hands, their edges gleaming against the dying sky. "And the shadows will become your very essence. With them, you will have the strength to claim your rightful place in history."
As more shadows enveloped his body, Stygian felt himself changing, morphing into something more than just a betrayed scholar. His stature grew taller and broader, his muscles rippling with newfound power. And his once despair-filled eyes now glowed with an otherworldly light.
But this transformation was not merely physical; it reached deep into his soul, infusing every part of him with dark energy. He could feel it coursing through his veins, filling every crevice of his being with its intoxicating presence.
The shadows whispered ancient secrets to him, knowledge that had been hidden from even the powerful Pillars. They wove around him like a cloak of night, shielding him from any who might dare oppose him. And as he stood at this pivotal moment in his destiny, Stygian felt a surge of clarity wash over him.
Released from the grip of others' schemes, he would forge his own path. No longer limited to being known as Stygian, he would rise as something entirely new and formidable.
A name emerged in his mind, a perfect embodiment of his newfound power—the Pony of Shadow.
"I am reborn," Stygian proclaimed, his voice now a deep and resonant timbre with an otherworldly echo that carried across the countryside. "The Pillars will tremble at the thought of crossing me."
As if summoned by his declaration, dark clouds rolled in overhead and thunder rumbled ominously in the distance. The very air seemed to shift and crackle with an electric energy, signaling the birth of a powerful force that would no longer be confined or controlled.
Two decades had passed since the Pillars cut ties with Stygian, and in that time they had not only protected Equestria but also raised their lost friend's adopted daughter as their own. But the land had changed. Rumors of a creature born from darkness, stalking and attacking unsuspecting individuals, began to spread through towns and villages. The Pillars remained vigilant, ever on the lookout for this new threat that seemed both elusive and terrifying.
Squeaky Clean, who had not aged in the past twenty years. However, her mental state was far worse than it had been when she was just a filly. She rarely ate and refused to speak. The Pillars knew that losing her adoptive father had deeply affected her, but they had no choice. If they had left her with Stygian, he would have surely dragged her down into the darkness with him.
Star Swirl entered the building that served as their base, his expression grave. "Star Swirl?" Somnambula greeted him, noticing his somber demeanor. "What's wrong?"
"Several things," Star Swirl replied, approaching Squeaky who was quietly preparing dinner. He placed a gentle hand on her shoulder, his old eyes reflecting concern and sadness. "I have received some troubling news."
His gaze shifted to the filly's vacant eyes. "First...Celestia has ordered for our arrest."
Somnambula gasped in disbelief. "Arrested? But why? We have never done anything but serve Equestria!"
"We served Equestria, but she wanted us to serve only her," Star Swirl explained with a slight squeeze of Squeaky's shoulder. "And there's more..."
Squeaky Clean barely responded to his touch, as if she were in a world far away from their own. The bubbles bursting at the top of the pot seemed louder than usual in the eerie silence.
"There have been reports and killings..." Star Swirl continued, "across the villages up north. All of them show evidence of...him."
"How?!" Flash exclaimed frantically. "We banished the demon to Tartarus!"
"Stygian..." Star Swirl muttered, causing Squeaky to tense up at the mention of her father's name. "When we sealed Alastor away, Stygian noticed a flaw in the spell...it's possible this flaw allowed for the demon to escape."
The room fell silent, weighed down by Star Swirl's words. Meadowbrook, who had been observing quietly from the corner, stepped forward.
"If Alastor truly has escaped, we must act swiftly," she said calmly despite the gravity of the situation. "But we cannot forget Celestia's foolish orders. We're caught between two terrible dangers."
Rockhoof slammed his shovel against the floor, making Squeaky jump. "We can't abandon our duty to Equestria, warrant or not!"
Star Swirl's face grew grave as he nodded in agreement. "You are correct, my dear friend. However, we must proceed with caution. Celestia's madness is only worsening with each passing day, and we cannot afford to make matters worse by becoming her enemy."
Mistmane, who had been tending to a small garden of magical herbs by the window, turned to join the conversation. "What about Squeaky? If we are to confront Alastor, we cannot bring her with us. And what if Celestia's guards come after us?"
All eyes turned towards the silent filly, her movements mechanical as she stirred a pot on the stove. Star Swirl's expression softened as he looked at her.
"Celestia has already attempted to harm her once before," Mage interjected, anger and fear evident in her voice.
But Star Swirl didn't finish his sentence, the unspoken words hanging heavily in the air. "We have no other choice but to..."
In a split second, the room was engulfed in an unnatural darkness. The shadows beneath Star Swirl and Squeaky seemed to come alive, twisting and writhing like animated tendrils of pure blackness. Before anyone could react, these shadowy forms shot upwards, enveloping the unicorn and filly with alarming speed.
Somnambula's warning cry was cut short as she watched in horror. In the blink of an eye, both Star Swirl and Squeaky were dragged downwards into the impossibly deep darkness below their hooves. The floor rippled momentarily before returning to its solid state, leaving no trace of their vanished companions.
"No!" Flash Magnus yelled, leaping forward. But it was already too late. Where Star Swirl and Squeaky had stood just moments ago, there was only empty space and a chilling aura lingering in the air.
The remaining Pillars barely had time to process what had happened before the shadows began to spread, crawling up the walls like a sinister infection. Meadowbrook backed away, her eyes wide with fear. "It's happening to us too!"
Sure enough, dark tendrils were already coiling around their legs, cold and unyielding. Rockhoof swung his shovel in an attempt to fend off the encroaching darkness, but it seemed to dissipate like smoke.
"We have to—" Mistmane's words were swallowed by the void as she too was consumed by the shadows.
One by one, in a matter of heartbeats, each of the Pillars disappeared into the abyss, their cries abruptly silenced. The once-bustling room now stood empty and eerie.
Outside, the moon emerged from behind a cloud, casting its pale light through the window. It illuminated the pot still bubbling on the stove, steam rising into the air – the only evidence that anyone had been there at all.
The world spun in a dizzying blur of darkness and cold before suddenly snapping into focus. Squeaky Clean and the Six Pillars found themselves sprawled on hard, ancient stone, the night air crisp and heavy with an otherworldly energy. As they struggled to their hooves, recognition dawned in their eyes.
Ponhenge.
The circular arrangement of weathered stone pillars loomed around them, silhouetted against a starless sky. The very air seemed to crackle with latent magical energy, a reminder of the momentous and terrible events that had transpired here many years ago.
Star Swirl was the first to speak, his voice barely above a whisper. "Of all places... why here?"
Squeaky Clean trembled, her eyes darting from pillar to pillar. This was where her father had fallen, where he had been taken from her. Memories, long suppressed by the numbness that had gripped her mind, now flooded back with aching clarity. She clutched at her head, trying to push away the onslaught of grief and fear that threatened to overwhelm her.
Somnambula placed a comforting hand on the filly's shoulder. "Stay strong, little one. We're all here."
A cold wind whistled through the stones, carrying with it whispers of the past. The Pillars formed a protective circle around Squeaky, their eyes scanning the shadows for any sign of threat.
Rockhoof gripped his shovel tightly. "I don't like this. It feels like—"
"A trap," Meadowbrook finished, her voice grim.
As if in response to her words, the ground began to tremble beneath them. The ancient stones of Ponhenge groaned and shadows seemed to twist and deepen between them.
Flash Magnus spread his wings, ready for action. "Whatever brought us here, it's making its move."
Mistmane's horn glowed, casting a soft light that did little to penetrate the growing darkness. "Be ready, my friends. I fear we're about to face something worse than we could have imagined."
In the darkness of the Ritual Site, a figure started to appear. The Pillars gasped in surprise as they recognized who it was.
Squeaky's eyes widened and her voice shook with both hope and fear as she whispered one word:
"Father?"
As the figure became solid, something seemed off. It looked like Stygian, but not entirely. His form flickered between his old pony self and something darker, almost monstrous.
Star Swirl's voice held a sense of dread as he spoke. "Stygian..."
Tears filled Squeaky Clean's eyes, a mix of joy and fear overwhelming her. Without thinking, she took a step closer to her father's flickering form.
"Father!" she cried out, her voice trembling with emotion. "Is it really you?"
But before she could move any closer, Meadowbrook stood in front of her with an outstretched arm, blocking her path. The healer's gaze never left the distorted figure of Stygian, her stance protective and alert.
"Wait, child," Meadowbrook cautioned, her tone urgent and low. "Something isn't right. We don't know what has happened to him."
Stygian continued to shift and flicker, caught between two worlds. His once gentle eyes now burned with an unnatural light. When he spoke, his voice resonated with a power that sent shivers down the spines of those present.
"How dare you?" Stygian growled, his words dripping with barely contained rage. "You would stop my daughter from embracing her father?"
The air around him seemed to be sucked into a vortex, the shadows swirling and coiling at his hooves like serpents. Squeaky's heart was caught in her throat, torn between the overwhelming urge to run towards the shadowy figure that resembled her father and the instinctive fear of the darkness that surrounded him.
Star Swirl stepped forward with cautious steps, his horn glowing with protective magic. His eyes held a mixture of concern and confusion as he spoke to the dark entity before him. "Stygian," he said, his voice laced with worry. "What has happened to you? This isn't you speaking, old friend."
Squeaky Clean strained against Meadowbrook's restraining arm, her heart wrenching with conflicting emotions. She desperately wanted to run to her father, but the sight before her filled her with dread and uncertainty. "Father, please!" she cried out, tears brimming in her eyes. "What's wrong? What's happened to you?"
The tension in the air was palpable as the Pillars of Equestria braced themselves for whatever actions Stygian – or whatever had taken over him – might take next.
The tense silence was shattered by Stygian's guttural scoff, his teeth gritted in anger. The once familiar voice now sounded twisted and distorted, like a sinister whisper carried on the wind. "Old Friend?" he sneered. "You dare call me that... After your Betrayal! "
As Stygian's anger grew, shadows began to writhe and twist around him, their dark forms pulsing with an otherworldly energy. Ethereal tendrils emerged from the ground, slithering up his legs and coiling around his body like serpents. They seemed to feed off of his rage, growing more violent and powerful with each passing moment. The sight was both mesmerizing and terrifying, causing the Pillars to take a defensive stance.
"Betrayal?" Star Swirl exclaimed, disbelief and concern lacing his voice. "Stygian, you tried to steal our power! We had no choice but to stop you!"
Rockhoof stepped forward, his shovel at the ready. "Aye, we trusted you, and you turned on us. What did you expect us to do?"
The shadow tendrils pulsed and swirled in response to each accusation, as if defending their master's actions. Stygian's form flickered rapidly between pony and monster, his voice distorting and shifting with each transformation.
"I only wanted to help!" he roared, his voice echoing through the clearing. "To prove myself worthy! And because of your greed, you cast me aside like I was nothing!"
Somnambula's serene voice cut through the tension, her words firm but calm. "We never meant to cast you aside, Stygian. But your actions left us no choice. This path you've chosen... it's transforming you into something else."
Squeaky Clean watched in horror as her father continued to shift and distort before her eyes. "Father, please! This isn't you! Fight it!"
But Stygian's response was a guttural shout, his voice twisted and distorted beyond recognition. "Your Father is gone!” he bellowed. “Stygian Nessus is Dead!" The ground trembled beneath their hooves as his words echoed through the clearing, sending a chill down everyone's spines.
The once peaceful air grew heavy and oppressive as a dark, malevolent energy began to seep into the clearing. Swirling ribbons of magic, twisted and corrupted, coiled around Stygian's body, pulsing with otherworldly power.
A guttural cry of agony escaped Stygian's lips as his form contorted and shifted. His body expanded, growing larger and more imposing, muscles bulging under his inky black coat. The darkness spread like a stain, consuming him until he was pitch black from head to hoof.
Suddenly, armor made of pure shadow materialized onto his body, encasing his chest, shoulders, legs, and waist in an ethereal plating that seemed alive with undulating shadows. His hands morphed into razor-sharp claws that glinted menacingly in the dim light.
Stygian's once vibrant mane and tail turned dark and wild, standing on end as if electrified by some unseen force. His eyes widened in a frenzied panic, the irises and pupils melting away until only glowing white orbs remained, brimming with cold fury.
With a sickening crunch, a twisted black horn burst through his forehead, curving to a deadly point. In a flurry of movement, a pair of wings erupted from his back like shredded fabric, their feathers as black as the void between stars.
As the transformation reached its apex, the creature rose to its full terrifying height. A wave of raw power radiated from its midnight form as it stretched out its wings wide in display. No trace remained of the pony Stygian had been - only a monstrous being of pure darkness and hate now stood in his place.
Squeaky's heart pounded in terror as she bore witness to the horrifying metamorphosis. Tears streamed down her face as her entire body shook uncontrollably at the sight of the monstrous entity that had once been her friend.
"Long...Live..." The shadow creature bellowed, its voice echoing through the ritual site like a deafening storm. "The Pony of Shadow!"
Squeaky's hooves scrambled against the rough rocky ground as she stumbled backwards, trying to distance herself from the terrifying entity. Her heart thrummed in her chest, threatening to burst from sheer terror.
But the Pillars of Equestria were not ones to back down from a challenge. In a united front, they sprang into action, each channeling their unique strengths and talents to combat the darkness before them.
With his long mane billowing behind him, Starswirl the Bearded stepped forward to face the Pony of Shadow head on. "Stygian, cease this madness! We can help you!"
The shadowy creature let out a chilling laugh, mocking their attempts to reason with it. "Stygian is no more. Only shadow remains!"
Without hesitation, the Pony of Shadow launched itself at the Six Pillars. Star Swirl and Mistmane combined their magic, creating a shimmering barrier that the dark entity crashed against with a thunderous impact. The ground beneath them shook, causing cracks to spiderweb out from their feet.
Undeterred by the magical barrier, Rockhoof charged forward with his legendary shovel swinging in a mighty arc. But the Pony of Shadow was too quick, dodging with supernatural speed and retaliating with a blast of dark energy that sent Rockhoof flying backward.
In the air above, Flash Magnus took flight with his sword and legendary shield in hand. He circled the monstrous figure, scanning for any weaknesses or vulnerabilities. With precision and agility, he dove in to strike but was met with impenetrable resistance. It was like striking stone -the shadowy armor was unyielding.
"Is that all you've got, Fly boy!?" The Pony of Shadow taunted, swinging its massive arm and knocking the pegasus out of the sky.
The resounding clang of metal against stone echoed through the cavern as Flash Magnus was thrown to the ground with a mighty force. His armor dented and scraped against the unforgiving surface, but he refused to let the pain stop him. With sheer determination, he scrambled back onto his hooves, ignoring the blood dripping from under his helmet. Despite his valiant efforts, Flash Magnus could feel himself growing dizzy and disoriented, his ears ringing from the blow.
“Such…Strength…” He muttered in awe at the strength of his opponent, even as he stumbled back to the ground.
In a flash of movement, Mage Meadowbrook rushed towards Flash Magnus with her saddlebags clinking with vials of healing potions. "Hold still," she commanded, deftly removing his helmet and inspecting his injuries. With practiced precision, she applied a shimmering salve to his wounds, soothing them with its magical properties.
Meanwhile, Star Swirl's powerful horn glowed with intense arcane energy. With a deep grunt of exertion, he unleashed a beam of pure magic that sliced through the darkness of the ancient ruin. The brilliant light struck the Pony of Shadow head on, forcing it back several paces.
Seizing the opportunity presented by their foe's momentary weakness, Rockhoof grasped his legendary shovel and drove it into the ground with incredible strength. Muscles bulging and sweat pouring down his brow, he lifted an enormous chunk of earth and stone.
"Take this, ya beast!" he bellowed, hurling the massive projectile at their enemy.
The Pony of Shadow, still reeling from Star Swirl's attack, managed to dodge most of the flying debris but not without sustaining some damage. Chunks of rock shattered against its shadowy armor, eliciting a guttural growl of pain and fury.
"Enough!" the dark entity roared in anger.
From its amorphous form shot out a tendril of inky blackness, swift and deadly. It wrapped around Somnambula's midsection before she could react, lifting her off the ground.
"No!" Star Swirl cried out in desperation, but it was already too late.
The Pony of Shadow swung the captured Somnambula like a living flail, sending her hurtling into the bearded unicorn. Both ponies tumbled across the ritual site, their limbs entangled and robes torn. The haunting, maniacal laughter of the Pony of Shadow reverberated through the area, a chilling sound that filled the air with its cruel triumph. Its glowing white eyes scanned the battlefield, taunting the mighty Pillars who stood before it.
"Is this truly the best you can offer?" it sneered, its voice dripping with disdain. "Perhaps it's time to show you the true meaning of power!"
The air crackled with dark energy as the shadowy being prepared for its next devastating attack, leaving the Pillars scrambling to regroup and defend themselves. The ground shook beneath their feet as they braced for impact.
With a deafening roar that seemed to shake the very foundations of the ritual site, the Pony of Shadow unleashed a torrential wave of darkness upon them. Flash Magnus, still recovering from his earlier injury, reacted on pure instinct.
"Look out!" he screamed, dropping his sword and leaping in front of Mage Meadowbrook. He raised his legendary shield, one infused with ancient magic, to protect them both from the onslaught.
For a fleeting moment, it seemed as though Flash's bravery might be enough to withstand the attack. But the sheer force of the darkness was overwhelming. The shield trembled in his grip, cracks spreading across its surface like spiderwebs. With a resounding crack, it was torn from his grasp and sent spinning away into the shadows.
The remnants of the dark energy slammed into Flash and Meadowbrook like a wrecking ball, sending them hurtling backwards before crashing to the ground in a chaotic heap. They lay still, their bodies battered and torn from the brutal assault. Both ponies were left unconscious by the vicious attack.
The Pony of Shadow's laughter echoed through the chamber once again, devoid of any warmth or mercy. Its glowing white eyes fixated on its fallen foes with a cruel smirk on its features. "So much for Equestria's greatest soldier and healer," it mocked. "How pathetic. I expected more for the Esteemed Guardians of Equestria."
The remaining Pillars looked on in horror, their faces contorted with grief as they watched their fallen comrades lay motionless on the ground. Star Swirl's jaw was set in a determined line as he turned to face the looming figure of the Pony of Shadow.
"We won't let you defeat us," he declared, his horn pulsing with renewed magical energy. "We'll stop you at any cost!"
The Pony of Shadow sneered and chuckled darkly. "Is that so? Then give me a challenge!" he taunted.
Rockhoof tightened his grip on his legendary shovel, determination etched into every muscle of his powerful frame. With a mighty roar, he charged at the Pony of Shadow, using all his earth pony strength to try and overpower him.
"Let's see how ye fare against good old-fashioned earth pony might!" Rockhoof bellowed as he collided with the shadowy figure.
The two engaged in a fierce struggle, their muscles straining against each other. The ground beneath them trembled and cracked as their supernatural powers clashed. Despite the Pony of Shadow's immense strength, Rockhoof stood strong, refusing to back down even an inch. Meanwhile, Somnambula darted towards Flash's discarded sword, her keen eyes spotting it glinting on the floor of the ritual site. In one swift movement, she scooped up the weapon and prepared to strike.
But before she could make her move, Star Swirl's voice rose in a commanding tone and his horn glowed with powerful magic. In an instant, Somnambula vanished from sight, becoming completely invisible to the naked eye. Armed with this surprise advantage, she struck out at the weak spot in the Pony of Shadow's armor with deadly precision. With a silent prayer to the winds, she leaped forward.
The invisible blade plunged deep into the Pony of Shadow's back, piercing through the gap in its shadowy armor like a hot knife through butter. The deafening screech of pain and rage echoed across the battlefield as the monstrous creature recoiled, momentarily releasing its grip on Rockhoof. Somnambula didn't hesitate, retracting the sword and preparing for another strike, her form still hidden from view.
"You dare?!" it bellowed, thrashing wildly in all directions. "I'll destroy you all!"
In retaliation for its wound, the Pony of Shadow swiftly snatched up Rockhoof by his mane and brutally slammed him into the ground. As he lay stunned and helpless, the shadow monster's glowing eyes darted frantically around for signs of its unseen attacker.
Taking advantage of the chaos caused by Somnambula's surprise attack, Mistmane gracefully strode towards the looming figure. Her horn shone with a brilliant light, channeling her unique magic of growth and beauty. Vines and flowers sprouted up from the Ritual Site floor at her command, rapidly growing and reaching towards the shadowy figure.
"Your darkness cannot overcome the light of nature!" Mistmane called out confidently as she poured more power into her spell.
But the Pony of Shadow was far from defeated. With a snarl of contempt, it lashed out with tendrils of pure darkness that sliced through Mistmane's magical plants as if they were nothing more than illusions.
"Foolish pony," it growled in disdain. "Your parlor tricks are no match for true power!"
Mistmane's heart raced as she prepared to use her magic against it, but before she could react, one of the shadowy tendrils snapped towards her with frightening speed. She barely had time to register the pain as it coiled and bound around her legs, crushing the bones with brutal force. Her screams pierced through the air as she crumpled to the ground in agony. The impact echoed through the area, leaving a sickening feeling in the pit of Star Swirl's stomach. But the Pony of Shadows wasn't satisfied yet. It lifted Mistmane by her broken legs and slammed her into the ground with such force that a crater formed beneath her. Blood pooled around her body as she lay still, her once-pristine mane now matted with dirt and blood. She tried to move, but the pain overwhelmed her senses, leaving her helpless on the ground.
Star Swirl rushed to her side, his face filled with both concern and anger at what had been done to his friend. "Mistmane!" he called out, kneeling down beside her with a sense of urgency.
The Pony of Shadow let out a cruel, menacing laugh that echoed through the air. "Another one of your mighty Pillars falls," it taunted, its voice dripping with malice. "Who's next, Star Swirl? How many more must suffer before you realize the futility of this battle?"
Star Swirl's eyes blazed with determination and anger as he focused his magical energy. Streams of brilliant golden light erupted from his horn in a dazzling display, wrapping around the Pony of Shadow like ethereal chains.
"Now, Somnambula!" Star Swirl called out, his voice filled with urgency.
The invisible pegasus wasted no time, her movements swift and precise as she struck with Flash's sword once again. With a resounding clang, the blade landed another deep slash across the shadow being's form. The creature roared in pain and fury, its shadowy figure writhing and contorting.
Enraged by this dual assault, the Pony of Shadow's power surged and pulsed with an otherworldly glow. With a terrifying display of strength, it managed to free one of its arms from Star Swirl's magical bindings.
"I can not be contained!" it bellowed, its voice so powerful that it shook the very foundations of the ancient ritual site.
Before Star Swirl could reinforce his spell, the Pony of Shadow unleashed a barrage of shadow attacks. Dark, razor-sharp projectiles hurtled towards the unicorn wizard with deadly speed.
Desperately trying to defend himself, Star Swirl conjured up protective shields but they were no match for the sheer number and ferocity of the enemy's attacks. One after another, the shadow projectiles found their mark, striking his chest, left leg, and grazing his head. Blood seeped from his wounds as he stumbled backward in pain and shock.
"Star Swirl!" Somnambula cried out in horror, her invisibility fading as her friend lost concentration under the onslaught.
The Pony of Shadow let out a menacing laugh, his deep voice echoing through the cavern. His dark, shadowy form seemed to expand as he spoke. "Do you now understand, Pillars, the futility of your magic, your strength, your hope? They are nothing before me."
Despite his injuries, Star Swirl struggled to his hooves, his once pristine beard now stained with blood. But his eyes still burned with defiance. "We will never surrender to darkness," he gasped out.
"Then you have chosen death," the Pony of Shadow sneered.
"We... are Equestria's guardians," Rockhoof said as he slowly rose to his feet from where he had fallen. "No matter the cost... we will vanquish all evil from this world."
"Admirable," the Pony of Shadow chuckled, breaking free from Star Swirl's bindings. "But foolish all the same."
His dark, shadowy tendrils coiled around him like snakes ready to strike. Rockhoof tensed, preparing to make his move, but before he could even flinch, the Pony of Shadow unleashed a piercing tendril that plunged into the large pony's stomach. The others watched in horror as Rockhoof's body went limp and fell to the ground.
A cold wind seemed to sweep through the cavern, carrying with it the chilling realization that their enemy was not to be underestimated. And with each passing moment, their chances of victory grew slimmer.
"Rockhoof!" Somnambula's scream pierced the air like a sharp knife, her eyes wide with terror.
In one swift and brutal motion, he had seized the pegasus in his massive hand, holding her in a vice-like grip that seemed impossible to break free from.
"How does it feel?" The Pony of Shadow taunted his former comrades, his deep voice dripping with malice. "Knowing that you have been forsaken by someone you once trusted?"
Somnambula cried out in agonizing pain, the Pony of Shadow's grip tightened mercilessly around her. Each sickening crunch of bone sent waves of excruciating pain through her, while the warm, sticky fluid gushed from every orifice on her face and body. The metallic tang of blood saturated the air, overwhelming all other senses. Beside her, Rockhoof's form lay in a pool of his own blood. To add insult to injury, The Pony of Shadow raised his hoof and brought it down hard on the earth pony's head. The sickening crack of bone echoed through the area, the scene was a grisly display of the Pony of Shadow's unforgiving power. The stench of death and blood hung heavily in the air, thick enough to taste.
"Stop!" Star Swirl begged, his legs giving out as he collapsed to his knees. "Spare them, Stygian." His voice was filled with desperation and sorrow as he pleaded with his former friend and comrade to show mercy, who seemed to have no trace of humanity left in him.
"Stygian is dead, Wizard," the Pony of Shadow spat out, his voice dripping with malice. "But out of respect for being his old mentor, I will grant mercy upon these betrayers."
With a cruel laugh, the Pony of Shadow tossed aside Somnambula's battered body before removing his hoof from Rockhoof's head. The once proud and powerful Pillars now lay broken and defeated before their greatest enemy. Somnambula's once vibrant coat was now matted with blood and grime, her breath coming in ragged gasps as she struggled to stay conscious.
"I will give you one last shred of mercy," the Pony of Shadow taunted, relishing in their defeat. "Now let us see your final pitiful spell, Star Swirl."
But Star Swirl's fury burned bright within him, and he seethed through gritted teeth. "It will not be my final spell," he declared defiantly. "And it is far from pitiful."
The air crackled with energy as Star Swirl's horn glowed with an intense light, his mane billowing as if caught in an unseen wind. With a surge of magical power, the relics of the Pillars suddenly flew through the air towards him, drawn to their leader like moths to a flame. It was a final act of defiance against the Pony of Shadow, proof that their legacy would live on even in the face of defeat.
The Pony of Shadow's manic laughter faltered, its twisted expression morphing into one of confusion and growing concern. "What trickery is this?" it snarled, glaring at Star Swirl with malevolent eyes.
But Star Swirl stood firm, his eyes blazing with determination as he channeled the combined power of the relics. Behind the Pony of Shadow, the air began to shimmer and distort. A blinding white light tore through reality itself, expanding into a swirling vortex that slowly sucked in the monstrous shadow.
"What...what is this?" the Pony of Shade demanded, its voice shaking with fear and anger.
"Celestia may have her own sealing spell, but I have created one of my own," Star Swirl declared boldly, his voice ringing out over the chaos.
As the Pony of Shadow was being pulled into the portal, Star Swirl's expression turned dark and venomous. "Stygian Nessus...no, Pony of Shadow," he spat. "I hereby banish you from this world...to spend all eternity alone in Limbo...beyond space...beyond time..." His words were laced with both anger and regret, for he knew that he'd never see his former pupil ever again.
"I'm sorry, Stygian, my dear boy," Star Swirl thought to himself. "Farewell."
"In the name of my master...and his master before...I, Star Swirl the Bearded...CAST YOU OUT!" With one final blast of his spell, the Pony of Shadow was sucked into the portal and disappeared from sight.
But he did not go quietly. "NO!…I will not lose to you again!" The Pony of Shadow's enraged screams filled the air as he launched several tendrils of shadow that wrapped around all six of the Pillars, pulling them towards him. "I’m taking all of you with me!"
One by one, the Pillars were pulled into the swirling light along with their enemy. Star Swirl, the last to be taken in, gave Squeaky a sorrowful look before disappearing into the portal.
The ground shook with a deafening boom as the gateway crumbled, leaving behind an unsettling stillness and a glimmer where it once stood.
Squeaky, her tiny form trembling, stood frozen in shock. The reality of what had just happened slowly sank in. Her Father, Her Friends, and Her Family, were gone. Banished to a realm beyond space and time.
"Come back!" Squeaky's voice cracked as she scampered to the spot where the portal had been. "Please... don't leave me alone again!"
But there was no response. Only the mournful howling of the wind through the now-empty landscape.
Tears welled up in Squeaky's eyes, spilling down her cheeks as she collapsed to the ground. The weight of loneliness pressed down upon her once more, a feeling she had thought she'd never have to face again after finding her place with her father and the Pillars.
"Why?" she whimpered between hiccupping sobs. "Why did it have to end like this?"
As night gave way to morning, Squeaky remained there, curled up on the ground, mourning the loss of her family and the future they had all hoped to build together. The little filly who had finally found a loving family was now alone once more, left to navigate an uncertain world without the guidance and love of those she held dear. The sun rose over the horizon, casting its warm light on the devastated scene before her. But for Squeaky, there was only darkness and emptiness where her family should have been.
Chapter 9: From Princess to Tyrant
The depths of Tartarus were eerily quiet, except for the occasional shrieks of tormented souls in the distance. Suddenly, a surge of otherworldly energy filled the air, causing the resident monsters to scurry away into the shadows. A blinding crimson light burst forth from the center of a vast, desolate chamber, revealing a tall and slender figure.
As the light dimmed, Alastor, also known as the infamous Radio Demon, emerged from its source. His signature grin seemed to radiate in the dim, infernal glow of Tartarus. Heavy chains made of celestial silver were tightly bound around his hands, their links adorned with glowing runes of containment.
Alastor's red eyes darted around, taking in his new surroundings with equal parts curiosity and amusement. The usual static that accompanied his presence was muted, barely audible beneath the faint clinking of his chains.
"Well, well, well," he remarked to himself, his voice carrying a faint broadcast quality. "What a charming little corner of damnation we have here! The accommodations may be lacking, but the ambiance is simply to die for!"
He chuckled at his own joke, his laughter echoing through the cavernous space. The chains rattled as he lifted his hands to adjust his monocle, their weight unfamiliar and somewhat annoying.
"I suppose these lovely bracelets are meant to keep me in check," Alastor observed with a mixture of disdain and fascination as he examined the chains. "How quaint. As if mere trinkets could contain someone like me."
With a surge of subtle excitement, Alastor began his descent down a set of worn stone stairs. Each step echoed ominously through the cavernous chamber, accompanied by the soft jingling of his chains - a constant reminder of his dominance in this realm. As he reached the bottom, an expansive area opened up before him, lined with massive cages fashioned from rusted iron bars and heavy chains. Within each cage lay a terrifying creature, their snarls and growls reverberating off the walls.
Alastor's grin widened into a sadistic smirk as he sauntered past the cages, his eyes gleaming with dark curiosity. The imprisoned beasts cowered and snarled at him as he passed, a mix of fear and aggression evident in their demeanor - but none dared to challenge him.
"My, my, what a delightful menagerie we have here," Alastor mused, his voice dripping with twisted amusement. "I do wonder what sort of entertainment you fine specimens might provide." His words were met with a chorus of sounds - growls, screeches, and roars - as if in response to his taunting invitation.
As he reached the center of the area, a low, rumbling growl reverberated through the chamber. The Radio Demon paused, his smile never faltering as he turned to face the source of the sound.
There, blocking his path, stood the legendary guardian of the underworld - Cerberus. The massive three-headed dog towered over Alastor, each head baring rows of razor-sharp teeth. Saliva dripped from their jaws as they snarled menacingly at the newcomer.
Alastor, however, remained unperturbed. He simply stood there, unflinching in the face of such primal fury, his posture relaxed and his grin unchanging as he locked eyes with the fearsome beast. For a moment, neither moved, the tension in the air was thick - a heavy energy that crackled with anticipation.
Then, ever so slowly, Alastor's eyes narrowed. The air around him seemed to darken, an aura of sheer malevolence radiated from the demon. His grin took on a more sinister quality, promising untold horrors for any who dared to cross him.
Cerberus, the mighty guardian who had faced countless foes without flinching, suddenly felt a chill run down its spine. All three heads blinked in unison, their growls faltering as they sensed a dark presence looming before them. As Alastor's intense gaze bore down upon them, the great beast began to back away, its massive paws sinking into the ground with each cautious step. Its powerful tail tucked between its legs, it let out a low whimper, all pretense of aggression gone.
The once-fearsome guardian cowered before the sinister figure known as the Radio Demon, recognizing a predator far more dangerous than itself. Alastor's eerie laugh rang out, filling the chamber with its bone-chilling, distorted sound. "Now then," he said, his voice dripping with dark promises and thrilling possibilities, "shall we see what other delights this realm has to offer?"
With that, he strode past the trembling Cerberus and descended deeper into the dark depths of Tartarus. The message was clear - a new power had arrived, and nothing would stand in its way.
“Impressive” a deep voice boomed from the enveloping darkness, echoing off the ancient, stone walls with a weighty gravity that seemed to make the very air quiver. "It's not often that Cerberus yields his ground. You're full of surprises."
Alastor's ears perked up at the sound of the deep, resonant voice. His grin widened impossibly further as he turned towards its source, intrigue dancing in his crimson eyes.
"Why, thank you, my good sir!" Alastor replied with crackling amusement in his voice. "I do pride myself on being full of surprises. It keeps things interesting, don't you think?" His words dripped with sly charm and an unsettling sense of power.
Guided by the haunting voice that seemed to beckon him deeper into Tartarus, Alastor moved with a confident swagger through the shadowy corridors. The rhythmic clink of his chains echoed off the slick stone walls, creating an eerie melody that seemed to match his casual stride. As he rounded a corner, his piercing gaze landed upon a massive cage, and within it, a figure that immediately commanded his attention.
Hunched in the dim light was a centaur unlike any other - even in his weakened state, there was an unmistakable aura of power and danger about him. His once vibrant red skin now appeared ashen, his head devoid of any hair except for a wild, unkempt white beard. His once-mighty frame now appeared frail and shriveled. Yet, his yellow eyes still blazed with an inner fire, a hunger for domination that not even captivity could quell.
"Interesting," Alastor drawled, closing in on the cage with unrestrained curiosity. "What do we have here? Another seeker of ultimate power?"
The centaur straightened as much as he could within his confined space, locking gazes with Alastor in a display of unwavering determination. "I am Lord Tirek," he announced in a voice that still commanded respect despite its weakened state. "Once the most powerful being in Equestria, now...reduced to this."
“Allow me to return the courtesy,” Alastor said with a graceful bow. “I am Alastor, also known as The Radio Demon.”
“Never heard of you,” Tirek scoffed, clearly unimpressed by the demon's introduction.
Alastor's grin stretched across his face, revealing a row of razor sharp teeth. "Never heard of me? Why, my dear fellow, I'm wounded!" he exclaimed, placing a hand dramatically over his heart. The chains that bound him clinked softly with the movement. "But I suppose that's the price of interdimensional notoriety. Allow me to enlighten you."
He leaned in closer to the cage, his piercing red eyes gleaming with mischief and malice. "I am known as the Radio Demon, a title I earned through my... shall we say, unconventional methods of entertainment. My shows have haunted millions, and I revel in the chaos and destruction I cause. I've slaughtered, maimed, mutilated and devoured billions, each one a testament to my power."
As if speaking from an old-time radio broadcast, Alastor continued, "My highest achievements include dismembering Celestia’s left arm, corrupting Luna to darkness, and even creating a race of shapeshifting spies known as Changelings."
But Alastor's attention soon turned back to Tirek, his interest piqued by the horned demon's presence. "Tell me, Lord Tirek," he said in a honeyed tone, "what grand schemes brought you to this charming little corner of Tartarus?"
Tirek's eyes narrowed slightly at Alastor's smooth words, intrigued by his claims despite his initial skepticism. He shifted in his cage, his once formidable form now weakened but still exuding an air of fallen majesty.
"My tale," Tirek began in a low rumble, "is one of power sought and nearly grasped. I came to Equestria with the aim of draining all magical creatures of their power, to make their strength my own." A flicker of his old ambition flashed in his yellow eyes as he spoke.
"I manipulated, I schemed, I grew stronger with each passing day. At my peak, I wielded magic beyond imagination." Tirek's voice swelled with pride, then faltered. "But those accursed ponies... they found a way to defeat me with the help of my foolish brother." The bitterness in his tone was palpable as he recounted his downfall.
Tirek's bitter laugh reverberated through the cavernous depths of Tartarus, resounding off the oppressive walls that encircled him. His once-mighty arms hung limply at his sides, their muscles withered and weak from years of confinement. "And so, here I am," he spat, gesturing wildly at his prison. "Trapped in this infernal pit, my power reduced to a mere shadow of its former glory."
Alastor's voice slithered through the darkness like a serpent, dripping with malice and amusement. "Trapped like a little mouse in a cage," he sneered, a twisted smile playing on his lips.
Rage flared in Tirek's eyes as he gripped the bars of his cell, the metal groaning under his desperate grasp. "In case you've forgotten, Demon," he growled, baring his sharp fangs, "you're trapped here too!"
But Alastor only chuckled in response, his perpetual grin widening impossibly further. "For now," he purred, his words laced with dark promises. Suddenly, a sickly green aura enveloped his chains, causing them to writhe and crackle with an otherworldly energy. With a sound like shattering glass, each link exploded into dust. "But you'll find that escaping from this place is a mere trifle for someone of my... particular talents."
"How... How did you break your chains?!" Tirek demanded, disbelief and a hint of fear coloring his voice. "The entire realm of Tartarus has the power to hold even the most dangerous entities captive. Its magic-restraining chains are said to be unbreakable by any known means."
Alastor merely smirked in response as he summoned his cane into his hand, twirling it between his fingers with preternatural grace. The tip pulsed ominously with the same dark energy that had destroyed his bonds. "That is not the question you should be asking," he taunted, tapping his cane against the ground. A ripple of verdant magic spread outward, causing the very air to vibrate with power.
His eyes, glowing like dying embers, locked onto Tirek's. "The real question is, my equine friend," he whispered seductively. "What would you do to taste freedom once more?"
"What do you want?" Tirek asked cautiously, his suspicion of the demon evident.
Tirek stood before the demon, his eyes narrowed with suspicion. Alastor's toothy grin never faltered as he circled the centaur's cage, tapping a finger against his chin in mock contemplation.
"What do I want?" he repeated, his voice dripping with dramatic flair. "I am a collector of sorts, my dear Tirek. A connoisseur of chaos and an aficionado of the arcane. And you, with your power, ambition, and betrayal—you are a unique specimen that sings to me like a symphony of destruction."
He leaned in closer to the bars, his cane making an unsettling metallic resonance against them. "In exchange for my assistance in your escape," he purred, "I only ask for something small and insignificant...something you won't even miss."
Tirek's suspicions grew with each word from the demon's mouth. "Speak plainly, Alastor. What is this 'small and insignificant' thing you desire?"
Alastor's grin stretched impossibly wider, his teeth gleaming in the dim light of Tartarus. "Oh, just your soul," he said nonchalantly.
The centaur recoiled in shock, causing his massive frame to shake the cage. "My soul? Are you mad?"
"Mad?" Alastor cackled, his laughter echoing off the prison walls. "Perhaps. But consider your options, my friend. Spend eternity rotting away in this cell with your powers wasted, or..." He snapped his fingers and a shimmering image appeared—a vision of Equestria ripe for the taking. "...reclaim your rightful place as a master of magic."
Tirek's attention flickered between Alastor and the mesmerizing illusion before him. The demon's voice rumbled low, filled with a predatory edge. "And what, exactly, would you do with my soul?"
Alastor's cane twirled in his hand as he spoke nonchalantly. "Oh, this and that. Consider it insurance, to keep our partnership... mutually beneficial." His eyes glinted with an otherworldly light, dancing with sinister intent. "But more importantly, it will ensure you never betray me."
His outstretched hand was wreathed in emerald flames, his magic crackling and pulsing with dark energy. "So, what say you?"
Tirek stood in contemplative silence, weighing the tempting offer before him. Freedom and power beckoned, but at what cost? Finally, he met Alastor's unwavering gaze and made his decision.
"Very well, demon," Tirek growled. "You have yourself a deal."
As the words echoed through the chamber, a heavy silence fell over Tartarus. All eyes were fixed on the unlikely duo as they shook hands, sealing their pact with a devilish grin from Alastor.
Then, without warning, a blinding flash of sickly green light exploded from where they stood. The eerie glow spread rapidly, enveloping every inch of the infernal prison in its ominous radiance.
Alastor's form seemed to stretch and contort as raw power surged through him. The shadows danced wildly on the walls while his laughter rang out maniacally, twisting and distorting with each burst of energy.
"Oh, what a rush!" he exclaimed, glee dripping from every word. He flexed his fingers, green sparks crackling between them. "My dear Tirek, you have no idea the doors you've just opened!"
The centaur, still confined in his cage, watched with a mixture of anticipation and dread. His hooves scraped against the metal floor as he paced back and forth, longing for his freedom. "And my freedom?" he growled, his patience wearing thin.
Alastor's grin softened to something almost resembling reassurance - if not for the malevolent glint in his eyes. "Now, now, my equine friend. All in good time," he purred, tapping his cane against the bars of Tirek's prison. Each tap sent a ripple of green energy through the thick metal, causing it to hum with power. "These things must be done delicately. Rush too quickly, and we risk losing everything."
He leaned in close, his voice dropping to a conspiratorial whisper. "But I assure you, Tirek. Given time and careful planning, you shall breathe the fresh air again. And when you do..." Alastor's eyes glowed with sinister promise, "all of Equestria will tremble at our approach."
The green light pulsed once more, as if in agreement with Alastor's proclamation. In that moment, the cage that had confined the great centaur Tirek began to warp and twist. With a deafening cacophony of groans and screeches, the thick steel bars bent outward, contorting like serpents under a charmer's spell. Then, as if made from nothing sturdier than spider silk, they shattered into glittering dust that swirled away on an unnatural breeze.
Tirek emerged from the twisted and broken remains of his cage, like a beast unleashed from its shackles. Every inch of him radiated with contained fury, causing the very air around him to vibrate with tension. His deep roar reverberated through the cavernous depths of Tartarus, a primal sound that sent shivers down even the bravest warrior's spine.
"Now what, Demon?" Tirek bellowed, his voice thundering through the darkness and striking fear into the hearts of any who dared approach him.
The flames in his eyes burned brighter with each passing second, a fiery inferno ready to consume anyone foolish enough to challenge him.
Alastor's ruby red eyes gleamed with mischievous intent as he descended the stairs leading to the other imprisoned monsters. His polished cane tapped a hypnotic beat against the cold stone floor, its silver tip glinting in the dim light. "Patience, my quadrupedal compatriot," he crooned, surveying the countless cages below. "There is still much power to be amassed before our grand exit."
His grin widened impossibly and his voice dripped with dark promise as he spoke. "After all," he purred, gesturing to the trapped creatures around them, "there are so many deals to be made, so many souls ripe for the taking." The atmosphere was thick with anticipation, a sinister energy pulsing through the air as they prepared for their escape from this hellish prison.
The spacious halls of Canterlot Castle were filled with the deafening sound of shattering glass as Princess Celestia's magic lashed out, her fury heavy in the air. Her normally serene features were contorted with rage, her mane flickering like a violent solar flare. The once-beautiful crystal chandeliers trembled under her powerful aura, their delicate prisms reflecting the chaos within the room.
"Incompetence!" Celestia's voice boomed, reverberating off the walls and shattering the solemn quiet of the throne room. "I am surrounded by utter incompetence!"
Her pacing was akin to that of a caged beast, her movements swift and sharp as she circled before her throne. Her wings flared wide, casting ominous shadows across the polished marble floor. With every step, her hooves left deep imprints in the intricate design.
Her gaze fell upon the Elements of Harmony, once gleaming with power and purpose, now dull and lifeless on their pedestal. With a snarl of frustration, she attempted to channel her magic through them once more. The artifacts remained stubbornly inert, mocking her efforts.
"Useless!" Celestia spat, whirling away from what had once been her greatest weapon. "Even the Elements forsake us in our darkest hour!"
The royal guards lining the chamber stood at attention, their armor clinking in a discordant chorus as they shifted uneasily. Not one dared to speak; never had they witnessed their immortal sovereign so unhinged, so raw with fury and despair.
"First," Celestia growled, her thoughts a maelstrom of anger and fear, "the Pillars refuse to defend Equestria, and now they've vanished entirely." She shook her head in disbelief. "And that diminutive demon they were protecting has simply ceased to exist!"
As Celestia's rage reached its zenith, her ethereal mane and tail ignited into pure, white-hot flame. The temperature in the room skyrocketed, causing the guards to break out in a cold sweat beneath their armor.
"And to make matters exponentially worse," she seethed, her voice dropping to a dangerous whisper that somehow carried more menace than her shouts, "the Radio Demon has escaped the depths of Tartarus itself."
Her eyes, usually gentle and warm, now blazed with the intensity of a thousand suns. The irises were like pools of molten gold, flickering with anger and fear. Every muscle in her body was tensed, ready for battle.
"That abomination still roams free, infecting MY EQUESTRIA!"
The last words exploded from her in a primal scream of fury, accompanied by a shockwave of magical energy that knocked the stumbling guards off their hooves. The power radiating from her was palpable, crackling through the air like electricity.
As the echoes faded, an eerie silence fell over the throne room, broken only by the crackling of Celestia's flaming mane and the ragged sound of her breathing. The glow from her mane cast shadows on the walls, adding to the tense atmosphere.
As the guards struggled to their hooves, an unnatural stillness descended upon the throne room. They could feel something in the air, a presence that seemed to be watching them with amusement.
Celestia stood amidst the chaos, her chest heaving, her eyes still ablaze with barely contained fury. But there was also a glint of fear in them now, as if she knew what was coming next.
Then, cutting through the silence like a knife, came a sound that chilled the blood of every pony present.
Laughter.
It started as a low chuckle, barely audible, but quickly grew in volume and intensity. The sound seemed to come from everywhere and nowhere at once, echoing off the castle walls and reverberating through the very stones beneath their hooves. It was a chilling sound that sent shivers down their spines.
Celestia's eyes widened in recognition and horror. "Alastor," she whispered, her voice a mixture of dread and rage.
The laughter grew louder, more maniacal. It was a sound of pure, unadulterated glee, tinged with malevolence that seemed to seep into the very air around them.
The static crackled at the edges of the laughter, giving it an otherworldly quality that set every nerve on edge and made it impossible to ignore.
Celestia stood tall and statuesque, her golden mane thrashing wildly as if caught in a raging storm. Her eyes, usually soft and kind, were now narrow and calculating as she scanned every shadow and corner of the throne room.
"Show yourself, demon!" she commanded, her voice barely audible over the cacophony of sinister laughter that reverberated through the room.
But Alastor's disembodied voice only laughed harder, the sound growing to a deafening crescendo that threatened to shatter the stained-glass windows. And just as suddenly as it began, the laughter ceased, leaving behind an eerie silence that hung heavily in the air.
In its wake, Alastor's silky smooth voice whispered from the ether:
"Oh, my dear Princess... The show has only just begun." The words dripped with malice and malevolence, sending chills down Celestia's spine.
Without warning, a searing pain slashed across Celestia's back. She cried out in agony as she felt warm droplets of blood spatter across the polished floor. Her wings instinctively flared out in defense, but it was too late.
Whipping around with the ferocity of a wounded lioness, Celestia's eyes widened in shock and betrayal. Before her stood six of her own royal guards, their swords drawn and dripping with her blood. Their once loyal faces now twisted into uncharacteristic sneers and their eyes glowing an unnatural green.
"Traitors!" Celestia roared, her voice a mix of pain, fury, and disbelief. The word echoed off the walls with a weight that carried centuries of trust shattered in an instant.
Her instincts begged her to fight back, to unleash the full force of her powerful alicorn magic upon these invaders. But she hesitated, unable to comprehend the sheer magnitude of this betrayal. These were not faceless enemies, but the very ones she had sworn to protect and rely on as her faithful guardians.
The guards waste no time in closing in, their sharp blades glinting menacingly in the dim light of the throne room. The air was thick with tension and chaos as the six guards lunged at Celestia, their weapons raised high. Despite her injury, the Princess moved like a seasoned warrior, her millennia of experience shining through her movements. Her horn blazed with intense magical energy, ready to defend herself.
"You Filthy Traitors will suffer!" Celestia's voice boomed with rage, echoing off the marble walls.
As two of the guards approached from the front, Celestia's prosthetic left arm whirred to life, extending razor-sharp claws. With lightning speed, she parried their swords, the clash of metal ringing through the chamber. A swift and precise swipe tore the flesh from one guard's neck, while a powerful blast of magic from her horn sent the other flying across the room with a gaping hole in his head.
But there were still four more guards circling, attempting to flank her. In response, Celestia's wings snapped open and she took to the air, using her aerial advantage to unleash a barrage of magical bolts one two of the guards. Each shot found its mark with deadly accuracy, searing through tainted armor and flesh and dropping her assailants in writhing heaps on the floor. The sickly scent of singed metal and burnt feathers mingled with the acrid stench of death.
The third guard leapt towards Celestia, his sword aimed for her neck. In a split-second decision, she activated her prosthetic's hidden blade, plunging it deep into his neck. The guard dropped his weapon as he began to choke on his own blood, his body going limp as it drained from his mouth. Without hesitation, Celestia kicked him away and scanned for any remaining threats.
Without hesitation, Celestia kicked the guard away and scanned for any remaining threats. But one guard remained, hesitating as he faced off against this fierce and determined princess. Sensing his momentary pause, Celestia triggered the flamethrower on her prosthetic arm and directed a controlled burst of flame towards him. His screams echoed throughout the throne room as he flailed and burned, eventually collapsing to the ground as a charred husk.
The once majestic throne room of Equestria's royal palace had been transformed into a nightmarish battlefield. The air was thick with the stench of death and the sounds of clashing hooves echoed off the grand walls. Princess Celestia stood in the center, her mane disheveled and her eyes burning with fury as she faced off against her own Royal Guards who had turned against her.
Her heart raced as she braced herself for the next wave of attackers, her mind reeling at the betrayal that ran deeper than she could have ever imagined. With adrenaline coursing through her veins, every sense heightened, she could hear the approaching steps of more traitorous hooves from the adjoining corridors.
But instead of fear, Celestia felt an overwhelming desire for retribution. Her body pulsated with the need to dispense justice upon those who had dared to betray her trust. And so, with magic and flames from her Prosthetics, she unleashed a merciless assault on the guards.
In this once peaceful and prosperous palace, a symphony of violence now played its grim tune. But amidst the chaos, Celestia noticed one guard still alive. She quickly closed the distance between them, grasping his neck with her prosthetic hand and lifting him up off the ground.
"Why!?" Celestia demanded, rage seeping out of every word. "Why did you fools think it wise to betray me!?"
"We...betrayed...no one!" the guard gasped out before being engulfed in green flames, revealing its true identity as a member of the changeling race. "We serve the Demon of the Rad..."
But before he could finish his sentence, Celestia smothered his words with her prosthetic hand and then used her arm's flamethrower feature to incinerate him on the spot. The changeling's muffled screams were drowned out by the roar of the flames as they devoured its twisted form, filling the air with the sickening smell of burnt chitin.
As the crackling flames danced in Celestia's steely eyes, her determination to protect her kingdom and seek retribution burned just as fiercely within her. Every flicker of the fire cast shadows on her face, highlighting the intensity of her emotions.
When the last ember died down, the changeling was no more than a smoldering husk, reduced to ash by Celestia's power. She dropped it unceremoniously and stood tall amidst the devastation, her mane shimmering with fiery hues.
“They’ve replaced…my guards…” Celestia whispered to herself, her voice trembling with a mixture of shock and anger. “There…There’s no telling who could be trusted.”
Her eyes darted around the room, searching for any signs of deception or betrayal. Her gaze was filled with a mixture of paranoia and barely contained rage. The acrid smell of burnt chitin lingered in the air, a grim reminder of the fate that had befallen the changeling infiltrator at Celestia's hooves. As she took a deep breath, she steeled herself for the uncertain challenges that lay ahead.
Her voice grew louder and more frantic as she repeated, "It's impossible to know who can be trusted. They could be anyone, anywhere." The princess paced back and forth, her hooves scorching the marble floor with each step. Her mane crackled with flames and cast eerie shadows along the walls.
"My own guards, replaced right under my nose," Celestia muttered, narrowing her eyes. "How long has this been going on?"
She abruptly stopped and turned to face the grand doors of the throne room.
"I must eliminate this corruption," Celestia declared firmly. "No matter what it costs."
With a fierce determination fueling her every step, Princess Celestia stormed out of her throne room and bellowed a booming command. "I want every guard and servant in the castle courtyard at once!"
As she strode through the grand halls of the castle, the sound of her royal hooves echoed loudly. When she reached the courtyard, she found it filled with hundreds of ponies - guards, servants, and advisors - all gathered and awaiting her orders. Their faces were a mix of confusion and fear, reflecting the tense atmosphere that had descended upon the kingdom.
"My loyal subjects," Celestia began, her voice carrying across the crowd with an air of authority. "I have grave news to share. We have been infiltrated by a dangerous enemy-"
But before she could finish her sentence, something unexpected happened. Without warning, the crowd surged forward, their eyes glowing an unnatural green. Celestia's own words died in her throat as she realized the horrifying truth - they weren't her subjects at all.
"Changelings!" she gasped, barely having time to raise a magical barrier as the first wave crashed against it.
The once peaceful courtyard erupted into chaos. Hundreds of disguised changelings swarmed towards Celestia, their forms shifting and twisting as they abandoned their pony disguises. The air filled with the buzz of insectoid wings and the harsh sound of chitinous limbs scraping against stone.
Celestia's horn blazed with power as she fought to maintain her shield. Blasts of changeling magic pounded against it relentlessly, each impact sending shockwaves through her body. Her eyes darted frantically, searching for any sign of a real pony among the sea of black, twisted forms.
In that moment, Celestia felt a familiar rage building within her. The heat around her intensified, her magic enveloping herself in a swirling vortex.
"You dare defy me, you foul creatures!" she thought, gritting her teeth as she pushed back against the onslaught.
As the changelings pressed their attack, Celestia felt a surge of power and determination. The intensity in her eyes rivaled that of the celestial body itself, and a golden light began to emanate from her horn. It grew brighter with each passing second until it was nearly blinding to look at directly.
"I’ll kill you!" she roared, her voice carrying the wrath of the sun itself. "I will kill you all!"
With a mighty cry, Princess Celestia unleashed a blast of pure energy that engulfed the courtyard and everything in its path. The ground shook beneath her hooves as she poured every ounce of her strength into vanquishing the changeling threat.
Celestia's form started to shift and change, her already impressive stature growing taller and more powerful. Muscles rippled beneath her shimmering coat as she gained mass, exuding a sense of raw strength.
As she transformed, her wings expanded to an awe-inspiring size, each feather hardening into sharp blades of pure light. The gentle flow of her rainbow-colored mane and tail erupted into a raging inferno, flames of gold and orange licking at the air around her. The fire spread quickly, engulfing her entire body in a cocoon of searing heat.
Within the fiery chrysalis, Celestia's regalia began to transform alongside her. Her golden shoes melted and reshaped themselves, forming wicked, curved talons that glinted menacingly in the light. Her crown elongated and sharpened, becoming a fearsome helm adorned with spike-like protrusions.
A blood-curdling scream tore from Celestia's throat as her transformation reached its apex. The cocoon of fire exploded outward, killing all living things in its path and revealing her new form in all its terrifying glory.
Where once stood the once benevolent ruler of Equestria now towered Daybreaker Sun, the embodiment of the sun's wrath. Her gleaming coat resembled burnished pure ivory, and her eyes blazed like twin orange infernos of righteous anger. An aura of intense heat radiated from her very being, causing the air around her to waver and distort.
Daybreaker's voice was a terrible mixture of Celestia's gentle tones and the roar of a solar flare when she spoke. "You dare threaten my kingdom, demon?" she snarled. "Then face the full might of the sun!"
The newly transformed alicorn spread her magnificent wings, each movement leaving trails of scorching fire in the air. As she hovered above the lifeless bodies of the changelings, her voice boomed across the city: "Fine... If you refuse to face me," she said with a fanged grin, "I'll draw you out. But first..."
Daybreaker's eyes blazed with unbridled power as she rose higher into the sky, her fiery mane and tail whipping wildly in the wind. The air around her crackled with energy, the heat radiating from her body scorching everything in its path. With one final roar, she unleashed the full force of her fury upon the enemy, the temperature soaring and cracking the stone floors beneath her hooves.
Her horn ignited with a blinding golden light, pulsing with raw magical energy that seemed to vibrate through the very air. The ground beneath Canterlot began to tremble, a low rumble growing into a deafening roar. Cracks spread across the streets and plazas, buildings swaying precariously as if caught in an earthquake.
Daybreaker's magic surged outward, enveloping the entire city in a shimmering dome of golden energy. With a sound like the tearing of the earth itself, Canterlot began to rise. The mountain beneath the city groaned and fractured as Daybreaker's immense power lifted the metropolis from its very foundations. Soil and rock crumbled away as Canterlot ascended higher and higher into the sky, leaving behind a trail of destruction in its wake.
The citizens of Canterlot screamed in terror, their cries drowned out by the thunderous sounds of chaos all around them. They clung to each other and whatever they could find as their world literally turned upside down. The once bustling city now hung suspended in the air, completely cut off from the rest of Equestria.
Daybreaker's laughter echoed across the floating city, a sound of triumph and madness that sent chills down even the bravest pony's spine. "Now, Alastor," she called out to the demon she knew was watching, her voice dripping with malice and disdain, "let's see you try to hide. Your little changelings are about to be nothing but a stain beneath my hooves!"
The majestic sun alicorn hovered above her newly elevated domain, her piercing gaze sweeping over the terror-stricken crowds below. The hunt was about to commence, and Daybreaker Sun would stop at nothing to purge the corruption that had infiltrated her kingdom.
With every flaming step, Daybreaker marched into the City of Canterlot. Little did anyone know, this would mark one of the darkest days in Equestrian history, if there were any survivors left to tell the tale.
But what will never be recorded in the history books is how Daybreaker, consumed by her thirst for vengeance, became the very embodiment of fear she set out to banish. Canterlot's once pristine streets now ran red with blood as Daybreaker massacred every man, woman, and child in sight. Each cry for mercy was met with unyielding fury and a merciless end at the hands of Daybreaker's scorching flames.
Amidst all the destruction and chaos, only two newborn ponies managed to survive - a unicorn colt and an earth pony filly. These two foals, later known as Adam Apple and Eve Blossom according to Canterlot's history books, would be the first to walk upon the Eden-like utopia that was once the grand city of Canterlot.
Author's Note
Well, dear readers, it seems our beloved Princess Celestia has finally snapped. The betrayal and paranoia she faced has finally pushed her over the edge, transforming her into the Tyrant Daybreaker Sun. Poor, poor Canterlot - once a shining jewel of Equestria, now a floating fortress of fear and destruction.
But fear not! Our story is far from over. In the next chapter, we'll be taking a leap forward in time. While we won't quite reach the era of Season 1 just yet, we'll explore the aftermath of these cataclysmic events and see how Equestria has changed in the intervening years. What has become of Canterlot? How has Daybreaker's reign affected the land? And what of our villains, Alastor and Tirek? All these questions and more will be addressed as we continue our journey through this twisted Equestria.
Stay tuned, and remember - in this world, nothing is quite as it seems!
Chapter 10: The Radio Demon's Return
The blazing sun beat down relentlessly upon Canterlot, the city floating in the sky. Its rays were amplified by a shimmering magical barrier that kept the metropolis suspended in the air. At the outskirts of the city, a figure stood motionless, her fiery mane and tail dancing wildly in the high-altitude winds.
Once known as Princess Celestia, Daybreaker gazed down at Equestria far below. Her eyes burning with solar flares, she surveyed the patchwork of fields, forests, and settlements that made up her former kingdom.
A complex mix of emotions played across her face - disgust at what she perceived as weakness in the tiny ponies below, and a hint of pity for their ignorance of true dangers lurking in the shadows. A sneer formed on her lips as she watched her subjects, sinful scum in her eyes.
"Fools," muttered Daybreaker, her voice a combination of Celestia's gentle tones and crackling flames. "They have no idea how close they are to destruction, how near they are to being corrupted."
She spread her wings, each feather sharp as a blade and radiating intense heat. The movement caused a ripple of fire through the air, causing nearby buildings to groan under the sudden temperature change.
"But I will not allow it," she growled, turning to face the army of soldiers behind her. “For over six hundred years, your ancestors - The Soldiers of the Past - have purged Equestria of all corruption.”
Daybreaker's scorching gaze swept over the ranks of armored ponies standing at attention. Their armor shone golden in the harsh sunlight, each soldier a reflection of unwavering loyalty and fierce determination.
Her voice crescendoed with passion as she spoke, "For over six centuries, we have scoured every inch of this land. Rebels have been stamped out, dissent has been silenced, and any trace of Alastor’s corrupting influence has been extinguished."
The soldiers stood unwavering, their expressions determined and unflinching. They had been bred for this purpose, their loyalty to Daybreaker ingrained in their very DNA.
"But our mission is far from complete," Daybreaker announced, turning to face the sprawling expanse of Equestria below. "The Radio Demon still lurks in the shadows, biding his time for an opportunity to strike. And where there is one traitor, there are likely more."
Suddenly, the air crackled with a surge of energy, and a sharp burst of static pierced through the solemn atmosphere. Daybreaker's fiery mane blazed brighter in response to the unexpected interruption.
The static grew louder and more relentless, filling the air with its abrasive noise. It reverberated from all directions like an angry swarm of bees. The soldiers could not escape its invasive dissonance, enveloped in a cacophony of chaotic sound.
"No," Daybreaker hissed, her teeth clenched and eyes darting frantically as she searched for the source of the disturbance. The air around her crackled with an otherworldly energy, and she could sense a familiar presence lurking nearby.
Suddenly, a small radio materialized at Daybreaker's hooves, its buttons and dials glinting ominously in the dim light. It seemed to taunt her with its very existence, and then it emitted a voice that echoed eerily through the chaos:
“Guess Who???”
Daybreaker's heart skipped a beat as she recognized the voice. "Alastor," she growled through gritted teeth. "I'd love to stay and chat... But I'm in the middle of purging your vile corruption from the face of my kingdom."
"Oh my dear Daybreaker," Alastor's voice chuckled. "Have you forgotten? I've been sealed away in the depths of Tartarus for the past six hundred and sixty-six years. How could I possibly have been corrupting your precious kingdom?" His words dripped with sarcasm and amusement, only adding to Daybreaker's fury.
The Sixth day, on the sixth month at the sixth hour, that is the moment when all evil gains its most powerful hold. And for Alastor, a fearsome demon who had been locked away in Tartarus for six hundred and sixty six years, it was the moment he had been waiting for.
As the fateful hour approached, the Gates of Tartarus loomed before them. The ancient metal surface was covered in a network of pulsing green cracks, casting an eerie light across the desolate landscape surrounding the infernal prison. Shadows danced and twisted, distorted by the unearthly glow.
A deafening explosion rocked the underworld as the gates were blown apart. Shards of metal and stone flew in all directions as a wave of pure chaos energy burst forth. The very foundations of Tartarus trembled under its force.
Amidst the chaos and destruction, a tall, slender figure emerged from the smoking ruins. Alastor, known as the Radio Demon to many, took his first step into freedom with an ever-present grin on his face. His red eyes gleamed with malevolent glee as he surveyed the world he had been denied for so long.
Following closely behind him was Lord Tirek, a formidable centaur with a hunger for revenge and power burning fiercely in his yellow eyes. Despite his weakened state, his muscles rippled with anticipation for what was to come.
And then came the horde - a nightmarish army of creatures pouring out of the shattered gates. Each one more terrifying than the last, they reveled in their newfound freedom. Their roars, screeches, and howls filled the air like a symphony of impending doom for the world above.
Alastor turned to face his monstrous creatures with a devilish smile. "Our deals are complete," he announced with chilling satisfaction. "In exchange for your souls, I have granted you your freedom. But let us not forget the most important part..." His words hung in the air like a death sentence, sealing the fate of all those who dared stand against him.
Alastor's gaze sharpened as he surveyed the various monstrous creatures before him. "Though you are free from your cages, you must return to your homes," he commanded, tapping his cane on the ground for emphasis. "But do not forget that only ponies who enter your territory are fair game for killing and eating. I'd hate to lose my main source of entertainment."
The monsters nodded in agreement and began to disperse, their forms fading into the distance as they returned to their respective lairs scattered across the land of Equestria. However, as they left, the centaur Tirek saw an opportunity. With Alastor seemingly distracted, his eyes narrowed with focus and intent on the demon before him.
Tirek opened his mouth wide, ready to draw in the powerful magic that radiated from Alastor's very being. But before he could even begin to siphon any power, a sickly green light flashed around his neck. In an instant, a glowing collar materialized, its eerie radiance matching the green of Alastor's magic. A heavy chain sprouted from the collar and with a violent jerk, it pulled the weakened Tirek to the ground.
The once-mighty centaur collapsed, his frail legs buckling beneath him as he hit the rocky terrain with a painful thud. A grunt of surprise and anger escaped his lips as he realized the futility of his attempt.
Slowly turning, Alastor's ever-present grin somehow grew wider as he looked down at the prone form of Tirek. Amusement danced in his red eyes as he spoke with crackling static-laced mirth.
"My, my, Lord Tirek," Alastor chuckled. "Did you really think I would be so careless? That I wouldn't anticipate such a... predictable move from you?"
Leaning down closer to Tirek, Alastor's voice dropped to a low, menacing tone. Each word was like a sharp, icy blade cutting into the centaur's soul. "Let me remind you of our arrangement, my equine friend. Your soul belongs to me now. Your power, your very essence, is mine to control." The words sent shivers down Tirek's spine as he realized the true extent of his defeat at the hands of the Radio Demon.
Straightening up, Alastor twirled his microphone staff casually in one hand. His crimson eyes gleamed with a mix of amusement and sadistic pleasure. "I gave you freedom from your cage, but don't mistake that for true liberty. You were merely trading one form of imprisonment for another."
"You think I’ll just allow you to-gak!" Tirek tried to speak up, but was abruptly interrupted when his collar tightened around his neck. He thrashed about, gasping for air as the collar constricted tighter and tighter.
"You don't have a choice in the matter, my horse-legged friend," Alastor chuckled, the sound melodic and chilling at the same time. The static emanating from him seemed louder now, adding an eerie backdrop to his words. "Now...Since I have no use for you at this moment, I'm going to turn you loose. However..."
Alastor's grip shifted and he grabbed hold of one of Tirek's horns. With a cruel smile playing on his lips, he began to squeeze tightly, causing cracks to form along its surface. "If I find out that my entertainment is ruined by your insatiable hunger for power..." Alastor's voice grew darker and more dangerous with each passing moment as he continued to exert pressure on the horn. A loud crack echoed through the air as it began to split under the force.
"I will make you wish I left you in Tartarus," Alastor snarled, his eyes flashing with a terrifying intensity. "Are we clear?"
For the first time in Tirek's life, fear gripped his black heart as he stared into the unhinged eyes of the Radio Demon. He could feel the power and madness emanating from him, and knew that defying Alastor would be a grave mistake.
"...yes, sir," Tirek mumbled, barely able to get the words out.
Alastor released him with a satisfied smirk before gently tapping Tirek's cheek with one finger. "Lovely. Now if you'll excuse me, I must see how much this world has changed."
With a smirk playing on his lips, Alastor turned to face the defeated Tirek. "Do try to behave," he added with false sincerity, a low chuckle punctuating his words.
Stepping away from the humbled creature, Alastor's eyes gleamed with anticipation as they surveyed the transformed landscape before him. The Equestria he remembered had undergone a drastic metamorphosis in his absence.
Where once there were vast fields and lush forests, now stood a sprawling urban jungle. Towering skyscrapers loomed over the tangled streets below, their neon signs casting an eerie glow through the thick smog that hung in the air. The stench of pollution was almost suffocating, mingling with the constant hum of machinery that filled the city.
As Alastor strolled down the cracked sidewalk, he couldn't contain his glee at the sight of this new world. Everywhere he looked, evidence of rampant crime and corruption could be seen. Graffiti covered every surface, proclaiming allegiances to various gangs and criminal organizations. Shady-looking ponies lurked in alleyways, exchanging bits for suspicious packages.
The distant wail of police sirens served as a constant reminder of the chaos that seemed to permeate every aspect of life in this modern Equestria. Billboards advertised the latest in personal security systems and weapons, promising protection in a world where danger lurked around every corner.
"Oh, how delightful!" Alastor exclaimed, his voice crackling with static-laced excitement. "It seems Equestria has developed quite the taste for chaos in my absence. How thoughtful of them to set the stage so perfectly for my return!"
As he walked, ponies scurried out of his way, their eyes wide with fear and awe. Even in this hardened world, there was something about Alastor that set him apart – an aura of danger that radiated from him and commanded respect.
A menacing group of unicorns, their horns glinting with cybernetic modifications, sized up Alastor from across the street. Their leader, a battle-scarred stallion with a fiery red eye, locked his gaze on the demon.
"Hey you! This is Dragon Fang territory. If you want to pass through here, you gotta pay the toll," the leader barked, his mechanical eye whirring as he focused on Alastor.
The Radio Demon's grin stretched impossibly wider. "My my," he chuckled, "it seems the entertainment is eager to begin!" He twirled his microphone staff, a sickly green energy crackling around it. "Well then, gentlemen, shall we dance?"
Alastor's grin widened even more, his eyes sparkling with wicked glee. Clutching his microphone staff tightly, he unleashed a ferocious storm of eldritch energy, the eerie green lightning snaking and swirling around him.
The members of the Dragon Fang gang recoiled in terror, their augmented enhancements no match for the Radio Demon's supernatural powers. Alastor's laughter reverberated through the streets, a haunting melody that sent shivers down their spines.
"I've missed this feeling!" Alastor cackled, his voice blending with the electric chaos he was conducting.
With a flick of his wrist, he summoned a horde of shadowy demons, their razor-sharp claws and jaws rending into the helpless gang members. Blood-curdling screams pierced the air as their flesh was torn to shreds, their cybernetic parts scattered across the ground in a gruesome display.
Alastor watched with twisted satisfaction as the carnage unfolded before him, his eyes gleaming with sadistic pleasure. Twirling his microphone staff once more, he strolled past the mangled bodies with an unadulterated sense of bliss.
"Now...let's see where I can find the info i need," Alastor mused, surveying the aftermath with a devilish grin. "And I'd like some peace.. so"
With a graceful flick of his wrist and a burst of powerful magic, Alastor's imposing form shimmered and transformed. The towering, menacing presence of the Radio Demon melted away, revealing the stunning body of a unicorn stallion. His coat was a deep and vibrant shade of red, shining in the sunlight like polished rubies, while his mane was meticulously groomed and as dark as a starless night sky. Though his clothing remained unchanged, there was an undeniable air of elegance and regality about him now.
"Better" Alastor mused as he looked over himself
As he proudly pranced towards a nearby library, its grand façade standing in stark contrast to the gritty urban landscape surrounding it, Alastor's hooves barely made a sound on the pavement. With a swing of his head and a toss of his mane, his cutie mark - a vintage microphone surrounded by swirling music notes - glinted on his neck, serving as a subtle reminder of his true identity.
Pushing open the heavy doors with ease, Alastor entered the library and was immediately enveloped in the smell of old books and the hushed whispers of knowledge. Making his way towards the history section, he scanned the shelves for intriguing titles before finding a quiet corner to settle into. Placing his cane next to him on the table, he eagerly delved into the books chronicling the past 666 years of Equestrian history.
As he flipped through the pages with growing excitement, his eyes widened at the chaotic events that had unfolded in his absence. "My my," he murmured to himself in a low voice, careful to keep any traces of static from escaping. "It seems our dear Princess Celestia had quite the mental breakdown."
He read with amusement about her transformation into Daybreaker, quietly chuckling at the irony. "From protector to tyrant... how deliciously tragic," he mused to himself, a sly grin hidden behind the book as he continued to devour its contents.
The account of Canterlot's separation from the rest of Equestria immediately seized Alastor's attention. His sharp, calculating eyes gleamed as he hungrily devoured every detail, his mind already whirring with possibilities. The image of the once-grounded city now floating high above the chaotic world below, a symbol of Daybreaker's iron-fisted rule, filled him with a sense of exhilaration.
"A floating city... how delightfully dramatic," Alastor murmured, barely able to contain his glee. "Oh Daybreaker, you've done half my work for me. Dividing Equestria, instilling fear and mistrust... it's almost as if you were preparing the perfect stage for my grand return."
As he continued to pore over the account, Alastor's thoughts raced with the endless possibilities this new world presented. A broken and fragmented society ripe for manipulation, rampant crime running unchecked, and an oppressive ruler reigning from her lofty perch - it was a volatile concoction just waiting for him to light the fuse.
Alastor's disguised form barely contained his bubbling excitement as he thought, "And here I am, the perfect match to set it all ablaze."
As he finished absorbing the wealth of information from the history books, a low chuckle escaped from his throat and built into a full-blown cackle. The sound reverberated through the quiet library, causing other patrons to turn and stare at the seemingly ordinary unicorn with alarm.
Hastily composing himself, Alastor offered a sheepish grin to those around him and spoke in a perfectly normal voice, "My apologies, just read something terribly amusing." With practiced nonchalance, he returned the books to their shelves and made his way out of the library.
Once outside, he quickly ducked into a dark alley and let his disguise melt away. The Radio Demon stood once more in all his terrifying glory, his grin wider than ever.
"Well now," Alastor mused, twirling his cane with one hand before tapping it on the ground three times, each tap echoing with an otherworldly resonance. Green energy crackled around him as he focused his powers and reached out across the distance. His voice carried on waves of chaotic energy straight to the floating city of Canterlot.
He knew his words would find their way to their intended target, no matter how she might try to shield herself. Alastor leaned on his cane, using the microphone on its head as he boomed out in a voice reminiscent of a radio announcer:
"Guess Who?"
The sound of his cackles echoed through the air, sending shivers down the spines of those who heard it. It was a haunting sound, foretelling the chaos and destruction that he was capable of.
“Alastor” Daybreaker’s voice growled menacingly though the microphone. “I’d love to stay and chat…But I’m in the middle of purging your vile corruption from the face of my kingdom.”
In the dim light of the alley, Alastor's grin widened, revealing sharp teeth that gleamed in the sun’s light. His dark, piercing eyes seemed to glow with an otherworldly energy as he spoke.
"My dear Daybreaker," his voice dripped with sarcasm, "have you forgotten? I've been sealed away in the depths of Tartarus for six hundred and sixty-six years. How could I possibly have been corrupting your precious kingdom?"
There was a moment of stunned silence from the other end of the magical connection. When Daybreaker's voice returned, it was laced with confusion and a hint of disbelief.
"Impossible," she hissed, her words crackling with flames. "I've seen you. I've heard reports of your activities. You've been a thorn in my side for centuries!"
Alastor's laughter echoed through the connection, a discordant mix of amusement and static. "Oh, my dear sun tyrant, it seems you've been chasing shadows. I assure you, I've been quite thoroughly imprisoned until just recently. Whatever you think you've seen or heard... well, it simply wasn't me."
He twirled his cane with practiced ease, enjoying the heavy confusion and growing anger coming from Daybreaker. "It appears someone has been playing quite the long game, using my fearsome reputation to their advantage. How delightfully devious! I must admit, I'm rather flattered."
Alastor leaned closer to his microphone, his voice dropping to a near whisper. "But now, my dear Daybreaker, the real Radio Demon has returned. And I promise you, the chaos you've experienced so far is nothing compared to what I have in store for Equestria." His words were filled with a sinister glee, and it was clear that he relished the thought of causing even more mayhem and destruction.
Alastor heard the alicorn let out a loud scream of anger and frustration, but her next words were not directed at him.
"GO DOWN THERE IMMEDIATELY AND SLAUGHTER EVERY OUNCE OF HIS PRESENCE. LEAVE NO TRACE BEHIND, OR YOU WILL FACE THE FULL FORCE OF MY WRATH, DAYBREAKER!" Her orders were like thunder, echoing through their magical connection with an intense ferocity that seemed to shake the very air.
Just as quickly as it began, the connection between Alastor and Daybreaker was abruptly severed. And as he grinned in response to her outburst, Alastor spun his cane once more, chuckling to himself as he pondered the implications of Daybreaker's command.
With a malicious grin, Alastor gleefully began his broadcast, his voice crackling with static. "My, my," he exclaimed, "it seems our tyrant of a sun has made a rash decision. How delightful this chaos will be!"
His eyes shone with excitement as he watched Daybreaker's forces darken the sky. The air was filled with the sound of beating wings and screeching eagles descending upon the city.
Golden-armored Pegasus Knights swooped down from the clouds, their weapons at the ready and faces set in determination. Meanwhile, Unicorn Knights leaped from chariots pulled by massive eagles, their horns already glowing with powerful magic.
As soon as their hooves touched the ground, chaos erupted. The knights launched a relentless assault on buildings, vehicles, and innocent civilians alike. Magic blasts tore through storefronts while armored pegasi crashed through windows and doors.
Amidst all this destruction, terrified screams could be heard as ponies ran for cover, desperately trying to escape the unexpected attack. The cacophony of shattering glass, crumbling concrete, and magical explosions created a chaotic symphony of destruction.
In the midst of chaos, Alastor's eyes gleamed with wicked glee. Unable to contain himself any longer, he let out a burst of laughter that blended seamlessly with the screams and destruction surrounding him.
"Brilliant!" he exclaimed, his voice was drowned out by the chaos. "Truly a magnificent display of uncontrolled aggression! Daybreaker, my dear, you have truly outdone yourself this time!"
As terrified ponies rushed past him, Alastor nonchalantly stepped aside, never taking his eyes off the unfolding chaos. His grin stretched even wider as he watched a Unicorn Knight blast apart parked vehicles, sending shrapnel flying in all directions.
"And to think," Alastor mused to himself, "all of this delightful destruction, and I hardly had to lift a finger. Sometimes, the best entertainment is simply sitting back and watching others destroy themselves."
He continued to laugh, reveling in the destruction around him as the city descended further into mayhem and ruin.
The Radio Demon hummed a tune that seemed to resonate with the pandemonium he had orchestrated so masterfully. Each note of his melody appeared to direct the chaos, guiding it towards maximum devastation. Ponies ran in every direction, their once peaceful lives shattered by the misguided rage of their ruler.
Alastor's amusement grew darker as he watched Daybreaker's forces wreak havoc, believing they were cleansing their city of his influence. He strolled through the streets like a conductor of an orchestra performing a symphony of anarchy with each step he took.
With a flick of his cane, Alastor sent a ripple of magic cascading towards a group of approaching Knights. The spell was subtle, a whisper on the wind, but its effects were catastrophic. It fed their fear, turning it into paranoia. Suddenly, the Knights saw enemies everywhere - in every shadow, behind every shattered window pane.
They turned on one another, their attacks more ferocious now that they believed they faced the demon they had been sent to banish. The clashing of metal rang out as friend faced friend, their sense of camaraderie lost in the madness Alastor had woven.
"Such wonderful discord," Alastor crooned, twirling his cane betweenhis fingers. "A touch of paranoia goes a long way."
His laughter was lost amidst the screams and clangs of battle, just another layer in the chaotic symphony around him. Every once in a while, he would reach out with his magic, plucking at the threads of this fray and that, like a puppeteer ensuring each marionette danced to his tune.
Perched atop a crumbling building, Alastor glared down at the chaos he had carefully orchestrated. His eyes gleamed with malicious glee as he surveyed the destruction below. The city was a canvas of fear and violence, painted with broad strokes that only he could control.
"Oh, what a magnificent performance!" he exclaimed to no one in particular, his voice crackling with static-laced excitement. "But as with all great shows, this act must come to an end."
With a tap of his cane, Alastor sent out a pulse of magic that rippled through the air. It was subtle yet powerful, immediately slowing the fighting and calming the screaming. An eerie stillness settled over the ravaged streets as if under the spell of his wicked influence.
Alastor's grin widened impossibly as he watched the ponies below shake off their confusion and paranoia. They looked around at the devastation they had caused, horror dawning on their faces as they realized the true extent of their actions.
"And now, my dear audience, we leave them to marinate in the delicious stew of guilt and recrimination," Alastor mused, his eyes spinning like radio dials with delight. "After all, the best chaos is the kind that lingers long after the initial explosion ."
Alastor let out a sinister chuckle that reverberated across the destroyed cityscape before snapping his fingers. Those caught in his dark magic began to swell and twist, their bodies contorting grotesquely until they burst open like overripe fruit. The expressions of agony etched onto their faces were the only traces left behind.
One by one, each pony caught in Alastor's wicked spell exploded like an overfilled water balloon, drenching the streets in a gory and magical display. The once proud Knights of Daybreaker were now reduced to nothing more than scattered mist, drifting aimlessly through the now eerily quiet city.
The damage caused by Alastor's chaos was not just physical, but psychological as well. The survivors huddled together, trembling and scarred by the experience of being used as pawns by a ruthless mastermind.
With a final laugh, Alastor ended his broadcast and disappeared with a crackle of static. As night fell, the fires continued to burn, casting long shadows over the ruined streets. The true extent of the day's events had yet to be fully comprehended, and the seeds of discord planted by Alastor would continue to grow, promising even greater destruction in the days ahead.
Author's Note
And there we have it Folks! I have finally finished the past section of Stay Tuned. Now....Now we move on to the Present day. Meaning I Must rewrite the next two chapters make some changes and maybe just trash a few parts
Now for Characters changes. obviously I'll be replacing Celestia With Daybreaker, But I'll also be switching Princess Twi with regular unicorn Twilight Sparkle. Spike and Smolder will still be her attendants/Assistants...whatever you want to call them.
I will be keeping Fluttershy Singing Poison. but beyond that....I'm not sure
Stay Tuned
Chapter 11: Radio Meets Butterfly
In the grand, opulent library of Canterlot Castle, Twilight Sparkle, the personal protégé of Daybreaker Sun, sat alone at a large wooden desk. Her slender fingers gently turned the yellowed pages of an ancient tome titled "The Celestial Chronicles: A History of Canterlot." The air was heavy with the musty scent of old books and the soft glow of magical candles lit her way.
As her eyes scanned the text, Twilight found herself completely engrossed in the tumultuous history of her home:
In the early days of Equestria, a malevolent entity known as Alastor, infamous for his moniker as the Radio Demon, suddenly appeared in our world. His very presence brought about corruption and despair, tainting all who came near him.
The appearance of this demon sparked great strife and chaos across the land. It was during this tumultuous time that Princess Luna, feeling overlooked and unappreciated by her sister, made a fateful deal with the demon and transformed into the fearsome Nightmare Moon. Consumed by jealousy and resentment, she attempted to plunge the world into eternal darkness.
It was only through the power of six mystical artifacts known as the Elements of Harmony that the Princess was able to be defeated and sealed away on the moon, bringing a temporary peace back to Equestria.
However, even with Nightmare Moon's defeat, the threat of Alastor's corruption remained. Daybreaker Sun had to make the difficult decision to separate Canterlot from the rest of Equestria. Those already corrupted by the demon's influence were banished to distant lands, leaving behind only two pure souls: Adam Apple, a unicorn colt with a shimmering white coat and piercing blue eyes, and Eve Blossom, an earth pony filly with a soft brown mane and bright green eyes. These two became the first inhabitants of what would come to be known as the Eden of Canterlot - a paradise untouched by Alastor's corruption.
Daybreaker, the valiant ruler of Canterlot, was determined to contain and eradicate the spreading corruption that threatened her kingdom. To achieve this daunting task, she formed the Knights of the Sun - a fiercely loyal group of warriors charged with a grim yet necessary duty: executing those who showed signs of falling under Alastor's dark influence. It was a harsh measure, but one deemed essential for the survival of Canterlot and its inhabitants.
Twilight's brow furrowed as she read from an ancient tome, her mind racing with questions about the history of her beloved home. The weight of this knowledge settled heavily upon her shoulders, and she couldn't help but wonder how much of Equestria's current state could be traced back to these fateful events.
“Executions…” Twilight whispered to herself, closing the ancient tome with a shiver running down her spine. “No matter how many times I hear about it…It still doesn't sit right with me. Makes my stomach turn.”
She took a deep breath, trying to calm the rising unease within her. The faint scent of ancient paper mixed with the mustiness of the grand library filled her senses. This revered place, with its towering ceilings and endless shelves brimming with knowledge, was always her sanctuary. But even here, surrounded by quiet tomes and scrolls, she couldn't escape the shadows of history looming over her thoughts.
Glancing around, Twilight half-expected Daybreaker herself to appear between the rows of books, offering words of wisdom or reassurance. But all she had for company were the silent volumes and manuscripts lining the shelves in the vast library.
With determination fueling her steps, Twilight rose from her seat at the reading table. She couldn't simply accept this dark slice of history as unchangeable fact. There had to be another way to combat corruption without resorting to such extreme measures
The rhythmic clip clop of Twilight's hooves reverberated through the deserted halls of the palace as she made her way to Daybreaker's throne room. Her mind raced with arguments and pleas, each step bringing her closer to a confrontation she both dreaded and knew was necessary.
As she approached the ornate doors of the throne room, the two guards standing watch stiffened at attention. With a slight nod from Twilight, they pushed open the heavy doors, revealing the opulent chamber within.
Daybreaker sat upon her throne of solid gold, her fiery mane and tail flickering with an otherworldly energy. The entire room seemed to pulsate with her power, creating an almost tangible heat in the air. As Twilight entered, Daybreaker's piercing gaze locked on her prized student.
"Ah, Twilight Sparkle," Daybreaker's voice crackled like flames. "What brings you to my throne room at this hour?"
Twilight swallowed hard, steeling herself for what was to come. "Your Majesty," she began, her voice steady despite her inner turmoil, "I have been studying our history and... I have concerns about the executions."
Daybreaker's eyes narrowed, the flames in her mane intensifying. "The executions are necessary, Twilight. You know this. They protect our citizens from Alastor's corruption."
"But Your Majesty," Twilight pressed on, "surely there must be another way. These are not just strangers or enemies, they are our very own subjects. Our friends and neighbors. Executing them... it just doesn't sit right with me."
"Sit right? My dear student, we are not concerned with what 'feels right.' We are concerned with survival.” With a sudden movement, Daybreaker rose from her throne, towering over Twilight with an imposing presence. “The corruption spreads like a deadly plague, and we must cut it out before it consumes us all."
Twilight stood tall and resolute, her stance unyielding even as the heat in the room seemed to intensify. "But what if we are wrong? What if there is a way to prevent the corruption? By executing these ponies, we may be sacrificing valuable information, or worse, innocent lives!"
For a moment, Daybreaker's piercing gaze narrowed in contemplation, the flickering flames of her mane casting dancing shadows across the room.
"Twilight Sparkle," she spoke at last, her voice softening with a hint of admiration, "you are my most trusted student because you dare to question, to seek out truths that others may shy away from. I deeply respect that."
Descending the steps of her throne with an almost divine authority, Daybreaker came to a stop before Twilight. Leaning in close, she drew Twilight's gaze into her own molten eyes.
"However," she continued, her tone growing firm once more, "understand that my decisions are rooted in centuries of rulership. It is a necessary evil as I have witnessed firsthand the insidious and corrupting influence of Alastor. It is deadly."
Twilight felt her heart sink. She had held onto a glimmer of hope that she could sway Daybreaker's resolve, but the alicorn's conviction was unbreakable.
"Is there truly no other way?" Twilight asked, her voice barely above a whisper.
Daybreaker's expression hardened once more. "No, Twilight. This is the only way to ensure our survival. Now, I suggest you return to your studies and leave matters of state to those who understand the weight of such decisions."
With a heavy heart, Twilight bowed her head and turned to leave. Just as she reached the doors, Daybreaker's voice called out once more.
"Twilight? Remember, questioning authority can be dangerous. Be cautious where such thoughts might lead you."
The warning hung heavily in the air as Twilight left the throne room, her mind reeling and her heart heavy with the knowledge that the executions would continue, despite her desperate pleas. As she stepped out into the grand hallway, her thoughts swirled like a tempest, turbulent and unrelenting.
A resounding thud echoed through the halls as the towering doors shut behind her, sealing off the throne room and its grim inhabitants. As she walked away, Twilight couldn't rid herself of the image of Daybreaker's fiery eyes burning into her soul, nor could she shake off the weight of her words.
With each step, the chill of isolation crept further into her bones. She was acutely aware that she had treaded dangerously close to insubordination, yet her conscience remained defiant against the idea of such merciless justice.
Silence enveloped the castle as Twilight made her way to her private chambers. The world outside seemed to hold its breath, as if Equestria itself was waiting for something to shatter the stillness of this uneasy peace under Daybreaker Sun's iron fist.
But before reaching her destination, Twilight found herself face to face with her older brother, Shining Armor - Captain of the Knights of the Sun. His once-gleaming golden armor now splattered with fresh blood, a grim testament to the day's dark deeds. Despite his proud and confident smile, there was a hint of strain in his voice as he greeted his sister.
"Twilight," he said, his tone betraying the weight of his duty. "I didn't expect to see you until later."
Twilight's gaze lingered on the crimson stains marring his armor. Her voice choked with emotion as she asked him, "Shining Armor... how can you bear it?"
"With pride," he replied unabashedly. "And each day I get closer to vanquishing the Radio Demon." The unicorn knight drew his sword, its blade bearing scars from countless battles with Alastor. "This blade of mine has wounded him every year... and someday, it will strike the final blow."
Twilight's eyes widened in disbelief, her heart sinking as she listened to her brother's words. The pride in his voice, the lack of remorse - it all felt like a betrayal to her. Shining Armor noticed the horrified look in Twilight’s eyes, and for a moment, the triumph in his expression wavered. He slid the sword back into its sheath with a measured movement, his gaze softening like a warm summer breeze.
"Twilight," he said, his voice now gentle and pleading, "I do what I must to protect Equestria. You know the threat we face—the chaos Alastor could unleash upon our world."
Her mind reeled with conflicting emotions as she gazed at her brother, struggling to understand his cold justification for taking lives. She spoke softly, her voice trembling with emotion, unable to contain the question that had been burning inside her.
"Shining," she said softly, "do you ever regret it? The lives you've taken, the families you've torn apart... doesn't it haunt you?"
At first, Shining Armor's expression softened even more, but as her words sank in, it hardened again. His eyes became cold and unyielding, filled with resolve and duty.
"Regret? Twilight, I've done nothing to show regret or remorse for," he said sternly. "Every life I take is a life that can no longer spread Alastor's corruption. Every family torn apart is a family saved from his influence. This is our duty, our burden to bear for the greater good of Equestria."
Something inside Twilight snapped. The weight of everything she had learned - the harsh reality of the executions - and now her brother's callousness - it was too much to bear.
"How dare you!" she shouted, her voice echoing through the hallway. "These are ponies, Shining! Living, breathing ponies with hopes and dreams and families! You're not saving Equestria, you're destroying it! You're no hero - you're just another tool of Daybreaker's tyranny!"
Without waiting for a response, Twilight turned and stormed away, her hooves pounding on the marble floors as she made her way through the castle corridors. Her vision was blurred by unshed tears, and she couldn't stop them from falling as she ran to the sanctuary of her private study, needing to escape the pain and turmoil within her heart.
With a burst of energy, Twilight burst through the door and into the library, her heart racing with worry. Her friends Spike and Smolder looked up from their task of organizing books, surprise evident on their faces at Twilight's sudden entrance.
"Twilight?" Spike's voice was filled with concern as he stepped towards his friend. "What's wrong?"
Twilight collapsed against the door, her body trembling as she struggled to catch her breath. The tears that she had been holding back finally broke free, streaming down her flushed cheeks.
"Everything," she whispered, her voice thick with emotion. "Everything is wrong, Spike. The executions, Daybreaker, my brother... It's all falling apart, and I don't know how to fix it."
Smolder's bright blue eyes widened in concern as she joined Spike in comforting their friend. As they embraced Twilight and offered words of support, her mind raced with the gravity of the situation she found herself in. She knew that speaking out against Daybreaker and the brutal executions was dangerous, but she also knew that she couldn't stand by and do nothing. Something needed to change, and with a mixture of fear and determination, Twilight realized that it might have to start with her.
“Spike, Smolder…We need to leave,” Twilight said with newfound resolve, wiping away her tears with determination. “We're packing our bags and getting out of Canterlot.”
Spike and Smolder exchanged surprised looks before turning back to Twilight.
"Leaving?" Spike asked incredulously, his usually optimistic expression replaced with confusion and concern. "Why? Where are we going?"
Twilight took a deep breath, her eyes scanning the room as she formulated a plan. "We're heading down to Equestria." Her voice held a determined edge as she continued. "I need to find proof that there are still good and just ponies out there, not corrupted by the Radio Demon’s presence.”
In the peaceful town of Ponyville, most of the citizens were fast asleep, their quiet breaths lulling them into dreamland. However, even under the watchful eye of the moon, evil never sleeps. As the night stretched on, a lone figure moved stealthily through the streets. Her name was Fluttershy, a Pegasus mare with long pink hair pulled back into a neat ponytail. The normally bright aqua blue of her eyes had dulled to a muted gray, rimmed with a tell-tale redness from sleepless nights. A dark bruise marred one cheekbone, and it was clear that she had seen better days. Despite this, she still possessed an ethereal beauty that shone through even in the dim light. Her disheveled attire consisted of a pale pink tube top and a matching short skirt, both slightly wrinkled from her restless movements. Fishnet stockings hugged her slender legs and delicate hooves, while black pumps clicked softly against the pavement as she walked. A pair of white panties adorned with a dainty butterfly motif hung loosely from her left ankle, adding another touch of shame to her already disheveled appearance.
Fluttershy was on the brink of a mental breakdown. She no longer wanted to be a part of this life and desperately yearned for an escape. Unfortunately, her employer, Filthy Rich, was not inclined to let such a valuable pony go.
She quickly wiped away any traces of the white powder from her nose before pulling out her phone and plugging in her earbuds. Scrolling through her playlist, she searched for a song that could offer her a temporary respite from reality.
Completely immersed in the melody, Fluttershy's vocals melded perfectly with the music.
"I'm not above love to cash in" Fluttershy sang, her tone full of sorrow and longing as she passed under a flickering streetlight. "Another lover underneath those flashin' lights"
"Another one of those ruthless nights Yeah, yeah, yeah" Fluttershy sang with emotion fueling her words
"I shoulda guessed that this would happen" she sang, her voice quivering with regret and anger. "I shoulda known it when I looked in your red-hot eyes, Spewin' all your red-hot lies Yeah, yeah, yeah"
"What's the worst part of this hell? I can only blame myself" Tears streamed down Fluttershy's face as she belted out the chorus, her voice trembling with pain. "Cause I know you're poison, you're feedin' me poison"
"Addicted to this feelin', I can't help but swallow up your poison" Fluttershy's voice grew stronger with each verse, her despair shining through the tears. "I made my choice, and every night, I'm livin' like there's no tomorrow, Wooh-oh, wooh-oh"
With each note, Fluttershy's heart shattered a little more as she poured out her soul in song. "Any way you want me, baby, that's the way you got me," she sang through cracked vocals and a heavy heart. "I'll be yours."
"My story's gonna end with me dead from your poison" Her words are haunted by pain and despair as she continues, her voice growing stronger with each verse.
"I got so good at bein' untrue" Her voice soon was soft and delicate, the lyrics weaving through the night air like a gentle breeze. "I got so good at tellin' you what you wanna hear"
"I disassociate, disappear yeah, yeah, yeah" Fluttershy sang. "So far beyond difficult to resist another gulp"
"Yeah, I know it's poison, you're feedin' me poison" As her emotions boiled over, Fluttershy's voice rose to a scream. "I'm chokin' from the taste and I can't help but swallow up your poison"
"I made my choice, and every night, I'm wasted like there's no tomorrow wooh-oh, wooh-oh" With each word, Fluttershy's grip on reality seemed to slip further away. "Any way you want me, baby, that's the way you got me"
"I'll be yours" She sang as she approached her cottage and her animals and pets looked at her with concern, Fluttershy's heartbreaking ballad reached its climax. "My story's gonna end with me dead from your poison"
"Poison..." Her voice wavered as she struggled to continue. "I'm drownin' in poison... I'm fillin' up my glass, but it's always hollow full of poison... I'm sick of the poison." She dropped to her knees, her sobs wracking her body as she cried out in anguish. "Wish I had somethin' to live for tomorrow."
With a slow movement, she lifted her head to survey the scene before her. Her animal friends emerged from the lush foliage surrounding the cottage, their steps hesitant and concerned. Angel Bunny hopped forward first, his small nose twitching as he nuzzled Fluttershy's hand with affection. A family of squirrels chittered softly as they scampered closer, their bushy tails swishing with worry. Birds fluttered down from nearby trees, perching on branches and the cottage's fence, their melodious tweets a gentle inquiry into Fluttershy's wellbeing.
Even Harry the bear lumbered out of the nearby woods, his usually gruff demeanor softened by concern for the kind pegasus who had always treated him with such care. Their eyes met briefly, a silent understanding passing between them.
Fluttershy's lip quivered as she looked at the gathering of creatures around her. These animals, whom she had cared for and nurtured, now rallied around her in her moment of distress. Their unwavering support and unconditional love shone clearly in their eyes.
"Oh, my sweet friends," Fluttershy whispered, her voice hoarse from crying. She reached out, gently stroking Angel's head. "I'm sorry you have to see me like this."
The animals moved closer, offering their own form of comfort. A warm body pressed against her side as a deer lay down next to her, while small woodland creatures nestled in her lap. The air filled with soft coos, chirps, and purrs as her animal family surrounded her with their presence.
But then something changed. A shift in the atmosphere caused Fluttershy's animal friends to tense up and back away slowly. Fear flashed in their wide eyes as they hesitantly retreated from her.
Confused by this sudden change in behavior, Fluttershy furrowed her brow. "What's wrong, my little ones?" she asked, her voice barely above a whisper. Her heart clenched with worry as she searched for the source of their distress.
As she retreated from the sounds of her animal companions' soft whimpers, Fluttershy gradually became aware of another noise - a slow, deliberate clapping. She reached up and took off her earbuds, letting them hang around her neck.
In the eerie silence that followed, each clap sent shivers down her spine, as if counting down to something ominous. With trepidation, she turned to look behind her. And there he was - the tall, slender figure she had only heard about in frightening tales: the Radio Demon himself.
His red eyes gleamed in the darkness, fixed upon her with an unsettling intensity. His ever-present grin seemed to widen as their gazes met, revealing sharp teeth glinting in the moonlight.
The very air around him seemed to distort and crackle with static as he continued his slow applause. Fluttershy felt rooted to the spot, overcome with fear.
“My, my, my,” Alastor's lilting voice dripped with amusement. “Never before have I heard such a soul-stirring performance on these otherwise dull streets. It's a rare treat to encounter a voice that sings not just with its chords, but with its very essence.”
Fluttershy's eyes widened as she recognized the Demon's voice. She had known it since she was young - every day of her life she had heard that same twist of radio-static-filled tone on the airwaves.
“You...you're...” Her words caught in her throat.
She had heard of Alastor, the infamous Radio Demon whose whispers could be heard by innocent listeners through their radios. But to come face-to-face with him here, in the flesh, was a terror beyond anything she could have imagined.
“The Radio Demon, “The Demon approached before extending his hand to the mare. “Alastor, pleasure to be meeting you, sweetheart, Quite the pleasure”
Fluttershy hesitated, her gaze flickering between Alastor's outstretched hand and the retreating forms of her beloved animal friends. She knew the stories, the warnings, and the myths that clung to this enigmatic being like cobwebs. Her stomach churned with fear and uncertainty as she struggled to find the courage to speak.
"Are you...here to kill me?" Fluttershy finally managed to whisper, her voice barely audible over the beating of her own heart.
"What do you think?" Alastor responded with a chilling chuckle, his voice like an eerie melody that sent shivers down her spine.
With a trembling hand, she reached for the outstretched hand of the demon before her. The icy touch sent shivers down her spine, but she held on, determined to see this through. Pressing his cold palm against her neck, she felt a surge of bravery coursing through her as she finally faced the decision that had been haunting her for so long.
"Please...please end my suffering and kill me!" Her voice cracked with emotion as tears streamed down her face, a mixture of fear and relief washing over her at once. For too long, she had been trapped in a cycle of pain and despair, unable to break free. But now, in this moment, she could feel a glimmer of hope and joy, something she hadn't experienced in what felt like an eternity.
"I would rather die than continue drinking the poison that life keeps pouring into my soul," she whispered, her words filled with raw honesty and desperation.
Alastor was taken aback by this unexpected request. He was so used to hearing cries and screams for mercy and agony, but rarely had anyone offered themselves so willingly to the jaws of the abyss without a fight or final plea for life. His usually unflappable grin faltered for a moment, replaced by a look of genuine surprise. It was not often that a mortal showed such steadfast resolve in the face of death.
"Well, color me surprised," Alastor mused, his grin returning as sharp and unsettling as ever. "And I'm not one to be easily surprised."
"I don't understand..." she whispered, her voice fragile like the wings of a butterfly.
The Radio Demon tilted his head curiously, his smile never wavering as he regarded Fluttershy. His fingers caressed her neck, feeling the pulse of life beneath it—a rhythm he'd heard countless times in countless others, yet now it seemed to sing a sad, solitary tune.
"You are quite the conundrum, my dear," Alastor mused aloud. "So desperate to escape your poison, you would drink death as if it were a sweet nectar."
Fluttershy's eyes remained locked onto Alastor's, searching for some hint of mercy or perhaps malice; but all she found was the endless enigma that was this demon.
Alastor looked into the eyes of the mare and asked, "What is it that you desire?"
Fluttershy's throat felt tight as she tried to answer. "I...I'm not sure," she stammered.
"Come on now," Alastor prodded with a sinister grin. "Before you meet your end, ask for anything and I will make it a reality."
Her mind raced, trying to think of something she truly wanted before her life was taken from her. Years of sadness and hurt weighed heavily on her heart, making it hard to even imagine having any desires or hopes left. But then, a distant dream emerged from the depths of her soul, fragile and delicate like the first signs of spring after a brutal winter.
"Love," Fluttershy finally spoke, finding courage in facing death. "I want to experience true love - someone who genuinely cares for me, untainted by lust or deceit." She looked Alastor in the eye, determined to hold onto this one last wish before he took her away forever.
The words hung in the air, fragile and raw, each syllable a plea from the depths of Fluttershy's soul. Her eyes shone with unshed tears, her vulnerability laid bare in front of this creature of darkness.
Alastor’s smile seemed to soften, just a fraction, as he considered her request. The silence stretched between them, filled with the electric tension of unspoken thoughts and the weight of Fluttershy's longing.
"To desire love...that is an uncommon wish," Alastor pondered aloud as he helped the mare stand up. "Most individuals crave for wealth or authority, revenge or notoriety. But love...that is a rare and exquisite delicacy."
He leaned in closer, his grin stretching to an almost impossible size. "Alright then, my dear," he said in a smooth voice, using his finger to lift the mare's chin so she could look at him. "I promise that before I end your life, you will experience true love - unconditional and pure. However," his smile took on a sinister edge, "in the spirit of fair exchange, I must ask for something in return."
Fluttershy's heart raced, fear creeping back into her chest. She had heard tales of deals made with the Radio Demons, deals that often ended in tragedy for those who were not cautious with their words.
"What...what do you want from me?" she asked hesitantly, her voice barely above a whisper.
Alastor's eyes glimmered mischievously as he chose his next words carefully. "A song," he declared with finality. "Your voice is enchanting, my dear. I desire a melody - a performance from your very soul, a song that will be remembered for ages to come."
"A song?" Fluttershy repeated, confusion evident in her voice.
"Yes," Alastor confirmed, taking a step back. "One day, I will claim a song sung by that angelic voice of yours. A song meant only for me, from the depths of your heart, whenever I choose to collect. And until that day arrives, your wish shall be granted."
He extended his hand once more, palm open and inviting for a pact.
"Do we have a deal?"
Fluttershy held her breath, her mind whirling with the weight of the offer in front of her. The terms were straightforward, but the repercussions seemed daunting. She took a moment to gather her thoughts before coming to a decision. Memories of quiet evenings spent singing to her animal companions, melodies that were hers and hers alone, flooded her mind as she considered what she could give in return.
With resolve, she reached out and placed her trembling hand into Alastor's waiting palm. "Yes," she said firmly, despite the fear coursing through her body. "We have a deal."
Alastor's smile widened impossibly as he clasped her hand. A faint green glow surrounded their joined hands, silently sealing their agreement - no words necessary for the magic to take effect.
The glow faded, and Alastor released Fluttershy's hand. She pulled her limb back slowly, almost as if she was expecting to see some mark of their pact etched onto her skin. But there was nothing - just the same soft, unblemished fur as before. She looked up at Alastor with a mix of determination and fear in her eyes.
"Very well then," he announced with his usual dramatic flair. "Tomorrow, we will embark on your journey towards true love."
With a snap of his fingers, Fluttershy fell into a deep sleep, surrounded by a dark cocoon that transported her away from the world of wakefulness. The Radio Demon caught her before she could hit the ground.
As he watched the sleeping mare, a rare moment of contemplation shadowed Alastor's usually smirking face. He had seen every kind of desperation and fear, but Fluttershy's pure longing for love was different - it intrigued him.
"An interesting start to an unusual finale," he muttered to himself as he carried Fluttershy back to her home.
Author's Note
I hope each and every one of your guys enjoy the newest chapter. I'll admit....it's a little darker compared to it's original version.
Now I'm going to answer a question or two
KnightOfZaku
I so can't wait to see both Luna and the Pillars reactions when they learn what Equestria has become in their long absence.
Also, is Alastor searching for Niffty or is he just waiting for her to find him?
Alastor is under the belief that Niffty is looking for him and has no idea of her...condition..but don't worry we will reunite with out beloved like ball of stabby death
nightshroud96
Seeing now we will be back in the present, kind of wonder what led Spike and Smolder to end up in Twilight's care?
Are Spike and Smolder siblings or could become lovers?
To answer your Question. Me and my Co-writer decided Lovers but not right now
Sorry MadhatterZack
Stay Tuned Folks
Chapter 12: Hard Lessons, New Chances
Author's Note
Fair Warning.
This chapter has a scene involving Fluttershy "On the Job" Drug use, and Impregnation
as well as a emotional breakdown from the mare
You have been warned
Chapter 12: Hard Lessons, New Chances
As sunlight filtered through the window of her rustic cottage, Fluttershy slowly woke from her slumber. Her mind was still foggy from a night filled with unsettling dreams. Sitting up in bed, she took a moment to survey her room, taking comfort in its familiar surroundings. Her discarded clothes from the previous night lay on the floor, reminding her that it was all just a dream.
"I guess it was all a dream," Fluttershy murmured to herself with a tinge of sadness, her voice still heavy with sleep.
With a soft sigh, she got out of bed and felt the cool wooden floor beneath her hooves as she made her way to the window. The serene sounds of the Everfree Forest greeted her, its trees gently swaying in the morning breeze. A chorus of birdsong filled the air, bringing a sense of calmness over Fluttershy.
Turning away from the window, she began her usual morning routine. First, she tidied up her small room and placed her clothes into a wicker basket for laundry later. Then, she brushed out her mane and tail until they were soft and beautiful once again.
After taking care of her appearance, Fluttershy put on a simple dress that complemented her light-yellow coat. With everything in order, she headed to the kitchen to prepare a modest breakfast.
However, Fluttershy's throat tightened as she stood frozen in the doorway, her eyes wide with disbelief and her breath caught in her chest. The Radio Demon, Alastor, sat casually at her kitchen table, a delicate teacup held gracefully in his clawed hand. His ever-present grin seemed to stretch impossibly wider as he regarded her with amusement and intrigue.
"Ah, good morning my dear," Alastor greeted her warmly, taking an elegant sip from his tea. "Did you sleep well?"
For a moment, the only sound in the cozy cottage was the gentle clinking of china as Alastor set his cup back onto its saucer. Fluttershy's mind raced, memories of the previous night flooding back—memories she had dismissed as nothing more than an elaborate dream.
Finally finding her voice, though it came out as little more than a whisper, Fluttershy spoke up. "Last night wasn't a dream," she said firmly, her words hanging in the air between them.
Alastor's eyes gleamed with amusement and admiration for the shy pony before him, his radio-static voice filling the kitchen as he replied, "Indeed it wasn't, my dear! I must say, you're quite the gracious host, even in your sleep-addled state."
Feeling a mix of curiosity and nerves coursing through her body, Fluttershy couldn't help but ask the question that had been on her mind since she first saw him sitting there. "Um... What are you doing here?" she asked tentatively.
"Currently I am enjoying a cup of morning tea, my dear," Alastor answered smoothly. He gestured to the neatly arranged tins of tea leaves on the shelf and added with genuine appreciation, "And may I compliment you on the splendid selection of herbs? The chamomile is especially calming."
Fluttershy blinked, her heart pounding in her chest. “You...you made yourself tea?” she stammered, still trying to comprehend the situation.
“Of course! I wouldn't dream of imposing without at least making myself somewhat useful,” Alastor quipped with a flash of his sharp teeth. “Besides, it gave me the chance to admire your quaint little abode. It's quite...cozy.”
Swallowing her unease, Fluttershy carefully approached the table. “Mr. Alastor,” she began, trying to maintain her composure despite the surreal turn of events. “While I appreciate your...um, visit, may I ask why you are here?”
Alastor reclined in his luxurious chair, a wicked grin permanently etched on his face as he watched her approach. "Have you forgotten our Deal?" he asked, his voice dripping with amusement.
“The deal,” Fluttershy repeated the words softly, as if they were foreign to her. The memories of last night's events were slowly rushing back to her now. "Yes, I remember...but I didn't expect to see you here," she admitted.
Alastor chuckled, the sound sending a shiver down Fluttershy's spine. "My dear Fluttershy, when one makes a Deal with me, they should always expect the unexpected. I am here to ensure that our bargain is fulfilled on both sides."
"And what exactly does that mean?" Fluttershy inquired cautiously.
"You had asked to experience true love before I take your life, yet you still crave death," Alastor replied slyly. "I will grant you the death you desire, but at the same time, I will remain here to curb your suicidal tendencies."
"I-I'm not..." Fluttershy started before being interrupted by Alastor's booming laughter.
"Those scars on your wrist tell a different story," he pointed out with a wide, toothy grin.
Fluttershy's cheeks flushed a deep shade of crimson, and she instinctively moved her hands behind her back. She felt completely exposed and vulnerable under Alastor's penetrating gaze. Her darkest secrets and moments laid bare before a being who could snuff out her life as easily as blowing out a candle. Yet, she had willingly sought out this twisted form of salvation through their Deal.
"I...I understand," she managed to say, her voice barely above a whisper. "You're here to...to keep me safe from myself until...until it's time."
"Indeed!" Alastor exclaimed, clapping his hands together with delight. "You catch on quick! It’s like a game of cat and mouse, my dear. Only in this case, the cat has no intention of letting the mouse escape until the very end. And rest assured, when that time comes, I shall fulfill my end of the bargain with utmost precision."
Fluttershy nodded silently, feeling an odd sense of comfort in the presence of the Demon. Even though she knew there was no escaping her agreement with Alastor, a powerful part of her didn't want to. The promise of feeling true love, even for a brief moment before her inevitable demise, was both terrifying and exhilarating.
"Then, if you're to stay..." Fluttershy hesitated, looking up at Alastor with uncertain eyes. "Do you think you could help me…Feed my animals?”
Alastor drummed his long fingers against the wooden table, the sound echoing through the room. A playful light danced in his crimson eyes as he considered her request. “Such a menial task for someone of my talents," he mused aloud, "but I suppose it could be quite... entertaining to dabble in the mundane."
A relieved smile flickered on Fluttershy's face, her fears momentarily assuaged by Alastor's agreement. "Thank you, Mr. Alastor" she said with genuine gratitude.
He stood up from his chair with a flourish, his slender frame seeming to both tower and slink at the same time; a walking paradox that commanded attention even in the sunlit simplicity of Fluttershy's kitchen.
“You have no need to address me formally," Alastor said smoothly. "Just Alastor shall suffice.”
"Right," Fluttershy replied, her voice steadier than before. "Alastor, then." She led the way to the back door where sounds of impatient neighs and clucks filtered through.
As they stepped out into the crisp morning air, Alastor took a moment to observe the assortment of animals gathered in the yard. A curious expression crossed his face as he watched the critters scurry about, each eager for their first meal of the day.
Gracefully and confidently, Fluttershy moved among her beloved animals, scattering feed for the chickens and filling hay racks for the rabbits. She glanced back at Alastor, who stood observing the scene with an unreadable expression.
"Um, if you'd like to help, you could fill the water troughs for the larger animals," she suggested softly, gesturing towards a nearby pump and several empty buckets.
Alastor's grin widened, a mischievous glint in his eye. "Of course, my dear! Let's see how these charming creatures react to a demon in their midst, shall we?" With a snap of his fingers, his microphone staff appeared in his hand. He twirled it dramatically before tapping it on the ground.
Suddenly, the pump sprang to life, water gushing forth and filling the buckets without any physical effort from Alastor. The buckets then levitated, floating towards the troughs and tipping their contents neatly into them.
Fluttershy watched in amazement, her eyes wide as she took in the display of powerful magic. Her heart raced with a mixture of awe and worry for her animals' reactions.
To her surprise, most of the animals seemed unfazed by Alastor's presence or his supernatural abilities. A few timid creatures shied away, but others approached him curiously, sniffing at his legs and clothes.
Alastor chuckled deeply, his voice crackling with static. "Well, well! It seems your little menagerie is more accepting than most. How delightfully unexpected!" His sharp teeth gleamed in the sunlight as he knelt down to pick up a rabbit that had hopped up to him.
Fluttershy's heart fluttered with joy as she watched the once-feared Radio Demon surrounded by her beloved animal friends. His sharp, menacing features softened as he interacted with them, revealing a side of him that few got to see.
"They can sense the goodness in you," Fluttershy whispered, marveling at the way the animals gravitated towards Alastor despite his dark reputation.
But as soon as Alastor's attention turned to her, his demeanor shifted. The rabbit he had been playing with dropped from his grasp as an ominous aura engulfed him. The animals instinctively scurried behind Fluttershy for protection.
"My Dear," Alastor growled, a hint of malice in his voice. "There is no 'Goodness' in me. I am a Demon who thrives on making deals and taking lives of those who dare cross my path."
Fluttershy's heart skipped a beat as the aura enveloped Alastor, a stark reminder of the power and darkness he wielded. She took a slow, steadying breath and stepped forward bravely, shielding her animal friends from the intimidating presence.
"I believe that everyone has some good in them," she said, her voice soft but resolute. "Even you, Alastor."
The demon's laugh rang out again, but this time it held a note of genuine amusement. The malevolent energy receded like a shadow chased away by light, and his features softened ever so slightly.
“Your optimism is as endearing as it is misplaced,” Alastor replied with an amused shake of his head. “But we have a Deal, Fluttershy. I shall play this little game of yours and indulge your beliefs... for now.”
As the morning sun rose high in the sky, Alastor gracefully assisted Fluttershy with her daily chores. His supernatural abilities made quick work of even the most difficult tasks, leaving no room for error or delay. The gentle breeze carried a lightness and ease as they worked together, their movements in perfect synchronicity.
"Thank you for your help," Fluttershy said gratefully as they finished up. "Umm…By any chance, did you happen to see any food in the kitchen when you were making tea this morning?" She hesitated, not wanting to impose but also hoping for some sustenance.
"I'm afraid not," Alastor replied apologetically. "The only thing I found in your kitchen was a bundle of carrots labeled 'Angel's'."
At the mention of her possessive bunny's stash, Fluttershy couldn't help but let out a small giggle. "Oh yes, that would be Angel Bunny's special stash. He can be quite particular about his meals."
"Hmm, a creature after my own heart," Alastor mused with a smirk. "If he can assert such dominance over his diet, perhaps I should take notes for my own culinary demands. Although, my preferences are a tad more... sophisticated than roots and greens." With a knowing glint in his eyes, Alastor subtly hinted at his refined taste and elevated palate.
"Oh, he's quite the character," Fluttershy replied with an affectionate roll of her eyes. "But he's good at heart, just a little... assertive at times."
As they walked back towards the cottage, Fluttershy pondered what to do for food. She had been so preoccupied with her own turmoil and the subsequent arrival of Alastor that she hadn't made her usual trip to the market.
Fluttershy hesitated at the doorway, her delicate hand resting on the doorknob. "If you don't mind," she spoke softly, "I think I'll need to make a quick trip to town for some supplies. Would you like to come along or stay here?"
Alastor's intrigued tone carried through the air as he replied, "I suppose I could accompany you. It has been quite some time since I've ventured into the mortal world and browsed their markets. I am curious to see what your 'town' has to offer."
Before Fluttershy could change into more practical attire, she paused and looked over at Alastor. "Can you change your appearance?" she asked the demon.
A mischievous gleam sparked in Alastor's eyes as he approached Fluttershy, his finger gently lifting her chin. "What is it, my dear?" he purred. "Does my current form not please you?"
Fluttershy blushed faintly, quickly shaking her head. "No, it's not that," she stammered out an explanation. "It's just that the townspeople might not understand. They can be easily frightened by new faces, especially ones as unique as yours."
Alastor chuckled and ran a hand through his hair. "Ah, I see. You wish to avoid causing a panic," he said with a wry smile. "A wise decision."
Alastor's fingers snapped with an audible crack, the air around him quivering as his form shimmered. In a mere blink of an eye, his appearance transformed into that of a dapper gentleman, though one with a distinctly old-fashioned sense of style.
His skin was now a deep crimson, the fur soft and plush like velvet. A single horn emerged subtly from his forehead, blending seamlessly with his neatly parted, raven-black mane. A pair of round glasses materialized in front of his blood-red eyes, giving him an air of intelligence and refinement.
As if obeying some unseen mastermind, his crimson shirt faded to crisp white, the collar rising and stiffening into a more formal style. A black bowtie appeared out of thin air and tied itself neatly at his throat. The tailcoat jacket he had been wearing vanished into nothingness, replaced by a rich brown waistcoat that hugged his lean frame perfectly. Its fabric seemed to shimmer slightly under the sunlight, the texture reminiscent of fine tweed or wool. With a flourish of his hand, Alastor adjusted it just so.
His pants underwent a similar transformation, shifting from black to dark brown and gaining length and slight flare at the bottom, giving them a distinctly vintage silhouette. Shiny black Oxford shoes took the place of his usual footwear, their polished surface glinting in the morning light.
Lastly, his cane - previously sharp and menacing - changed shape before Fluttershy's very eyes. The once sinister edges softened into something more elegant, resembling an intricate walking stick with a simple silver handle. Completing the ensemble was a pocket watch chain dangling from his vest.
Fluttershy could only stare in awe as she took in Alastor's impressive and unexpected transformation. "My goodness," she breathed out. "You look...very nice." She couldn't help but feel a rush of excitement for what was to come with his new look. "That should do just fine."
With a curt nod and a devilish grin, Alastor's voice crackled lacking the familiar radio static as he spoke. "Why thank you, my dear. I do pride myself on being able to dress for any occasion."
Fluttershy's gaze flicked out towards the bustling street beyond her cottage's garden, the distant sounds of car engines and city life drifting through the tranquil atmosphere inside. The contrast between the two worlds was stark.
"Oh," she said, turning back to Alastor with a slight blush creeping up her cheeks. "I should probably change into something more appropriate for going into town. Would you mind waiting here for a moment?"
Alastor gave a gentlemanly bow, his grin never faltering. "But of course, my dear. Take all the time you need."
As Fluttershy hurried back into her home, she closed the door behind her and quickly rummaged through her closet in search of a suitable outfit. After several minutes, she emerged wearing a pale blue sundress adorned with delicate floral patterns and topped with a light green cardigan. A small, fashionable bag hung from her shoulder, and her usual loose hair had been replaced with a neat braid.
"I'm ready now," she said softly, rejoining Alastor outside.
The demon-turned-pony's eyes gleamed with approval. "My, my, you clean up quite nicely, my dear."
Fluttershy blushed again at the compliment, feeling an unexpected warmth at his words as she avoided his gaze. "Thank you, Alastor. Shall we?" she asked, gesturing towards the path that would lead them to town.
"Indeed, we shall," Alastor responded with another bow before gesturing for Fluttershy to lead the way. As they set off down the path together, the soft sound of their footsteps were drowned out by the buzz of city life growing ever closer.
As Fluttershy led Alastor into the bustling city center, the streets came alive with the usual midday crowd. Ponies of all shapes and sizes milled about, each lost in their own world and daily business. The sound of hooves on concrete echoed through the streets, blending with the chatter and laughter of the townsfolk.
Alastor walked alongside Fluttershy, his eyes taking in every sight with a mixture of curiosity and amusement. His transformation had been thorough; not a single pony gave him a second glance aside from the occasional admiring look at his unusual yet impeccable style.
However, Alastor couldn't help but notice the attention she was attracting. Many of the stallions they passed turned their heads to look at her, their gazes lingering on her as if she were a piece of meat with their eyes full of lust. Simultaneously, some of the mares shot disapproving or hateful glances in Fluttershy's direction.
Fluttershy, however, seemed painfully aware of the attention she garnered from the townsfolk. She kept her head down, her mane covering most of her face as she walked quickly through the crowds. They could both plainly hear everything the citizens said, both positive and negative comments alike.
'How can that slut walk around with a smile like she hasn't sucked off every stallion in this town'
‘heh, Can’t wait to get my dick down that bitch’s throat’
‘Here comes the town slut’
‘That ass is as good as mine tonight’
'Is that whore on a date with her pimp? how pathetic'
Fluttershy's ears drooped ever so slightly at the cruel whispers and murmurs that followed her every step. She quickened her pace, feeling the weight of the hurtful words like a physical burden. Yet, she was no stranger to this treatment - it seemed to be a constant in her life. Deep down, she longed for the day when the townsfolk would see beyond the rumors and lies that clung to her like a shadow.
"My dear," he said in a low voice, his eyes scanning their surroundings, "it seems you have quite an effect on the local population."
Fluttershy looked up at him with a mixture of regret and confusion in her gentle voice. "Oh...I try to ignore them. Besides nothing they say about me is wrong."
They soon arrived at their destination: an open-air market bustling with activity. As they entered, Fluttershy's face lit up with excitement. Colorful stalls lined the streets, bursting with fresh produce and a variety of goods.
"This is where I do all my shopping," Fluttershy said, beaming with pride. "They have the best naturally grown fruits and vegetables in all of Ponyville."
As they strolled through the market, Fluttershy carefully selected items and placed them in her basket. Alastor observed with keen interest, occasionally picking up a peculiar fruit or vegetable to examine it more closely.
"Such a unique fruit," Alastor commented as he held up a rainbow-colored apple with a lightning bolt shaped stem. "What is this?"
"It's called a Zap Apple," the large red earth pony behind the stall replied with a friendly smile. "They're quite rare - only able to be harvested during a very specific time."
"Intriguing," Alastor said, placing the unusual fruit in Fluttershy's basket with a grin.
“Oh..H-Hey Big Mac”
With a meek wave, Fluttershy greeted Big Mac as she approached him. Alastor took note of the stallion's gaze, which held concern and betrayal rather than the usual lustful looks directed towards the gentle pegasus mare.
"Fluttershy," Big Mac greeted, offering her another Zap Apple from his stand. "How's work?"
"It's...fine," Fluttershy replied, accepting a few more apples into her basket. She couldn't help but notice that Applejack was absent today. "How about you? I haven't seen Applejack around."
"She got arrested again," Big Mac said with a heavy sigh, his expression turning downwards in a frown. "Seems there was a little scuffle at the bar that got out of hand. I reckon she'll be out by tomorrow though."
"That's good to hear, I suppose," Fluttershy said, avoiding eye contact before glancing back up at the earth pony stallion. "Does she...still not like me very much?"
Big Mac simply nodded before excusing himself to assist another customer. "Take care, Fluttershy," he bid farewell.
Alastor tilted his head curiously, picking up on the tense atmosphere and underlying tensions between the two former lovers. "Trouble with friends?" he inquired in a low, smooth voice as they moved away from Big Mac's stall.
"Something like that," Fluttershy admitted quietly as she reached for some stalks of celery. "We used to date, but we had a falling out over my job. He was always patient with my severe shyness, but eventually it became too much for our relationship to handle."
“And judging by the clothes you were wearing when we met…” Alastor began, his ever-present smile curling just a touch more. "I take it your line of work is not entirely... conventional?"
Fluttershy's gaze fell to her feet, her cheeks burning with embarrassment at the unspoken inquiry. “I’m…M-My Job is…”
Before Fluttershy could utter another word, an earth pony mare shoved her out of the way with a snarl. The impact sent Fluttershy stumbling to the side, her hooves scraping against the hard ground.
“Move it Cunt!” the mare growled, her voice dripping with venom. “Shouldn’t you be bouncing on some stallion's lap rather than blocking the aisle? Disgusting Bitch…"
Fluttershy's eyes widened in shock and hurt, tears threatening to spill over as she quickly recomposed herself and stepped aside without a word. Alastor's grin seemed to falter for a moment as he observed the interaction, his gaze following the mare as she strutted away with a self-satisfied smirk.
"I'm sorry," Fluttershy muttered in a small voice, barely audible above the noise of the bustling market. Her cheeks were flushed with embarrassment and shame as she tried to make herself smaller, wanting to disappear into the background.
Alastor's gaze remained fixed on the rude mare as he spoke, his voice low and calm. "I assume everyone is aware of your profession?"
Fluttershy's response was barely audible, a whimper escaping her lips as she wrung her hooves together in a nervous gesture. "I am a prostitute," she admitted, her words dripping with shame and guilt. The tears that had been threatening to fall finally spilled down her cheeks, leaving wet trails in their wake. "I am paid to engage in sexual acts every night," she continued, her voice trembling with emotion. "To some, I am nothing more than a whore or a plaything. It can be so difficult, Alastor, facing the judgment and disdain of others every day." She took a shaky breath, trying to compose herself before speaking again. "But I have no other choice. I need the money to care for the animals at my sanctuary. There are few jobs that offer such high pay for someone like me."
A thoughtful expression crossed Alastor's face as he carefully listened to Fluttershy's words. "You need to learn to smile, my dear," he replied, his voice soft and persuasive.
Fluttershy tilted her head in confusion. "Smile?" she questioned, her eyes searching for any hint of humor or jest in Alastor's words. "I don't know if I can...I've lost so much in my life, there's not much left to make me smile."
Alastor placed a gentle hand on Fluttershy's cheek, his fingers lightly tracing over her skin and coaxing a smile out of her. "Just because you see a smile doesn't mean you know what's going on underneath," he explained, his voice taking on a soothing tone. "A smile is a valuable tool, my dear. It inspires your friends, keeps your enemies guessing, and ensures no matter what comes your way, you are in control."
Fluttershy stared at Alastor, his fingers still lightly holding her cheeks in a fabricated smile, and for a moment, she felt a flicker of genuine warmth in her chest. It was strange and unfamiliar, this sensation that seemed to be coaxed out by Alastor's unsettling charisma. The market around them continued its noisy bustle, but in the bubble of their conversation, it all seemed to fade into the background.
"Control," she echoed softly, her voice steadier as she let Alastor's words wash over her. "Yes, I suppose you're right. If I can smile despite everything, maybe it won't seem so… oppressive."
Alastor released her face and took a polite step back, giving her room to breathe. "Precisely, my dear. And who knows? Perhaps one day that smile might not be just for show. But until then, wear it like the armor it is."
Fluttershy's voice quivered as she spoke, her words laced with a newfound determination. She took a deep breath, standing up straight and wiping away the tears that had threatened to fall. A tentative smile graced her lips as she turned back to her shopping, her movements now deliberate and purposeful.
As they continued navigating through the bustling market, Alastor's eyes suddenly lit up at the sight of a stall selling various meats. Without hesitation, he reached over and placed a wrapped package in Fluttershy's basket.
"Alastor?" Fluttershy questioned, peering curiously into her basket. "What did you just add?"
"Just a little something to add variety to your diet, my dear," Alastor replied with a mischievous twinkle in his eye. "A fine cut of Venison. Quite nutritious and absolutely delicious, I assure you."
Fluttershy's eyes widened in surprise, but she didn't immediately remove the package. Instead, she looked up at Alastor with an expression of curiosity mixed with confusion. "I... I don’t eat meat," she admitted softly.
"But I do," Alastor declared with a sly grin, causing a small chuckle to escape Fluttershy's lips.
Fluttershy paused, considering the implications of Alastor's tastes. "I see," she said slowly, eyeing the package with a complex blend of emotions. "I suppose everyone has their preferences."
Alastor nodded. "Indeed they do." His eyes scanned the bustling market, and he gestured grandly at the array of choices surrounding them. "Just as every creature here seeks sustenance that suits their palate, so too must we feed our own needs in ways that are... palatable to us."
Fluttershy mulled over his words, her eyes scanning the faces in the crowd — some filled with contentment as they tasted ripe fruits, others wrinkled in distaste at the tang of exotic spices. She realized there was truth in Alastor's perspective, a truth that perhaps she had been neglecting.
"I've never thought about it like that," she admitted, a genuine smile beginning to edge out the forced one from before.
Alastor watched her with amusement as she continued shopping, Once they were finished both returned to Fluttershy’s cottage. Beside the eventful shopping trip, nothing of note happened save for Fluttershy receiving a call on her phone when the sun set, and from what Alastor saw from the dread on her face it had something to do with her job.
“H-Hello” Fluttershy whispered before flinching.
“I need you for a job”
“But…I thought I had the day off” Fluttershy whimpered into the phone, her voice barely above a whisper.
"You thought wrong, now make sure to wear the cow print”
“That one’s small on…” the pegasus mare stammered before being cut off again
“Don’t make me repeat myself, 30 minutes! 3rd floor at the Royal Inn hotel, Do I make myself clear?”
“Yes sir…” Fluttershy said in defeat before hanging up the phone with a trembling hand “The Royal Inn…got it…”
Fluttershy's previous confidence vanished as she turned to face Alastor, her posture now hunched and her eyes cast downwards. She seemed overwhelmed with fear, taking shallow breaths as if breathing had become a heavy task.
"I'm sorry, Alastor," the Pegasus mare apologized before rushing off to change for work. "I have to get ready."
"Don't worry, my dear," Alastor replied, his voice returning to its usual static after their recent conversation. "I have some errands to run myself."
With a nod, Fluttershy hurried away, feeling weighed down by the thought of the night ahead. But she didn't offer any further explanation as she left. Alastor watched her go with an slight frown on his face, before regaining his smile and leisurely strolling out of the cottage, humming an old tune under his breath.
Fluttershy entered the entrance of the Royal Inn hotel wearing a long brown coat that brushed the floor with each step, concealing the outfit she had been instructed to wear. Her mane was pulled back, and her face was set in a mask of professional detachment; but her eyes, usually so full of kindness and warmth, were dimmed by the task at hand.
The hotel lobby was bustling with activity; guests were checking in and out, and the sound of chatter filled the air. Fluttershy made her way to the elevator, avoiding eye contact with anyone who glanced her way. She pressed the button for the third floor, and as she ascended, she felt a knot tighten in her stomach. She closed her eyes and took deep breaths, trying to summon the resolve Alastor had encouraged earlier.
The elevator dinged softly as it arrived on her floor, and Fluttershy stepped out into a quieter hallway lined with doors. Immediately upon stepping out of the elevator a hand grabbed the back of Fluttershy’s neck, Fluttershy yelped in surprise, her heart racing as she was forcefully pulled to one side. She turned to face her assailant, ready to plead or fight if necessary, but the sight that greeted her made her blood run cold.
“I told you 30 minutes!” The voice was cold, unyielding, like the bite of winter. “I have been waiting here for the last 45 minutes”
Fluttershy trembled under the steely grip of the man who towered over her. Filthy Rich was a earth pony Stallion with a brown coat and darker brown mane, And he was currently Fluttershy’s boss…or put simply…her Pimp. He was dressed sharply in a blue tailored suit with matching pants, a crisp white shirt, and a red tie with a dollar sign on it. But it was his eyes that truly frightened her — they were void of any warmth, like chips of ice.
"I-I'm sorry, I…" Fluttershy stammered, her apology cut short by the tightening of his hand around her neck.
"Save it," he spat. "Room 307. Now." He released her abruptly, giving her a slight shove toward the room in question. “And take that coat off!”
Filthy Rich violently ripped off Fluttershy's coat, exposing her outfit underneath: a cow print bra that barely covered her nipples and panties that looked like they were on the verge of snapping, along with matching leggings and gloves that stretched up to her biceps. A red collar with a cow bell dangled around her neck.
Fluttershy stumbled forward, clutching at the remnants of her dignity as she tried to cover herself with her arms. Her cheeks were aflame, the humiliation burning hotter than the ire in Filthy Rich's eyes. She hated this, hated how small and powerless she felt under his gaze, hated that her job reduced her to this... this object.
“What are you waiting for?!” Filthy Rich snarled, impatience thick in his voice as he narrowed his gaze at her. "Get in there. he’s waiting."
Fluttershy took a deep breath, steeling herself for what she was about to do. She timidly knocked on the door, her hand trembling as she turned the knob and entered the room. The atmosphere was heavy, with a thick musk of desire lingering in the air. The dimly lit room was adorned with heavy curtains, creating an almost claustrophobic feeling. Soft music played in the background, adding to the sensual ambiance.
Her client sat in an armchair, his face obscured by shadows but his presence commanding and dominating. As Fluttershy approached, she couldn't help but notice the single Minotaur's member growing fully erect at the sight of her. It was nearly a foot in length and as thick as a forearm, making her heart race with fear and anticipation.
"You took your time," he said in a smooth voice that sent shivers down her spine, tinged with a hint of annoyance.
"I-I apologize for my tardiness," Fluttershy stammered, unable to tear her gaze away from his massive erection.
The Minotaur stood up and towered over her, his enormous cock poking at her just below her breasts. Her eyes widened in terror and disbelief at the sight of it.
"Don't tell me you've never seen something this big?" he grinned, relishing in her fear and vulnerability.
Fluttershy's eyes widened in terror as the Minotaur closed in on her, his hot breath and looming figure trapping her against the wall. "Please," she begged, trying to shrink away but finding no escape. "I'll do anything...just don't make me do this."
But the Minotaur only laughed cruelly and dragged Fluttershy towards the bed, forcing her down and grabbing a bottle from the nightstand. "Maybe this will change your mind," he sneered, waving the bottle of cocaine in front of her. "Your boss said it was your favorite."
A wave of temptation washed over Fluttershy at the sight of the drugs, her heart pounding with a desperate desire to numb the pain and fear that consumed her. But deep down, she knew giving in would only lead to more suffering. With a trembling hand, she reached out for the bottle, torn between her need for escape and her inner strength fighting back.
The Minotaur chuckled, a deep and rumbling sound that filled the room. "Come now, little pony," he coaxed, unscrewing the cap. "One little taste won't hurt. It'll make everything...much more enjoyable."
Unfortunately for the pony, a little taste was him creating a line of cocaine along the length of his cock. Trembling with fear and desperation, Fluttershy forced her hand to grasp the Minotaur's thick veiny member. Her mind was a blizzard of conflicting emotions - terror at the situation, desperation for the numbing oblivion promised by the substance, and a familiar longing that threatened to consume her.
The weight of the Minotaur's gaze bore down on her like an oppressive blanket, filled with unspoken threats and cruel expectations. She could feel her body shaking with revulsion, every instinct screaming for her to run, to resist this degrading act. But the alluring call of temporary escape was too strong to ignore.
With a heart-wrenching mix of disgust and yearning, Fluttershy inhaled sharply, dragging her nose down the entire length of his cock with determination - refusing to miss even a single grain of the white powder. The effect was immediate - her senses dulled and her mind clouded, leaving her in a hazy state of indifference.
As she slipped into a numb trance, the Minotaur's looming figure lost its menacing grip on her will. She became paralyzed under his gaze, surrendering herself completely to the intoxicating high that consumed her.
With a sadistic smirk, he watched as his prey's body underwent a dramatic transformation. "Finally," he growled, filled with savage satisfaction. "Now you're mine."
"Not yet," Fluttershy purred, her tongue slowly tracing over the top of his erection to collect any missed traces of cocaine. "Now I'm ready for you, big boy."
The Minotaur let out a primal grunt as he grabbed onto the back of Fluttershy's head, guiding her closer until she was forced to take him deep into her mouth. Under the influence of drugs and a false sense of courage, Fluttershy eagerly complied with practiced movements, detached from the degrading act being inflicted upon her. But even in her altered state, she couldn't fit more than a third of his massive member into her mouth without gagging.
Moaning with pleasure, the Minotaur's breaths became ragged as he lost himself in the sensations coursing through his body. Roughly gripping Fluttershy's mane, he exerted dominance over her as she obediently took him deeper into her throat, her hands working skillfully to match the motions of her lips.
"That's it," he groaned, desire radiating off of him like an intense heat. "Good little cow."
Fluttershy's small hands strained to wrap around his thick girth as she pleasured him with increasing fervor. Her eyes, glassy and distant, only occasionally met his as she devoted herself to the task, desperately trying to focus on anything but the reality of her situation. With each bob of her head, she tried to escape further into the haze, longing for reprieve from the harsh world that Filthy Rich and clients like this Minotaur represented.
The Minotaur grunted, his grip on Fluttershy's head tightening violently. "That's it," he snarled, his voice dripping with primal lust. “I can’t hold back anymore!”
With a cruel thrust of his hips, the Minotaur forced a fourth of his massive cock down Fluttershy's throat. She gagged and choked, her eyes bulging in terror as she struggled for air. But the Minotaur showed no mercy, his relentless fucking driving her to the brink of suffocation. Fluttershy choked on his girth unable to take any more. She couldn't breathe, she couldn't scream.
Slowly her vision started to blur, her eyes watered and she clawed at the Minotaur's thighs in a vain attempt to push him away, but his strength was overwhelming. The faint sound of his pleasure-filled grunts faded as her consciousness began to slip away under the pressure and lack of air.
Just when she thought she couldn't take any more, he released her with a brutal shove, sending her flying across the bed. She gasped for air, tears streaming down her face as she tried to recover from the trauma. As she lay on the edge of the bed trying to recover, she caught a glimpse of the Minotaur's balls hovering over her face.
"You're not finished yet," he growled menacingly, grabbing her by the hair and forcing his entire length back into her mouth.
“Hnnnng” Fluttershy gagged and choked as he thrust himself deeper and deeper, feeling like she was being torn apart from the inside out. She could do nothing but groan and protest as he used her mouth like a toy, causing her collar to snap under the pressure.
And still, the Minotaur showed no signs of stopping. His lustful grunts filled the room as he continued to pound into her relentlessly, claiming her mouth as if it were his rightful possession. And all poor Fluttershy could do was endure the agonizing pain and humiliation, trapped under the powerful beast's control.
The Minotaur thrusts violently, his hips bucking with a frenzied pace as he drives his massive cock down Fluttershy's throat. She gasps and gags, tears streaming from her red, watery eyes as she struggles to breathe through the hot, thick flesh filling her mouth. The drugs that cloud her mind only intensify the fiery sensation coursing through her entire body as she is helplessly ravaged by this monstrous beast.
“Gonna bust my load soon, little pony,” he growls, warning her of what's to come. “Make sure you swallow every last drop~.”
And then it happens. With a final, earth-shattering moan, the Minotaur releases his load into Fluttershy's mouth, a torrent of thick, hot semen pouring down her throat. She chokes and gags, unable to keep up with the sheer volume as gallons of cum fill her mouth and force their way down her gullet. Desperately trying not to drown on her own saliva and his seed, she swallows frantically until there is no more room. The rest leaks out of her nostrils and around her gagged lips, drenching her mane in a sticky white mess.
At last, after what feels like an eternity, the Minotaur pulls out of Fluttershy's abused mouth, leaving her gasping for air once again. Cum oozes from her slack jaw as she struggles to catch her breath, feeling utterly debased and violated by this brutal act
"Not bad for a mere pony," he taunted, his voice dripping with sadistic pleasure. "Too bad your kind can only handle one load."
But before he could revel in his victory, Fluttershy's hand shot out like lightning and grabbed onto his still hard cock. A desperate, pleading look filled her eyes as she begged, "Break me, Daddy~"
The Minotaur's grin widened, a malicious glint in his eyes as he promised, "Oh, I'll do much more than that."
He forcefully spun the mare onto her around and roughly pulled her towards him, tearing off her bra and panties in the process. Reaching over to his discarded pants, the Minotaur retrieved a vial of an unknown dark pink substance. Carefully uncorking it, he poured the liquid over his still erect member before using his hand to lather it up like lubricant. Satisfied with his preparations, the Minotaur loomed over Fluttershy as she dutifully spread her legs for him.
With a commanding tone that sent shivers down her spine, he ordered, "Beg for it like a good little whore~."
Fluttershy's voice trembled as she replied, "Y-yes... Daddy... pl-please... I-I'm a good little whore... I-I need it... I-I need your dick in me so bad." Her cheeks flushed red with both the humiliation of her words and the foreign pleasure she felt when saying them.
With a forceful thrust, he penetrated Fluttershy's pussy, eliciting a cry of pain and pleasure from her lips. She was stretched to her limits, feeling every inch of him fill her up and push against places she didn't know existed. The Minotaur's massive member felt like it was tearing her apart, but instead of agony, all she could feel was an intense rush of ecstasy that made her mind go blank. Her moans echoed off the walls as the Minotaur pounded into her without mercy.
"You're so tight, my little pony slut," he grunted, his breath hot against her ear. "My cock was made to destroy your eager cunt."
Fluttershy could only moan in response as he continued to ravage her, each thrust driving her closer to the edge of pure bliss. She was nothing but a toy for his pleasure, completely at his mercy as he used her body for his own gratification. And she loved every second of it.
The Minotaur's primal thrusts shook the bed violently, making Fluttershy cry out in a mix of pleasure and pain. His eyes fixated on her bouncing breasts, he reached out and grabbed one roughly, squeezing it in his hand. A strange substance coated his cock, causing Fluttershy's already stretched and burning pussy to clench even tighter around him with each deep thrust. But despite the intense waves of pleasure coursing through her body, Fluttershy couldn't help but feel unsatisfied.
"Is that all you've got?" She taunted, her voice dripping with sarcasm.
"What was that?" The Minotaur growled, his irritation evident in his twitching eye.
"That can't be it," Fluttershy continued mockingly. "My ex used to make me scream so much louder. All you're doing is playing with yourself."
The Minotaur's patience snapped at her audacity to compare him to a mere pony and insult his abilities. With a menacing growl, he grasped both of her ankles and positioned himself on top of her, putting all of his weight onto her as he increased the force of his thrusts. He could feel himself stretching more and more of her tight pussy as he delved deeper inside her, almost reaching the entrance of her womb.
Fluttershy's cries of pain were eclipsed by the overwhelming pleasure that consumed her entire being. A blinding euphoria washed over her like a tidal wave, drowning out any coherent thoughts or protests. In that moment, nothing else mattered but the insatiable need for more from the powerful bull mounting her with such ferocity.
With each thrust, the Minotaur reach deeper and deeper into Fluttershy’s never-before-touched depths, causing her inner walls to expand and adapt around him. The pain vanished, replaced by a mind-numbing bliss that threatened to consume her very being.
“Yes! Fuck me, Daddy! Fill me up!” Fluttershy cried out, her voice strained with passion. She couldn’t believe the words coming out of her mouth, but in this moment, she wanted nothing more than to be broken by this Bull’s cock. The Mare's pussy clenched around his member as she orgasmed for the umpteenth time that night,
“Take it! Take my cock!” The Minotaur shouted and managed to breach her womb’s entrance with his cock like a battering ram. “Who owns this pussy?! Who?!”
The Minotaur's words drowned out Fluttershy's mind, reduce her to nothing more than a screaming, cum-soaked pony. “You do! Yours! All yours! AAAH~!”
”Then call me Daddy and beg for my seed!” The Minotaur grunted as he felt his climax approaching.
“Y— Yes, Daddy! Please... I’m your cum receptacle! I-I need your babies~!” Fluttershy panted, her body trembling with the effort to get out every word. “B-Breed me! Breed me like the whore you made me~”
With a final violent thrust, the Minotaur unleashes a torrent of hot, thick seed deep into Fluttershy's trembling body. She cries out in ecstasy, her back arching as the force of his ejaculation rocks her to her core. Her eyes roll back in her head, her tongue coated in his cum hanging limply from her mouth. As his virile seed floods her fertile womb, she can feel herself being transformed into nothing more than a vessel for his pleasure.
But it doesn't end there. The sheer volume of his white, muddy cum overwhelms her insides, spilling out of her tightly stretched pussy and pooling on the bed beneath her. The Minotaur grins with satisfaction at the sight, knowing that he has thoroughly broke this mare.
‘There we go,’ he thought with a grin of satisfaction.
Leaning in close, he whispers in her ear with a low, menacing tone. "You belong to me now," he growls. "My little fuck toy, my whore to use for my pleasure." With each word, he slowly pulls out of her quivering body, relishing in the sight of his cum leaking out of her gaping snatch.
"And let's not forget," he adds with a cruel laugh. "My breeding sow, meant to bear my bastards~. Understand?”
In a state of pure ecstasy and fatigue, the mare's body goes limp and her consciousness fades away. With a smug grin, the Minotaur begins to clean up with one of the soiled pillows, his eyes gleaming with primal desire as he gazes upon the unconscious form of the mare.
"I’ll see you Tomorrow, my dear whore," he sneers, tossing a stack of bills beside her before hastily dressing himself.
The morning sun pierced through the window and into Fluttershy’s eyes, making the mare wince and force her crusty eyes to open. Her eyes were completely bloodshot and a splitting headache made it difficult to tell whether she was right side up or upside down. However, the instantaneous feeling of nausea made her lurch out of bed, run to the toilet, and empty her guts into the porcelain bowl. The sound of retching echoed in the small bathroom as Fluttershy's body trembled with each violent convulsion. She could barely see through her blurry vision that most of the contents spilling out were remnants of what she had eaten, along with the cum she had swallowed from the Minotaur the night before.
As soon as she was done vomiting, Fluttershy slumped back against the cool tile wall and began to weep. The memories of last night flooded her mind and filled her with shame and regret. She would never have done or said such heinous things before, let alone snort hard drugs off of his erect member. As her emotions spiraled out of control, a realization dawned on her that made her heart sink. With shaky legs, the mare crawled over to the bathroom drawers and frantically searched through them one by one.
She pushed aside various items until finally finding what she was looking for - a small box containing a stick that could determine a certain test. Fluttershy tore open the box and pulled out the stick before climbing onto the toilet seat. Her hand shook as she held the stick between her legs and managed to urinate enough onto it to activate it. Holding her breath, she waited for the results.
Tears streamed down Fluttershy's cheeks as she pleaded with all her heart. "Please...please no," she begged, her voice cracking with desperation. "It was a mistake...a horrible mistake. Please...please don't be positive." Her hands shook violently as she held the pregnancy test in front of her, waiting anxiously for the results that could change her life forever.
But unfortunately, much to Fluttershy's dismay, her prayers were not answered. Two blue little lines appeared in the small circle on the test, confirming her worst fears.
A cold numbness washed over Fluttershy as she stared at the test in disbelief. The two lines were irrefutable; they screamed the truth of her condition louder than any voice could. With trembling hands, she dropped the test onto the cold tile floor where it landed with a soft thud, mocking her with its silent judgment.
Suddenly, a familiar voice broke through the silence from behind the closed door. "Eventful night, my dear?" Alastor's smooth tone rang out.
"Go away," Fluttershy croaked out, her voice full of pain and anger. "Unless you're going to kill me, just go away and leave me alone."
"I noticed you never returned home," Alastor replied calmly from behind the door. "I merely wished to check on you,"
"And I said to go away," Fluttershy repeated, her voice filled with defiance. "For once in your cruel, emotionless life, just respect my words and leave."
There was silence from the other side of the door, a silence that seemed to stretch into eternity. Fluttershy's heart pounded in her chest as she waited for a reply, any reply, that would confirm Alastor had left her be. But she knew better than to assume he was so easily dissuaded.
"You know I cannot do that," Alastor finally said, his voice maintaining its characteristic mirth despite the situation. "You are far too valuable to me."
Fluttershy's breath hitched, her tears partially stemmed by the fear that now gripped her. Valuable? To Alastor? The idea sent a chill down her spine. She pulled herself together enough to rise and stagger to the door, pressing an ear against the cool wood.
"What do you mean by that?" she asked, dreading the answer.
The sound of Alastor's soft chuckles drifted through the door, sending shivers down Fluttershy's spine. She could almost imagine his eerie smile forming on his face. "Nopony else possesses that angelic voice of yours," he commented.
Fluttershy's tears continued to fall as she struggled to speak through her sobs. "Are...are you asking for the Song now?" she managed to utter.
"I'm asking you to come out so I can take you home," the Radio Demon replied calmly.
“DO YOU NOT UNDERSTAND?!” Fluttershy screamed, not caring for the pain that tore at her throat. “I HAVE NO HOME TO GO TO! NOT ANYMORE! NOPONY WILL EVER LOOK AT ME THE SAME WAY FOR WHAT I’VE DONE! I CAN’T EVEN SING ANYMORE! SO HOW IN TARTARUS AM I SO VALUABLE TO YOU WHEN ALL I AM RIGHT NOW IS NOTHING MORE THAN A JUNKIE WHORE?!”
“I can take it away” Alastor said, his voice still oddly calm as if he were discussing the weather rather than offering a lifeline out of the abyss. "The shame, the addiction, the... consequences of your little tryst. I have ways, my dear Fluttershy, to make all of this unpleasantness disappear."
As the door slowly creaked open, Fluttershy's heart skipped a beat. She went wide-eyed when she saw the Radio Demon standing before her, drenched in blood with pieces of guts clinging to his immaculate suit. In his hand was the severed head of the Minotaur, its eyes rolled back and tongue hanging limply from its mouth.
"You... killed him?" Fluttershy's voice trembled as she spoke.
But Alastor's grin never faltered, even as the grotesque sight before them threatened to drive Fluttershy to her knees. "Of course," he replied smoothly, "He would have been a problem for you, wouldn't he? I can be quite... thorough when it comes to protecting my assets." A chilling edge crept into his voice as he spoke, hinting at the depths of darkness within him.
Fluttershy recoiled, slowly retreating back into the bathroom as she eyed the crimson-soaked demon before her. She felt trapped, cornered by this creature that exuded an aura of danger and darkness. His blood-red eyes seemed to pierce through her very soul as he spoke of murder with a casualness that sent chills down her spine.
"But why?" she whispered, her voice hoarse from screaming and sobs. "Why would you do this for me?"
Alastor's lips curved into a cruel smile as he gently grazed her neck with his clawed hand. The touch sent shivers of fear and revulsion coursing through Fluttershy's body.
"Because I keep my promises," he purred, his voice low and menacing. "I promised that you would experience true love before I kill you, and I am always a Demon of my word." The air around them seemed to thicken with malice and danger as Alastor's words hung in the air.
Fluttershy's voice trembled as she spoke, revealing the weight of her words. "But how can I even find love when...I don't think I even love myself anymore?" She looked down at her feet, unable to meet Alastor's gaze.
"Hmm..." His tone was thoughtful and his eyes glinted with a hint of mischief. "Perhaps it's not the kind of love you think you need." He reached out a clawed hand and traced a path from her neck down her naked body before stopping at her lower stomach. "There are many forms of love besides romantic love, my dear Fluttershy."
Her heart skipped a beat as she felt the gentle touch on her skin. Confusion and curiosity mingled in her mind as she tried to make sense of his words. "What do you mean?"
"Consider it an opportunity to rediscover yourself," he said, his voice dropping to a low whisper. "You may find love in the form of your child...if you desire to keep it."
Fluttershy's hand instinctively went to her stomach, imagining the tiny life growing inside of her. She still couldn't shake off the shame and guilt of what had happened, but deep down she couldn't deny the spark of hope that fluttered in her heart. The child within her was innocent, and no matter what, it deserved a chance at life.
With determination in her eyes, she looked up at Alastor and spoke softly but firmly. "No...it goes against my nature to deprive an innocent soul of life. I'll probably hate myself more than I already do if I don't even give it a chance." She paused, gathering her courage. "I'm going to keep it. I'll raise it to be good, and better than me." Despite all the doubts and fears that still lingered within her, she knew that this was the right decision, for both herself and her child.
"Very well," Alastor replied, dropping the head before pulling off his blood-stained jacket and holding it out to the mare. "Put this on."
Fluttershy hesitated, eyeing the jacket warily as if it were a trap. "But...it's covered in blood."
"And you are without clothes, covered in semen, sweat, and coke," Alastor stated matter-of-factly. "Believe me, my dear, the jacket is the lesser of two evils at the moment."
Nodding slowly, Fluttershy allowed him to drape the coat over her trembling body. To be honest, she didn't really mind; anything was better than being naked at this point. Alastor then lifted her gently into his arms and prepared his magic for teleportation.
"Let's take you home," he said softly before enveloping them both in a green flame and disappearing from sight.
Chapter 13: Fluttershy's Debt
Something has gone wrong. We don't seem to have an archived copy of that chapter. Chapter 14: Freedom and a New Deal
The office was shrouded in a gloomy haze, the heavy velvet curtains drawn tightly against the harsh midday sun. Fancy Pants sat slumped in his chair, his usually impeccable appearance now a disheveled mess. His once shiny mane was matted and unkempt, his tailored suit wrinkled and creased, and deep purple circles hung beneath his bloodshot eyes.
Standing before him was Alastor, the embodiment of sophistication in his perfectly pressed pinstripe suit. The demon's ever-present grin stretched wider as he took in Fancy Pants' haggard state.
"Well, well, my dear mayor," Alastor's voice crackled like static. "I do hope you have good news for me."
With shaking hands, Fancy Pants slid a folder across the desk. "It's done," he croaked, his voice raw and strained from three sleepless nights. "One million bits, just as you requested. The account is set up under the name 'Radio Waves'."
Alastor's eyes sparkled with amusement. "Ah, how delightfully on the nose! It appears your wit has not dulled despite your... current condition."
Fancy Pants felt his throat tighten as he struggled to swallow. "Everyone knows to fear the infamous Radio Demon," he managed to say, his voice shaky with unease. "It seemed... fitting."
"Indeed it did," Alastor chuckled darkly, leisurely flipping through the thick stack of papers in front of him. His crimson eyes glinted with amusement as he scanned through the neatly organized documents. "Let's see what you've managed to conjure up in these three short days, shall we?"
Fancy Pants couldn't tear his gaze away from Alastor's face, his mind racing with fear and apprehension. Making a deal with someone like Alastor always came with its own risks and consequences. But he had been desperate, willing to do whatever it took to save his beloved town.
As Alastor continued to peruse the papers, Fancy Pants could feel beads of sweat forming on his forehead. But then, the demon's razor-sharp grin widened and his eyes sparkled with approval.
"Exquisite work," he purred, causing a shiver to run down Fancy Pants' spine. "Everything seems to be in order. You've outdone yourself, mayor." It was both a compliment and a warning.
Fancy Pants tried to steady his breathing as Alastor's intense stare bore into him. "Then we are... settled?" he asked tentatively, hoping desperately to be released from this torment.
“Not Quite,” Alastor drawled, relishing in the way Fancy Pants' breath hitched in his throat. "I haven't given you your reward yet."
“R-R-Reward?!” Fancy Pant stammered, a mixture of hope and terror coursing through him at the thought of what a demon like Alastor might consider a 'reward.' His imagination ran wild with all sorts of frightening possibilities.
Alastor's smile stretched like a flag in the wind as he spoke. "I promised to negotiate your contract," he reminded Fancy Pants. "And I always keep my promises."
Fancy Pants tensed, unsure of what was to come. "What are your conditions?" he asked, his voice barely above a whisper.
"I thought we could make it more of a game," Alastor suggested, tapping his fingers on the smooth surface of the desk. "A simple challenge, if you will."
"Continue," Fancy Pants urged, his suspicion growing. He knew that Alastor's version of 'simple' was never actually simple.
Alastor raised his hand and conjured a green orb. "Do you recognize this?" he asked.
"My...my soul," Fancy Pants gasped, recognizing the otherworldly sphere in an instant. Its pulsating green color seemed to match the rhythm of his own racing heart, a constant reminder of the desperate deal he had made.
"Indeed, your very soul," Alastor confirmed with a nod, rolling the ball between his clawed fingers. "But I'm willing to offer you a chance to win it back."
Fancy Pants' voice trembled with a mix of fear and hope as he asked, "How?"
With a nonchalant wave of his hand, Alastor replied, causing the orb to split apart and transform into five gleaming gold coins. Each coin shimmered in the light, pulsing with an otherworldly energy.
"These five coins represent fragments of your soul," Alastor explained, his voice dripping with amusement. "For every task you complete, I will give you a part of your soul back."
He reached out and grabbed one of the coins, sliding it across the desk towards Fancy Pants. "And would you look at that...you are one step closer to gaining your freedom."
Curiosity and hesitation filled Fancy Pants as he reached for the coin, its surface smooth and cool under his fingertips.
"But what do you get out of this?" he asked, unable to resist the temptation.
A sly grin spread across Alastor's face as he tapped a sharp claw against the coin. "Entertainment," he purred, his eyes sparkling with mischief. "You see, failure to complete a task for me will result in you losing all of the coins you've earned. It's like starting a new game, with everything on the line."
The thought seemed to amuse him greatly as he chuckled darkly, relishing in the power he held over Fancy Pants.
Fancy Pants eagerly tucked his first coin into his pocket and turned to Alastor. "And what happens if I manage to collect all five fragments?" he asked.
"Ah, a clever question," Alastor replied with a shrug. "A demon's words are key in any deal or wager. If--and that's a big 'IF' --you are able to gather all five pieces of your soul, then I will uphold my end of the bargain and you will be free from my grasp."
"In that case," Fancy Pants said after a moment of thought, "I am ready for your next task, Alastor."
As Alastor turned to leave, he paused at the threshold of the room, his tall frame casting a looming shadow in the dimly lit space. The sliver of light that escaped through the barely-open door highlighted his sharp features and devilish grin. His eyes gleamed with a spark of mischief and malice, causing a chill to race down Fancy Pants' spine.
Suddenly, without warning, Fancy's collar and chain appeared around his neck, the cold metal biting into his skin. "How silly of me," Alastor said with a swift jerk of the chain, causing Fancy's head to slam into his desk. "I forgot the most important part."
The Radio Demon pulled on the chain as he stepped towards Fancy Pants, towering over him and forcing him to look up into his demonic visage. "If you ever say ‘no’ to me again..." Alastor's words were punctuated by the sound of coins being squeezed tightly in his hand, a subtle but threatening gesture.
Fancy's eyes bulged in terror as he began to let out a blood-curdling scream, his body writhing in agonizing pain. It felt as if his very soul was being burned alive, pierced with countless needles, and drowned in a sea of acid all at once. Alastor's grip on him was unrelenting, the Radio Demon reveling in the sheer intensity of Fancy's torment until finally releasing his grasp on the soul fragments.
"You will learn just how much pain I can inflict before I devour your soul," Alastor hissed, relishing in the fear and agony etched on Fancy's face. "Do I make myself clear?"
"Y-Yes...S-Sir," Fancy Pants stuttered, struggling to find his voice as the aftermath of the pain lingered like a sinister echo.
"Lovely," Alastor responded with a sinister grin as the chain and collar vanished into thin air. He turned around, moving to leave the room. "Good talk, my good man. Always nice to catch up." His words dripped with sarcasm and malice, sending a chill down Fancy's spine.
Fancy Pants didn't dare move as the Fear and Pain from his recent encounter still held him in their grip. He met Alastor's gaze at the office door, holding his breath in anticipation.
"And remember Mr. Mayor..." Alastor grinned, sending shivers down Fancy Pant's spine. "There are always fates worse than death."
With those chilling words hanging in the air, Alastor blended into the shadows and disappeared, leaving Fancy Pants alone in the dimly lit office. The silence that followed was deafening, a stark contrast to the screams of agony that had filled the room just moments before.
Fancy Pants sat there for what felt like an eternity, trying to regain his composure. His body still trembled from the ordeal, and his mind raced with thoughts of the impossible tasks that lay ahead. He now knew, more than ever, that he had made a deal with something far beyond his understanding - a being whose cruelty was only matched by their unpredictable nature.
As the weight of his situation settled upon him, Fancy Pants' eyes fell upon the glimmering gold coin left behind by Alastor. It seemed innocent enough sitting on the desk, but Fancy Pants knew better - it was a symbol of both hope and despair. He tentatively reached out and picked up the coin, feeling its cool metal weight in his hand. In that moment, it seemed as though his entire life hung in the balance on the sharp edge of a knife.
The sleek red and black limousine belonging to Alastor patiently awaits on the curb, its engine purring softly in the cool evening air. The Radio Demon steps out from the shadows of the building, his trademark grin shining in the dim glow of a nearby streetlight. He approaches the vehicle and the door opens gracefully, revealing Fluttershy inside. Her pink mane is neatly groomed and her body is tense with anticipation.
As Alastor settles into the seat beside her, Fluttershy's eyes follow his every move, a mix of curiosity and resignation evident in her expression. "My dear Fluttershy," Alastor says in his smooth, static-laced voice, "I hope you haven't been waiting long."
Fluttershy recoils slightly, barely above a whisper as she responds, "Did...everything go according to plan?"
Alastor's grin widens, his sharp teeth flashing in the dim interior of the limo. "Oh yes, it went quite smoothly. Our friend Fancy Pants was more than willing to help us out. But now, we have other matters to attend to, don't we?"
Fluttershy nods nervously. "Yes, we do. We must return to Ponyville to fulfill my debt and buy out my Contract."
"Would you like to do the honors?" Alastor asks, gesturing towards the driver of the limo.
Fluttershy's eyes shifted towards the front of the luxurious limousine, where the silhouette of their driver was barely visible through the darkened glass divider. She could feel her heart racing as she leaned forward, her hands trembling as she tapped gently on the dividing barrier.
With a quiet hiss, the glass slid down to reveal Joe the Zombie chauffeur, his sole eye fixed on the road ahead. He let out a deep groan, awaiting instructions from his passengers.
Summoning all the courage she could find within herself, Fluttershy cleared her throat softly before speaking. "To Ponyville, Joe, please," she said with a gentle but firm tone. "And take the scenic route. I'd like...to enjoy some peace before we arrive."
Joe grunted in acknowledgement and nodded, his skeletal fingers resting heavily on the steering wheel. As the glass partition rolled back up, Fluttershy and Alastor were once again sealed away in their own private bubble of reality. The limousine began to move forward, its sleek exterior gliding smoothly along the road as they embarked on their journey to Ponyville.
Alastor watched Fluttershy with an air of amusement that didn't quite reach his eyes. "Peace is a curious thing to crave when dancing with devils," he mused, leaning back comfortably against the plush leather seat.
Fluttershy nervously looked down at her hooves, hoping to control the anxious fluttering in her stomach. "Can devils even find peace?" she tentatively asked, hoping for a glimmer of empathy from the Radio Demon.
Alastor leaned closer, his grin never wavering. "Peace? My dear, peace is just a temporary breather before the storm- an essential contrast to truly savor the chaos."
The two sat in silence, with only the soft jazz music playing in the background breaking the stillness of the Limousine. Fluttershy couldn't help but sneak glances at the Demon beside her. She was constantly perplexed by him; sitting next to a monster known for his brutal acts and haunting broadcasts, yet he did everything for her. He killed the mare who made her feel insignificant, slaughtered the Bull who had ruined her life, and now he was taking her back to Ponyville to settle her debts - not out of kindness, but because she intrigued him. A rare specimen of purity and kindness among a sea of corrupted souls.
As Alastor closed his eyes, lost in thought, the Pegasus mare noticed a rare moment of stillness in a being that thrived on chaos. The jazz music seemed to resonate with him, as if each note perfectly aligned with his dark energy.
'It's odd... no one has ever cared about me before and this... de... this man... he has done more than most would dare,' Fluttershy thought, grappling with the paradox of Alastor's twisted form of care. She felt a twinge of guilt, wondering if she was simply another pawn in his grand show, another character in a play written and directed by the Radio Demon himself.
Alastor's voice, like a static-filled radio transmission, rang out without him opening his eyes. The sound was both soothing and eerie, causing Fluttershy to shift uncomfortably under his gaze. It was as if he could read her thoughts and see through her entirely.
"You ponder my intentions, my dear Fluttershy," he said, with a tinge of amusement in his tone. "But I assure you, your uniqueness is... refreshing. And I do so enjoy being refreshed."
Fluttershy's heart raced as she struggled to find the right words in response to Alastor's cryptic compliment. She couldn't deny the feeling of gratitude towards him for his help, but at the same time, there was an uncertainty that lingered in her voice.
Alastor opened one eye and fixed it on her with a piercing gaze. "Gratitude is a currency all its own," he stated enigmatically. "But what I'm after is my song."
Fluttershy felt her cheeks burn under Alastor's intense scrutiny, knowing that his metaphors held deeper meaning than just flattery. It was as if he saw her as a piece of music, a melody that he couldn't resist playing over and over again.
She turned her gaze away from him, trying to hide the warm blush that still colored her face. Despite her best efforts to ignore it, she couldn't deny the unnerving effect that Alastor's words had on her.
The limousine finally came to a stop after hours of driving, in front of an intimidating building with its sleek glass and steel exterior towering over the surrounding area. Fluttershy's eyes grew wide as she took in the sight. "This is where my boss works," she said softly, her voice filled with a mix of awe and trepidation. "It's Filthy Rich's headquarters."
Alastor leaned forward, his grin widening as he looked at the building. "Ah, the illustrious Filthy Rich. A pony after my own heart, though maybe with a bit less finesse."
He turned to Fluttershy and raised an eyebrow. "Tell me, my dear, what do you know about this place and its esteemed owner?"
Fluttershy swallowed nervously, her gaze shifting between Alastor and the building. "Well... it's where Filthy Rich runs his entire business empire from. It's not just his office, but also the main hub for all his companies. He's very powerful... and very abusive."
The memory of harsh words and unkind treatment flooded through her mind, causing her to squeeze her eyes shut for a moment. She didn't notice the change in Alastor's expression or how tightly he gripped his cane in that moment.
She hesitated, her body tense as she seemed to gather the courage to continue. "The lower five floors of the building are open to the public - shops, a bank, things of that nature. But the upper levels... those are strictly off-limits. That's where the real business takes place." She took a deep breath before continuing. "I've been forced to work up there myself, on numerous occasions."
Alastor's eyes lit up with interest. "How intriguing. And may I inquire, my dear, where exactly you fit into this grand design?"
Fluttershy's voice grew even quieter, her gaze dropping to the floor. "I... I mostly work on the streets and sometimes he calls me to attend to clients in certain locations." She refused to meet the demon's gaze. "But there have been times when I was forced to work within this very building."
"May I ask what your tasks were while working here?" Alastor's tone remained light, but there was a hint of danger hidden beneath his words.
Fluttershy's admission came in a barely audible whisper, her soft voice shaken and vulnerable. "I was forced to work as a pole dancer in one of the upper floor strip clubs," she said, her words carrying weight and pain.
Alastor's grip on his cane tightened ever so slightly, his façade of gentle nonchalance faltering for just a moment as he absorbed her words. "A pole dancer, you say? Such a crude use of your... unique talents." His voice turned icy and cold, a stark contrast to the warmth he had shown earlier.
"And when my boss deemed it necessary, I was also made to work in the brothel within the building," Fluttershy continued, visibly shaking now. "But I always tried to maintain my dignity, no matter what horrors I had to endure."
"Filthy also threatened to sell me at one of the building's auction halls," she added, tears welling up in her eyes as she spoke of the worst part of her job. "Where ponies... creatures of all kinds are sold to the highest bidder." She couldn't hold back her tears as she remembered this horrifying experience. "But the absolute worst part was in the basement..."
“The Basement…” Alastor hissed, his voice taking on a sinister tone as the temperature in the Limo suddenly dropped. Fluttershy's eyes widened with fear, tears spilling down her cheeks as she spoke.
“In the Basement,” she said, her voice trembling with fear. "His Pleasure Dungeon…Anyone who dared to speak out against him or failed to meet his expectations was sent there."
Alastor's normally charming demeanor shifted palpably and the air around them crackled with his barely contained fury. The Limousine seemed to darken, the once cheerful jazz music now a low, ominous hum. His piercing red eyes opened fully, burning with a fierce light that was equal parts terrifying and homicidal.
But Fluttershy was too lost in her own memories to notice his transformation.
“He would rape us...push our bodies until we broke," she choked out, her words tumbling out like a torrent of poison she could no longer contain. "And if we were lucky, it was only physical pain we had to endure." Her voice trembled as she continued, reliving the horrors of her past. "I found myself there more and more, and the punishments went beyond pleasure and into straight torture...he...he...he enjoyed it!" She cried out, her body shaking with the horror of her memories.
Alastor's eyes widened in shock as he gazed upon the Pegasus, his gaze immediately drawn to the faint scars peeking out from beneath her hair at the back of her neck. The Radio Demon's constant smile vanished, replaced by a look of pure rage and disgust. His knuckles turned white as his hands clenched into fists. As his eyes shifted, they seemed to take on the appearance of a radio dial and his knuckles clenched tightly, almost turning white.
"He carved up my body with a knife, branded my flesh with hot irons," the Pegasus continued, her voice quivering with fear and pain. "His whips and chains left scars that will never heal... no matter how much I begged..."
CRACK!!
The sound of Alastor's cane snapping broke through the tense atmosphere in the limousine, adding to the already palpable tension. The usual jazz music that hummed in the background faded out, leaving behind an eerie silence filled only with Fluttershy's quiet sobs.
"Take her home," Alastor commanded sharply before exiting the vehicle in a swift motion. As he slammed the door behind him, causing Fluttershy to flinch, it was clear that his jovial façade had been shattered like delicate crystal on cold marble flooring.
Fluttershy's eyes widened with a mixture of fear and shock as she watched Alastor approach the imposing building owned by Filthy Rich. With each step he took, his presence seemed to grow in stature, causing ripples of unease that could be felt by everyone nearby. The air crackled with tension, making the hairs on the back of her neck stand on end.
Despite her fear, Fluttershy couldn't help but feel a glimmer of hope. The Radio Demon may have been terrifying, but he had shown her more kindness than anyone else in this cold city. His anger now was directed towards her boss, and it was both frightening and strangely comforting.
Meanwhile, the limousine driver showed no reaction to Alastor's dramatic entrance. He simply nodded and started the car, smoothly pulling away from the scene about to unfold.
"I can't kill him just yet," Alastor sneered, using his dark magic to repair his twisted cane. "I still need the contract."
As a demon who dealt in deals and bargains, Alastor was well-versed in the intricacies of contracts. He knew that he couldn't simply eliminate the stallion, for depending on the terms and conditions of their agreement, any harm inflicted upon Filthy Rich could result in unforeseen consequences. No, Alastor required finesse - a skill he was not accustomed to, but one that he was certainly capable of executing.
With his cane fixed in place, Alastor snapped his fingers with a flourish and transformed into his pony form. He straightened his bow tie and took a moment to smooth out the wrinkles in his suit before confidently striding into the lower levels of the towering edifice.
As he walked, the employees and patrons alike couldn't help but turn their heads, feeling an inexplicable chill in the air as the lights flickered above him. They could sense the power emanating from this being, and it sent shivers down their spines.
Alastor made his way to the elevators, his cane clicking rhythmically on the polished floor. The receptionist by the elevator eyed him warily, her eyes widening slightly at the sight of him. There was an unspoken understanding amongst the staff that this was a being one did not simply address without invitation.
The elevator ascended rapidly, carrying Alastor to the upper echelons of Filthy Rich's enterprise. As he emerged onto the top floor, the doors slid open with a soft ding, revealing a sprawling office space synonymous with wealth and power. Plush carpets silenced his steps as he approached the heart of this corrupt empire.
The receptionist at this level was more poised than her counterpart below, but even she couldn't fully hide the slight tremble in her hand as she took in the intensity of Alastor's gaze. It was clear that this being commanded respect and fear in equal measure.
"Mr. Rich is in a meeting," she managed to say, her voice betraying a hint of uncertainty.
"Is he now? How... inconvenient," Alastor's voice dripped with a velvety, sinister threat as his tendril emerged from his back and pierced the skull of the receptionist.
His grin widened as he watched the lifeless body crumple to the ground and his tendril retracted, vanishing into his form without a trace. With purposeful strides, he made his way towards Filthy Rich's office door, which swung open effortlessly before him as if compelled by some unseen force.
Inside the spacious office, a hushed conversation abruptly stopped as Filthy Rich hastily put on his clothes, while a naked pegasus mare quickly left the room. Filthy's expression shifted from surprise to annoyance within seconds as he registered the presence of Alastor in front of him. The air was thick with tension and danger as the two powerful beings stood face to face, their gazes locked in a silent battle of wills.
"Have you ever heard of Knocking!?" Filthy demanded as he finished hastily buckling his pants. The room was dimly lit, with a faint smell of sweat and cheap perfume lingering in the air. "Who the Fuck are you!?"
"Fluttershy," Alastor said calmly, his piercing gaze locking with Filthy Rich's. Immediately, recognition dawned on the Earth Pony Stallion's face. "I want her."
"Well I'm sure I can arrange that," Filthy replied, adjusting the rest of his clothing. "But I'm afraid that bitch is booked for the next month. However, for the right price, I'm sure I can bump you up on the list."
"You misunderstand," Alastor stated, taking slow and calculated steps towards Filthy. "I want Fluttershy...I want her contract."
Filthy let out a snide laugh. "You're joking, right?" he sneered at the disguised demon. "Because that bitch owes me a substantial debt."
"Do I look like I'm joking?" Alastor's voice was low and dangerous, sending chills down Filthy's spine. "I am more than willing to pay her debt back with interest. But once it is paid, I expect you to release her from your service permanently."
"Fuck that!" Filthy shouted back at the demon. "That little whore is one of my best toys! She's one of the only ponies in this city who will take Any cock. And those fucking non pony freaks will pay top bits for a piece of her ass."
Alastor's expression darkened. "Take the money, Mr. Rich," he warned in a cold tone. "Hand over her contract and I may spare your life."
“Great…another lunatic thinking with his dick and not his head,” Filthy growled as he slammed his fist on the button on his desk. The sound of a buzzer filled the room as he called for security.
In a matter of seconds, two massive ponies burst into the room, their dark suits barely containing their rippling muscles. Their eyes immediately landed on the intruder, Alastor, and they advanced without hesitation. It was clear they were prepared to use force to remove him from the premises.
But Alastor was quicker. In one swift motion, he extended his hand and the first guard suddenly found himself missing an arm. Blood sprayed across the room as screams erupted and the acrid stench of iron filled the air.
The second guard froze in shock, watching as his partner fell to the ground, writhing in agony as dark, inky tendrils retracted back into Alastor's now outstretched hand.
Without missing a beat, the Radio Demon turned towards the second guard and effortlessly used his sharp claws to slice him into nothing more than a pile of meaty chunks. The room was now filled with chaos and carnage, a scene straight out of a horror movie.
Filthy Rich's attempts at bravado evaporated as he watched his protection being effortlessly dispatched. Sweat beaded on his forehead, and he found himself taking involuntary steps back until his spine pressed against the cold glass of the window that showcased the city below.
"How-" Filthy stammered, his words failing to form properly as he gazed at Alastor's imposing figure. The demon's sharp features and blood-red eyes seemed to pierce through him, causing a chill to run down his spine.
"Enough," Alastor growled, his voice like a low rumble that made the very air in the room tense. His towering presence seemed to fill the entire space, casting a sense of fear and dread over Filthy.
"You will sign Fluttershy's contract over to me," he demanded, his voice leaving no room for negotiation.
"I-I-I-I-I can't," Filthy stuttered, paralyzed by fear and unable to make a coherent argument. "Sh-She owes me money."
In an instant, Alastor was in front of the trembling pony, his clawed hands wrapped tightly around Filthy's neck. The once confident and brash pony now cowered before the demon, unable to escape his grasp.
"You are assuming I was asking," Alastor snarled, his voice low and dangerous. He slammed Filthy against the window with such force that cracks began to form on the glass. "I'm demanding."
Alastor's hand clenched around Filthy Rich's throat, cutting off his breath and causing his eyes to bulge in fear. The cityscape loomed behind them, a maze of towering buildings and bustling streets now reduced to mere background noise as the sun began its descent below the skyline. Its last rays cast long shadows over the pair, a natural spotlight on their tense standoff. In this golden light, Alastor's features contorted into a menacing snarl while Filthy Rich struggled desperately against his grip, gasping for air.
"Alright! Alright!" he wheezed out, his fingers clawing at Alastor's unrelenting hand. "I'll get you the damn contract!"
With a disdainful flick of his wrist, Alastor released him. Filthy crumpled to the floor, coughing and rubbing his bruised neck while gasping for air. The Radio Demon watched with a cold detachment as Filthy scrambled over to a secure safe tucked away behind a landscape painting.
The tense silence was broken by the sharp clicking of tumblers, accompanied by Filthy's ragged breaths. With a heavy thud, the safe finally unlocked, and the greedy pony wasted no time in pulling out a stack of papers. His trembling hands rifled through them until he found the one bearing Fluttershy's name - the target of Alastor's wrath.
With a shaking hand, Filthy Rich held out the contract to Alastor, his eyes darting up to meet those of the demon's. But there was no mercy or forgiveness in those piercing red irises.
Wordlessly, Alastor snatched the contract from Filthy's grasp and skimmed over its contents with his fingers, verifying its authenticity. It was then that something caught Alastor's attention within the fine print of the contract.
"So they use Unicorns to magically bind their contracts," Alastor mused aloud, glancing over at Filthy who was attempting to flee. "But you don't get to leave until I'm done."
In a swift motion, one of Alastor's tendrils wrapped around the pony's neck, effortlessly dragging him back like a cat playing with its prey. Filthy let out a strangled yelp as he was lifted into the air, his legs thrashing about in a futile attempt to find solid ground.
"Hmm...quite clever," Alastor remarked, turning away from the contract to face Filthy. "The hidden clause ensures that in the event of your untimely demise, it will also be the end for all your employees bound by this same magic."
Alastor's unsettlingly still smile spread wider across his face as he regarded Filthy Rich, who hung limply from the shadowy tendril. The demon's piercing crimson eyes glinted with sadistic glee at the cleverness of his plan.
"You thought you were so clever, didn't you?" Alastor taunted, his smooth voice dripping with mockery. "A tidy little insurance policy to prevents your 'investments' from turning against you. But you see, Mr. Rich, I am quite adept at navigating... loopholes."
With a snap of his fingers, Filthy's signature burst into flames and disappeared, leaving the space completely blank. The Radio Demon plucked a pen off the desk and elegantly signed his name on the contract, legally making Fluttershy his.
Satisfied with the contract, Alastor tucked it into his waistcoat before turning back to Filthy Rich. His lips curved into a satisfied smirk as he relished in the wealthy pony's defeat.
“I’d say it’s been a pleasure…” Alastor drawled, his voice dripping with contempt as more tendrils emerged from the floor and began to snake towards Filthy Rich. “But I'd be lying through my teeth." The tendrils moved with an unnatural grace, like serpents swaying to a silent tune only they could hear.
Filthy Rich's eyes were wide with terror, his pupils shrinking to tiny pinpricks as the tendrils crept closer. "No, please!" he pleaded, his voice barely above a whisper. "You have what you want. Let me go!"
Filthy Rich could barely muster the strength to tremble, the air itself thick with dread. The tendrils inched closer, their tips sharpened like spears hungry for the hunt. The earth pony's eyes darted frantically for any avenue of escape, any sliver of hope, but found none.
“Yes I got what I want,” Alastor sneered, his voice cold and calculated. The tendrils snaked closer, forming serrated spikes along their length that glinted with a sinister light. “And right now I want you to suffer."
Filthy Rich could feel the cold touch of the tendrils as they hovered millimeters from his skin, the sharp points promising agony. "You're a monster!" he spat, the accusation falling flat in the heavy air.
Alastor chuckled, a sound void of humor. "Monster is such an understated term for what I am," he mused aloud. "But rest assured, you will come to understand the true depths of my capabilities before your end."
A sinister grin spread across Alastor's face as he grabbed one of the tendrils protruding from his body. Without warning, he forced it into Filthy's pants and mercilessly drove it into his tight puckered hole. The barbs on the tendril sliced through the tender walls of the pony's rectum, causing him to let out a blood-curdling scream that echoed off the glass windows. Despite the overwhelming pain, Filthy's cries were drowned out by the deafening roar of the city below.
With each thrust of the tendril, Alastor's sadistic pleasure grew stronger. His eyes glowed with a wicked light as he watched the man writhe and contort in unimaginable agony. But the Demon wanted to prolong this display of suffering, so he callously shoved a second tendril up Filthy's ravaged ass. Blood gushed out and mingled with his screams, which had now escalated into gut-wrenching wails that reverberated throughout the room. Alastor relished in the sight and sound before him, reveling in his twisted desires and craving for more pain and suffering.
But Alastor wanted more, The Radio Demon thrust the next tendril through the hole in his dick. The agony of the tendrils violating him in the most unthinkable ways was so great that Filthy Rich's eyes rolled back into his head, his body contorting and writhing in a grotesque dance of pain. The room was filled with the sickening sounds of flesh tearing and bones cracking as Alastor continued his twisted ministrations, reveling in every gargled moan and shudder of his prey's dying body.
Filthy Rich's once immaculate form was now marred beyond recognition, his organs strewn about like discarded toys. Yet Alastor showed no signs of stopping, slowly tearing apart the unfortunate pony from within like a child ripping open a gift on Christmas morning. With each merciless tug, Filthy Rich's cries for mercy grew weaker until all that remained were hoarse whimpers and gasps for air.
It was only when he had reduced Filthy Rich to nothing more than a quivering mass of blood and gore did the tendrils tear through his body one final time. With a sickening squelch, they burst from his mouth and eyes, full of gore and viscera like macabre confetti.
Alastor stepped back to admire his work, savoring the victory and the look of sheer terror permanently etched on Filthy Rich's face. In one swift motion, he flicked his wrist and sent the mutilated remains of his victim hurtling out the window. As they fell, the wind whipped past their falling forms, giving them a brief moment of weightlessness before they crashed onto the unforgiving ground below. All that remained of Filthy Rich now was a mangled mess of flesh and bones, a testament to Alastor's insatiable thirst for destruction.
The streets echoed with a sickening thshk sound as Filthy Rich's broken body made contact with the hard pavement. Blood and gore sprayed in all directions, staining the already-grimy sidewalk a brighter shade of crimson.
Looking down at the gruesome scene below, Alastor's twisted smirk only grew wider. "Consider this a lesson," he said coldly to the lifeless mess. "Mare or stallion, pony or alicorn, it matters not to me who crosses my path. Mess with what’s mine, and I will find you."
With the contract safely tucked away in his waistcoat, Alastor turned to leave, his business here concluded. The Radio Demon melted into the shadows, leaving behind only the faint static buzz of his presence. The city continued its relentless pulse, unaware of the horrors that had just unfolded within the walls of the now silent office. The air was thick with unease and dread, a reminder of Alastor's insatiable thirst for destruction and chaos.
As the moon slowly ascended into the night sky, its bright rays casting a pale glow over the land, Alastor materialized inside Fluttershy's cozy cottage. The thickening twilight seemed to swirl around him as he stepped into the room, accompanied by the gentle sounds of small creatures scampering and the distant hoots of owls.
Despite his imposing presence, Alastor moved with an eerie silence through the cottage, his crimson eyes scanning every inch of the quaint abode before entering Fluttershy's room. There, he found her sitting on her bed, her knees pulled up close to her chest as she clutched a large stuffed rabbit in her arms.
Fluttershy's wide, tear-filled eyes lifted to meet Alastor's as he entered. She visibly shrank back, her plush toy becoming a lifeline in the sea of fear that was her memories.
Alastor observed her with an unreadable expression. "Your tears are unwarranted, my dear," he said softly, his voice almost tender in the quiet room. "The deed is done; the chains that bound you to that wretched pony have been severed."
Fluttershy swallowed hard, her voice barely above a whisper. "R-Really?"
"Don't believe me?" Alastor asked, presenting her with a familiar document. "Take a look at this."
Fluttershy's delicate hand trembled as she reached out to take the offered contract. Her heart raced with both trepidation and a glimmer of hope as she scanned the document, her eyes widening when she found Alastor's name boldly inscribed in place of Filthy Rich's. A small spark seemed to ignite in her chest, casting a faint glow on her face that had been absent for so long.
"You mean... I'm truly free?" Her voice was laced with disbelief, as if the concept of freedom was too distant to be true.
“Free as a bird, my Dear,” Alastor's smooth voice replied, his fingers snapping and causing the contract to burst into flames and turn to ash in an instant.
Fluttershy watched in awe as the ashes fluttered gracefully to the floor, symbolizing the end of her suffering. She turned to Alastor with a mix of wonder and gratitude, a small but genuine smile blooming across her face and chasing away the shadows that had clung to her for so long.
Tears glistened in Fluttershy's eyes, but they were no longer ones of fear or despair. They were tears of relief and gratitude towards the demon who had given her back her freedom. With newfound strength coursing through her frail body, she set aside the stuffed rabbit and stood up, her legs wobbly from the overwhelming flood of emotions.
"I-I don't know how to thank you," she stammered, her voice still fragile but now infused with a sense of determination.
"There is no need for than…," Alastor's words were cut off abruptly when he felt the mare wrap her arms around him. Her embrace was hesitant yet filled with a warmth that was uncommon to his interactions. Fluttershy buried her face against his chest, her body trembling not from fear, but from the overwhelming release of her burdens. Alastor stood rigid for a moment, caught off guard by the unexpected gesture. It was rare for anyone to touch him, let alone offer a display of affection.
"Your gratitude is noted," he said after a brief pause, allowing the briefest of connections before gently but firmly setting Fluttershy at arm's length. "But I must ask you not to touch me."
Fluttershy nodded, stepping back with a slight flush of embarrassment coloring her cheeks. "I apologize," she murmured, her voice barely audible. "I just...I felt so helpless for so long, and now—"
Alastor raised a hand, halting her mid-sentence. "No apologies are necessary, Fluttershy," he interrupted smoothly, his tone still carrying that refined edge of civility as he turned to leave the room. "You should get some rest, my dear."
Fluttershy quickly flew up to Alastor before he could leave, using her wings to reach his height. She gave him a small kiss on the cheek and then hurried back to the ground.
"Thank you, Alastor," Fluttershy said softly, barely above a whisper as she retreated, her eyes cast down and her cheeks turning a deeper shade of pink.
Alastor's usual stoic expression showed a hint of surprise when Fluttershy kissed his cheek. For a brief moment, her warmth broke through his cold demeanor and sparked something long forgotten within him. But the feeling passed quickly and he returned to his usual state of nonchalant amusement.
"What an unconventional way to show gratitude," he remarked, his voice giving away none of the surprise that had momentarily shown on his face.
Fluttershy, still blushing, looked up at him again, searching for any signs of anger or annoyance. Instead, she saw a subtle softness in his expression that wasn't there before - a glimmer that suggested her spontaneous act of kindness was not entirely unwelcome.
The corners of Alastor's mouth turned up in a wry smile. "Your courage is commendable, Fluttershy. Not many would dare to be so familiar with me," he said, his voice carrying an underlying tone of respect. "But now, as I said before, rest is what you need."
With that, he turned away from her, his form beginning to dissolve into darkness within the cottage. The air hummed with a distant radio static, giving the space an otherworldly feel. Alastor glided through the shadows, his movements graceful yet eerie. He stopped at the kitchen sink, and only then did the Demon let out a pained breath, using the counter to hold himself up.
“Damn…that unicorn,” Alastor muttered through gritted teeth as he slowly and painfully removed his coat, followed by his waistcoat and shirt.
Each article of clothing revealed more bloodied bandages wrapping around his scarred torso. Behind the ever-present smile on his face, Alastor hid a tremendous amount of pain. His body bore the physical toll of a recent encounter that had been far more taxing than he let on. The Radio Demon was not one to show weakness, but in the solitude of Fluttershy's cottage kitchen, away from prying eyes, he allowed himself this moment of vulnerability.
With careful, practiced movements, Alastor turned on the faucet, its metallic groan echoing through the empty bathroom. He gingerly unwrapped the blood-soaked bandages that concealed his skin, revealing a ghastly array of wounds that marred his otherwise porcelain complexion. Some were shallow cuts, still raw and tender, while others were deep gashes that had yet to fully heal. The sight would have been enough to make anyone else grimace in pain or recoil in horror, but Alastor was not just anyone.
A sharp intake of breath escaped him as he began to clean the injuries with well-worn efficiency, each touch a reminder of the skill of his opponent - the legendary Unicorn Sun Knight known as Shining Armor. The water turned a pale pink as it washed away the mixture of blood and dirt, revealing the true extent of Alastor's injuries. With each layer of bandage peeled away, his once-pale skin grew even paler, almost translucent in the dim moonlight that filtered through the small window above the sink. His hands, usually so steady and sure, trembled ever so slightly as he worked, betraying the sheer exhaustion that had taken hold of him.
He couldn't help but sneak a glance at his reflection in a nearby window, taking in the harsh lines of pain etched into his features. A dark chuckle bubbled up from within him, the sound hollow and devoid of its usual charismatic lilt. "A demon bested by a unicorn," he muttered to himself with a mix of dark amusement and grudging respect for his adversary. "Shining Armor... you truly live up to your name."
Once the wounds were cleaned and the pain had dulled to a manageable throb, Alastor began the meticulous task of rewrapping them with fresh bandages. His movements were now slow and calculated, as if he were performing a delicate dance. As he worked, his mind couldn't help but wander back to Fluttershy – her kind eyes and hesitant touch, offering a small but meaningful gesture of affection. Her purity was a rarity in his world, and it unsettled him more than any physical wound could.
With his wounds redressed, Alastor put his clothes back on and stumbled over to collapse on Fluttershy's plush couch. The soft cushions cradled his weary body, offering a comfort that he hadn't sought out in ages. Though he would never admit it aloud, there was a strange sense of solace to be found in the serene quietness of Fluttershy's home – a stark contrast to the chaotic tumult of his usual existence.
With a deep inhale, Alastor closed his eyes, seeking a fleeting moment of tranquility from the ceaseless clamor pulsing through his being. He couldn't recall how long he had been slumbering before being abruptly awoken by the chaotic symphony of screams and laughter. The dissonant din tore through his dreams, dragging him back to reality. Tracking down the origin of the noise, Alastor discovered a raging inferno in front of Fluttershy’s cottage, with the mare herself - dressed in a green shirt and pink skirt - tossing handfuls of stuff into the flames.
Fluttershy, with her back to Alastor, was seemingly unaware of his presence as she continued to fuel the fire. Her movements were erratic and almost desperate, as if the act of burning was a cathartic release for something pent up within her. The flames danced and leapt, casting monstrous shadows that painted the quiet cottage walls with a flickering madness.
Alastor approached with a silent gait, his face expressionless as he drew nearer to Fluttershy. "I never would have pegged you as the pyromaniac type," he remarked, causing the mare to jump in alarm as she turned to face him. "May I inquire why?" His tone remained calm and controlled, but there was a hint of curiosity that Fluttershy couldn't quite decipher.
"I'm just getting rid of some things," Fluttershy replied, reaching into a pile beside her and pulling out a revealing Zebra print lingerie set. "Actually...I'm getting rid of every trace of my old life."
The flames crackled and hissed, almost punctuating Fluttershy's confession as they sent up a plume of smoke that curled into the morning sky. Alastor watched, tilting his head slightly, as she tossed the lingerie set into the inferno. The synthetic fabric curled and blackened in seconds, reduced to nothing more than ash.
"I see," Alastor responded, his eyes still fixed on the all-consuming fire. "A symbolic purging, then? A rather drastic measure, but effective nonetheless."
With her eyes fixed on the flames that now held remnants of her past, Fluttershy nodded in agreement. "I want to start fresh," she declared with a newfound determination. "No more fear and timidity. It's time for a change."
Alastor regarded her seriously for a moment before a sly grin crept onto his face. The Radio Demon approached her and placed a hand on her stomach.
"And what about this?" he asked, causing Fluttershy's heart to beat faster as she looked up at him. "I imagine you have mixed emotions about the origin of the life growing inside of you."
Fluttershy blushed under his touch, feeling flustered and unsure of how to respond. She took a deep breath, gathering herself under his intense gaze before finally finding her voice.
"Yes, I do have... mixed feelings," she admitted in a hushed tone, barely audible over the crackle of the fire. "But it's not like I can change..."
It suddenly dawned on the Pegasus who she was confiding in - the infamous Radio Demon known for making deals with anyone.
“Did you find a solution to your 'Mixed Feelings' ?” Alastor inquired, distancing himself from the pegasus.
Uncertainty tinged her voice as Fluttershy called after him, "Alastor? Can you...is there anything you can do?" She searched his back for any indication of his intentions.
Alastor paused, turning to face her with a thoughtful expression. "My dear," he spoke, warmth coloring his words, "there are always possibilities. The question is what you're willing to sacrifice for such a...service."
His grin returned, sharp and full, cutting through the tension like a blade. He circled the fire slowly, his movements entrancing as the flames danced in his eyes.
"Everything," Fluttershy declared with determination as she locked eyes with the demon before her. "I'll give up everything if it means I'm no longer tied to my old life."
Alastor burst into laughter before stepping through the fire and halting in front of her. "In all my countless years on this world, no one- and I mean no one has ever offered me everything!"
His laughter began to fade, settling into a low, contemplative hum as he peered down at Fluttershy with an expression that bordered on fascination. "You truly are a remarkable creature, aren't you?" Alastor mused, circling around her. "However, I must warn you, 'everything' is quite the hefty sum. Are you certain you understand the gravity of what you're proposing?"
Fluttershy's heart beat faster, adrenaline mingling with the heat from the flames. Yet there was a resolve in her stance that hadn't been there before. This was her moment to redefine who she was and who she wanted to be—a chance to break free from the chains of fear that had always held her back.
"I do," she replied, swallowing the lump in her throat. "If it means starting anew without any remnants of my past holding me back, then yes, I'm willing."
Alastor ceased his circling and halted behind her, looming like a predator stalking its prey. A chill ran down Fluttershy's spine as she felt his presence linger inches away from her back.
"Then we have a deal," Alastor declared, his voice holding a hint of slyness.
Before she could react, Alastor placed a hand over her eyes, blocking out the world around her. Fluttershy's heart pounded in her chest as she felt his other hand slide under her shirt and rest on her stomach, pulling her closer to him. Her face flushed with anticipation and nervousness as she awaited what was to come next.
"Is... Is this going to hurt?" Fluttershy asked, her voice quivering with fear and excitement.
"Only if you want it to," Alastor whispered into her ear, sending shivers down her spine.
With a slow and deliberate motion, the Radio Demon's hand sank into her body as if he were moving through a thick liquid. Fluttershy tensed, bracing herself for pain that never came. Instead, a strange sensation washed over her, like a part of her was being gently untangled and lifted away. It was both terrifying and liberating, as if Alastor were sifting through her very essence.
The sensation caused the mare to let out a low moan, her body arching in response. As the feeling intensified, Fluttershy's hooves dug into the soft earth beneath her, the cool grass tickling against her skin. Her breaths grew shallow and rapid, her chest rising and falling with each tug and pull of Alastor's unseen magic at work within her.
After what felt like an endless wait for the pegasus mare, Alastor finally withdrew from her body. In his hand, he held the essence of the Minotaur who had impregnated the poor mare. A burst of flames emanated from his hand, erasing all traces of Fluttershy's past experiences. However, the Demon knew that the child could not exist solely with its mother's DNA. With a flick of his clawed thumb, the Radio Demon sliced all four fingers, causing them to drip with blood. A wide grin spread across Alastor's face as he plunged his hand back into Fluttershy, eliciting another moan from the mare.
Fluttershy let out a moan, struggling to form coherent words. "W-why are you doing this again?" she managed to say, her voice trembling.
Alastor simply smiled and continued his work, placing his demonic essence into her egg in careful and calculated movements. "I couldn't get it all in one go," he lied smoothly, his voice like silk as he worked with finesse.
Fluttershy could only nod, her mind consumed by the intense sensations coursing through her body. Alastor's magic was invasive yet intimate, leaving Fluttershy feeling vulnerable and overwhelmed under his powerful influence.
After finishing his work, Alastor removed his hands from her body and stepped back. "There," he said with satisfaction. "The deed is done."
Fluttershy let out a sigh of relief as Alastor removed his hands from her body, causing her to collapse onto the ground. "That was...different," she remarked, catching her breath.
Alastor chuckled softly, "You have entrusted me with a great deal, my dear," he said, kneeling down to gently brush a stray strand of hair from her face. "Rest assured, your new life will be free from the struggles of your old one. I promise you."
As Fluttershy lay on the cool earth, her breathing began to return to normal and she felt grounded in the present moment. No matter what challenges she may face, she knew she would always love her child unconditionally. A small smile crept onto her lips as she felt the weight of the magic she had just experienced begin to make her eyelids heavy.
Author's Note
Whew....another 9k chapter. I think I covered all my bases with chapter....next chapter is gonna be a bit of a timeskip...I think..not sure yet.
On to the Questions:
If Alastor doesn't kill Filithy Rich after he pays Fluttershy's debt.
Will he at least permanently traumatize that damn shitstain?
Also, will Alastor be meeting Twilight next or he first meet (and make deals with) the other four members of the mane six before encountering her?
As of right now. I highly doubt Alastor will make deals with the others, as for Twilight not yet.
Is “Alastor” the only Hazbin Hotel character who is going to appear in this story?
Yes. I did include Niffty, but she was a resident of Equestria that Alastor molded into Niffty. I do not plan to include any other characters of Hazbin Hotel
so as always Stay Tuned Folks
The early morning sun cast a warm, golden glow over the bustling farmers market as Fluttershy made her way through the vibrant stalls. The sweet scent of freshly picked produce filled the air and enticed her onward. Her woven basket swung gently at her side, already containing a few carefully selected items. At four months pregnant, Fluttershy's small baby bump was just becoming noticeable beneath her flowing sundress.
As she approached a stand overflowing with an array of colorful fruits and vegetables, Fluttershy couldn't help but smile. The simple act of choosing her own food, free from the constraints and fears of her past, felt like a small victory. She paused to examine a particularly plump tomato, its deep red skin glistening in the sunlight.
"Good morning, Fluttershy!" called out the friendly voice of Carrot Top from behind the stand. "My goodness, you're positively radiant! How are you and the little one feeling today?"
Fluttershy looked up, a warm smile spreading across her face as she greeted her kind neighbor. "Oh, good morning Carrot Top. We're both doing quite well, thank you. Your produce looks absolutely divine today."
"Thank you, dear. I've got some special carrots that'd be just perfect for a healthy mum-to-be," Carrot Top said, winking as she selected a few plump ones and added them to Fluttershy's basket. "Here, on the house."
Fluttershy's eyes widened in grateful surprise. "Oh, that's too generous of you! I can't possibly—"
"Nonsense," Carrot Top dismissed with a gentle laugh. "Consider it a small gift for the baby."
With a grateful smile, Fluttershy accepted the kind gesture and continued on her way, feeling a deep sense of community that she hadn't realized she was craving. As she carefully selected her items from the market stalls, a sense of peace washed over her like a warm summer breeze. Her hand rested gently on her growing belly, a constant reminder of the new life she was nurturing inside. This simple act of shopping among friends and neighbors felt like the start of a new chapter in her life - one filled with hope and potential for both herself and her unborn child.
Over the past four months, the pegasus mare had experienced a series of positive events. The first was the passing of her former boss, Filthy Rich. In addition, his business and building were thoroughly investigated, revealing numerous charges including embezzlement, fraud, illegal sale and distribution of firearms, unlicensed gun dealing and trafficking, solicitation of prostitution and sex trafficking, pony enslavement and trafficking, sexual assault and rape, running a house of ill fame, and pimping. While rumors swirled in the market square about Fluttershy's involvement in bringing down Filthy's dark empire, she refused to engage in such conversations. To her, it was a past better left in the shadows - a chapter closed so tightly that not even the slightest whisper could crack it open again. Instead, she focused on the present moment - the fresh Apples of Sweet Apple Acres - allowing the murmurs of her old life to fade into the background as she looked towards a brighter future
“Hey Flutters” Big Macintosh greeted Fluttershy with his usual laconic charm, leaning casually against the wooden frame of the Sweet Apple Acres stand. Behind him, a bushel of perfect apples rested in bins, their vibrant shades of red and green beckoning to Fluttershy's attention.
"Hey Macky," Fluttershy replied with a warm smile, her voice soft and melodic.
Big Macintosh was taken aback by her good mood. It was rare to see Fluttershy so cheerful, and even rarer for her to use his old pet name.
"I've been hearing things around town," Big Mac said as Fluttershy began carefully selecting her apples. "I heard you finally quit...and that you've got yourself knocked up."
Fluttershy's smile faltered slightly at the blunt words, but she quickly recovered, her grace as gentle as ever. "Yes, quite a lot has changed recently," she admitted softly, placing a few more apples in her basket. "But I like to think it's all for the better."
Curiosity getting the best of him, Big Mac tilted his head and asked, "How far along are ya?"
"Just past four months," Fluttershy answered with a proud hand resting on her growing belly. "The doctor says everything is looking healthy."
Feeling a sense of responsibility towards Fluttershy, Big Mac nervously scratched the back of his head before finally mustering up the courage to ask, "Out of curiosity...any chance it's mine?"
For a moment, the air between them hung heavy with unspoken history. Fluttershy's eyes softened as she met Big Macintosh's gaze with a tender yet firm resolve.
"No, Macky," she spoke gently, letting the old nickname bridge the gap between them and their shared past. "As much as I would have loved for you to be the father, unfortunately you're not."
"I figured," Big Mac replied, a hint of disappointment in his voice. "But I always wanted to start a family on my own."
Fluttershy reached out and took his hand in hers, offering a small smile. Together, they stood in silence for a moment, the sound of rustling leaves and chirping birds filling the air around them. The past may have faded, but their friendship remained strong as ever.
"You were an amazing boyfriend, Macky," she said, her words filled with love and gratitude. "Better than I could have ever hoped for. And I promise you, when the time is right, you'll have that family you've always wanted."
Big Macintosh's eyes held a mixture of emotions; regret for not being able to give Fluttershy the family she deserved, hope for their future together, and a fierce protectiveness for both Fluttershy and her unborn child. He squeezed her hand gently in acknowledgment, his large fingers careful not to grip too tightly.
"Y'know," he said after a moment, his voice steady despite the emotions swirling within him, "if y'ever need anything – help with the baby, fixing up a nursery, or even just someone to talk to – you just let me know."
Fluttershy's smile returned, warmer than before. "Thank you, Macky. That means the world to me."
“Well, I better let you get on with your shopping,” Big Mac said at last, releasing her hand and offering a small smile. “And Fluttershy?”
She looked up at him inquisitively.
“Take care of yourself...and that little one.”
Fluttershy's smile grew even wider as she placed a hand over her growing belly. “I will, Big Mac. Thank you for everything.”
Fluttershy's steps felt lighter as she continued her stroll through the market. Her encounter with Big Mac had stirred up bittersweet memories, but it also solidified her journey towards healing and new beginnings. Although their past was a mix of highs and lows, this interaction would be another thread woven into the tapestry of their friendship.
Her basket now filled with goods from the market, Fluttershy made her way to the outskirts of town. The bustling noise of vendors and shoppers slowly faded away as she followed the familiar path towards her cottage. The air was filled with the comforting scents of wildflowers and freshly-cut grass.
As she entered her cottage, a foreign scent immediately hit Fluttershy's nose. It was strong, yet not unpleasant, a mixture of herbs and something sweet that she couldn't quite identify. Setting down her basket, Fluttershy followed the alluring fragrance deeper into her home, eventually leading her to the kitchen like a guiding breeze.
As soon as Fluttershy stepped into the kitchen, her senses were overwhelmed by a mouthwatering aroma. Her eyes immediately fell upon Alastor, sitting at the dinner table and voraciously devouring one of several cooked meals of venison.
The Radio Demon looked up from his meal, his ever-present grin stretching wider at the sight of Fluttershy. "Ah, my dear! Welcome home," he said in his usual radio-host cadence. "I took the liberty of preparing a few venison dishes for lunch."
Fluttershy's eyes widened in amazement as she took in the scene before her. The kitchen table was adorned with an impressive array of venison dishes, each prepared in a different style. There were perfectly roasted venison steaks and roasts, a bubbling stew brimming with chunks of venison, juicy venison sausages, and even what appeared to be thinly sliced strips of venison jerky. The combination of scents wafting from the various dishes was enticing beyond belief.
Despite her usual preference for vegetarian meals, Fluttershy couldn't help but feel her stomach growl at the sight and smell of the spread before her. The rich, savory aroma of the perfectly cooked meat was tantalizing and impossible to resist, causing her mouth to water involuntarily.
Fluttershy's eyes widened in surprise as she gazed at the spread of dishes before her. The tantalizing aroma of savory meats filled her nose, causing her stomach to growl with unexpected hunger. She tried to compose herself, swallowing hard and attempting to push away her usual dietary habits. But the temptation was too strong.
"Oh my," she whispered, her voice barely audible over the chatter of the other guests. "Alastor, this is... quite something. I've never seen so many venison dishes in one place."
Alastor chuckled, the sound emitting from him like static from an old radio. "Well, my dear, I believe in making the most of what nature provides," he said with a flourish of his hand towards the empty chair across from him. As he took a bite from the plate in front of him, Fluttershy could see his sharp teeth gleaming in the dim light. "Won't you join me? Your reaction tells me you might enjoy this more than you expect."
Fluttershy hesitated, her inner turmoil evident on her face as she struggled between her moral code and her intense craving for the delicious aromas wafting from the table. Almost unconsciously, she found herself moving closer to Alastor and taking a seat.
“I…I don’t eat meat,” she said softly, feeling a twinge of guilt at even considering trying it.
But Alastor's grin only seemed to widen at her confession. "But I... I suppose I could try a little," she added, unable to resist any longer.
"Splendid!" he exclaimed, his eyes glowing with delight as he began serving her various dishes. "Now, my dear, what would you like to sample first? The succulent roast? The rich stew? Or perhaps a bit of everything?"
As Alastor began to describe each dish with mesmerizing detail, Fluttershy couldn't help but feel a mix of excitement and guilt wash over her. The delicious aroma of meat filled her nostrils, tempting her senses despite her strong moral stance against consuming animal flesh. She found herself torn between indulging in the feast before her and staying true to her love for animals.
"I... I don't know," Fluttershy stammered, her indecision evident in her voice. She glanced down at the table, where a lavish spread of carnivorous delights awaited her. Her inner conflict grew stronger as Alastor slid his half-eaten Venison steak towards her.
"Just one bite," he purred, his voice taking on a seductive tone that seemed to penetrate deep into her psyche. "A small taste won't do any harm. After all, life is meant to be experienced in all its diverse flavors, isn't it?"
Fluttershy's gaze shifted from Alastor to the succulent steak and back again. His face was aglow with inexplicable delight, momentarily making her forget her aversion to meat. With trembling fingers, she reached out for the fork and knife he had provided. Taking a deep breath, she sliced off a tiny piece of the juicy venison and brought it to her lips.
For a moment, Fluttershy hesitated with the fork hovering just inches away from her mouth. But then, closing her eyes, she boldly took a bite and savored the explosive burst of rich, savory flavors that flooded her tastebuds. In an instant, she was hooked on the surprisingly delectable fare before her.
"Oh my goodness," Fluttershy gasped, her voice filled with wonder. Her eyes widened as she took in the dish before her – venison, perfectly cooked and exuding a rich, savory aroma. "It's... it's incredible! The flavor is so deep and complex, each bite revealing new nuances to savor. And the texture! It's so tender, it just falls apart in my mouth."
Unable to resist, she cut another, larger piece of the succulent meat and brought it to her lips. A burst of juices flooded her taste buds as she chewed and swallowed. "The juiciness is unbelievable," she continued, her earlier hesitation forgotten. "I've never tasted anything like this before. It's somehow both delicate and robust at the same time."
Fluttershy found herself reaching for more, her moral quandary momentarily overshadowed by the sensory experience of this delectable dish. "The seasoning is perfect too," she noted between bites. "It enhances the natural flavor of the meat without overpowering it. And there's a subtle smokiness that adds another layer of depth."
She looked up at Alastor, her eyes shining with a mix of guilt and undeniable pleasure. "I... I can't believe I'm saying this, but it's absolutely delicious." The inner conflict between her usual principles and this new, tantalizing experience was clear on her face as she continued to devour the dish.
As she spoke, Fluttershy couldn't help but notice that she was still salivating, her taste buds clamoring for more of the succulent venison. Despite her internal struggles, she couldn't deny the undeniable pleasure of indulging in this forbidden delight.
Fluttershy's eyes welled up with tears as she battled against the conflicting emotions swirling inside her. She was caught between her lifelong beliefs and the newfound pleasure in indulging in new flavors. With each bite, a sense of guilt crept up on her, but she couldn't seem to resist the delectable taste.
"I...I shouldn't be enjoying this so much," she murmured, a lone tear escaping down her cheek as she took another bite. The flavors exploded in her mouth, sending shivers down her spine. "Why does this taste so good?!"
Alastor's grin widened as he watched Fluttershy struggle with herself. He leaned forward, his voice taking on a soothing tone.
"My dear, there's no need for such distress," he said, passing her a soft napkin. "Consider this: your body knows what it needs, especially now."
Fluttershy dabbed at her eyes, still reeling from the intense flavor sensations. She looked at Alastor with confusion. "What do you mean?" His enigmatic smile only deepened her bewilderment.
Alastor nodded in understanding. "It's your condition, my dear," he replied, gesturing towards her swollen belly. "Your body is now nourishing two, and this craving for meat could simply be a way of ensuring that your baby receives all the necessary nutrients."
Fluttershy's Hand instinctively landed on her slightly enlarged abdomen. She hadn't considered the impact her pregnancy might have on her dietary needs.
"But I've always been content with a plant-based diet," she weakly protested, even as she cut another piece of venison.
"Every pregnancy is different," Alastor smoothly interjected. "And who are we to question nature's guidance? If your body is yearning for meat, there must be a reason."
Fluttershy chewed thoughtfully, still conflicted but somewhat comforted by this explanation. "I suppose you may have a point," she reluctantly admitted. "I have been feeling more exhausted lately, and my doctor did mention something about my iron levels..."
She took another bite, indulging in the taste with less guilt. "Perhaps just for the duration of the pregnancy," she murmured to herself. "For the sake of my baby's health..."
Alastor reclined in his chair, a smug grin spreading across his face. "Ah, my dear Fluttershy. It's all for the little one, of course." He gestured towards the venison stew on the table. "I highly recommend trying it. I believe you'll find it particularly nourishing."
Fluttershy's hands trembled slightly as she reached for the stew, her movements still hesitant but with a new determination in her gaze. The inner conflict that had been plaguing her seemed to have been temporarily overshadowed by her concern for her unborn foal.
"So," Alastor said, spearing a sausage link with his fork, "any other plans for today? Or will it be another day cooped up in this quaint little cottage of yours?"
"I was actually thinking of heading to Carousel Boutique," Fluttershy replied, delicately spooning a mouthful of stew into her mouth. "It's so... delicious... I need to ask Rarity if she'd be willing to make me some more comfortable clothing."
Alastor nodded, his eyes sparkling with interest. "Ah, seeking out the fashionista's expertise, are we? A wise choice, given your changing... silhouette." He twirled his fork in the air, the sausage still impaled on its tines. "Although, I must admit, I find it curious that you haven't ventured out much lately. Feeling a bit... shy, perhaps?"
A faint blush colored Fluttershy's cheeks as she stirred her stew. "Well, I... I suppose I have been staying indoors more than usual. It's just that..." She trailed off, glancing down at her swollen belly. "Things are changing so rapidly. Sometimes it feels like everypony is staring."
"My dear," Alastor chuckled darkly, his voice crackling with static, "ponies will always stare. It's in their nature. The real question is, what will you do about it?"
Fluttershy considered this as she took another spoonful of the rich stew. The flavors seemed to bolster her confidence somewhat. "I suppose you're right. I can't hide away forever. And I do need those new clothes..."
"Precisely!" Alastor exclaimed, his grin widening impossibly. "Why, I'd say this little outing is long overdue. A chance to show off your radiant, maternal glow to all of Ponyville!"
Fluttershy couldn't help but giggle nervously at his enthusiasm. "Oh, I don't know about showing off. But it would be nice to see Rarity. And maybe stop by Sugarcube Corner afterwards..." Her eyes widened as she realized what she'd said. "Oh my, I think I'm getting cravings already."
Alastor leaned back, clearly amused. "Venison and sweets? My, my, what an interesting combination. This pregnancy of yours is certainly bringing out a new side of you, isn't it?"
Fluttershy nodded, a mix of embarrassment and tentative excitement on her face. "I guess it is. Everything feels so different now." She finished her bowl of stew. "Oh dear, I should probably get going if I'm going to make it to Rarity's and then to Sugarcube Corner before it gets late."
As she stood up, she hesitated, looking at the remaining venison dishes. "Um, Alastor? Would it be alright if I... took some of this with me? For later?"
Alastor said nothing as he waved his hand across the table, conjuring an array of decorative containers that seemed to materialize out of thin air. "By all means, take as much as you'd like," he offered magnanimously. "One must ensure one's needs are met, especially in your delicate condition."
A rosy hue spread across Fluttershy's cheeks as she expressed her gratitude to Alastor. She carefully and delicately transferred the delectable venison steak, savory jerky strips, and succulent sausage links into one of the containers, her heart fluttering with anticipation at the thought of indulging in these rich flavors once more. Though a moral dilemma still lingered in the back of her mind, the immediate concern for her foal's well-being overshadowed it for now.
"Thank you, Alastor," she whispered gratefully as she finished packing up the container. "Your help means everything to me."
"It was my pleasure," Alastor replied nonchalantly, though a gleam of cunning shone in his eyes. "Actually... I believe I shall accompany you."
Fluttershy's heart skipped a beat at his unexpected offer. "You want to come with me to see Rarity?"
"Of course," Alastor chimed, using his magic to neatly store away the remaining food and placing them all into the fridge. "I'd love to see if this mare can match my unique sense of style."
Fluttershy's eyes widened with surprise, her thoughts racing at the idea of Alastor joining her on her trip into town. "Oh, um, that's very kind of you," she replied politely yet nervously. "But are you sure? Your style is quite... distinctive."
Alastor's smirk grew wider as he adjusted his bow tie. "That's precisely why I am intrigued, my dear! It would provide quite the challenge for your friend. Plus, it has been far too long since I've had a proper change in wardrobe."
"Well, if you're sure," Fluttershy said hesitantly. "I suppose we could use your limo."
Alastor's smirk grew even bigger. "Wonderful idea, darling! Joe should have it ready for us any moment now."
As if on cue, a sleek black and red limousine pulled up in front of Fluttershy's cottage. The zombie chauffeur, Joe, stepped out and opened the door with a stiff bow.
"Hello, Joe," Fluttershy greeted softly, giving a small wave. The zombie driver responded with a low groan which may have been a greeting.
Alastor assisted Fluttershy into the limo, being careful not to bump her pregnant belly. Once they were situated, Joe started the engine and began driving through Ponyville.
The ride was smooth but drew plenty of attention from the curious townspeople. Ponies stopped in their tracks to watch the luxurious vehicle pass by; after all, it wasn't every day that such an extravagant sight could be seen in their quaint little town. As they glided through the streets, the shiny exterior of the limo reflected the curious faces of the onlookers.
Finally, the limo pulled up to Carousel Boutique. Joe, the driver, brought the vehicle to a smooth stop and opened the door for them.
"Thank you, Joe," Fluttershy said while carefully stepping out of the car.
Alastor followed suit, donning his pony disguise and adjusting his glasses. "Impressive driving as always, my good man," he complimented Joe, who responded with an unintelligible groan.
As they approached the boutique, Fluttershy could see Rarity's shocked expression through the window. The fashion designer quickly regained her composure and rushed to open the door.
"Fluttershy, darling!" Rarity exclaimed, taking in her friend's appearance along with Alastor's presence. "What a... delightful surprise! Please come inside, both of you!"
Feeling a mixture of relief at reaching their destination and anxiety about what was to come, Fluttershy stepped into the boutique. She could only imagine how this visit would unfold, especially with having to explain why she needed new clothes.
"Oh dear..." Rarity gasped upon noticing Fluttershy's body. "Have you…Have you gained weight?"
Fluttershy's cheeks turned a deep shade of red as she heard Rarity's question. She automatically placed her hand over her slightly swollen belly, glancing nervously between Rarity and Alastor.
"I... well... you see..." Fluttershy started, her voice barely audible. She took a deep breath, trying to gather the courage to speak. "Actually, Rarity, I'm... I'm Pregnant."
Rarity's eyes widened in surprise, her mouth forming a perfect 'O'. The boutique was filled with a tense silence for a moment, only interrupted by the sound of a nearby clock ticking.
Alastor, seemingly amused by the situation, broke the silence with a chuckle. "My my, what an intriguingly uncomfortable moment we're having! Perhaps we should all take a seat?"
Rarity snapped out of her daze, quickly switching into hostess mode. "Oh! Yes, please do sit down." She gestured towards a comfortable chair nearby. As Fluttershy carefully sat down, Rarity couldn't help but keep her gaze fixed on her friend's midsection.
"Darling," Rarity began, a mixture of concern and curiosity in her tone, "I had no idea. How far along are you? And if you don't mind me asking... who is the father?"
Fluttershy shifted uncomfortably as her friend's gaze settled on her. "Um... I'm about four months pregnant now. And as for the father..." She trailed off, unsure of how to continue.
Alastor, who had been inspecting a nearby mannequin, turned back to join the conversation. "Let us not pry into personal matters," he interjected with a slight warning in his voice, despite maintaining his cheerful smile. "We are here for new clothing, are we not?"
Rarity, realizing she may have overstepped, quickly apologized. "My apologies, Fluttershy. Let us focus on finding you comfortable maternity wear." She then turned to Alastor. "And perhaps something for you as well, Mr...?"
"Radio Waves," Alastor replied, using the alias bestowed upon him by Fancy Pants.
"Ah, Radio Waves," Rarity said approvingly, assessing Alastor with a keen eye. "We cannot have you dressed in anything less than the height of fashion. But first, let us attend to Fluttershy's needs."
She hurried off to a rack filled with dresses and began browsing through them with ease. Fluttershy sent a grateful glance towards Alastor for redirecting the conversation away from the sensitive topic of her pregnancy's origins.
Rarity returned to the worktable with an armful of luxurious fabrics and garments, each one carefully draped over her forearm. "I believe these will accommodate your new figure quite nicely, Fluttershy," she said, her keen eye analyzing the pieces as she laid them out. She then turned her attention to Alastor, who stood with his signature charming smile and confident posture. "And as for you, Mr. Waves," she said playfully, "I do think I can find something a little more modern for you."
Alastor chuckled lightly, his grin widening even further. "Oh no, my dear Miss Rarity," he responded in his velvety smooth voice, "See My taste in clothing is much...older, shall we say? Think less modern and more Jazz Age, with a certain flair that one might call...otherworldly."
He adjusted his impeccably tailored suit and smoothed down his satin lapels. "You see, I have a particular fondness for the fashions of a bygone era. Pinstripe suits, tailcoats, spats...the works! And of course, everything must have that special touch of...what's the word? Ah yes, pizzazz!"
Rarity's eyes widened slightly, a mix of surprise and excitement flickering across her face. "Oh my," she exclaimed, her designer's mind already buzzing with possibilities. "Vintage with a twist! How delightfully challenging. I must say, Mr. Waves, you've certainly piqued my interest."
She moved with graceful strides to a different section of her boutique, muttering to herself in a soft, melodic voice. "Let's see... we'll need some darker fabrics, perhaps a touch of crimson... ah, and those antique buttons I've been saving for a special occasion!"
Fluttershy watched this exchange with a mixture of relief and curiosity, her eyes following the movements of Alastor and Rarity. She was grateful that the attention had shifted away from her peculiar condition, but she couldn't help feeling a twinge of curiosity at Alastor's sudden interest in new clothes.
"Alastor," she whispered, careful not to use his real name too loudly, "I thought you could just... snap your fingers and make your own clothes appear?"
Alastor leaned down ever so slightly, his voice low but still carrying that ever-present note of amusement. "Of course I can, my dear. But where's the fun in that? Besides, I'm quite curious to see what your fashionable friend can come up with. After all, a little change can be... invigorating."
As Rarity returned with an armful of fabrics in deep, rich colors, Fluttershy couldn't shake the feeling that this impromptu shopping trip was about to become far more interesting than she had originally anticipated.
Rarity put on her professional smile and approached Alastor, holding a measuring tape in one hand. "If you don't mind standing still for a moment, Mr. Waves, I'll take your measurements to ensure a perfect fit."
As she reached out to place her hand on Alastor's chest, he suddenly winced and took a subtle step back, his ever-present smile faltering for just a split second.
Rarity furrowed her brow inquisitively. "Is everything alright, Mr. Waves? I assure you, this is a standard part of the tailoring process."
Alastor quickly regained his composure, his grin widening once more. "Oh, of course, my dear. It's just that I prefer to handle such matters personally. I have certain... preferences when it comes to being touched."
Before Rarity could object, Alastor smoothly took the measuring tape from her hand. "Now if you'll excuse me for just a moment, I'll take care of these measurements in a jiffy!"
He confidently strode towards the nearest dressing room and closed the door behind him with a soft click.
Rarity turned to Fluttershy, confusion evident on her face. "Well, I never! In all my years of designing, I've never had a client insist on measuring themselves."
Fluttershy, who had been watching the exchange with growing concern, offered a weak smile. "Oh, um, I'm sure Ala- I mean, Radio just has his reasons. Maybe he's just shy?"
Inside the dressing room, they could hear the soft rustle of fabric and the occasional muted hiss, as if Alastor was in some discomfort. Rarity however looked to Fluttershy with a smile before approaching to gather some juicy details from the Pegasus
"So let's talk honestly, dear" Rarity said as she sat next to her friend. "What's going on with that charming stallion?"
Fluttershy blushed, her voice faltering as she spoke. "R-Radio?" She cleared her throat. "He's just a friend."
Rarity raised an eyebrow, her curiosity clearly not satisfied by the vague response. "A friend, you say? And yet he dresses like he's stepped straight out of a time machine and owns such a stunning Limousine." She leaned in closer, her voice dropping to a playful whisper. “Be honest with me, Is he your sugar daddy?”
“SUGAR DADDY?!” Fluttershy shrieked. “Rarity! What do you take me for?! Radio’s ANYTHING but that! How could you possibly think he’s a…a…sugar daddy ?!”
Rarity tried to stifle a chuckle. "Please forgive me, my dear," she apologized with a graceful wave of her hand, attempting to smooth over any unintentional hurt feelings. "It's just that given your previous 'profession,' I assumed that scoundrel had sold you off to that dapper-looking colt."
Fluttershy shook her head. "No, he's actually a kind soul who bought out my contract and paid off my debt for me."
Rarity's expression softened, and she reached out to gently pat Fluttershy's hand. "Well, darling, he sounds quite chivalrous. It's not often that a gentleman performs such a generous act without expecting anything in return."
Fluttershy nodded, her eyes filled with gratitude as she thought about Alastor's unexpected kindness. "Yes, he's been very good to me. And now he's helping me with the baby as well."
Just as Rarity was about to ask for the measurements, Alastor emerged from the dressing room with a cheerful expression. He confidently handed the measuring tape and a sheet of paper to Rarity. "Here you go, my dear! All the precise measurements you require, down to the last millimeter."
Rarity eagerly studied the paper, her professional curiosity taking over her confusion. "These are incredibly detailed, Mr. Waves. I'm impressed!"
Rarity was amazed at how precise the measurements were, but Fluttershy remembered something important. "Oh, um, Radio? Could you please retrieve the container from the limo? I have a feeling I'll need a snack soon."
Alastor's grin widened. "But of course, my dear! We can't have you going hungry now, can we?" With a theatrical bow, he exited the boutique, the bell above the door tinkling as it closed behind him.
As soon as Alastor was out of earshot, Rarity turned to Fluttershy, her eyes sparkling with curiosity and concern. "Darling," she began, her voice low and serious, "I hope you don't mind me asking, but... is Radio the father?"
Fluttershy's eyes widened, and she quickly looked away, fidgeting with her mane. "Oh, um... well... you see..." she stammered, clearly uncomfortable with the question.
Sensing her friend's discomfort, Rarity backpedaled. "I'm sorry, darling. I shouldn't pry. It's just... I worry about you, you know? And this whole situation seems rather... unusual."
Fluttershy took a deep breath and still avoided eye contact. "I... I appreciate your concern, Rarity. But it's complicated, and I'd prefer not to discuss it right now."
“Very well…” Rarity sighed. “Have you decided on a name for your little one?”
Fluttershy gently shook her head, "I don't even know if I'm having a boy or a girl yet," she explained.
Rarity nodded in understanding and was about to say something more when the bell above the door chimed once again. Alastor returned with a small container that he handed to Fluttershy with a unwavering smile, as if it was painted on his face with the finest brush.
Fluttershy gratefully accepted the container and opened the lid to reveal an assortment of cooked venison. "Thank you, Radio," she murmured.
Rarity did a double take at the contents of Fluttershy's container. The aroma made her wrinkle her nose as she glanced back and forth between Fluttershy and the meat inside.
"Is... is that your meal, Fluttershy?" Rarity asked hesitantly.
"It was part of our lunch," Fluttershy replied, picking up a sausage and taking a bite before offering some to Rarity. "Do you want some?"
"No, thank you," Rarity declined. "How can you eat meat? You're a pony! Ponies are strict vegetarians!"
“My pregnancy cravings are probably to blame,” Fluttershy said, her voice gentle as she chewed thoughtfully. "It's not common for a pony, but ever since I became pregnant, I've had the oddest urge to eat meat. Radio says it's just my body's way of getting what it needs during this time."
“I...see,” Rarity nodded, trying to process this information. “I've heard of mares having unusual cravings during pregnancy, but this is new territory for me.”
“You do realize that you're the only one who knows about my pregnancy, right?” Fluttershy reminded her friend.
“Really?” Rarity was surprised by this revelation and covered her mouth with a hand in shock. “You haven't told Rainbow Dash? Isn't she your oldest friend?”
“Rainbow...can be a bit dramatic,” Fluttershy explained, casting her gaze downwards. “I never even told her about my 'Job' .”
"It frightens you, doesn't it?" Rarity asked, placing a comforting hand on top of Fluttershy's. "You fear how everypony will react?"
"I... I do," Fluttershy confessed, her voice barely audible. "Especially Rainbow and Applejack."
"Don't you have faith in them?" Rarity challenged.
"Applejack hasn't fully trusted me since Big Mac and I parted ways," Fluttershy explained, avoiding eye contact. "And Rainbow Dash... she can be impulsive and defensive. I'm anxious about how she'll respond to this situation - my past, the baby, everything."
"But do you trust them?" Rarity gently prodded, her gaze kind yet persistent.
Fluttershy hesitated, feeling the weight of Rarity's question bearing down on her. "I... I want to trust them," she finally admitted. "But there's a part of me that's scared they'll see me differently. They won't understand why I made the choices I did, why Radio is a part of my life, or even... why I’m craving meat."
“Why not have a baby shower?” Rarity proposed. “It’s customary for an expectant mother to have one, and it would provide the opportunity for you to reconnect with everypony and hopefully put any past conflicts to rest.”
Before Fluttershy could respond, Alastor interrupted with a clap of his hands, reminding them both that he was still present in the room. “That sounds like a brilliant plan.”
Fluttershy blinked in surprise, shifting her gaze to Alastor. The idea of a baby shower, a happy gathering shining a light on her current situation, had not occurred to her before. The thought both warmed and unnerved her; it would mean revealing her secret to all her friends.
Alastor, sensing Fluttershy's apprehension, stepped closer. "My dear Fluttershy," he began, "a baby shower would be a celebration of life, a testament to new beginnings and the future you are about to embrace."
Rarity nodded in agreement. "He's right, darling. It's an opportunity to surround yourself with love and support." she said with a gentle smile, "we shall simply have them make peace."
Fluttershy considered their words carefully. She knew that facing her friends was inevitable and perhaps this was the best way to do it - with joy rather than trepidation.
"Okay," she finally said
“That's wonderful news!” Rarity exclaimed, her face lighting up. “Now we know exactly who to contact in order to make this happen. I'm sure she'll be thrilled to help.”
“Well, actually,” Fluttershy admitted shyly as she took another bite of venison, “we were already planning on going to Sugarcube Corner. I've been craving something sweet to go with this delicious venison.”
“Oh, how delightful,” Rarity gushed. “And Pinkie Pie will be so happy to see you both again. You know how she is with her endless positivity and energy.”
“Yes, I do,” Fluttershy said with a small smile. "She has a way of making everything feel better."
“Then it's settled,” Rarity declared confidently. “Pinkie Pie will plan the most magnificent baby shower Equestria has ever seen!”
With an eager nod, Fluttershy agreed to the plan, her pink mane swaying as she moved. Rarity bustled around her, jotting down notes and taking precise measurements in her graceful handwriting. The Demon and Pegasus quickly left the boutique and hopped into Alastor's Limo, smoothly gliding through the streets of Ponyville. As they drove, Fluttershy couldn't contain her excitement as she shared potential themes and decorations for the party with the disguised demon, each idea more extravagant than the last. Her eyes sparkled with creativity and enthusiasm, and she would later eagerly relay every suggestion to her energetic pink-maned friend, Pinkie Pie.
Author's Note
Okay my peeps. Personally, I enjoyed the little moment My and my co-writer did between Fluttershy and Big Mac...I also thought Big Mac having a relationship pet name[Macky] was a pretty good touch.
Now just to clarify why they broke up. Big Mac was understanding that Fluttershy was forced to work but had offered one several occasions to take her away from Filthy. Meaning he'd more or less run away with her and get as far away from Filthy as possible. Fluttershy couldn't ask him to abandon his family for somepony who considered herself nothing more than a Junky Whore[At the Time] .
Just in case you were wondering the exact reason they broke up and Deep Down Big Mac still loves her
Now Fluttershy craving Venison...that was ALL my idea, I thought it would be a little funny and in my opinion..it was very funny
QUESTION TIME!!!!
God damn was Filthy's very much deserved death brutal as hell. Will Spoiled Rich and Diamond Tiara go after Fluttershy when they find her contact missing from Filthy's files or will they not be playing any significant role in this story?
Also, how big of a stir is it going to cause when everyone learns that Alastor is technically the father of Fluttershy's foal?
Now In regard to Spoiled And Diamond..I have nothing planned for them...Yet. However I won't give too much away but I'll say that the Mane 6[Minus Twi] will be visiably shook to find out that Alastor's the Father
Filthy Rich sure suffered horribly.
Especially for what he had done.
I bet Spoiled Rich is even WORSE.
Diamond Tiara's life is probably hell because of those too.
I do wonder if we will find out how Spike and Smolder ended up with Twilight?
Did she hatched them from the exam or something else?
If Daybreaker did something to their parents and probably took Spike and Smolder as "lowly servants", will the two eventually make her suffer?
In fact I wonder how the two look like anyway? Like proper anthros?
Spike and Smolder were indeed hatched via Twilights exam. Several eggs were claimed by the Sun Knights when they tracked Alastor to the Dragon Lands in the last 50 or so years ago. Now Since they are in my preferred Anthro world Spike stands around 5'10 with Smolder being 6ft even, both are taller than Twilight. Spike does have wings. and his only article of clothing is a pair of black pants and a orange gem bracelet around his left wrist, Sometimes he'll wear a tank top with a hoodie. Smolder wears a yellow shirt, an orange jacket, and a pair of jeans.
What happen to niffty?
Well without too much info away, Niffty....or rather Squeaky Clean is currently working as a maid taking care of some rich guys penthouse
And with that all your questions have been answered...and I have good news for you all...Niffty is Coming Back!!!!
Stay Tuned Folks
The vibrant orange and pink hues of the sunset painted the sky over Manehatten, casting a warm glow over the bustling city streets. Ponies of all shapes and sizes hurried along their way, eager to reach their destinations before nightfall. Among them was a snow white earth pony, with an amber mane and tail that shimmered in the fading light, and piercing orange eyes that seemed to hold secrets untold. She was known as Squeaky Clean, adopted daughter of Stygian and often referred to as the cursed child.
Squeaky had recently found herself in the employ of a wealthy stallion who resided in a luxurious penthouse. Though her duties as a maid were not particularly glamorous, she was grateful for the job and the stability it provided. However, there was one aspect of her life that she could never escape - her immortality. For reasons beyond her understanding, Squeaky was blessed or perhaps cursed with eternal life.
While her employer was kind and generous, his son was quite the opposite. The young stallion took every opportunity to harass Squeaky, often groping her in inappropriate places whenever he pleased. And when his father passed away, things only got worse as he took full advantage of his new position of power.
Despite the challenges she faced on a daily basis, Squeaky remained determined to make the best of her immortal life and find joy where she could. But as she walked through the busy streets of Manehatten, she couldn't help but wonder if this curse was truly a blessing or a curse after all.
The usually immaculate Squeaky Clean was a mess, her once crisp maid's uniform now rumpled and stained with tears. She had pulled on a large hoodie over it, desperate to cover her face and hide from the world. Her trembling hands clutched at the fabric as she frantically scanned her surroundings, terrified of being caught by her boss who had almost taken advantage of her.
As she made her way home, Squeaky Clean suddenly found herself yanked into a dimly lit alleyway. A hulking Pegasus stallion towered over her, cornering her against the cold brick walls. His large hand pressed against her throat, while his other hand brandished a sharp knife against her delicate skin.
"Give me your money," he demanded in a gruff voice, but then paused as he lowered her hood. "Well, well...look at you. You're quite a pretty little thing." His leering eyes ran up and down her form, making Squeaky feel even more vulnerable and exposed.
Squeaky Clean's heart raced as she stared at the glinting knife in the mugger's hands. The Stallion, with a menacing grin on his face, whispered with putrid breath into Squeaky's face, "I think I've found myself a new little toy."
But before fear could fully consume her, Squeaky's body moved with a mind of its own. In one swift and brutal movement, she snatched the knife from the Stallion and plunged it deep into his neck.
The mugger's gurgled cries were cut short as Squeaky pulled out the knife and stabbed him again and again, splattering blood onto her face and clothes.
The mugger's lifeless body lay at Squeaky's feet, the once twisted smile on her face now contorted in shock and horror at what she had just done. Her hands still gripped the bloodied knife tightly, her knuckles white with exertion. But for Squeaky Clean, it was a moment of liberation and empowerment, a release of all the pent-up rage she had been holding onto since her family was taken from her.
As she looked down at the man she had just killed, Squeaky's mind raced with conflicting emotions. The rush of adrenaline that had fueled her actions began to fade, leaving behind a sinking feeling in her stomach. She dropped the knife and let out a piercing scream, the sound echoing through the deserted alleyway.
Without a second thought, Squeaky turned and sprinted as fast as her legs could carry her, not slowing down until she was safely inside the walls of her small apartment. Even there, she couldn't shake off the constant feeling of danger that seemed to lurk around every corner since she had been left alone.
In an attempt to calm her nerves, Squeaky headed to the bathroom and flipped on the light switch. Her hands were trembling as she grabbed a cup containing her toothbrush, toothpaste, and metal file. This nightly routine had become a coping mechanism for her ever since she lost her family. Sharpening her teeth gave her a sense of control and strength in a world where she often felt helpless.
With precise movements, Squeaky filed away at her teeth, the sound of metal scraping against enamel echoing in the quiet room. As she worked, a nagging thought crept into her mind – why did she feel the need to sharpen her already razor-sharp teeth? The answer always eluded her, leaving behind a sense of unease and confusion that seemed to seep into her bones.
Finally satisfied with her handiwork, Squeaky breathed heavily as she inspected her newly sharpened teeth with her tongue. “Perfect,” she murmured to herself.
Turning on the faucet, Squeaky cupped a handful of water and swished it around in her mouth before spitting it out into the sink. She repeated this process several times until she felt clean and refreshed.
As Squeaky gazed at her reflection in the mirror, she noticed a slight smile on her face. But it disappeared as soon as she saw a figure standing behind her. Fear gripped her heart as she turned around, only to find that there was no one there. Was it just her mind playing tricks on her or something more sinister?
Her chest heaved with each rapid breath as adrenaline surged through her body. She shook her head, trying to push away the image of the mysterious figure from her thoughts. Though it had been so clear in the mirror, when she turned around, there was nothing there. Maybe it was just a shadow or a figment of her anxious imagination.
Squeaky knew she couldn't let fear take control; she needed to stay calm and vigilant. She wiped the remaining moisture from her face with a towel and made a silent promise to be stronger. Her life demanded resilience, especially after what she had to do tonight.
Taking a deep breath, Squeaky returned to the main room of her apartment and switched on the lights. And to her shock, she saw the same grinning figure from the mirror sitting on her worn-out couch. This time, there was no doubt that he was real.
Despite her intense surge of fear, she kept her voice steady as she asked, "Who are you?"
"Well, well," the figure responded in an eerie tone that sent chills down Squeaky's spine. "Hello there, Squeaky Clean. Or should I say, hello Niffty?"
“Niffty?” The filly said, tilting her head with confusion. “I don't know anyone by that name.”
"It's the name of an old friend of mine," the figure said, standing up from his seat. "A dear friend who was always by my side."
Squeaky slowly backed away into the kitchen as the figure approached her. As he stepped into the light, she saw that it was none other than the Notorious Radio Demon himself, Alastor, dressed in his iconic red pinstripe suit and sharp-toothed grin.
"Alastor," she uttered his name, feeling a chill run down her spine.
“I’m so glad you remember me, Niffty," Alastor said with a grin that never wavered as he closed the distance between them. "It's been far too long since we last danced together in this chaotic world."
"I don't know what you're talking about," Squeaky replied, her voice filled with fear. "You must have mistaken me for someone else."
Alastor's touch was gentle as he placed his hand on her trembling face, using his thumb to pry open her lips and reveal her sharpened teeth. He looked at the mare before him with a genuine smile that couldn't hide his true intentions.
"One of our last memories together," Alastor spoke sweetly but with a hint of nostalgia in his voice. "Your teeth were broken and rough, so I fixed and filed them down."
"But I'm not Niffty," she weakly protested, unsure if she was trying to convince Alastor or herself. "I'm just Squeaky Clean, a maid."
"Are you sure about that?" Alastor leaned in closer to gaze deeply into her eyes.
Fear clouded Squeaky's mind as she pushed Alastor away before tripping over her own hooves and knocking over a knife block. She quickly grabbed one of the knives and scurried to a corner, pointing it at Alastor. Unbeknownst to her, a mad smile began to spread across her face as she held the blade tightly in her hands.
Alastor's laughter joined hers, filling the room with an unsettling resonance. "Ah, there's the Niffty I remember," he said with undisguised delight. "Always so spirited, even with a weapon in your hands."
Squeaky's laughter stopped abruptly as she stared at the knife, its shiny surface now covered in her fingerprints. Her heart raced in her chest as she tried to drown out the sound of her pulse with Alastor's smooth voice.
Alastor gestured for Niffty to come closer to him with an outstretched hand. "Come back to me, Nifty," he urged her as he stepped towards her. "That's where you truly belong."
Squeaky hesitated, knowing from her father's research and past accounts that Alastor was a dangerous and cruel demon... But she couldn't deny the pull she felt towards him. Despite his reputation, he had never made a move to harm her. Slowly, she released one of her hands from the knife and took hold of his hand. In an instant, memories flooded her mind - screams of death and torment, cruel laughter, and the constant sound of radio static.
A vibrant smile spread across Squeaky's face, her once white coat now transformed into a warm tan hue. Her amber-red mane and tail now featured streaks of golden blonde, adding depth to her appearance. The whites of her eye glowed with a fiery yellow tint, blending seamlessly with the deep red of her iris. Gone was the timid maid known as Squeaky Clean, and back in all her chaotic glory was Niffty - the demon child companion of the feared Radio Demon.
"Al... Alastor?" Niffty said through tears as she looked up at the demon before her. "Is that really you?"
"Welcome back, my dear sweet Niffty," Alastor replied in a comforting tone.
Without hesitation, Niffty threw herself into a hug with Alastor, causing him to wince in pain. But he refused to show it as he returned the embrace, welcoming his old companion back with open arms while she cried onto his chest.
"I missed you, Alastor!" Niffty exclaimed between sobs, each word filled with relief and joyful disbelief. "I thought... I thought I'd never see you
Before Alastor could even speak, Niffty released her grip on the demon and instead grabbed onto his jacket, forcefully pulling him down to her level.
"Never leave me again!" Niffty shouted with a wild expression in her eye.
But as she looked closer, she noticed a small trail of blood seeping from her friend's mouth. Her demeanor immediately shifted from frenzied to concerned as she pulled away, her own eyes reflecting worry.
"Y-You're hurt?!" Niffty exclaimed, a mixture of panic and genuine concern in her voice.
“Don't worry, my dear, it's nothing to fret over,” Alastor comforted her. “Now, what is the last thing you can recall?”
Niffty tried to put together the scattered fragments of her memories and replied, "That Princess...the one with the horn and wings and those colorful rocks. There was a bright light and then...nothing.”
“Well, I'm glad you're back,” Alastor said with a satisfied nod. “In fact, you can take part in a little experiment I've been working on.”
"Does it involve getting revenge on that witch who separated us?" Nifty asked.
Alastor grinned and replied, "Maybe another time." He picked up one of Niffty's knives and continued, "But for now, I have more important news to share: I'm going to be a father."
Niffty suddenly burst out laughing and rolled around on the floor. “You've still got your sense of humor, Alastor!"
But Niffty soon noticed that Alastor wasn't laughing along with her. His typical grin had softened into a rare, contemplative expression - one that she hadn't seen often, and it hinted at a seriousness beneath his usual devil-may-care demeanor.
"I'm not joking," he said, twirling his knife between his fingers like a conductor's baton leading an invisible orchestra. "An opportunity has arisen that could be quite amusing for the both of us."
Nifty's eyes widened in amazement. "I never thought you'd settle down with a woman. Who did you impregnate?"
Alastor's grin returned in full force, revealing a set of perfectly sharp teeth. "The identity of the lucky lady is my little secret for the time being," he said with a playful glint in his eye. "But rest assured, our child will inherit some... interesting traits."
"And what role do you want me to play in this?" Niffty asked, her voice filled with anticipation.
"You, my dear Niffty," Alastor gestured dramatically, "will be the fun-loving auntie."
"Auntie?" Niffty repeated, her single eye sparkling with a mix of curiosity and excitement.
"Yes, I need you to help raise, care for, and protect my child," Alastor said as he flung his knife towards a cabinet where it embedded itself with precision. "Can I count on you for that?"
Niffty couldn't contain her laughter, overflowing with wild and infectious energy. "Yes sir, I can handle that! You won't find a better 'fun-loving auntie' in this whole crazy world!"
“Excellent” Alastor said as he made his way towards the front door. “There’s a Party tomorrow, and I want you there. She lives in a quint little cottage on the outskirts of Ponyville” the Radio Demon opened the front door. “Will you join me?”
Niffty quickly jumped up onto the counter before grabbing the Knife Alastor threw. “I will” The knife came loose before Niffty ran her finger across the blade. “But I need to let my boss know I quit”
“Oh ho ho ho Hope you have fun” Alastor vanished into the shadows.
Niffty laughed maniacally as she watched Alastor disappear, the very fabric of the room seeming to shiver at his exit. She twirled the knife in her hand, pondering her next move with a sense of excitement.
Squeaky Clean, or rather the façade that had been Squeaky Clean, was no more. Now fully reinstated as Niffty, she embraced her true nature, running out of her apartment and making a beeline to her job with a spring in her step.
“It’s been so long~” Niffty sang as she skipped down the lane, the blade clutched tightly in her hand twinkling under the dim streetlights. “So long since I’ve tortured a poor soul~
The hum of the city began to fade behind her as she approached the penthouse where she worked, her heart fluttering with the kind of giddy anticipation reserved for life's most delectable moments.
The gentle sunlight streamed through the window, casting a warm glow on Fluttershy's delicate features as she meticulously brushed her mane and tail. With each stroke, her thoughts wandered to the day ahead and what it might hold. Satisfied with her grooming, she set the brush down and left her room, her pastel wings fluttering softly at her sides. Fluttershy put on a pair of red Panties with a matching bra and a simple yellow sundress that complimented her gentle nature. She adjusted the dress, ensuring it fell just right, Satisfied Fluttershy left her room.
As she walked down the hallway, the unmistakable sound of knife chopping caught her attention. Curious, she followed the noise, eventually reaching the kitchen. The sight that met her was unexpected: Alastor, the infamous Radio Demon, stood at the counter, expertly dicing vegetables with a sinister grin on his face. Fluttershy saw that his usual red coat wasn’t on his body, in it’s place was a black apron. But what Fluttershy’s eyes were trained on was the red and black deer tail coming from the demons rear, swaying ever so slightly with his movements, a playful contrast to the serious concentration he displayed.
Fluttershy inched closer before kneeling down, her hand outstretched to touch the soft-looking fur, her innate kindness and curiosity blooming within her despite the apprehension that tickled the back of her mind.
Fluttershy finally touched Alastor's tail, her fingers gently exploring its fluffy texture. Her fingers brushed against the soft fur of Alastor's tail, sending a shiver of excitement and curiosity through her. The fur was like delicate silk, each strand carefully crafted and soft to the touch. Alastor whirled around revealing that his black apron said ‘Touch me & You Die’ , the knife in his hand glinting dangerously. His startled gaze softened when he saw Fluttershy's hand frozen mid-stroke on his tail, her eyes wide with innocent curiosity.
"Enjoying yourself, my dear?" he teased, a playful smirk playing at his lips.
Fluttershy quickly withdrew her hand, her cheeks flushing. "I... I apologize. Your tail just looked so... soft," she stuttered, her voice barely above a whisper.
Alastor chuckled. "I suppose it does have its unique appeal," he said, resuming his chopping.
Fluttershy watched him in silence for a moment before she felt a boldness creep into her. "May I... may I touch it again?" she asked cautiously.
“I’d prefer if you didn’t” Alastor paused in his task and shrugged. "But If you wish," he consented nonchalantly.
With tentative fingers, Fluttershy reached out once more. As she caressed the silky fur of Alastor's tail, a sense of wonder filled her. Despite the oddity of the situation, she found herself more and more intrigued by this unusual creature.
“Well? Is it to your liking?” Alastor asked nonchalantly.
Suddenly, there was a knock at the door and Fluttershy pulled her hand away quickly, her cheeks flushing once more.
“Come in…” Alastor called out with a roll of his eyes. He snapped his fingers and quickly took on his disguise just as the door opened.
However much to Alastor’s and Fluttershy’s surprise there was nobody there, Fluttershy frowned slightly, her eyebrows knitting together in confusion.
"That's strange... I could have sworn I heard someone at the door." Fluttershy said, her voice trailing off as she walk towards the front door.
“SURPRISE!!” the Voice of Pinkie screamed as she jumped out from one of Fluttershy’s potted plants which hung from the ceiling.
Fluttershy yelped, stumbling back in surprise. "Pinkie!" she exclaimed, her hand fluttering to her chest over her rapidly beating heart.
Pinkie giggled, flipping back her curly pink mane as she disentangled herself from the plant. “Sorry for the scare Fluttershy! But you know I can’t resist a good surprise!”
Meanwhile, Alastor’s eye twitched every so often since he was in the process of trying to contemplate how she slipped past him without warning.
“Are you ready for the best Baby Shower EVER!” Pinkie asked with a squeal as she suddenly appeared before them, a wide grin on her face and her eyes shimmering with excitement. She held up a tray full of cupcakes that were decorated to look like tiny hand and hoof prints.
“Pinkie…this isn’t going to turn out like your last party is it?” Fluttershy asked concern laced in her voice.
“Don’t Worry your pregnant head over it Flutters” Pinkie said with a dismissive wave of her hand, "Just leave everything to Aunt Pinkie”
Fluttershy just narrowed her eyes at the energetic mare before mumbling to herself. “I’m older than you, you know?”
“Age is just a number, silly!” Pinkie chirped happily. “And now I’ll be fulfilling one of my bucket list goals! Being an auntie to one of my best friend’s babies!”
However, before Pinkie started decorating for the party several parts of her body began to twitch.
“That’s weird” Pinkie said rubbing her chin as she began to think.
“What’s weird, Pinkie?” Fluttershy asked.
“Are you aware you have a demon living in your home?” Pinkie asked Nonchalantly cause Fluttershy’s eyes to widen in surprise.
Both Fluttershy and Alastor blinked several times as the longest minute of unbearable silence filled the room.
“Um…I’m not sure what you mean?” Fluttershy spoke, trying to play it off as one of Pinkie’s bad jokes.
“I mean the demon disguised as a pony” Pinkie said pointing right at Alastor
Alastor nearly dropped the knife in his hand, his expression a mix of surprise and intrigue. His gaze flickered between Fluttershy and Pinkie, an impish grin appearing on his face.
"Well, Miss Pie, you are full of surprises," he chuckled. "I must say, I didn't expect you to see through my disguise.”
The pregnant mare’s heart fluttered with a strange mix of horror and relief. Horror that her secret was out, but relief that it was Pinkie who knew. If anyone could keep a zany secret like this, it was her.
Before anyone could react, Pinkie was already bounding over to him. Unnerved, Alastor remained still, keeping a careful eye on the pink pony's movements.
"Well, aren't you interesting?" she giggled, circling him with curiosity and an unsettling amount of enthusiasm. "I've never met a demon before! Do you do tricks? Can you juggle fireballs?"
“Yes, and no,” Alastor responded. “I suppose a proper introduction is in order.” With a snap of his fingers, Alastor transformed into his original form. “Alastor, pleasure to officially meet you, my dear.”
“Ohhhh…You’re a Famous Demon!” Pinkie said before snatching his hand and feverously shaking it. “I’m Pinkie Pie, And everypony calls me the Pink Demon around here!”
“I am inclined to believe you actually are one,” Alastor responded before managing to pry his hand away.
“Pinkie!” Fluttershy squeaked, after finally snapping out of her state of shock. “How are you not freaking out about this?! Anypony else would be scared out of their wits if they knew what Alastor was! No offense, Alastor.”
“None take my dear” Alastor brushed off her words. “After all, I take great pride in my reputation."
Pinkie just shrugged, her wide grin never faltering. "Well, it's not like he's doing anything bad right now. And besides, it's more fun to have friends than enemies!"
"Even if those friends are...you know..." Fluttershy gestured vaguely at Alastor.
"A Demon with a body count in the millions if not billions?" Pinkie completed for her, still sporting that cheerful demeanor.
"Exactly!" Fluttershy squeaked, her eyes wide and anxious.
"But right now, he's not doing any of that. Right?" Pinkie turned her gaze back to Alastor, a playful challenge in her eyes.
“For the time being,” Alastor answered.
“Pinkie, listen to me,” Fluttershy said. “No pony can know about this. Absolutely no pony. My situation with Alastor is…in a word, complicated. If anypony else catches wind of this, it could mean a whole lot more trouble than I care to even think about. So please, can you promise me you won’t tell anypony about Alastor?”
“Cross my heart and hope to fly, stick a cupcake in my eye," Pinkie responded with a cheeky grin, performing her Pinkie Promise ritual. She mimed putting an X over her heart and then looped her finger like she was flying before poking her eye.
Fluttershy let out a long breath she didn't realize she was holding. "Thank you, Pinkie."
"Oh, don't mention it!" Pinkie said, bouncing on her hooves. "Now let's get this baby shower started!"
Alastor watched the two mares in amusement. He never met someone like Pinkie Pie - someone who could discover his identity and accept it without a second thought. And even more surprisingly, he found himself warming up to her eccentricities.
“She’s a good one,” Alastor muttered to Fluttershy as they watched her work. “I can tell she takes keeping promises almost seriously as yours truly.”
As Pinkie busied herself with the party decorations and Fluttershy went about helping where she could, Alastor returned to his chopping board, slicing vegetables for the feast. From the corner of his eye, he watched Pinkie's tail twitch erratically, an obvious sign of her excitement.
Alastor had just finished making both various meat and vegetable dishes when Pinkie finished decorating Fluttershy’s living room for her party, The living room had been transformed into a cheerful, pastel-colored wonderland under Pinkie Pie's enthusiastic decorating. Soft yellow and mint green streamers cascaded from the ceiling, forming gentle arcs that swayed with the slightest breeze. Clusters of pastel balloons in various shades of pink, blue, and lavender were tied to every available surface, their round shapes adding a playful touch to the room.
A banner hung across the main wall, adorned with the words "Welcome, Little One!" in whimsical, flowing script. Pinkie had artfully arranged stuffed animals of various woodland creatures - bunnies, deer, and birds - around the room, each wearing tiny party hats at jaunty angles.
The coffee table was covered with a lace-trimmed tablecloth and held a tiered stand filled with delicate cupcakes frosted in soft hues. A punch bowl shaped like a giant teacup sat nearby, filled with a sparkling, pale pink liquid and garnished with floating flower-shaped ice cubes.
In one corner, a rocking chair draped with a quilted blanket stood ready for the guest of honor, while gift-wrapped present was neatly beside it.
The entire room exuded a warm, inviting atmosphere, perfectly balancing excitement for the new arrival with the gentle, nurturing spirit that Fluttershy embodied.
Not long after that, there was a knock at the door. Everyone present knew it was one of their friends, All Fluttershy had to was look at the Radio Demon to tell him to take his pony form. Fluttershy walked over to her door and opened it, there with a warm welcoming smile was Rarity who wore a stylish, lavender and white dress, her purple mane done up elegantly. The unicorn’s horn sparkled with a magic aura, holding a large gift box wrapped in glossy paper.
"Oh, darling!" Rarity exclaimed, eyeing the decorations that adorned every inch of Fluttershy's home. "Your baby shower looks absolutely fabulous! Pinkie Pie, darling, you've outdone yourself!"
Pinkie beamed at the compliment and gave a small curtsy. "Why thank you, Rarity! You're looking quite smashing yourself! Love the dress!”
Rarity blushed a little under her friend's flattery and chuckled. "Well, thank you dear. It's important to look your best for such important occasions."
Fluttershy beamed as she ushered Rarity inside. "Oh, Rarity, I'm so glad you could make it! Come in, come in." She gently closed the door behind her friend.
“Wouldn’t dream of missing this party” Rarity said, her eyes shimmering with excitement.
Just then, a deep, rumbling roar echoed in the distance, but it was not the sound of a wild beast. Rather, it was the powerful engine of a muscle car. Fluttershy turned towards the noise and opened the door, soon a sleek, black 1945 Ford Mustang with yellow bolts of lightning on the sides and a vibrant purple convertible top came into view, cruising down the street.
The car pulled up to the curb, and out stepped Rainbow Dash, her multicolored mane windblown from the drive. The Pegasus wore a leather jacket, the color a perfect match to her cyan fur, a plain white T-shirt, a pair of black jeans and aviator sunglasses that sat perched on top of her head as she looked up at the house.
She strode up to the door, a wide grin on her face. "Hey, Flutters!" she exclaimed, wrapping her friend in a warm hug. "You looking a little fat!"
"Rainbow Dash!" Fluttershy squeaked, blushing furiously. "It's not fat, it's...you know."
As Rainbow Dash pulled away, her gaze fell upon Alastor, who was delicately arranging the various dishes he had prepared on the coffee table.
With a slight narrowing of her eyes, Rainbow Dash asked, "Who the buck are you?"
“Rainbow Dear, This is Radio Waves” Rarity quickly jumped in, a tight smile on her face as she nodded towards Alastor. “He’s Flutter’s Sugar Daddy~”
“He is not!” Fluttershy shrieked in embarrassment as her face flushed red. "He's only a friend, I promise"
“Well that explains Mr. Smiles” Rainbow Dash said before looking towards her childhood friend. “But that doesn’t explain why you’re suddenly the size of a fat pug.”
"Dash!" Rarity scolded, her eyes wide with shock. "That is highly inappropriate!"
"Rainbow Dash!" Fluttershy squeaked again, her blush deepening. “I’m the size of a fat pug because I happen to be expecting!"
"Expecting what?" Rainbow Dash asked, a playful grin on her face, clearly expecting some kind of joke.
Rarity let out a long-suffering sigh and gave Rainbow Dash a pointed look. "Did you not read the invite, dear?"
Rainbow Dash sheepishly rubbed the back of her neck. "Well, I kinda skimmed it, you know? I just saw the when and where and Flutters' name, and figured I'd come check it out."
Pinkie Pie, who had been bouncing with barely contained excitement, suddenly burst forth, her voice rising to a dramatic crescendo. "Oooh, Rainbow Dash! This isn't just any old party, it's a _baby shower_!" She gasped dramatically, her hands pressed to her cheeks. "Fluttershy is expecting a little bundle of joy, a precious new life to come into this world, and we're all here to celebrate and shower her with love and presents!"
Pinkie Pie's eyes shone with pure delight as she clasped her hooves together. "Isn't it just the most wonderful, amazing, spectacular thing you've ever heard? Oh, Dashie, you simply must be more attentive to these sort of important details!" She leaned in, her grin widening. "So, what do you say? Ready to shower our dear Fluttershy with all the happiness and joy a baby shower can bring?"
“Wait…Hold on” Rainbow Dash stammered out unable to process what she had just heard. “You’re…pregnant?”
"Yes." Fluttershy nodded, her cheeks still tinged with pink. "I'm pregnant."
“With a Child?” Rainbow Dash asked, her eyes wide.
Fluttershy giggled, "Yes, Dashie, with a child."
“You’re Child?”
“Dash!” The Voice of Applejack rang from the still opened door.
The Farm pony wore a simple blue plaid shirt and worn jeans, her blonde mane tied back with a red bandanna while her fathers hat hung around her neck due to a rope around the Earth Pony’s neck. The Mare walked through the door as she glared at the Pegasus
“Fluttershy is Pregnant, expecting, With Child, whatever kind of way you want to say it, She’s preggers” Applejack said coldly.
“HOW!?” Rainbow Dash shouted causing some of the indoor critters to scurry away. “When did you have time to meet anyone much less have the nerve to bang them, And who’s the father?!”
Everyone in the room was silent causing Rainbow Dash’s outburst to subside as the Pegasus looked around, Rainbow noticed a number of expressions on her friends, empathy, Shame, and Irritation.
“I’m missing something important here, aren’t I?” Rainbow asked.
“Rainbow, Dear, You have a tendency to…” Rarity started but tried to find the right word.
“Spaz out” Applejack finished for the Unicorn. “You have no control over your emotion and you tend to fly off the handle when you don’t hear something you don’t like”
"Wait, since when?" Rainbow Dash asked in disbelief, blinking at Applejack. She was sure she would have remembered if any of her friends had ever mentioned this flaw of hers before.
"Darling, you have a habit of becoming...overexcited," Rarity said delicately.
Rainbow took a deep breath before exhaling. “How far along are you, Flutters?” the Cyan Pegasus asked.
“4 months” Fluttershy answered gently, her hand resting on the small bump of her belly.
“And how on Equis did you get Pregnant?” Rainbow Dash asked causing Fluttershy to back away slowly.
“I…It happened when my boss..” Fluttershy began only to have Rainbow Dash cut her off.
“Wait..Boss?” Rainbow Dash asked, blinking in surprise. “You had a Job!?”
Fluttershy tried to explain but her fear of Rainbow losing her shit caused her to fumble with her words. "M-My job..it was…I had to..I was…”
Luckily for the Pegasus mare, the patience of her friends wore thin as they each blurted out their own answer to Fluttershy’s previous ‘Job’
"She's was an Entertainer” Pinkie Pie chirped.
“She's was an Escort" Rarity added, with a touch of unease.
“She’s was a Showgirl” Alastor said with a shrug.
"She's was a Prostitute" Applejack said
Rainbow Dash's eyes bulged out of her head as she looked at each friend in turn, aghast. "Wait...you're telling me that Fluttershy - our Flutters, the most innocent and pure creature I've ever met - was a...a..." She couldn't bring herself to finish the sentence.
“I was” Fluttershy admitted.
Rainbow Dash was silent, her mouth opening and closing like a fish out of water. She took in the sight of Fluttershy, the blush on her cheeks lending color to her usually pale face. "But...why?"
"I was in need of money," Fluttershy flinched at the memories. "I had animals to feed and bills to pay, I couldn't find a decent job and nopony would hire me. It was supposed to be temporary, just until I could get back on my feet."
“You didn’t have to do that, Flutters.” Rainbow said, her voice full of regret. “I could have helped you.”
Fluttershy shook her head. "I didn't want to burden you with it.”
Rainbow Dash said as she backed away from her friends.
“Rainbow, Sweetie are you doing okay?” Rarity asked her rainbow maned friend.
However Rainbow once again said as she turned around and left Fluttershy’s home, the cyan pegasus got in her car and promptly speed away towards Ponyville.
The sudden departure of Rainbow Dash left the room in a heavy silence. Fluttershy's eyes were filled with a mix of sadness and uncertainty, as she wrapped her arms around her growing belly.
Rarity stepped forward, placing a gentle hand on Fluttershy's shoulder. "Oh, darling, don't you worry. I'm sure Rainbow Dash just needs a moment to process all of this. She cares for you deeply, we all do."
Applejack nodded in agreement, her brow furrowed with concern. "Rarity's right, Sugarcube. Dash can be a bit...impulsive at times, but she means well. Give her some time, she'll come around."
Pinkie Pie bounced over to Fluttershy, her normally bubbly demeanor subdued. "Don't be sad, Fluttershy! Rainbow Dash loves you, we all do. She's just surprised, that's all. I bet she's gonna come back with the biggest, bestest gift for your baby!"
Fluttershy offered a small, appreciative smile, though the worry was still evident on her face. "I hope so. I know Dashie means well, but I can't help but feel like I've disappointed her somehow."
Alastor, who had been silently observing the exchange, stepped forward, his grin unwavering. "Now, now, my dear Fluttershy, I'm sure your feisty friend will come to her senses. In the meantime, why don't we focus on the task at hand? There are delectable treats to be enjoyed and a party to be had!"
He gestured grandly towards the spread of food and the festive decorations, his crimson eyes twinkling with mischief. "After all, we mustn't let a little hiccup ruin the joyous occasion, now can we?"
Fluttershy took a deep breath, her expression softening. "You're right, Radio. I shouldn't let this cloud the happiness of the day. Thank you, all of you, for being here and supporting me."
The group gathered around Fluttershy, offering words of encouragement and affection. As the party atmosphere slowly began to return, they turned their attention to the preparations, determined to make the day as special as possible for their dear friend.
The atmosphere in Fluttershy's cottage gradually lightened as the friends refocused on celebrating the impending arrival of the new life. Pinkie Pie, ever the party enthusiast, took charge of keeping spirits high.
"Alright, everypony!" Pinkie announced cheerfully, "Let's get this baby shower rolling! Who's ready for some fun games?"
The group gathered around as Pinkie produced a series of party games tailored for the occasion. They played "Pin the Diaper on the Baby," giggling as they stumbled around blindfolded. Rarity surprised everyone with her accuracy, while Applejack's competitive spirit shone through.
Next came a game where they had to guess the contents of various baby foods by smell alone, which led to a lot of scrunched up noses and laughter. Alastor, unfamiliar with many of the scents, provided particularly amusing reactions.
As they played, they shared stories and advice about foal-rearing, with Applejack recounting tales of when Apple Bloom was just a tiny filly. Fluttershy listened intently, her earlier worries fading as she basked in the warmth of her friends' support.
After the games, they gathered around the beautifully decorated table to enjoy the spread of food Alastor had prepared. There were delicate sandwiches, colorful fruit platters, Various Meat dishes that only Fluttershy ate, and an assortment of sweets that had Pinkie Pie's eyes sparkling with delight.
"Oh my, Radio," Rarity exclaimed, savoring a bite of a one of the sandwiches, "These are simply divine! You must share the recipe with me."
Alastor's grin widened at the compliment. "My dear, a chef never reveals all his secrets. But perhaps I could be persuaded to part with a few tips for the right price."
As they ate and chatted, the mood became increasingly festive. Fluttershy's cottage was filled with the sound of laughter and excited chatter about the baby's arrival.
Once they had their fill of the delicious treats, Pinkie Pie clapped her hooves together excitedly. "And now, for the best part - presents!"
The group gathered around Fluttershy, who sat in the rocking chair, her eyes bright with anticipation. A small pile of beautifully wrapped gifts sat beside her, each one a symbol of her friends' love and support.
"Go on, darling," Rarity encouraged, "Open them up!"
Fluttershy reached for the first gift, her heart full of gratitude for her wonderful friends and the joy they brought to this special day.
Fluttershy reached for the first gift, a beautifully wrapped box with an elegant ribbon. "This one's from Rarity," she said softly, carefully undoing the wrapping.
As she opened the box, her eyes widened with delight. Inside was a small bundle of colorful baby clothes, each piece exquisitely crafted.
"Oh, Rarity," Fluttershy breathed, holding up a tiny onesie adorned with delicate embroidery. "These are beautiful!"
Rarity beamed with pride. "I made sure they could be worn by either a colt or a filly, darling. One must be prepared for all possibilities!"
"Thank you so much," Fluttershy said, her eyes shining with gratitude.
Next, she turned to a brightly colored package that could only be from Pinkie Pie. As she opened it, she found a small, soft plush animal inside. It was a buck with small antlers atop its head.
Fluttershy's eyes lingered on the antlers, noting mentally how they reminded her of Alastor's. She smiled warmly at the thought.
"Oh, Pinkie, it's adorable," Fluttershy said, hugging the plush to her chest. "Thank you!"
Pinkie bounced with excitement. "I'm so glad you like it! I thought your baby might need a cuddly friend!"
Applejack stepped forward next. "Now, sugar cube, my gift is a bit different. It's really from both me and Big Mac." She paused, looking a bit sheepish. "It's outside, actually. Let me go fetch it."
The farm pony trotted out to her truck and returned a few moments later, carefully maneuvering a beautiful wooden crib through the door. It was lovingly crafted, with a warm, rich finish and adorned with carved apple designs.
Fluttershy gasped, her hooves flying to her mouth in surprise. "Oh, Applejack! It's wonderful!"
Applejack set the crib down gently, a proud smile on her face. "This here crib has been in the Apple family for generations. Big Mac and I spruced it up a bit, but we thought your little one might appreciate a piece of Apple family history."
Tears of joy welled up in Fluttershy's eyes as she ran her hand along the smooth wood of the crib. "I don't know what to say. Thank you, thank you both so much."
The room was filled with warmth and love as Fluttershy's friends gathered around her, each gift a testament to their care and support for her and her soon-to-arrive baby.
As the group admired the beautiful crib, a familiar roar of an engine cut through the air. Everyone's ears perked up, recognizing the sound of Rainbow Dash's muscle car.
Moments later, the door burst open, and Rainbow Dash hurried in, slightly out of breath. Under one arm, she carried a fluffy cloud pillow, and under the other, a carefully folded quilted blanket.
"I'm back!" Rainbow announced, her eyes immediately seeking out Fluttershy. "And I brought gifts!"
The room fell silent for a moment, all eyes on Rainbow Dash. Fluttershy's expression softened, a mix of relief and happiness crossing her features.
"Oh, Rainbow," Fluttershy said softly as Rainbow closed the door with her hoof. "You came back."
Rainbow Dash approached her friend, her usual bravado replaced with a more subdued demeanor. "Of course I did, Flutters. I'm sorry I flew off like that. I just... I needed some time to process everything."
She held out the gifts, a sheepish smile on her face. "I, uh, I got these for the baby. The cloud pillow is straight from Cloudsdale - super comfy and perfect for naps. And this blanket..."
Rainbow Dash unfolded the blanket, revealing a beautiful cyan quilt with a rainbow trim.
“Isn’t that your old blanket?” Fluttershy asked.
Rainbow Dash shifted uncomfortably under their curious gazes, a blush creeping up her cheeks. "Yeah," she admitted, scratching the back of her neck. "It's the one I had when I was a baby. I thought maybe your little one would like it."
Fluttershy's eyes welled up with tears as she reached out to touch the soft fabrics. "Oh, Dashie, they're wonderful. Thank you so much."
Rainbow shuffled her hooves, looking a bit uncomfortable with the emotional moment. "Listen, Flutters, I want you to know that I'm here for you, okay? No matter what. I'm sorry if I ever made you feel like you couldn't come to me for help."
The other ponies in the room exchanged warm glances, touched by the sincere moment between the two friends.
Fluttershy stood up and wrapped Rainbow Dash in a tight hug. "Thank you, Rainbow. That means so much to me."
As they pulled apart, Rainbow Dash cleared her throat, trying to lighten the mood. "So, uh, did I miss anything good? Any cake left?"
Pinkie Pie bounced over, grinning widely. "Oh, Dashie! You're just in time for the best part - we're opening presents!"
Rainbow looked at the number of opened gifts, and found that everyone had already had theirs opened.
“Don’t you mean over?” Rainbow pointed out before pointing her thumb over towards Alastor. “Unless fancy pants over here has one for you”
“Trust me” Alastor said pulling out a pocket watch. "My Gift should be arriving right about…”
Suddenly something fell down the Fluttershy’s chimney and landed in the fireplace causing ash and soot to burst from the fireplace.
“Now” Alastor said pocketing his watch and walking towards the fireplace
Rainbow Dash immediately whipped out a 45 magnum from the back of her waistband and aimed it at the Fireplace. “What the buck is that!?”
“My Gift” Alastor said using his hand to lower Rainbow’s gun.
“Your what?” Rainbow asked
Alastor bent over before grabbing the soot covered mass, the disguised Radio Demon then turned to face all four of the mares in the room.
The soot-covered mass suddenly twitched, causing Rainbow Dash to tense up again. A single yellow and red eye blinked open, peering out from the dark bundle. In a burst of soot that made everypony cough, a small figure became visible, still dangling from Alastor's grip.
"This little darling is Niffty," Alastor announced with a flourish before unceremoniously dropping her to the floor.
Niffty landed on her hooves, she was about as tall as Alastor’s waist and had a dainty figure, adorned in a white and pink maid's outfit. She shook the soot from her fur, revealing a bright red coat underneath. Her large, round eyes swept across the room, quickly taking in the surprised faces of Fluttershy and her friends.
“Hi I’m Niffty!” Alastor’s companion said as she started to creepily giggle. “It’s been awhile since I’ve made new friends”
Rainbow Dash's magnum was back out and aimed at the new-comer in a flash. "Smiles, what the buck is this? Some kinda…minion?”
Alastor simply laughed, stepping between Rainbow and Niffty. "Oh no, no, darling! Niffty here is a dear friend of mine. And my present to Fluttershy."
Fluttershy had inched away from Niffty at first but at Alastor’s words, she took a tentative step closer. “Your...present?”
Niffty gave her a wide grin, hopping up and down with excitement. "Yes! I'm gonna help you with your baby! I was told I was going to be the fun-loving Aunt and nanny"
The room fell quiet again, everypony taking a moment to process Alastor's unexpected gift. Fluttershy, however, was the first to break the silence.
"Oh... Oh, Radio! That's... well..." She stuttered, managing to give Niffty a small smile despite her obvious surprise. "I'm sure we can always use an extra hand around the house."
Rainbow Dash reluctantly lowered her weapon, still glaring suspiciously at Alastor and Niffty. "Alright Smiles," she grumbled, using her nickname for Alastor. "Just so long as 'Nifty' here doesn't cause any trouble."
Alastor chuckled, bending down to pat Niffty on the head. "Don't worry about that. Niffty is quite the domestic sweetheart."
As if to demonstrate, Niffty had already started cleaning up the fireplace, happily humming to herself as she swept away the fallen soot.
Pinkie Pie, always quick to welcome newcomers, bounced over to Niffty with her signature enthusiasm. "Ooh! A new friend and a super-duper cleaner! This is so exciting! We should throw a 'Welcome to Ponyville' party for you, Niffty!"
Niffty's eye widened even further, if that was possible. "A party? For me? Oh, I haven't been to a party in... well, let's just say it's been a while!" She giggled again, her laughter tinged with an otherworldly echo.
Fluttershy, still processing the unexpected turn of events, managed to gather her composure. She approached Niffty with a gentle smile. "Well, Niffty, if you're going to be staying here, we should probably show you around. The cottage isn't very big, but there's plenty to see outside with all the animals."
Rainbow Dash, eyeing Alastor suspiciously, muttered under her breath, "Yeah, and plenty of places for her to snoop around..."
Alastor's ever-present grin widened as he clapped his hands together. "Splendid! I knew you'd all get along swimmingly. Now, how about we celebrate this new arrangement with some of my famous jambalaya? I assure you, it's to die for."
As Alastor moved towards the kitchen, Fluttershy and Pinkie began showing Niffty around the cottage. Rainbow Dash hung back, keeping a watchful eye on their new guest.
The afternoon sun filtered through the windows, casting long shadows across the floor. The cottage buzzed with a mix of excitement, apprehension, and the faint sound of Niffty's constant cleaning. As Alastor's laughter echoed from the kitchen, one thing was certain - life in Ponyville was about to get a lot more interesting.
Author's Note
Okay my wonderful readers. this was an awesome chapter and I hope you enjoyed Niffty's return, cause I sure did. Now starting Next chapter we will jump to the Birth of Fluttershy's Child....because...I have nothing planned for the next three months of Pregnancy.
Question Time Mother Fuckers!
Awww, this chapter was so warm and fluffy, I love it. Good to see Filthy Rich's dirty laundry being exposed and I love the interactions between Alastor and Fluttershy, gives off beauty and the beast vibes. The meat cravings was a good touch to who the baby belongs to now.
The introduction of Rarity was nice and the detail that she never talked about her 'job' to some of her friends explained why they never helped. The part where Alastor measures himself was also a nice nod to his dislike of being touched.
Now, some questions, If my guess is right Twilight ends up going to Ponyville after giving up on trying to find some un-corrupted creatures there, am I right, or is she gonna try another city?
Also, when will she (Twilight) come into the picture, before or after Fluttershy gives birth?
Looking forward to reading more of your work.
yes Twilight will eventually make it to ponyville after giving up her search, and knowing she would be punished for leaving Canterlot she settles in Ponyville, She will arrive After Fluttershy's child is born....only because I have nothing planned for the next three months of Flutter's Pregnancy
Thanks for another awesome chapter!
It's good to see that Fluttershy is no longer a pariah and that she's reconnecting with her friends.
Speaking of her friends, when Pinkie throws that baby shower and the townsfolk get to interact with "Radio Waves". Will he end up becoming a well known and respected member of Ponyville? I hope so, cause when his true identity is revealed to the public. I can only imagine how funny the reactions of the townsfolk will be when they learn the Radio Demon has been living amongst them.
Now honestly I have no plans for Al to be revealed to Ponyville by any of the mane six
can my mlp oc be in the story?
Here's a old picture of her, but I'm planning to get a updated picture sometime soon.
I'm sorry but No. I don't really do that unless I absolutely have to
Chapter 17: The Gift of Life....And Death
The cold, sterile walls of Ponyville General Hospital reverberated with the sounds of panicked hoofsteps and frantic voices. In a secluded room at the end of the maternity ward, Fluttershy lay on a bed, her face twisted in agony as she fought to bring new life into the world. Beads of sweat dotted her brow as she clutched the sheets with all her might, releasing a guttural moan.
"You're almost there, Fluttershy," Nurse Redheart urged, her calm voice barely masking her own anxiety. "Just a little more."
In the hallway outside, Rainbow Dash paced back and forth, her normally vibrant mane now wild and unkempt from constant tugging. Pinkie Pie sat nearby, uncharacteristically still, her gaze fixed on the closed door. Niffty stood beside them, bouncing on her hooves with frenzied excitement, her single eye darting between her new friends and the door.
"Oh my goodness! A precious new foal about to enter the world!" Niffty squealed, unable to contain her glee.
Rainbow Dash paused in her pacing to give Niffty a stern look. "Yeah, it may be exciting for you but for us...it's nerve-wracking. I just hope Fluttershy makes it through this."
Inside the room, Alastor stood firmly by Fluttershy's side, his ever-present grin wavering slightly as he held her hand. "My dear, you're doing remarkably well," he said through gritted teeth, trying not to show his concern.
As another contraction ripped through Fluttershy's body, she let out a blood-curdling scream that echoed through the entire hospital wing. The moment they had all been anxiously waiting for had finally arrived.
"I can see the head!" Doctor Stable announced urgently. "One last push, Fluttershy!"
With a guttural growl, Fluttershy summoned all her remaining strength to push with every fiber of her being. The room fell silent, holding its breath in anticipation before erupting into chaos as the newborn's first cry pierced the air. The shrill wails of the baby filled the room, but they were quickly drowned out by the gasps and murmurs of the medical staff. Even Doctor Stable, known for his unshakable professionalism, faltered for a moment as he cleaned and swaddled the child.
Nurse Redheart's hands trembled as she assisted, her eyes widening in shock and unease at what lay before them. The doctor exchanged a concerned glance with her before turning to address the new mother.
"Congratulations," his voice strained as he handed the bundle to Fluttershy, "you have a... unique baby girl."
Fluttershy, lost in overwhelming joy and emotion, didn't seem to notice the tension in the room. She cradled her daughter in awe as Alastor beamed with pride and excitement.
But behind his ever-present smile, Alastor also noticed the unease coming from the medical staff. His tone turned sharp as he addressed Doctor Stable, "Is there a problem?"
The doctor swallowed hard, his composure slipping. "No, no problem at all. She's... perfectly healthy. Just... different."
Nurse Redheart busied herself with checking Fluttershy's vitals, avoiding direct eye contact with the newborn.
As Fluttershy gazed lovingly at her daughter's appearance, she couldn't help but notice how different this foal was from any other. Her pale yellow coat reminded her of her own coloring, but two small demon horns protruded from her forehead, barely concealed by a tuft of hot pink mane. When the newborn's eyes fluttered open, they revealed striking crimson irises that seemed to glow with an otherworldly power. Tiny pegasus wings, like her mother's, were tucked against her sides, but their small, sharp red nails hinted at something more sinister. The tension in the room was palpable as Fluttershy nuzzled her newborn daughter. The medical staff, unsure of how to proceed with this unique birth, exchanged uneasy glances.
The doctor, visibly shaken, attempted to regain his professional demeanor. "Do you... do you have a name picked out for her?" he asked, his voice slightly trembling.
Fluttershy paused, cradling her daughter in her arms. Her eyes sparkled with love and inspiration as she whispered, "Scarlett Wisp." She then tested the sound of it on her lips, savoring the name. "My daughter, Scarlett Wisp."
The doctor nodded and quickly jotted down the name on the birth certificate. "Very well, Scarlett Wisp it is."
He shot a quick glance at Nurse Redheart before making a hasty exit, eager to leave the unusual family alone. As soon as the medical staff left, Alastor's pony disguise shimmered and fell away to reveal his true form. His antlers extended, his eyes glowing with an otherworldly intensity, and his clawed hands emerged. He leaned over Fluttershy and her daughter, reaching out with a single clawed finger towards the infant. Scarlett Wisp's crimson eyes locked onto the demon's form. Instead of fear, there was recognition in her gaze. Her tiny red nails flexed as she reached out and grasped at Alastor's extended claw.
A proud grin spread across Alastor's face as he observed the unique little creature. "Well, hello there, little doe," he cooed in his ever-present gravelly voice that carried an enchanting echo. "Aren't you just the most peculiar little thing?"
Fluttershy's hair was disheveled and sweat glistened on her forehead as she looked up at Alastor, a mix of exhaustion and joy in her eyes. "She's perfect, isn't she?" she said softly, the bundle in her arms squirming and cooing. "Our little Scarlett Wisp."
"I'm afraid I have no clue what you're talking about." Alastor replied with a crooked grin, feigning ignorance. “Do you mean to say that this child is not yours?”
"Do not take me for a fool, Alastor," Fluttershy said, her voice steady but firm as she looked up at the demon. “We made a deal, remember? You removed the bull's essence from my womb, but what stopped you from placing your own essence in its place?”
“Clever little pony," Alastor said, his grin widening even more. "There's a reason why I found you so intriguing." He cackled, the sound echoing eerily in the silent room.
“So…it’s true then?” Fluttershy said, her tone filled with both awe and confusion. “You turned my child into yours?”
“Tell me, do you regret the deal we made, my Dear?" Alastor asked, raising an eyebrow.
"No," Fluttershy said resolutely, cradling the infant closer to her chest. "Just... surprised."
"And why is that?" Alastor's voice was almost friendly now, the predatory edge replaced with something akin to curiosity.
“Because,” Fluttershy began, her gaze falling tenderly upon her daughter. “Despite everything... I don’t see a demon in her. I see my daughter. My little Scarlett Wisp.”
A moment of silence fell upon the room, broken only by the soft cooing of the infant. Alastor's ever-present grin softened into a rare genuine smile.
“That's because she is your daughter, Fluttershy," Alastor said, "As much as she is mine."
The realization hit Fluttershy with a force that left her breathless. "But she’s... different..."
"Being different isn't a bad thing, my dear," Alastor reassured, his gaze fixed on the child in front of him. "Everything born into this world is unique. You, me, and now little Scarlett Wisp."
Fluttershy turned to him, feeling a sense of relief wash over her. "And your essence... what will it do to her?"
"It will make her powerful," Alastor stated confidently, his attention still focused on the sleeping infant. "She will possess abilities beyond those of a mere mortal."
Fluttershy's eyes returned to Scarlett Wisp, cradled peacefully in her arms. "But... what does this mean for her? For us?"
Alastor's claw traced gently over Scarlett's features. "It means that she has incredible potential, my dear. More than you can imagine."
Fluttershy's brow furrowed with concern. "But what about her future? Will she be... safe?"
"Safe?" Alastor chuckled, his voice unnaturally echoing in the small room. "Oh no, my dear, she will be more than safe. She will be formidable."
Fluttershy lifted her eyes to meet Alastor's, determination shining through her worry. "Promise me, Alastor. Promise me that you will help me protect her, guide her. She may have demon blood running through her veins, but she is also part pony. She deserves a chance at a normal life too."
Alastor's toothy grin softened ever so slightly, revealing a glimmer of warmth beneath his sharp features. He placed a hand on Fluttershy's shoulder, his touch surprisingly gentle for a demon. "My dear, I may be many things, but I am a demon of my word. Our little Scarlett Wisp will want for nothing. Between your boundless kindness and my... unique talents, she'll have the best of both worlds."
As if on cue, Scarlett Wisp opened her crimson eyes, taking in her new surroundings with curiosity. Her delicate fingers curled around her mother's pink mane as she looked between her parents. A small, toothless smile spread across her face, and for a moment, the room seemed to grow a shade darker as an aura of power radiated from the newborn.
Fluttershy gasped softly at the sudden change in atmosphere. "Alastor, did you see that?"
"Indeed I did," Alastor replied, his voice filled with unmistakable pride. "It seems our little doe is already full of surprises." His glowing red eyes held a mix of admiration and amusement as he watched his daughter display her innate abilities
As Fluttershy cradled her newborn daughter, Scarlett Wisp, she nervously invited her closest friends to meet the unique being that had entered their world. With a mixture of excitement and curiosity, Rainbow Dash, Pinkie Pie, Rarity, and Applejack gathered in the living room of the cottage.
As Fluttershy unveiled Scarlett's appearance, the reactions of her friends varied greatly. Rainbow Dash's mouth dropped open in shock, unable to process the sight before her. Applejack tilted her head, trying to make sense of what she was seeing. Rarity gasped and covered her mouth with a perfectly manicured hand, unsure of how to react.
"She's... certainly distinctive," Rarity managed to say through a forced smile. "But I'm sure she's just as precious as can be."
In typical blunt fashion, Rainbow Dash blurted out, "Fluttershy, who or what did you sleep with?"
Applejack nudged her friend with a warning look, but her own expression remained cautious. "She's... different, Sugarcube. But I know she'll grow up to be just as wonderful as her mother."
Meanwhile, Pinkie Pie bounced around excitedly, completely unfazed by Scarlett's appearance. "Oh my gosh! Look at those adorable little horn stumps and those big red eyes! She's just too cute!"
Even Niffty couldn't resist hovering closer to coo over the baby. "She's absolutely precious! I could just eat her up!" she exclaimed with a giggle.
Fluttershy held Scarlett protectively in her arms, feeling the mixed reactions of her friends as they laid eyes on the half-demon infant for the first time. The gentle pegasus reassured them, "I know she looks a bit different, but she's still just a baby. My baby."
The friends exchanged glances, their initial shock slowly giving way to acceptance as they saw the love and adoration in Fluttershy's eyes for her child.
As the weeks passed, Fluttershy found herself thrown into a whirlwind of sleepless nights and constant demands. The once peaceful and quiet cottage was now filled with cries and coos from the little bundle of energy that was Scarlett Wisp. Despite being used to caring for animals, Fluttershy quickly learned that even a half-demon infant had needs much like any other newborn - just more intense and frequent.
Scarlett's cries, while not supernatural, were certainly powerful. They echoed through the cottage at all hours, leaving Fluttershy exhausted but determined to provide for her daughter. Despite her unique appearance, Scarlett's needs were those of any infant: warmth, food, and comfort. Fluttershy learned to navigate the challenges of motherhood, her patience tested but never breaking.
Luckily, Niffty proved to be an invaluable help. The energetic little demon eagerly stepped in whenever Fluttershy's exhaustion became too overwhelming. Many times, Fluttershy would wake from a much-needed nap to find Niffty diligently taking care of Scarlett - rocking the crib or preparing a bottle with her single eye alert and watchful. Though initially hesitant about having a demon around her precious child, Fluttershy grew to appreciate Niffty's tireless assistance and unwavering enthusiasm as "Auntie Niffty."
However, Alastor seemed to disappear a few days after Scarlett's birth, claiming he had pressing matters to attend to. Fluttershy couldn't help but fear that the Radio Demon had abandoned her and their child. But, to her surprise and relief, he returned a month later. Fluttershy couldn't ignore the paleness in his usually vibrant appearance or the fact that he was limping and relying on his cane for support. She couldn't help but wonder what had happened during his absence.
As Scarlett quieted down upon his return, Alastor's strained smile did little to hide the true state of his condition. Fluttershy's heart raced with concern as she approached him, cradling Scarlett close in her arms.
"Alastor! What happened to you?" Her voice was filled with worry and fear.
Alastor tried to brush off her concern with a nonchalant wave of his hand. "Nothing to worry about, my dear," he said, but his usually booming voice sounded weak and tired. "Just a small... disagreement with some old acquaintances. Nothing that won't heal in time."
Fluttershy's eyes narrowed as she saw through his façade. "You call this a disagreement?!" she snapped, careful not to upset Scarlett again.
The corners of Alastor's mouth twitched at her uncharacteristic outburst. His grin faltered for just a moment before returning, though it lacked its usual charm. "My dear, I assure you—" he started to say.
"No," Fluttershy interrupted, her voice soft yet firm. "No more assurances, Alastor. I need the truth. What really happened?"
With a deep sigh, Alastor shifted his weight onto his cane, his form leaning heavily against it. "The truth is... what I do during my own time is my business and mine alone," he stated firmly.
Fluttershy's expression hardened, surprising Alastor with her sternness. "That's not good enough," she spoke through gritted teeth. "You better tell me what happened, or else."
Alastor's eyebrows raised in amusement, a small grin tugging at the corners of his lips despite his weakened state. "Or else what, my dear?" he questioned playfully. "I must say, this assertive side of you is quite... intriguing."
But before Fluttershy could respond, a sudden green collar appeared around her neck, its chain tightly wrapped around her throat. She gasped for air as she struggled to remove it.
"But let's not forget," Alastor's voice cut through the air, causing the collar and chain to vanish in an instant. "You have no grounds to threaten me," he taunted with a smirk. "Especially when I possess everything you have, per our previous deal."
Despite feeling slightly unnerved by Alastor's power, Fluttershy held her ground and stared him down.
"Or else..." she began, her voice firm and unwavering. "I'll forbid you from seeing Scarlett!"
A sinister chuckle echoed around them as Niffty joined in on their conversation. "Like you could ever stop Alastor from doing whatever he wanted," she laughed mockingly
Alastor's grin twisted into a sneer, his eyes narrowing into icy slits at Fluttershy's bold declaration. He turned to Niffty, then back to the pegasus who held their child tightly in her arms.
"My dear Fluttershy," Alastor's voice dripped with malice, "do not forget our arrangement so easily. Your newfound courage is commendable, but it does not change the fact that I hold all the power here."
Fluttershy's resolve faltered under Alastor's intense gaze, but she steeled herself and stood firm. "I...I understand that. But Scarlett needs stability. She deserves a father who is present, not one who disappears for weeks on end and returns injured."
Niffty flitted anxiously between them, her single eye darting back and forth. "Oh dear, oh my! Such drama! But honestly Fluttershy, you should know better than to try and control the infamous Radio Demon."
Alastor raised a hand, silencing Niffty with a flick of his fingers. His expression softened slightly as he looked at Scarlett, whose wide crimson eyes watched the exchange with curious innocence.
"Perhaps," Alastor spoke slowly, carefully choosing his words, "we can come to a new understanding. For Scarlett's sake."
Fluttershy blinked in surprise, her determination giving way to shock. "You...you mean that?"
Alastor nodded, the tip of his polished cane tapping rhythmically against the ground. A sly smile played at the corners of his lips as he spoke. "I propose a compromise, my dear Fluttershy. I will be more... forthcoming about my activities, particularly those that concern Scarlett's safety. In return, you will not attempt to restrict my involvement in her life. Does that seem fair?"
Fluttershy furrowed her brow in thought, her delicate fingers playing with a strand of her pink mane. After a moment, she nodded slowly. "Alright... I can agree to that. As long as you promise to be honest with me about things that affect Scarlett."
Alastor's grin widened, revealing a set of pearly white teeth. "Excellent." His tone turned serious as he continued, his blue eyes glinting with determination. "Now, as for what transpired during my absence..." He paused, taking a deep breath before continuing. "I had an encounter with Daybreaker's Sun Knights."
"The Sun Knights?” Fluttershy gasped, her hand instinctively tightening around Scarlett's small frame protectively. “But why would they come after you?"
“Every year," Alastor replied, his voice dripping with disdain and anger towards Daybreaker, "she sends her loyal Knights down from Canterlot for the sake of completing their mission. Killing and destroying any and all trace of my so-called Corruption."
Fluttershy's eyes widened in shock and horror at the ruthless actions of the Sun Knights. She held Scarlett closer to her chest, her heart racing with fear and worry. "Did they... do they know about Scarlett?"
“They don’t," Alastor reassured the pegasus mare with a determined nod. “From now on, around this time of year, I will venture far from your home and draw the Sun Knights away." His gaze flicked to Scarlett, his expression softening. "I will do whatever it takes to keep her safe, Fluttershy."
Fluttershy nodded, understanding deepening in her eyes. "And you'll come back... injured."
Alastor shrugged, his nonchalant demeanor betraying the gravity of the situation. "No plan is without its drawbacks, my dear."
"Alastor..." Fluttershy's voice broke. She moved closer, her wings rustling softly. "Promise me you won't... you won't..."
The usually loquacious showman fell silent, his piercing crimson eyes fixated on Fluttershy and the small foal cradled in her arms. A rare tenderness softened his usually bombastic demeanor. "I give you my word, my dear," he spoke softly. "I will always return to you and Scarlett, no matter what challenges may arise."
True to his promise, Alastor made sure to keep in regular communication with Fluttershy, sharing updates on his whereabouts and activities. The vulnerability he showed was a new experience for him, but one he gladly embraced for the well-being of Scarlett and the peace of mind it brought Fluttershy.
As the day approached for Daybreaker's Knights to descend from Canterlot, Alastor would take his leave, bidding farewell to Fluttershy and Scarlett before setting off on his journey, always making sure to assure them of his eventual return.
With a violent flash of radio static, Alastor suddenly appeared in their shared cottage, his usual flamboyant entrance replaced by a stumbling and unsteady gait. The crackling radio waves that usually accompanied his arrival were weak and fading, like a poorly tuned station. Fluttershy, who had been anxiously pacing the living room floor, froze at the sight of him.
"Alastor!" she gasped, rushing to his side. Her wings trembled with worry as she took in his haggard and disheveled appearance.
The Radio Demon struggled to maintain his trademark charm and grin, but it was a feeble effort compared to his usual exuberance. "My dear," he wheezed, trying to downplay his condition. "I hope I haven't kept you waiting too long."
Fluttershy's normally gentle eyes widened in shock as she noticed the dark stains spreading on his pinstriped suit. "You're bleeding!" she exclaimed, her voice shaking with fear.
Alastor waved off her concern, but the gesture lacked its usual flourish. "Just a scratch, my dear. A little rest and I'll be good as new—" His words were cut off as he collapsed against the wall, sliding down slowly.
"That's enough," Fluttershy said, her voice unusually stern. She quickly knelt beside him, supporting his shoulders with her gentle arms. "We're going to the hospital right now."
Alastor's eyes widened in genuine fear for once. "No, no, that won't be necessary," he protested weakly. "A demon seeking mortal medical attention? It's preposterous—"
"Please," Fluttershy interrupted, tears welling up in her eyes. "I can't bear to see you suffer anymore. You promised you would always come back to us, but...but what if next time you can't?"
"I am a demon of my word," Alastor whispered, his voice barely audible over the static. "My word is my bond. And I will always keep it, no matter what."
One year had passed, but there was no denying the oppressive heat of the Vanhoover streets. The sun beat down relentlessly, as if it were determined to scorch every inch of the city. Alastor, the infamous Radio Demon, stood alone at an intersection, his tall form casting a long shadow across the cracked pavement. His perpetually grinning face was etched with determination as he scanned the buildings for any signs of movement.
The demon's keen ears picked up on the distant sound of hoofbeats, signaling the arrival of his enemies. He tightened his grip on his microphone staff, feeling its power hum in his hands. His thoughts turned to Fluttershy and little Scarlett, safely tucked away in their cottage far from this place. The memory of his promise to protect them echoed in his mind: "I am a demon of my word. My word is my bond. So no matter what, I will always keep my word." He would do whatever it takes to keep that promise, even if it meant facing these foes head on.
The deafening clamor of armored hooves echoed through the deserted streets, heralding the arrival of Daybreaker's Sun Knights. Their golden armor gleamed blindingly in the harsh sunlight, their cold eyes peering out from narrow slits in their helmets with an unnatural fervor.
Alastor's smirk widened into a manic grin as he watched them approach. "Well, well!" his voice rang out, distorted like an old radio broadcast. "If it isn't Daybreaker's obedient little soldiers! I was afraid you'd forgotten to RSVP to my little party."
Shining Armor, leading the pack with a blazing sun emblem emblazoned on his chest plate, stepped forward and growled in a voice warped by magic and metal. "Radio Demon," he snarled. "Your reign of terror ends today. Surrender now and perhaps Daybreaker will offer you a swift death."
Alastor threw his head back and laughed, his voice echoing unnaturally through the empty streets. "Surrender? Oh dear, I'm afraid you've misunderstood the whole purpose of this gathering." His eyes glowed with a fiery red as shadows began to writhe at his feet. "I have no intention of surrendering. I am here to make a statement."
With a dramatic flourish of his microphone, Alastor's voice boomed out, carried on waves of crackling static that reached every corner of Equestria. "Listen closely, citizens! Today, you will bear witness to a spectacle unlike any other – a battle between two opposing forces: the tyrannical regime of oppressive order versus the untamable chaos of freedom!"
The Sun Knights charged forward, their horns alight with blazing solar magic. But Alastor was prepared, his shadows surging to meet them in a deadly dance of opposing forces. Tentacles of darkness clashed against beams of searing light, the air crackling with magic and static as the two powerful enemies faced off.
With a flourish of his microphone, the Radio Demon summoned a tidal wave of shadow tentacles that lashed out at the charging knights. They twisted and writhed like living serpents, seeking to ensnare and destroy.
Two of the knights were caught off guard by the sudden ferocity of the attack, their bodies ensnared and lifted into the air by Alastor's dark tendrils. As the shadows squeezed tighter and tighter, their golden armor began to creak under the immense pressure, cutting off their oxygen supply and causing blood to spurt through the gaps in their helmets. With a sadistic flick of his wrist, Alastor hurled them towards the nearby buildings with bone-crushing force.
Their bodies collided with the solid structures, creating deep cracks and sending chunks of debris flying in all directions. The walls were splattered with their blood as their lifeless forms slid down and landed on the ground below, surrounded by a pool of red. Despite the chaos and destruction around them, Alastor only grinned wider, reveling in the thrill of battle and inflicting pain upon his enemies.
Shining Armor and his remaining knights could only watch helplessly as their comrades met a brutal end at the hands of their enemy's dark powers.
"Is this truly the best Daybreaker's Knights has to offer?" Alastor's mocking voice echoed through the battlefield, taunting his opponents.
Shining Armor's jaw clenched as he summoned his remaining knights to form a defensive triangle around their enemy. "Formation Delta!" he bellowed, his horn glowing with intense solar magic.
The knights moved with precision and grace, each beam of light converging on Alastor from a different direction. His shadows rose in a feeble attempt to defend him, but the blinding light was too much. With a scream of agony, Alastor felt the searing heat tear through his left shoulder, burning through fabric and flesh. He stumbled back, his grin faltering for just a moment before he regained his composure.
"A lucky hit," he sneered, gritting his teeth against the pain. "But the show must go on!"
Alastor waved his microphone and summoned a swarm of twisted creatures with sharp antlers and beaks resembling a twisted mix of deer and birds. They swooped down upon the knights, tearing through their golden armor with vicious precision. The air was filled with the screams of wounded soldiers and the sickening smell of burning flesh."
One of the brave knights fell, unable to handle the overwhelming number of shadow birds attacking him. His final scream echoed through the empty, smoke-filled streets. The remaining knights fought with all their might, their swords cutting through the darkness and bones of their attackers. Another knight was taken down, his helmet ripped off by the shadow creatures, exposing a look of terror and confusion before he was impaled by a deer's antlers.
Despite the chaos and loss of his comrades, Shining Armor remained steadfast. He used his powerful horn to create a barrier around himself and the few remaining knights. "Your tricks won't save you, demon," he snarled.
Alastor let out a strained chuckle in response. "Tricks? My dear Shining Armor, you underestimate me. This is art!"
As Alastor prepared for his next move, Shining Armor surprised him by dropping his shield and unleashing a concentrated beam of solar magic. The Radio Demon twisted to dodge it, but the beam still grazed his right leg, burning through his pinstripe trousers and scorching his skin.
Alastor stumbled back, struggling to stay on his feet. The constant static that surrounded him wavered, betraying his pain.
Feeling confident from his successful attack, Shining Armor pressed on. "You don't seem so sure of yourself now," he taunted
Despite his injuries, Alastor maintained a broad grin. "On the contrary, my enlightened friend," he responded with confidence, standing tall. "I'm just getting started. And don't forget, dear listeners," he reminded them, his voice carrying across all of Equestria, "the greatest performances often require some... sacrifice."
As Alastor's words reverberated throughout Equestria, an otherworldly energy began to pulsate around him. The constant static hum that always surrounded him grew louder and louder, becoming a deafening roar that shook the very ground beneath their hooves.
Suddenly, the silhouette of Alastor began to shift and transform. His figure appeared to elongate and contort, his garments transforming into tattered wings and his face taking on monstrous features.
Shining Armor instinctively took a step back, his eyes widening in shock. "What in Daybreaker's name...?"
Alastor's grin stretched impossibly wide, revealing rows of razor-sharp teeth that glinted menacingly in the harsh sunlight. His voice deepened and distorted with each word, sending shivers down the spines of all who heard it. "Oh, my dear captain," he chuckled, a sickening glee in his tone, "you're about to witness something truly…e̡͟n̡t́e͡r̨t̷͜a̸i̶n͟į͢n͟͟g̵͡."
With a guttural growl, Alastor's form began to shift and twist. His once-slender frame bulged with muscles until he resembled a hulking monstrosity. Bones cracked and snapped as they elongated, creating a grotesque display of contorting limbs. His antlers grew larger and more intricate, resembling a twisted crown atop his head.
But it was his eyes that were truly terrifying. Once unnerving enough on their own, they now blazed like twin infernos, casting an eerie red glow over the battlefield. As if fueled by some demonic power, Alastor's body continued to swell until he towered over the buildings of Vanhoover. His suit, once elegant and refined, tore and reformed into a nightmarish amalgamation of fabric and shadow.
As the transformation completed, Alastor stood before the Sun Knights as a colossal demon, his form a twisted mockery of his former self. He loomed over the city like a dark omen, his very presence casting a shadow over everything in its wake. The Sun Knights could not help but feel overwhelmed by fear and awe at the sight before them. This was no longer just Alastor - he was something else entirely.
"N̦̟o̺͓͍̳w͕͚ ́͠t͈̹h̵̛e҉̭n͡ͅ!" Alastor's voice boomed, the sound reverberating through the very bones of everypony present, "s̢͘ą̼l̸͎l̶ ̥we҉̠ ͜c̻o͘nt̶i͇͙nṳe ̴o̩u̬ŕ p̀erformánce?"
Shining Armor, to his credit, stood his ground, not a single ounce of fear was evident in his eyes. "Knights!" he called out, his voice steady, "Formation Omega! We hold the line, no matter what!"
The Sun Knights scrambled to regroup, their golden armor looking pitifully small against the towering form of the demon before them. Their horns glowed with an otherworldly light as they prepared for what might be their final stand.
Alastor's demonic laughter echoed across Vanhoover as he raised his massive, clawed hands. "L̶͓͕̗ͅͅe̩͍̻͖̰t̹̪͢ͅ ̧͇̬̻̮̩̮͙͘t͠͏̻̱͕̗̭h̹͔̜̀͠e̜͠͝ ̢͔̯̝͚̫s̹͈͈̟̘̭̻h͢͏̳͉͈̩̰͇͓͕ơ̜̠̗̳̥͔̳̼ẃ̫ ̤̟͚̻͚͇́b̵͎̩͇̘͓̼̙͝é̗g̤͉̹͙͓̙̞͈i̭̜̰͖͓̮̬͖n͖̦̼̲͉!" he roared, his voice a cacophony of distorted frequencies.
With lightning-fast speed, Alastor brought his claws down upon the formation of Sun Knights. The ground shook with the impact, concrete shattering and crumbling under the force of the blow. Several knights, caught directly under his massive hand, were slammed into the street, their golden armor no match for the crushing strength of the demon. Blood sprayed across the streets as bodies were crushed under Alastor's relentless assault.
Shining Armor's voice pierced through the chaos, commanding and urgent. "Disperse and reform! Do not let him trap us!"
But Alastor was one step ahead. His shadowy tendrils lashed out with ferocious speed, slicing through the air with deadly precision. Helpless knights were caught in their grasp, their bodies flung into buildings with a force that could shatter bones like twigs. The structures themselves trembled at the impact, their windows exploding into deadly shards that rained down like a deadly hailstorm.
Yet, the Sun Knights refused to back down. As Alastor prepared for another strike, Shining Armor's horn erupted with blinding light. "Attack now! Focus your magic!"
In an instant, concentrated beams of pure energy shot forth from every remaining knight's horn. They converged on Alastor, striking him from all angles with unrelenting force. The demon's eyes widened in shock and pain as his shadowy form was seared by the intense magic.
He let out a blood-curdling roar, the sound reverberating throughout the city as his form flickered and faltered under the onslaught. Alastor tried to hide his agony behind his infamous grin, but it was clear that he was suffering greatly. Wherever the beams struck, chunks of his shadowy flesh sizzled and burned, leaving gaping wounds that oozed dark liquid and revealed his true demonic nature. He stumbled backwards, his confident façade crumbling as he struggled to stay standing under the relentless barrage of magic.
Shining Armor's battle cry echoed through the air as he urged his knights forward. "Don't hold back! Strike his joints and head with all your might!"
The knights charged in unison, swords held high with glowing runes etched along the blades. They moved with a deadly precision, a well-oiled machine of violence and destruction.
In a flash of steel and magic, the Sun Knights descended upon Alastor, their strikes calculated and devastating. The battlefield filled with the sound of clashing metal and the sickening sizzle of demonic flesh being burned by enchanted blades. Alastor's roars of pain only fueled their determination.
The first knight struck at Alastor's ankle, cleaving through it with a powerful blow. The demon stumbled, momentarily vulnerable. Two more knights leapt onto Alastor's chest, carving deep gashes into his massive form before landing gracefully on the ground.
"Y̶o̴u͠ ͘dare̡ t̸ò hurt m̡e?!" Alastor bellowed in disbelief and rage. He swung his clawed hand in a desperate attempt to ward off his attackers, but his movements were sluggish and ineffective.
Another knight darted in, plunging his rune-blade deep into Alastor's side. The sword glowed brightly as if fed by the demon's agony. With a howl of pain, Alastor's shadowy substance began to dissipate where the blade struck.
"Keep going!" Shining Armor commanded, channeling his own magical energy to join the assault. "We have him on the ropes!"
The knights intensified their attack, their blades expertly weaving around Alastor in a deadly dance. Each strike left behind deep gashes that oozed dark, smoky blood. Slowly but surely, they wore down the once-powerful demon. Alastor's massive form began to flicker and waver, like a dying flame. He stumbled backwards, crashing into a nearby building with a thunderous impact that sent debris flying.
"N-no..." Alastor gasped, his booming voice now weak and strained.
Before their very eyes, the giant demon began to shrink and crumble. It was a painful and gruesome sight as his body contorted and shriveled, returning to its original shape and size. Within moments, Alastor appeared before them in his normal form, battered and bleeding. His suit was torn and disheveled, a far cry from his usually immaculate appearance. He struggled to stand upright, swaying on his feet.
Despite his desperate state, Alastor lifted his head. His eyes still glowed with defiant red light as he locked gazes with Shining Armor. The Radio Demon's permanent grin now contorted into a grimace of pain and fury. He fixed a glare on the captain of the Sun Knights, a mix of hatred and begrudging respect shining through.
"Nicely played... Captain," Alastor croaked, his voice hoarse and lacking its usual showmanship. "But don't think for a second... that this is the end. The show must always go on."
Shining Armor's expression remained stoic as he drove his sword into the demon's shoulder with a resounding thrust. Alastor's eyes widened in shock and pain as he was violently hurled back into the crumbling debris of the building, causing it to collapse even further.
Gasping for air, Alastor weakly grasps the sword lodged in his body, dark smoke billowing from his fingers as he futilely tries to remove it. Shining Armor stands tall, his runic blade emanating an intense aura of power. He gazes down at the demon with a fierce determination in his eyes.
"It ends now, Alastor," Shining Armor declares, his voice booming with authority. "Surrender and face Daybreaker's justice with whatever shred of honor you have left."
Alastor lets out a guttural laugh that resonates through the destroyed streets and buildings. "It will never be over," he snarls, spitting blood as he speaks. "Neither you nor Daybreaker can silence the Radio Demon's voice."
Unwavering, Shining Armor raises his sword once more, its radiant light illuminating the devastation surrounding them. He locks eyes with Alastor, unyielding and unafraid. "Your voice means nothing if there's no one left to hear it," he declares, ready to end this battle once and for all
The captain of the Sun Knight showed no mercy as he drove his sword deep into the demon's gut, the force of the blow propelling Alastor further into the shattered debris of the building. Shining Armor twisted the blade with a savage glee, causing Alastor to writhe and scream in agony.
"You should have joined the Program long ago, Alastor," Shining Armor taunted, driving the blade even deeper into the demon's flesh. "Radio is fucking dead and gone."
Despite his pain, Alastor's laughter rang out once again, but this time it was laced with a delirious madness. "I must disagree with you, Captain," he spat.
In a flash of movement, Alastor's cane appeared in his hand, catching Shining Armor off guard. With a swift and calculated swing, he struck the Sun Knight in the chest with enough force to send him flying back. The impact caused Shining Armor to lose his grip on his sword, which remained embedded in Alastor's body.
"The airwaves may have changed, but radio..." Alastor groaned as he retreated into the safety of his shadow. "Radio is immortal."
And with that final declaration, Alastor disappeared from sight. Shining Armor lay sprawled on the ground, gasping for air as he struggled to regain his senses. He could hear panicked voices and see frightened ponies emerging from the wreckage around him.
Anger boiled within him as he struggled to his feet, casting a venomous glare at the malicious demon.
“Captain,” one of the surviving Sun Knights approached, standing before the unicorn. “Your orders, Sir?”
The Captain of the Knights of the Sun wasted no time in issuing his next commands. “Everypony here has been corrupted by Alastor’s dark touch,” Shining Armor declared, his eyes scanning the crowd with haunted intensity. “We must cleanse this land of his lingering influence. Show no mercy and leave no pony alive.” His voice was steely and resolute, determined to eradicate any trace of evil from their midst.
"Understood, sir!" The soldier saluted, as the others did the same. With a renewed sense of purpose, they dispersed into the crowd that had gathered at the site of Alastor's defeat.
Shining Armor remained where he stood, his chest heaving as he tried to steady his breathing. His gaze fixed on the spot where Alastor had disappeared, his expression hardening.
"You might have escaped this time, Demon," Shining Armor muttered under his breath, "But I swear on the Sun Goddess herself that one way or another, your show will be cancelled."
A bloodcurdling scream pierced through the air, followed by another and another, creating a symphony of terror and surprise. The Sun Knights carried out their captain's ruthless orders without hesitation. Panic and chaos erupted as ponies desperately tried to flee or fight back, but there was no escaping the relentless knights. Their glistening armor radiated with blinding light as they advanced, their swords glinting like fiery stars in the morning sun. A mare begged for mercy, but her words were drowned out by the clashing of metal and deafening screams.
In the midst of chaos, a young colt ran towards Shining Armor and clung to his armor with trembling hands, begging for his life. "Captain Armor, please! I swear, I am not corrupted!"
Shining's expression twisted into one of disgust as he raised his fist and struck the colt with a sharp clang of metal against flesh. "Get off me!" he snarled, delivering another brutal blow that sent the innocent pony crashing to the ground.
Rage consumed Shining as he grabbed the colt by his mane and mercilessly slammed his face against the nearest wall. The sound of impact drowned out the colt's cries of pain.
"You filthy little maggot!" Shining roared, each word punctuated by a violent slam into the unyielding wall. "Don't you dare touch me with your tainted hands!"
The Stallion continued his savage assault until the colt's pleas faded into silence and his body hung limp. Tossing aside the lifeless form, Shining Armor wiped sweat from his brow and looked over his shoulder at the ongoing massacre. His knights followed through on their orders with ruthless efficiency.
"We're withdrawing!" Shining bellowed over the chaos as he and his troops began to fall back from Vanhoover. "Back to Canterlot!"
Shining Armor let out a powerful magic-enhanced whistle, and a fleet of golden chariots pulled by fierce eagles appeared. The Sun Knight hopped into one of the chariots but then remembered that he had left his sword behind. He turned to Golden Ray, one of the young knights under his command.
"Golden Ray," Shining Armor's voice boomed over the sounds of destruction. "Retrieve my sword! And if you happen to come across the Radio Demon, eliminate him once and for all!"
"Yes, Captain!" Golden Ray saluted and set off to find his captain's sword using a tracking spell embedded in its hilt.
After escaping Vanhoover in a hurry, it took Alastor five days to reach the safety of the Everfree Forest. The Radio Demon stumbled through the thick brush, still carrying Shining Armor's sword embedded in his abdomen. He wasn't foolish enough to believe he could survive this wound; pulling out the blade would only hasten his demise. He needed a way to heal and fast.
Blood dripped from his wounds, staining the forest floor with each unsteady step he took. Alastor's strength was rapidly depleting, his once sharp eyes now dulled by pain and exhaustion. He had been wandering aimlessly for who knows how long.
"How long has it been?" Alastor gasped, his voice distorted. "Since I've been this close to death?"
His words echoed through the silent forest, a haunting symphony of agony and despair that was swallowed by the looming trees. Each step deeper into the dense foliage felt like a battle against the encroaching darkness at the edge of his vision.
Heaving breaths racked his body and a metallic taste filled his mouth. Pain coursed through every inch of him, but Alastor pushed on until his legs gave out beneath him and he collapsed onto the damp earth. His breathing became shallow, the effort of moving causing unbearable waves of pain to pulse through his weakened body.
A raspy voice suddenly broke the silence from the shadows. "Oh wow, what is this?" it croaked. "How are you still breathing with a blade that will surely send you to the abyss?"
Alastor's eyes narrowed as he scanned the darkness. "If you value your life...you will reveal yourself," he hissed. "I am in no mood for shady characters."
A tall figure emerged from the shadows, her face hidden by the hood of her cloak. "No need for alarm," she said calmly. "I mean no harm."
As she lowered her hood, Alastor could see that she was a Zebra mare with a striking mohawk of black and white stripes. Her ears were adorned with delicate gold hoop earrings, adding a touch of elegance to her otherwise wild appearance. Her kind eyes held a depth of wisdom that spoke of years of experience. She wore a fur-lined shawl draped around her neck and upper chest, made from the softest brown fur Alastor had ever seen. The garment wrap revealed much of her ample cleavage, while another pelt tied around her waist covered her lower body down to her knees. Golden rings glittered on both wrists and around her neck, adding to the air of mystery surrounding her. In one hand, she held a wooden walking stick with a curved top resembling a shepherd's crook, showing off her strength and agility despite her age.
"I am Zecora," the creature said, her voice steady but not without a hint of curiosity. "I see you need some aid, I can provide it at no trade."
“No trade?” Alastor scoffed and coughed up blood while leaning on a tree. “You expect me to believe that? There’s always something to be expected in return. Besides, this is our very first encounter. What motive could you, a stranger, possibly have to aid someone like me? Who, by the way is not whom you expect.”
"In a world so bleak and grim, often the only kindness is on a whim," Zecora offered a small smile, moving closer to Alastor. "And from your words alone, I can tell there's much pain you've known."
"Enough talk, zebra," Alastor's voice was harsh and raspy, but underlying it was a tone of desperation. "Leave me be, before I kill you”
"But death's threat, you cannot fulfill," Zecora replied calmly, "Not in your current state, you're ill."
Ignoring his icy glare, the zebra began to rummage through her satchel. She pulled out a small clay jar filled with a thick green paste.
"Without my aid, you will surely die in vain," Zecora said in her rhyming tone, setting the jar at Alastor's side. "This balm will soothe your pain."
“Then make me a deal,” Alastor said, smiling as much as he could. “You give me aid, and I shall repay you in any way I can.” Alastor held out his blood-soaked hand.
Zecora merely pushed the bloodied hand aside. "No need for blood oaths or binding deals," Zecora said, moving past the demon. "Charity does not require wheels."
After the Zebra disappeared, Alastor grabbed the small clay jar and slowly got to his feet. He made his way towards Fluttershy's cottage, but as he moved, his vision blurred until he couldn't walk any further. The Radio Demon gave into his injuries and collapsed onto the forest floor. Everything started spinning around him, the trees blending into a chaotic mix of green and brown. The pain was overwhelming, like flames engulfing him from within. His heartbeat grew slower by the second, sounding like a distant drum in his ears.
"This is it..." Alastor thought, accepting that death was near. "Not with a bang, but with a whimper..."
His mind drifted to thoughts of Fluttershy and their daughter. He had never been one for sentimentality, but the idea of not seeing them again brought him more pain than any physical wound ever could. He pictured Fluttershy's gentle smile, her soothing voice, and the soft touch of her hand. He thought of his daughter with her piercing crimson eyes, so similar to his own, filled with an innocent curiosity that he always found endearing.
As the darkness closed in on him, he heard a faint rustling in the bushes nearby. Something small and light stepped on him, its tiny paws pressing into his injured side. Alastor strained his neck to see and saw a tiny rabbit sniffing at him curiously before hopping off.
"Fluttershy...Scarlett...I'm sorry," Alastor whispered as his consciousness slipped away. "I have to...break my promise."
Alastor's eyes slowly flickered open, his surroundings appearing as a blur of light and shadows. Gradually, his vision sharpened and he found himself gazing up at a wooden ceiling, illuminated by the gentle glow of candle flames. A tender touch on his arm caught his attention.
Sitting at the edge of the bed was Fluttershy, her features soft but filled with worry and exhaustion. Her usually neat mane was slightly disheveled, strands of hair falling out of place as she leaned forward. Instead of meeting Alastor's gaze, her eyes were fixed on a point over his shoulder. It was evident that she was angry, her body tense with restrained emotion. But even in her anger, there was a sense of compassion in Fluttershy's actions towards Alastor.
"Fluttershy?" Alastor said weakly.
"Alastor," Fluttershy's voice was stern as she tied off a thread before applying the ointment given to her by Zecora.
Alastor's attempt at humor was evident in his murmured words, "You're quite skilled with that, my dear."
He observed as she hesitated, her fingers hovering over the healing balm before meeting his gaze. Her eyes were swollen and red, a telltale sign of recent tears. A moment passed before she broke the silence.
Fluttershy firmly applied the balm to the freshly stitched wound, causing a pained hiss from the demon. "My animals often get hurt," she explained with a hint of annoyance in her tone. "I have experience in taking care of them."
Alastor's body convulsed in agonizing pain, his vision blurring as he let out a guttural cry. "Gentle?" he gasped, feeling the pressure on his wound intensify with each passing second.
"With you, gentle is not an option," Fluttershy snapped back as cold as a glacier.
There was a tense pause before Fluttershy locked eyes with Alastor, her gaze burning with anger and worry.
"What happened?" she demanded.
Alastor's voice was barely a whisper as he explained through gritted teeth, "I had a little trouble dealing with Daybreaker's Sun Knights."
"A LITTLE?! YOU'RE BLEEDING OUT ON MY BED AND THAT'S ALL YOU HAVE TO SAY?!" Fluttershy's usually soft voice now rang out like thunder. She grabbed the Sword stained with Alastor's blood and brandished it towards him. "DO YOU SEE THIS? I HAD TO PULL A SWORD OUT OF YOUR FUCKING STOMACH! THIS IS NOT 'A LITTLE' TROUBLE!"
Alastor was taken aback by her sudden outburst. He had never seen her raise her voice before, let alone swear. The normally calm and collected Fluttershy was now trembling with anger and fear. It was clear that she was deeply worried for him. Her words pierced his heart like daggers, reminding him of the danger he had put himself in to protect her.
"Fl-," he tried to speak but was cut off by Fluttershy's forceful words.
"No!" she interrupted. "This is where you listen to me for once, Alastor."
Alastor fell silent, his eyes softening as he prepared himself for what Fluttershy was about to say. Her hand was trembling badly now, the Sword shaking in her grasp as her anger melted into worry.
Tears welled up in her eyes as she pleaded with him, "You can't keep risking your life like this, Alastor! You mean too much to me."
Her voice cracked on the last word, and she turned away, unable to meet his gaze. The room was quiet once again, save for Fluttershy's quiet weeping and the gentle rustling of leaves outside.
"Please be careful with your words, Fluttershy," Alastor responded. "Saying that I mean something to you should not be taken lightly, especially given my nature and who I am."
"I don't care," Fluttershy declared fiercely. "You saved me from a life of torment, paid off my contract, and helped me break free from addiction. You're the father of our child...and I love you, Alastor."
With determination in her heart, Fluttershy leaned closer to the demon and pressed her lips against his. Their kiss was intense, igniting their souls and causing the Sword to fall to the ground with a loud clang, forgotten in the heat of their passion.
They pulled away after a moment, gasping for air, but their eyes remained locked in a tender gaze. Fluttershy's cheeks were stained with tears, but her eyes shone with unwavering love and devotion.
Alastor's heart raced as he tried to gather his thoughts, but before he could speak another word, a deafening crash shattered the air.
The sound of glass breaking filled the room, and both Alastor and Fluttershy turned towards the source in an instant. Fear flashed across Fluttershy's face, her eyes wide with terror as she clutched onto Alastor's arm for support.
"Scarlett!" Her panicked scream echoed through the room as Niffty burst in, blood dripping from a deep gash on her arm. She held the young filly tightly in her arms, shielding her from any danger.
"We have company, Al," Niffty spat out between gritted teeth, her eyes blazing with anger and fear.
But it was too late. The golden armored Sun Knight had already entered the room, his sword at the ready. With a swift movement, he swung his sword at Niffty's unprotected back, tearing through her flesh with a sickening crunch. Niffty fell to the ground with a pained cry, blood spilling out onto the floor.
Alastor's hand shook with unrestrained anger as he snatched up the fallen Sword, his blazing gaze fixed on the Sun Knight who dared to challenge him. Scarlett's desperate sobs echoed through the room as she watched her beloved protector fall, while Fluttershy frantically gathered her trembling daughter and retreated to a corner.
"Well well, look what we have here," Golden Ray sneered, strutting into the room after his lackey. "Not only have I found the notorious 'Demon Filly' Niffty, but also a wounded Radio Demon."
But as Scarlett's cries escalated, Golden Ray's patience wore thin. Until he saw her in her demonic form, that is.
"By Daybreaker's scorching Sun..." he gasped, his eyes widening in shock at the monstrous sight before him. "Is this...is this your vile offspring?"
"Don't you dare lay a hand on my daughter!" Fluttershy roared, her usually gentle voice now dripping with venomous rage.
"You corrupted whore!" Golden Ray's sword was poised to strike down Fluttershy. "You are responsible for the birth of demon spawn!"
"Don't you dare lay a hand on my girls!" Alastor roared, his voice lacking its usual static as he charged forward with his own sword ready.
In one swift motion, he drove his blade into Golden Ray's chest, piercing through his armor and plunging straight into his heart. The knight let out a gasp of shock and disbelief before stumbling backwards and dropping his weapon with a loud clatter.
"F-foul demon..." Golden Ray stuttered before collapsing to the ground in a lifeless heap.
Alastor stood in the aftermath, his chest heaving from the adrenaline still coursing through his veins. Scarlett clung to Fluttershy, her small frame wracked with sobs as she buried her face into the angel's shoulder. Niffty's body lay motionless on the ground, a pool of blood slowly spreading around her.
As Alastor glanced towards her, his heart pounded in his chest and he felt a wave of relief wash over him when Niffty spoke weakly.
"Don't... don't look at me like that," she croaked out, forcing a smile onto her blood-stained lips. "I'm not gone just yet."
The static in Alastor's voice returned as he shook his head, trying to shake off the overwhelming emotions that threatened to consume him. "You're a stubborn one, Niffty," he remarked.
"Always have been," she replied with a somber chuckle, coughing up more blood. "Always will be."
Alastor turned to Fluttershy and commanded, "Take Niffty to the hospital... and Scarlett, take her away from all this."
"But Alastor..." Fluttershy protested, worry etched onto her features.
"No arguments, my dear," Alastor cut her off firmly yet gently. "I need you to do this."
With a nod, Fluttershy helped Niffty to her feet and led her out of the room. Scarlett clung to them both, fear evident in her wide eyes.
"Don't worry, Scarlett," Fluttershy murmured softly as they hurried away.
Once he was alone again, Alastor narrowed his eyes and scanned the room. That wasn't him just now when he killed and shouted at the knight... it wasn't his voice. Rarely does the Radio Demon ever speak without static in his voice, and even rarer is it for him to kill someone with his own two hands.
"Who are you?" Alastor demanded, his voice laced with anger and suspicion. "You took control of my body, and I want to know why."
A voice echoed in Alastor's mind, a name he did not recognize. "My name is Charlie Jophiel," it spoke with a hint of irritation. "And that body of yours belongs to me."
Author's Note
Yes. YES. FUCK YES!!!
We've finally given birth to our Demon/Pony baby.
Me and my friends in The League took quite a while to decide the child's appearance. especially which features of which parent we take from. The horns while not from Alastor does tie in to her Demon blood which was Wolf Blood 's idea.
Now I shall not be revealing Scarlett's powers just yet...and she will have powers. the only thing I will reveal is her ability to make deal like her father. That is all I shall give away.
And Can it Be. Charlie? Alastor's old self finally returning, What Could that Mean for the Radio Demon. Is He Dropping further into insanity or maybe he's finally regaining the Sanity he lost. Who Knows...You'll have to Stay Tuned until the next chapter.
Guess What? IT's Question Time BITCHES!!!
Thanks for yet another awesome chapter!
So Niffty is finally back and she's going to be Fluttershy's nanny. Is her "Squeaky Clean" personality gone forever or are some remnants of it still buried in her subconscious?
Also, on a scale of 1 to 11. How stupid of an action will Rainbow take when she finds out about Fluttershy's deal with Alastor?
So you wrote two questions so let's tackle them in order.
Question 1: Technically. Squeaky Clean is the Original. so Unless the Elements are used on Niffty again Squeaky Clean is as good as Gone.
Question 2: This is Rainbow Dash we talkin bout. there is no 1 or 11. She'll jump start to a level 12 on the scale. and it may or may not involve a gun and gunfire.
Great to finally see an update to this great fic.
Seeing Nifty again was a treat and I love how you introduced her to the rest of the characters.
Always knew the Pink menace was gonna find out about Alastor's nature, seeing the Girls gather for the baby shower was cute as well as the gifts, how you wrote Dash was great. Great work indeed.
Question:
Is Shining still gonna be married to Candance or is the fact Daybreaker is incharge led to her not rising to Alacornhood?
Would be fun if she took on Rosie's role as a match maker, or a pimp.
Cadance Is still Married to Shining Armor and is still an alicorn, Besides that. I have no idea involving her. Though Making her like Rosie or a more evil version of Rosie does give me some ideas.
Okay that's all the Questions. ANd if you want to ask something go for it. I will always adress your questions right down here.
As Always, Stay Tuned Folks
Chapter 18: A New Frequency
Alastor stood amidst the carnage of Fluttershy's cottage, his hands slick with blood. The body of a Sun Knight lay before him, lifeless and still, surrounded by a pool of deep crimson that had seeped from his fatal wound. The quaint wooden floorboards were now stained and marred by the violence that had taken place.
"I don't know who you are, Charlie Jophiel, or where you came from," Alastor growled, his fists clenched at his sides as he spoke. "But this body...this body belongs to me."
Charlie's cold voice cut through the tension, full of confidence and power. "Not anymore," she declared. "It's mine to control and use as I see fit."
Alastor's eyes flashed dangerously, a remnant of his previous power flaring up for a moment and casting the dim room in a foreboding red hue. "You don't know who I am," he growled, his words laced with venom.
"The Radio Demon, Alastor," Charlie responded coolly, not missing a beat. "Someone who suddenly appeared in this world and killed billions. But you have no memory of your life before coming here."
A faint smirk tugged at the corner of Alastor's lips, revealing a hint of his sharp, pearly white teeth. "You're not entirely wrong, boy," he replied in a smooth, almost melodic tone that dripped with mockery. His eyes glittered with mischief and something darker. "But I do remember enough to know that I am not the one losing control."
"And you've also forgotten your true identity and taken on the name Alastor because that was the character I was dressed as when I was shot and brought to this world," Charlie revealed, her voice carrying a knowing tone.
"Intriguing," Alastor hummed, his deep voice resonating with intrigue as his lips curled into a devilish smile.
"And before you demand it of me, no, you won't be getting my body back," Charlie said firmly, his voice holding a hint of defiance. "Because I have something far more important to protect than your personal desire for entertaining yourself."
Alastor's expression remained unchanged as he drawled, "Is that so?" The corner of his mouth twitched in amusement. "You think you can gain control and keep me at bay forever? Be the puppeteer in our shared mind?"
"I wouldn't expect someone who never cared about anything but himself to understand," Charlie shot back.
Alastor laughed; a low, chilling sound that echoed throughout the small room. "Ah, Charlie boy," he said, the dark amusement plain in his voice. "To understand one must care, and you’re right about one thing - I don't care about your feelings."
As Charlie's voice slowly faded, Alastor felt a sense of triumph wash over him. His own laughter, deep and menacing, echoed in the eerie silence that surrounded them. As the last remnants of Charlie retreated from their shared mind, Alastor could feel his control strengthening, the balance tipping in his favor.
But deep within their collective consciousness, Charlie was not defeated. He was only laying low, biding his time and learning the inner workings of this shared psyche.
"You may think you've won," Charlie murmured confidently, his words echoing through the darkness of their inner mindscape, "but our battle is far from finished."
The shared silence of their mind was broken only by the sound of Alastor's mocking laughter. "Over, Charlie? It was never a competition," he replied, voice tinted with an unmistakable hint of arrogance. “This is survival, and I daresay, I am far better equipped at it than you.”
His gaze shifted to the lifeless body of the Sun Knight, sprawled out on the ground. With a swift movement, the Radio Demon pulled the sword from its gut and opened a portal, storing the bloodied blade inside. "But make no mistake..." he said with a devilish grin, his red eyes gleaming with satisfaction. "I care about my girls."
As his crimson gaze scanned the room, Alastor couldn't help but feel a twinge of annoyance at the sight before him. Fluttershy's room was in complete disarray - bloodstained sheets, a broken door, and the dead body of the Knight lying in a pool of his own blood. This would not do.
"Let's tidy up, shall we?" Alastor murmured with a satisfied smirk lingering on his lips.
Taking matters into his own hands, Alastor clapped twice, summoning unseen forces to clean up the mess. With each clap, the room transformed before his eyes - the vibrant colors returned, replacing the desolation that had once filled the space. The bloodstains vanished, the shattered door mended itself together with a satisfying click, and the corpse dissolved into nothing but a cloud of ethereal dust. Within moments, all evidence of the gruesome scene had been erased, leaving behind only the bare wooden floor as if nothing had happened at all.
The harsh, bright lights and sterile scent of Equestria General Hospital filled every corner of the waiting area. Fluttershy perched uneasily on a stiff plastic chair, her wings pulled tightly around the small body in her arms. Scarlett Wisp, her three-year-old half-demon daughter, clung desperately to her mother's embrace, seeking comfort from the unknown.
Fluttershy's delicate hand ran soothingly through her daughter's hair, whispering calming words into her ear. "It's okay, sweetie. Momma is here with you. You're safe."
Scarlett, too young to fully understand the situation, whimpered softly against her mother's chest. Her tiny horns peeked out from under her disheveled mane, drawing curious stares from other waiting patients. But Fluttershy's protective presence and unwavering love kept any unwanted attention at bay.
Anxiety etched deep lines into Fluttershy's forehead as she scanned between her daughter and the hallway, anxiously awaiting any sign of the doctor. Her heart raced with worry for her child's well-being as she continued to murmur soothing words and offer gentle caresses.
"Any updates on Niffty?" Alastor's voice made Fluttershy turn her head in surprise.
The Radio Demon had transformed into his pony disguise and stood next to her, his brown waistcoat neatly fastened and looking more put-together than usual. He sat down next to Fluttershy, his hand gripping his chest tightly.
"Not yet," Fluttershy replied, turning back to the hallway with a hopeful look on her face.
“Fluttershy…” Alastor spoke softly, his gaze resting on her with a tender affection. Fluttershy met his eyes, noticing the sincerity and care in them. “I've come to a realization...about us.”
Fluttershy's eyes widened, but before she could respond, Alastor continued.
"In seeing our daughter so vulnerable, I've realized that I can no longer be the reckless demon I once was. There's more at stake now than just my own existence."
“Do you truly mean that?” Fluttershy asked.
"Yes," Alastor replied solemnly. "I do."
His gaze dropped to the floor and he fell silent. After a moment, he extended his hand towards Scarlett's small figure and gently grazed one of her tiny horns with his finger.
"I've caused so much destruction and suffering in the past, all for my own amusement" Alastor's voice was barely audible. "But now, for the first time…I felt genuine fear."
"Fear for both you and Scarlett," he added with strain in his voice. "I never want to see either of you in danger like that again."
Fluttershy's eyes glistened with tears as she leaned her head on Alastor's shoulder. His gaze remained fixated on their daughter, his hand gently stroking Scarlett's horn in a tender display of affection.
Despite his usual stoic demeanor, there was a deep sadness in Alastor's voice as he spoke. "I cannot promise an immediate change," he said, his words heavy with emotion. "But I swear to you, Fluttershy, that I will try. For you and for Scarlett."
As he finished speaking, Fluttershy pulled away slightly to meet his gaze. His eyes held a sincerity and earnestness that she had rarely seen in him before. She nodded, placing a small hand on top of his hand.
"I believe you, Alastor," she whispered softly
The hospital waiting room was filled with an intense, almost suffocating atmosphere as they sat in quiet anticipation. The only physical connection between them was their interlocked fingers, a small comfort in the sterile environment. The clock on the wall continued its monotonous ticking until finally, a doctor emerged and made his way towards Fluttershy.
"Miss Fluttershy," he greeted, adjusting his spectacles.
"How is Niffty?" Fluttershy asked, standing up from her seat.
"She is currently stable," the doctor replied, glancing down at his clipboard. "We successfully stitched up the wounds on her back and arm, and she is under close observation."
Fluttershy let out a sigh of relief, her body slumping against the chair. Her legs felt like jelly beneath her.
"Can we go see her now?"
The doctor hesitated before giving a hesitant nod. "I'm sorry, but no visitors are allowed at this time."
"Not even for family?" Alastor stood up from his seat. "She's my little sister."
There was a brief pause before the doctor relented. "I suppose we can make an exception, but please keep your visit short. She needs her rest."
Alastor nodded appreciatively, thanking Fluttershy with a gentle squeeze of her hand. He then proceeded to walk down the hallway alone, with the Doctor calling after him.
"Sir, I didn't tell you which room she's..." the doctor trailed off as Alastor shot him a look that immediately silenced him.
"I always know where my Niffty is," Alastor spoke, his voice echoing slightly as he disappeared down the hall.
The Doctor straightened his white lab coat, trying to regain his composure after the shock of seeing Alastor disappear down the hallway. He turned to Fluttershy, who had been watching with a worried expression.
"Wh-While I have you here, Miss Shy," he started, his voice steady but still slightly shaken. "There is another matter that needs to be addressed."
Fluttershy's attention snapped back to the doctor, her eyes wide and expectant.
"Yes?" she asked in a barely audible whisper, her nerves evident in her hushed tone.
"The wounds on Niffty's body appear to be made from some kind of large blade," the Doctor said gravely. "I was wondering if you could please tell me how she received such injuries?"
A pained look crossed Fluttershy's face as she recalled the events from earlier. "We were attacked by one of Daybreaker’s Sun Knights," she murmured, her eyes fixed on the tiled floor. "Her wounds were caused by one of their swords."
The Doctor's expression turned even grimmer at this revelation. "The Knights of the Sun..." he whispered, taking a brief glance at the child in Fluttershy's arms. "I understand now why...your Daughter is the result of...one of his deals."
Fluttershy stiffened at his words, her gaze snapping up to meet the doctor's eyes. "Yes," she admitted reluctantly, her voice fragile yet firm. "Scarlett was born thanks to one of The Radio Demon’s deals."
A curse slipped out of the Doctor's lips as he clenched his fists in anger. "Those bastards," he growled under his breath. "I cannot even begin to count how many patients I've lost because of them."
Alastor walked through the sterile, white hospital corridors, the sound of a heart monitor echoing down the hall. He entered Niffty's room and was greeted with the rhythmic beep of the machine. The room was dimly lit by a small lamp in the corner, casting long shadows on the sterile walls. Niffty lay in the bed, her chest slowly rising and falling with each breath. Her usual fiery spirit was subdued, replaced by a veil of pain that shrouded her features.
As Alastor approached, Niffty's weak eyes lit up with recognition and relief. The beat of the heart monitor quickened as she saw him, a faint smile appearing on her face. Despite her current state, there was still a spark within her – a stubborn will that refused to be snuffed out.
"Hello Niffty, my dear," Alastor said, conjuring a chair before sitting next to her bed. "How are you feeling?"
"I've been better," Niffty replied with a small smile.
"That's the spirit," Alastor said, his voice rough but warm in contrast to the sterile surroundings.
“Alastor?” Niffty spoke up.
“Yes, Niffty?” Alastor responded.
“What’s going to happen to us now?” Niffty's voice quivered with worry. “If things continue like this, I fear we won't be as fortunate as before.”
“It may be time for the Radio Demon to step down,” Alastor declared, his words resonating in the hushed room. “I don't want to see my girls suffer any longer.”
Niffty gazed at him in disbelief before bursting into a faint chuckle. "Retiring? You? The legendary Alastor, giving up the game?"
"My priorities have changed," Alastor confessed, his gaze falling to his lap.
Niffty let out a heavy sigh. "So, it's all because of her," she said.
"What do you mean?" Alastor inquired.
"You've been different since you met that pony," Niffty explained. "I had a feeling something like this would happen, but I thought it would just be another one of your pranks."
Alastor's usually sharp and commanding voice took on a rare softness as he spoke to Niffty, the only other constant in his solitary existence. "Niffty...it has always just been the two of us," he admitted, his scarlet eyes softened by an unfamiliar vulnerability. "But now...now there are other things to consider."
Niffty's response was as cold and cutting as ice, her words dripping with disdain. "Like that pony?"
"Like the pony," Alastor confirmed, the glow from the nearby lamp casting a faint red tint over his features. "But also like you and Fluttershy and Scarlett. We've been a duo act for years, Niffty, but it seems our dynamic is shifting. There's more at stake now. More to protect...and more to lose." His gaze drifted past her and into the sterile room, lost in thought about what their newfound companionship could bring - both good and bad.
Niffty's voice trembled as she spoke. "Does this mean we're over?" Her tone was sad and upset, her eyes brimming with unshed tears.
Alastor let out a deep sigh and shook his head in disappointment. "Why, Niffty, you wound me deeply," he chided. "After all that we have been through together, how could you even consider the idea of me discarding you like spoiled meat?"
Niffty's heart sank at his harsh words, but she couldn't help feeling hurt and confused. "If you didn't want me to look after Scarlett," she began, her voice faltering with emotion, "would you have still come for me and brought me back, or would you have left me as Squeaky Clean?"
Alastor's expression softened as he reached out to gently wipe away her tears. "Don't ever think like that, my dear sweet Niffty," he said in a soothing tone. "You are irreplaceable, now and forever."
Niffty's lip trembled as she searched his face for reassurance. "Promise?" she asked timidly.
"I would sooner destroy the entire world than even entertain the thought of abandoning you," Alastor declared fiercely, his love for the demon filly shining in his crimson eyes.
Niffty nodded, sniffling softly and gazing up at him with tear-filled eyes. She knew without a doubt that Alastor wouldn't make false promises. She trusted he would keep his word. Her tough exterior, which she usually wore with pride, crumbled a bit as she showed her vulnerable side to the Radio Demon.
The beeping of hospital monitors faded into the background as Alastor exited Niffty's room, his usual grin subdued. He took a moment to compose himself, fixing his bowtie and smoothing down his jacket. With a snap of his fingers, he transformed into his pony disguise.
The hallway was shrouded in darkness, the only light spilling from the rooms lining the corridor. Alastor moved down the stark chemical-scented expanse, his steps silent as he walked past a landscape of closed doors.
Moments later, Alastor entered the Lobby where Scarlett and Fluttershy were quietly waiting. Scarlett looked up, her eyes mirroring the concern Alastor felt in his heart. Fluttershy, on the other hand, wore a hopeful smile.
Fluttershy approached, her gentle eyes filled with concern. "How is Niffty doing?" she asked softly.
Alastor's expression softened as he met Fluttershy's gaze. "She's on the mend, my dear," he replied, his voice a low, comforting rumble. "Nothing keeps that little firecracker down for long."
Scarlett reached over to her father, her small hands clasping his in a gesture of comfort. Alastor looked down at her, a tiny smile tugging at the corner of his lips. His fingers gently curled around hers, giving her hand a small squeeze.
"I know you’re worried, my little doe.” he said, using the term of endearment that he saved only for her.
Scarlett gazed up at him with her big, expressive eyes, communicating her concern without words. She tugged gently on his hand, pulling herself closer to him.
Fluttershy watched the tender exchange between father and daughter, her heart swelling with love. "It seems Scarlett wants to comfort you too," she said softly, her voice barely above a whisper.
Alastor nodded, his usual sharp grin softening into something more genuine. He reached over, scooping Scarlett from Fluttershy’s arms and into his arms. The little girl immediately nestled her head against his chest, her tiny fingers curling into the fabric of his jacket.
"What do you say we head home, my dears?" Alastor suggested, his voice uncharacteristically gentle. "I believe a quiet evening is in order after such a trying day."
"Sounds like a wonderful idea," Fluttershy agreed, her voice tinged with relief. A quiet night home was precisely what they needed after such an eventful day.
Alastor nodded, shifting Scarlett slightly in his arms to ensure she was comfortable. The little girl's eyes were already beginning to droop, the stress and excitement of the day catching up with her.
"Shall we, my dear?" Alastor extended his free arm to Fluttershy, who gladly accepted it, leaning into his side as they made their way out of the hospital.
The cool evening air greeted them as they stepped outside, a stark contrast to the sterile atmosphere of the hospital. Stars twinkled overhead, their soft light a calming presence after the harsh fluorescents they'd left behind.
As they stopped at the entrance, Fluttershy glanced up at Alastor, noting the subtle tension in his jaw, the slight furrow of his brow that betrayed his lingering concerns. "Alastor," she said softly, not wanting to disturb the now-dozing Scarlett, "are you alright?"
Alastor paused, his gaze lingering on the distant horizon as he considered her question. "I'm... adjusting, my dear," he admitted after a moment. "This day has brought about changes I never anticipated."
Fluttershy nodded understandingly, giving his arm a gentle squeeze. "Change can be scary," she murmured, "but it can also lead to wonderful things." She smiled softly, her gaze drifting to Scarlett.
Alastor followed her gaze, his expression softening as he looked at their sleeping daughter. "Indeed it can," he agreed, his voice barely above a whisper.
Alastor raise his free hand allowing him to summon his cane to his hand, The disguised demon tapped his cane on the ground twice, soon Alastor’s limousine arrived in front of them, gliding as smoothly and quietly as a phantom.
Holding Scarlett in one arm, he maneuvered his way to open the limousine door with his other, holding it for Fluttershy to slide in comfortably before following her in, carefully cradling Scarlett against his chest.
As the door clicked shut, Alastor directed his driver to head home while he settled back into the plush leather seats with Fluttershy and Scarlett. The limousine moved off smoothly, the slight hum of the engine barely audible above the soft rustle of wind against the windows.
Author's Note
Charlie May have lost the first battle of wills, but can Alastor keep Charlie at bay indefinitely or will the Radio Demon fall victim to the Human's unbreakable spirit.
Sorry for the Small chapter people, I know I usually give you ones in the 6-9k words, this Chapter was just rather slow and took a bit to finish....
HOWEVER!!
Next Chapter will be quite interesting....I will move away from Alastor and Fluttershy and instead take a trip into Alastor's past deals. I promise at least two different stories in one chapter both...will include Disney Villain songs. I will not tell you what the chapters entail. I will not give you who makes the deals nor will I tell you what Alastor will ask for.
Question Time!!
Holy shit was that an awesome chapter!
Is Shining Armor in possession of some kind of artifact that makes him so strong? Considering how old Alastor is and how powerful he's become over the centuries through his deals. It seems a little strange that Shining is able to force Alastor to retreat from almost all of their battles.
As for my thoughts on Alastor's original personality making a return. I'm thinking that Charlie taking control of his body away from Alastor was only going to be a one time thing since the latter wasn't expecting it. Now that Alastor is aware of Charlie and will be doing everything he can to ensure that doesn't happen again. I'm guessing that Charlie will now be acting as an annoying angel on Alastor's shoulder. Constantly trying to get him to change his ways.
Well for starters, Not just Shining Armor. Every Knight among the Knights of the Sun possess special armor and weapons that greatly boosts their speed and strength. the Armor and Swords have a series of Magic Runes that, Increases Speed, Strength, as well as adds Magic Negation, and Anti-Monster properties
[Message me if you want the list of what those Properties are].
And so the little one is born.
Looks like the Radio Demon's original self might be showing maybe.
Wonder how badass will Spike and Smolder be?
Technically is and Technically isn't a question but I'mma answer anyway....honestly I haven't done much thought in Spike and Smolder other than what they look like and they will be lovers. No idea if I'm going to have them able to shift to Greed Growth versions on command like Razzle and Dazzle. Like I said no clue at this moment in time
Okay that's all the Questions. And remember if you want to ask something go for it. I will always address your questions right down here.
And As Always, Stay Tuned Folks
Chapter 20: Poor Unfortunate Souls Pt. 2
Author's Note
Warning
This chapter will have some elements or actions that some of you may not like. You have every right to skip over the part if you wish.
You have been warned
Chapter 20: Poor Unfortunate Souls Pt. 2
The neon sign of 'The Keg' flickered to life in the dusky evening air, casting a warm glow on the rain-slicked sidewalk. Vinyl Scratch pushed open the heavy wooden door, a bell tinkling softly to announce her arrival. The familiar scent of polished wood and aged whiskey enveloped her as she stepped inside, shaking off the chill from the autumn air.
Despite the evening hour, the bar was surprisingly subdued. Only a handful of regulars sat in their usual spots, and the atmosphere was peaceful. The tune of soft jazz emanated from an old jukebox tucked in the corner, adding to the tranquil ambiance of clinking glasses and murmuring conversations.
Buck Wild, the zebra bartender, looked up from wiping down the counter. His face broke into a warm smile as he recognized Vinyl, his Viking braids swaying slightly as he nodded in greeting as the mare entered.
"Well, if it isn't my favorite customer," Buck called out, his deep voice carrying easily across the room. "It's been a while, Vinyl. The usual?"
Vinyl nodded, a small smile tugging at the corners of her mouth as she made her way to her regular spot at the end of the bar. She settled onto the worn leather stool, feeling the familiar comfort of the place wash over her.
Buck set about preparing her drink, his experienced hands moving with practiced ease. "So, how've you been?" he asked, glancing up at her as he poured a measure of amber liquid into a glass. "had me all kinds of worried when you disappeared all of a sudden a last week”
As Buck slid the whiskey across the polished wood surface, he noticed something different about Vinyl. The usual spark in her eyes seemed dimmer, and there was a tension in her shoulders that hadn't been there before. He leaned in, concern etching lines on his weathered face.
He spoke softly, his years of listening to customers' problems honing his intuition. "Is everything okay?" he asked, sensing that something was wrong. "Did you lose your voice from singing too much again?"
Vinyl opened her mouth to respond, but no sound came out. The unicorn took out her phone and started typing out her response, her thumbs moving across the screen. The soft hum of conversation around the bar seemed to fade into the background as Buck watched her with an apprehensive look.
At last, she angled the device towards him. The words on the screen were lit up by the phone's gentle glow, displaying the message, ‘I found the Deal Maker’
Buck's eyes widened as he read the message. Being in the bar business long enough, he'd heard about the Deal Maker—a phantom like figure who could grant your deepest desires, albeit at a price that was often more than one was prepared to pay.
"You found him?" Buck asked, his voice barely above a whisper. “He’s just a baseless rumor, Some scumbag cheating ponies out of their valuables”
Vinyl deleted her last message and started writing something new before showing it to Buck. ‘The Deal Maker is The Radio Demon’
The color drained from Buck Wild’s face as he read the message. The Radio Demon. A name that spreads fear across all corners of the globe, was now seemingly connected to this high stake mythical figure, the Deal Maker.
"No, that can't be..." He muttered under his breath, his expression darkening as his mind raced. “What did you ask for Vinyl?”
Vinyl paused. Her hands shook slightly as she navigated her phone’s keypad. She glanced up at Buck, her eyes filled with a mixture of fear and regret. After a long silence, she typed out her answer and showed it to him.
‘I asked him to make Tempo fall in love with me’
Buck recoiled slightly, shock evident in his widened eyes. This was a new side of Vinyl he hadn't seen before—desperate and vulnerable. He knew about her feelings for Tempo; everyone in the bar did. But to resort to something as dangerous as a deal with the Radio Demon?
“The Radio Demon doesn’t do anything with a heavy cost” Buck said, his voice serious but filled with concern, "What did you give up, Vinyl?"
Her hands were shaking even more now, making it difficult for her to type. She hesitated, then started typing again, each letter seemingly heavier than the last. As she turned the screen back towards him, Buck felt a lump in his throat.
‘My voice’
Buck's face contorted in horror as he read Vinyl's message. His hands gripped the edge of the bar so tightly his knuckles turned white. "Your voice?" he whispered, his voice a mix of disbelief and anguish. "Vinyl, how could you...?"
The zebra bartender closed his eyes for a moment, taking a deep breath to steady himself. When he opened them again, his gaze was filled with a mixture of concern and determination. "Tell me everything," he said softly, sliding Vinyl's drink closer to her.
Vinyl's fingers flew across her phone's screen, her eyes never leaving Buck's face as she typed out her story. She told him about her desperate search for the Deal Maker, her encounter with Alastor, and the bargain she'd struck. As Buck read, his expression grew increasingly grim.
When she finished, Buck shook his head slowly. "Oh, Vinyl," he sighed, his voice heavy with worry. "I've heard stories about the Radio Demon's deals. They always come with a catch, something hidden in the fine print."
Vinyl nodded, her eyes downcast. She took a sip of her whiskey, wincing slightly as the alcohol burned her throat - a sensation that felt oddly hollow without her voice to accompany it.
"So, did it work?" Buck asked hesitantly. "Did Tempo...?"
Vinyl's face lit up for a moment, a ghost of a smile playing on her lips. She nodded, typing out another message: 'We've been together for a few days now. It's been wonderful.'
Buck's brow furrowed. "A few days? How long ago did you make this deal?"
Vinyl's fingers hesitated over the keypad. After a moment, she typed: 'A week ago.'
"A week," Buck repeated, his voice low. Something about that number nagged at him, a half-remembered detail from one of the many stories he'd heard over the years. "Vinyl, these deals-"
He was interrupted by the sudden chiming of the bar's door. Both Buck and Vinyl turned to see who had entered, and Vinyl's eyes widened in surprise.
Standing in the doorway, looking around with a mixture of confusion and determination, was Tempo Blaze.
"Vinyl?" Tempo called out, his eyes scanning the dim interior of the bar. When he spotted her at the counter, relief washed over his face. "There you are. I've been looking everywhere for you."
As Tempo approached, Buck noticed something off about the stallion's demeanor. His movements seemed angry, his eyes hard and guarded. When he reached Vinyl's side, he gave her a curt nod before turning to Buck.
"I need a word with her," he said, his voice carrying an edge that made it clear this wasn't a request.
Buck eyed the stallion warily but nodded, pushing back from the counter. "I'll give you two some space." He retreated to the other side of the bar, pouring a customer a drink and pretending not to watch as Tempo turned his attention back to Vinyl.
"I thought I told you to stay put," Tempo snapped, his gaze stone cold and relentless.
Vinyl quickly typed a response, her fingers tapping anxiously on the keys.
'I needed a drink.' She displayed the screen to Tempo, her eyes carefully avoiding his.
"The bar at the hotel wasn't good enough?" he demanded, his voice sharp like a whip. “Or are these pigs more your speed”
Vinyl stiffened, her eyes flashing at the insult. With a swift motion, she typed out her response and shoved the screen towards Tempo: ‘They are good people, Tempo. You have no right to judge them.’
“Will you stop using that damn phone and start talking?” Tempo erupted, frustration spilling into his voice as he slapped the phone out of her hands and onto the bar floor.
The impact caused the phone to skitter away, landing with a clatter under a nearby stool. The bar fell into an eerie silence, all eyes shifting towards the two. Vinyl froze for a second, staring at her phone on the floor before her gaze snapped back towards Tempo.
“Well? Speak up!” Tempo demanded. “What, can’t even talk to me anymore?!”
Vinyl’s eyes flashed with a expression of fear on her face. She looked directly at Tempo, her lips parting slightly as if about to speak. But nothing came out. murmurs swept through the bar, growing in volume as the seconds ticked away. Tempo’s face twisted in anger and embarrassment. He gaped at Vinyl, seemingly speechless for a moment before his own words found him again.
“Answer me!” he bellowed, lifting one of his arms, his hands curled into a fist.
“Hey!” Buck shouted as swiftly grabbed hold of Tempo’s arm. “I think it’s time you left”
“Get your fucking hand off me,” Tempo snarled, his gaze flashing daggers at Buck as he tried to shake off the bartender's grip.
Buck Wild said nothing as he grabbed the back of the pony’s neck and forcefully threw Tempo Blaze out of his bar. Tempo staggered, catching his footing before he could tumble onto the pavement. He spun around, green-blue eyes burning with rage as they locked on Buck. But before he could retaliate, the door swung shut in his face with a finality that echoed through the quiet street. A few of the bar's patrons cheered as Buck dusted off his hands and turned back to Vinyl, a look of concern on his face.
“You okay, Vinyl?” he asked, his voice filled with genuine worry.
The Mare nodded her head before walking over and retrieving her phone, Vinyl immediately started typing out a message before showing the Zebra.
‘Thank you, Buck’
Buck gave a small nod of his head as he read her message, then started clearing away the aftermath of Tempo's short-lived storm. The atmosphere in the bar slowly returned to its usual cheerful ambiance, as the customers began whispering among themselves, their attention no longer held captive by the drama that had unfolded.
Vinyl, still shaken, moved to her usual corner of the bar, the dimly lit alcove offering her a momentary respite from prying eyes. She slid onto the worn leather seat, staring blankly at her phone with narrowed eyes. The soft hum of conversations started to pick up again, intermixed with the clink of glasses and the soft, comforting notes emanating from the jukebox in the corner. It was a familiar tune, one that she had chosen countless times before. But today, it seemed to echo hollowly in the depths of her soul.
Vinyl left the bar after a few more drinks, the world outside seeming colder and more uninviting than usual. She stepped out onto the dimly lit street, the neon sign of Buck's bar casting a glow on the grimy pavement below. She turned her collar up against the night’s chill, pressing her hands into her pockets. As she began her walk home, the cold wind howled through the narrow streets, carrying with it a miasma of grit and decay that was far too common in this part of town.
Finally Vinyl, made her way to her home/store. Making her way upstairs to her apartment, Vinyl unlocked her door and entered. Without warning, the mare was suddenly struck in her face. Vinyl would have screamed had she not given up her voice. She stumbled back, one hand flying to her face as she squinted through tear-filled eyes towards the silhouette intruding in her living room.
The figure stepped forward, a wicked grin barely visible in the gloom of the apartment. It was Tempo, his green-blue eyes gleaming with cruel delight. Vinyl backed away, but the earth pony stallion grabbed her and pulled her into the room.
His hand was firm around her wrist, and despite her struggle to free herself, she could not break his grip. Her heart pounded in her chest as she looked into Tempo's gleaming eyes.
"Thought you could get rid of me, Vinyl?" Tempo sneered, his words slurred slightly from the alcohol. His hand tightened around her wrist, causing Vinyl to wince.
Tempo forced Vinyl to sit on the bed. When she tried to look away, Tempo had his free hand to force her to look him in the eye.
“If you won’t talk, then I’ll make you scream,” Tempo snarled as he then reached for his belt buckle. “You try to run, I’ll make you regret it.”
Vinyl could only watch as he fished out his flaccid dick and pushed it in Vinyl’s face.
“Open your mouth,” Tempo demanded.
Vinyl Scratch initially refused to comply, that changed however when the earth pony punched her in the face again. Vinyl felt her vision blur, the taste of blood filling her mouth. A taste that was soon replaced with another as Tempo forced his manhood into her mouth. Her eyes burst into tears, and she squeezed them shut, the salty drops falling down her cheeks.
“Yeah, that’s it,” Temp purred as he thrusted his hips. “Suck it. And I better feel you sucking or the next one will pop your eye out~.”
Vinyl fought back the urge to vomit at the threat, her stomach twisting in knots as she forced herself to keep her gag reflex under control. She was well aware that Tempo wasn't bluffing; he had proven it twice already. The last thing she wanted was to endure any more pain than she already had. With a heavy heart, and started to follow Tempo's command, her hope waning with each passing second. Her face was numb with terror and disgust; the taste, the smell, everything about the situation made her stomach churn.
“There we go,” Temp said as he reached down and tore off her shirt, making her breasts bounce free. “These tits are too good for you.” He grabbed one of her breasts and gave it a squeeze as he forced more of his cock down her throat.
Clearly unprepared for the sudden influx, Vinyl choked, coughing violently. Her eyes welled up with tears, but she swallowed hard, fighting to breathe through her nose. She wished she could pass out, but the fear of what would happen kept her painfully awake.
"You're lucky I'm being gentle," Tempo sneered, his voice a low growl, "You should have seen how I treated that last bitch."
Vinyl’s eyes widened as she remembered the mare she saw running outside of his home, the mare with the bruise on her face…she was with Tempo before her. The memory filled her with an added layer of dread, making her feel even more helpless.
“Urf! Your throat is nice and tight~. I feel like cumming already~!” He said with sickening glee before he glared at her again. “If you spill a single drop, I’m tearing off your horn!”
Vinyl's heart pounded in her chest like a drum as she tried to obey the earth pony. She could feel his satisfaction at her obedient submission, and a cold shiver of disgust ran down her spine. She kept her eyes closed, praying for the nightmare to be over soon, but it only seemed to stretch on forever.
Fortunately and unfortunately for Vinyl, her prayer was answered in the most disgusting way possible. Suddenly, Tempo's grip on her tightened and he groaned loudly, the muscles of his body tensing as he unloaded his vile seed in her mouth. The acrid bitterness made her stomach churn even more, but she held back her reflexes as she remembered his threat.
“Aaaahhh yeah~,” Tempo groaned as spurt after spurt of his foul cum hit the back of her throat. When the last of his essence shot out, he made her slowly pull away and she was sent in a coughing fit while on the verge of vomiting.
“Don’t you dare puke!” Tempo ordered, making her flinch. “Now is where the real fun begins. Turn around on all fours.”
Vinyl hesitated for a moment, her instincts screaming at her to fight back, to make a run for it. But the stern glare in Tempo's eyes made her neck hairs stand on end, and she reluctantly complied, turning around on hands and knees. Before she could take a breath to steady herself, she felt the rough hand of Tempo pressing on her back, forcing her body down onto bed.
Tempo chuckled darkly behind her. “Good girl,” he said, his voice sickeningly sweet as he grabbed the helm of her pant. "You're going to enjoy this,”
Before she could comprehend his words, she felt a sharp pain as he jammed almost all of his cock up her pussy. A jolt of pain shot through her body, causing Vinyl to gasp and squeeze her eyes shut. She bit down on her bottom lip, doing her best not to thrash around from the intense discomfort.
“Like it?” He sneered, ignoring her silent pleas. “Think you can handle it if I go harder?”
Tempo began to thrust his hips into the poor mare. Vinyl’s eyes were leaking tears uncontrollably as she was helpless to be forced to take all of his disgusting dick.
“I wonder what you’d look like knocked up with my bastard~?” Tempo laughed as he groped her ass. “Your tits might get bigger for me to play with~.”
"No!" At least that’s what vinyl wanted to scream.
To Tempo, her suffering and degradation were merely sources of entertainment. His laughter resounded in her ears as he continued to thrust without mercy, the sound blending with his cruel taunts that echoed relentlessly in her mind.
“Yeah! Take it! Take my cock, bitch! I’ll fill you to the brim and knock you up with my foal! Then we’ll see if you’ll be quiet then!” Tempo barked as she raised his hand.
*SPANK!*
Tempo slapped her ass. The sharp stinging sensation sent tremors down her spine, intensifying the turmoil within her. Helpless tears streamed down her face, yet she bit her lip harder to suppress any sound of pain that threatened to escape.
Tempo, however, was in a world of his own. Every thrust of his body was accompanied by another slap of Vinyl’s ass, each blow giving him pleasure and giving Vinyl an increased dose of agony. The agony was unbearable, the humiliation even more so. Vinyl gritted her teeth, trying to block out Tempo's vulgar words. But they were like poison seeping into her mind, staining every thought with his touch.
"Eager, are we?" Tempo smirked, interpreting her lack of response as a silent invitation to continue his brutal assault.
Vinyl squeezed her eyes shut. She wanted to die. To let it all end so she wouldn’t have to continue this torment. Tempo laughed out loud as he kept defiling her.
The agony was an eternity. Each passing second was a relentless assault on her senses. And yet, no matter how much she wished for it all to end, time refused to move along at the speed she so desperately desired. She was trapped in an infinite loop of pain and humiliation.
Suddenly, there was a change. Tempo moved his hands from Vinyl’s rear before finding its way around the unicorn’s neck. He tightened his grip, cutting off her precious breath. A cruel smile curled on his lips as Vinyl gasped and squirmed under his hold.
“You like that, don’t you?” Tempo sneered, smirking at the helpless mare beneath him. The lack of oxygen only served to make the situation even more torturous for Vinyl.
Vinyl’s eyes slowly rolled back as the lack of oxygen made her vision blur.
“Don’t you pass out yet, cunt! I’m almost there!” Tempo ordered as his thrusts became more intense.
That cruel laughter echoed in Vinyl’s ears like the screech of a vulture, chilling her blood. Her clenched teeth drew blood from her bottom lip as she desperately hung on the precipice of consciousness. Tempo's hot, harsh breath was a vile contrast to the chill that held her body captive.
“Fuck…” Tempo moaned as he feverously thrust into Vinyl, his rhythm becoming staggered and rough. His grip on her neck tightened and the last of her air supply was cut off completely. Everything started to go black.
“Here! I! Cum!” Tempo grunted, his words being punctuated by three final brutal thrusts.
With a final series of thrusts, Tempo poured his vile essence into Vinyl, each blast of his seed filling her up, an unwelcome invasion of her body. His grip on her neck slackened as if he'd expended his energy, allowing a ragged gasp to tear from Vinyl's throat. Her vision began to clear, the pinpricks of light slowly morphing back into the grimy room around them.
Tempo released Vinyl before pulling out of her at an agonizingly slow pace, prolonging the horrific experience for her. He withdrew with a wicked grin dancing on his lips as he watched Vinyl’s body tremble beneath him, broken and defeated.
He stood above her, panting heavily as he let his gaze wander over her battered form. “That was fun,” he huffed, pulling up his pants and buckling his belt with a satisfied grunt.
As Vinyl lay there, Tempo gave her one last look.
“If I come back…and I find out…you ain’t knocked up, we’ll go again,” Tempo warned. “And this time…I ain’t stopping until you’re carrying my bastard or I tire of you.”
With Tempo gone, Vinyl soon found just enough strength to curl up and cry her eyes out. Her sobs echoed through the empty room, a haunting symphony of despair and pain. The wetness from her weeping soaked into the dirty mattress beneath her, a testament to her torment.
She could still feel the sting of Tempo’s touch on her skin, an ugly reminder of what he had done. The taste of his sweat and the raw residue of his brutal act was still apparent in her mouth, causing her to retch. The scars he left were not just physical. It was as if he had violated her very soul, that the pain was something primal and deep rooted, a stain she would never be able to wash off.
In the end Vinyl cried all night until she lost every ounce of strength and fell asleep in the gloom of her violated sanctuary.
Morning came and unlike previous mornings, the sun brought Vinyl Scratch back into the dark reality she was now apart of. The mare did nothing but cry for what felt like an eternity before the harsh realization took hold. Her body ached all over, especially her core, where Tempo's brutal assault had left its mark.
She tried getting up from the mattress, but her strength failed and she fell back weakly. finally after what felt like an eternity, Vinyl finally got up and made her way to the bathroom, her limbs trembling from the aftershock of the horror she had experienced. She wanted to wash away the events of last night, but the mirror reflected her battered form back at her, a grim reminder of what she had endured.
Hugging her bruised body with trembling hands, Vinyl slowly made her way towards the shower. The water cascaded down on her like a hailstorm of icy knives, each droplet stinging her beaten skin. Yet she stood there, letting it wash over her, hoping in vain that it might also wash away the pain and the memory.
Often, she would sing in the shower; let her voice echo through the bathroom. But now…now it was a silent chamber of stifling fear and broken dreams. The only sound was the cruel trickle of water against the tile, a chilling reminder of the isolation she caused.
As water soaked her mane, Vinyl closed her eyes, but images of last night danced ruthlessly behind her eyelids. After the hot water made the room all foggy and she somehow managed to wash herself, she slowly turned the water off and stepped out of the shower. There was one thing on her mind that she was dreading. Something that felt like a double edged sword that wouldn’t mean anything good for her regardless of the results. With a shaky hand, she reached for the counter drawer. Inside was a box that held a tool inside that would decide her fate. The broken mare reached inside the box and pulled out a pregnancy stick and just stared at it.
Her heart pounded in her ears as she fumbled with the package, tearing it open with trembling hands. Each heartbeat seemed to echo the dread and uncertainty of her situation. She followed the instructions printed on the box, held her breath, and waited.
Time seemed to stand still as she sat on the cold floor, staring at the pregnancy stick. A crippling fear took hold of her heart as the seconds turned into minutes, the wait slowly gnawing at her sanity. The blue and pink stripes started to materialize, revealing an outcome that could push her into an further into the abyss of despair, or perhaps grant her a temporary solace.
Her gaze wavered between relief and despair as a single blue stripe appeared. Not pregnant. A sigh of relief left her lips, echoing around the now steam-less bathroom. The relief was swiftly replaced with fear…fear of what happened last night would happen again.
Vinyl fell into a deep pit of despair. There just had to be a way out of this nightmare and away from Tempo’s clutches. As her mind raced with options, there was only one that came to mind. Something that she remembered taking to Buck about.
‘They always come with a catch, something hidden in the fine print.’
Though she loathed to admit it, it was in desperate need of a way out. So, with her decision made, she managed to dress herself while buttoning up her jacket to hide the torn shirt and flipping up her collar to hide the hand print on her neck. She exited the room and made her way to the one being who could either be her salvation or downfall. She ignored some of the stares she got, most likely due to her swollen black left eye. She didn’t care. How could she? Her life was already a train wreck as it is.
Vinyl spent the the majority of the day going up and down every street, every alley and every corner of the city, searching for the Radio Demon. Her hooves were aching, her body screaming in protest, but she pushed on with an unwavering determination. The chill of the night air had begun to creep in, shrouding the city in a cloak of dimmed colors and somber silence, the awe-inspiring hustle of the day trading places with nocturnal tranquility. Finally Vinyl had reached her limit and dropped to her knees on the corners of Hay Blvd. and Colt Ave.
Vinyl was on the brink of a full-blown panic attack, about to break down completely, when a familiar voice cut through the tense silence. It was soft, raspy, and filled with radio static, but Vinyl knew it instantly - it was him. The notorious Radio Demon.
Underneath the dim glow of a street lamp, he stood with all his chaotic charm oozing out like an infection. His red eyes glowed with an eerie light, resonating like tiny radios, casting an unsettling wave of shadows playing across his chiseled features. He was leaning casually against his cane, yet there was an undeniable air of danger about him.
"Well, well, Vinyl Scratch," he said, his voice crackling like an old record. "You absolutely dreadful”
The Demon poked at the bruise around the mare’s eyes. “Something like this doesn’t belong on a Mare’s face” Alastor said holding out his hand as a pair of black rimmed and magenta sunglasses appear. “Put these on”
Vinyl shook her head and clasped her hands together and looked at Alastor with pleading eyes as tears streamed down her cheeks. She wanted to scream, she wanted to beg, she wanted him to hear her anguished voice. But nothing came out. However, Alastor knew exactly what she was trying to communicate. And it only made his grin a bit wider.
“You want your voice back,” Alastor mused with a chuckle. “You want me to undo what I have done…But I did everything you asked of me”
The demon sighed, resting his cane against his shoulder and looking up at the starless sky. "You asked me to make your stallion love you, didn't you? And I obliged... what's the problem, Vinyl?" He turned his gaze back to her, the grin still playing on his face.
Vinyl pulled out her phone and began tapping away.
'It’s nothing like I imagined it would be. He’s the polar opposite of what I thought. He’s a monster. The bastard raped me, tried to knock me up. I feel sick to my stomach. This isn’t love. This isn’t anything. He treats me like property. I can’t take this. I’d rather die than to stay with him and be voiceless for the rest of my life. Please, I’m begging you, there has to be some kind of clause or loophole in this contract that can undo all of this. I want my life back. I want to sing again. Please.'
“We had a deal Vinyl Scratch,” The Demon took a step away from the mare, staring down the desolate city street. His cane echoed against the emptiness, each tap reverberating through the silence. His voice continued, unbroken, "But you asked for my help without knowing what kind of stallion Tempo was?"
Tears welled in her eyes, blurring her vision as she continued to type, her trembling fingers barely managing to hit the right keys.
'I was naïve, blind and desperately in love. I thought he was perfect. That he could do no wrong. But I was wrong.'
Alastor turned around, his crimson eyes staring into the abyss of Vinyl’s anguish as he read the device. "I am not a genie, Vinyl. I can't just take back what you wished for."
Her fingers hovered over the screen of her phone, and then she squeezed out one last message, each word a desperate plea. However, the device was snatched out of her hands.
“However, I will not help you” Alastor said conjuring the scroll that held the terms of their contract. “But I will allow you to discover the exit clause on your own”
Vinyl scanned the contact thoroughly and took in every word. She scanned line after line in a desperate attempt to find something. Anything to get her out of her current situation. It wasn’t until she reached near the end did she freeze up. She found what she was looking for, but it wasn’t what she was expecting. Her eyes slowly looked up at Alastor whose antlers had grown in size and his eyes glowed in the shadows.
“I take it you’ve found it?” Alastor asked his smile showing off his sharpened teeth.
Vinyl could only nod, her gaze fixed upon the clause. She tried to swallow, but her throat was as dry as a desert. The words on the scroll seemed to mock her, their spindly letters forming into a cruel taunt.
"The bonded one shall be released off this contract and have her voice returned only if the one the spell has hold of breaks off the courtship with the one bonded to this contract of his own accord."
Vinyl’s eyes panned down at the ground in despair. This was not what she expected. Not in the slightest. Just then, something shiny caught the corner of her eye. She looked to the side and saw what looked like a small broken piece of glass. With quick movements and eyes full of dread and despair, Vinyl swiped the piece of glass and prepared to jab it in her neck. However, her hand was stopped by an unknown force just as the tip touched her flesh.
"Now, now," Alastor admonished, using his cane to knock the glass out of her grasp before disintegrated into nothing, leaving only a trace of dewy coolness on her skin. "That's not the way out, darling."
Vinyl's body trembled, the despair in her soul overwhelming her senses, her hand still shaking where Alastor had knocked the glass away. She didn't dare meet his eyes, instead focusing on the cool stone beneath her.
"The way out isn't as simple, I fear," Alastor continued, tapping his cane against the concrete floor, creating a rhythmic echo in the gloomy streets. "And I don't think you want to leave this mortal coil just yet."
Her tear-filled eyes looked at Alastor as if asking what else is she to do if her tormentor aims to keep her as a toy for the rest of her life.
“It’s quite simple, my dear” Alastor said taking the scroll from her hand. “All you need to do is get him to break off your courtship…By any means necessary”
Vinyl stopped at his words. The cogs in her mind began to turn. Alastor watched as a darkness filled her eyes as she slowly rose back up to her hooves. Her despair was then replaced with negative ambition as she gently took her phone back and walked away. All the while, Alastor kept grinning as he watched her leave.
“That’s it, Vinyl,” Alastor said with glee. “Embrace your newfound confidence by staining your hands.”
Vinyl pressed her phone to her chest, feeling the cold metal through the fabric of her clothes. A deep, resolute breath fell from her lips as she squared off her shoulders.
‘I will do what it takes,’ Vinyl thought to herself
"And make sure not to kill him," Alastor said, suddenly appearing behind the Unicorn. His hands gripped her shoulders firmly as he continued to whisper in her ear. "If he dies, you'll never regain your voice."
Normally I'd place the A/N here..but...I kinda used it already.....
So...wow....Like I stated in the last chapter.....I did not expect this single deal envolving Vinyl and Alastor to extend this far...and how we're going to have a Part 3 to this deal...wow
With a Third part coming next. I leave you guys with a question. With Poor Unfortunate Souls being as long as it has been. Should I move on to the next deal Chapter or continue with the Main story?
And remember if you want to ask something go for it. I will always address your questions right down here.
And As Always, Stay Tuned Folks
Chapter 21: Poor Unfortunate Soul Pt. 3[Finale]View Online
Chapter 21: Poor Unfortunate Soul Pt. 3[Finale]
Something has gone wrong. We don't seem to have an archived copy of that chapter. The train came to a halt at the station, and a sea of ponies and various other creatures stepped off, many appearing exhausted from their long journeys. Among them was a purple unicorn who appeared as if she had been dragged through the fiery depths of Tartarus. Her once vibrant mane, full of shades of violet, now hung lifelessly in sweaty tangles. Her eyes, which used to sparkle with vitality, were now sunken in shadows. She stumbled slightly as she made her way through the bustling platform, but thankfully she wasn't alone.
A familiar voice called out from behind, belonging to a purple dragon. He approached her with a steady and reassuring arm wrapped around her, guiding them over to a nearby bench. "Easy there, Twi," he said soothingly.
"Thank you, Spike," Twilight said gratefully as she let herself sink onto the bench, her breaths coming in ragged gasps that seemed to echo throughout the quiet station. Spike sat down next to her, his young dragon features etched with concern.
"Don't worry, Spike," Twilight whispered, trying to smile despite her exhaustion. "I just need a moment to rest."
But Spike couldn't help worrying about her. The train they were on had narrowly avoided being robbed and Twilight had been shot in the lower abdomen. The Dragon glanced at the bleeding wound with a shudder, feeling a deep sense of dread in his stomach.
A new voice interrupted the tense moment, belonging to a dragoness who had just exited the train. She was dragging the bloodied body of the train robber behind her, with her fists covered in the same crimson liquid. "Don't give her that look," she spoke firmly. "You know as well as I do that her magic can heal that."
The dragoness was covered in vibrant orange scales that shimmered in the sunlight. Her eyes were a mesmerizing teal, slitted like those of a reptile. Her hair was styled in an edgy mohawk, dyed a deep purple color and swept back in a windswept fashion. Unlike Spike, who only wore pants, she had opted for modern and casual attire that created an interesting contrast with her draconic features. She sported a zipped-up, dark purple-black hoodie along with form-fitting blue jeans on her legs.
Twilight turned her focus away from her injury and towards the unconscious person being dragged by Smolder. Her voice, once shaky with fear, now held a confident tone.
"Is he still breathing?" she asked.
"Barely," Smolder replied with a grin, releasing the robber onto the ground with a thud. "I made sure he won't cause any more trouble until the authorities arrive." She looked at Twilight with concern. "How are you holding up?"
Twilight inhaled deeply, wincing as she shifted her position on the bench. "I'll be fine," she said, gesturing with her hand to brush off any concern. "The injury isn't as serious as it appears."
Twilight's horn lit up as she used her magic to heal her gunshot wound. The spell seemed to have x-ray vision, traveling through her body until Twilight located the bullet that was still inside her.
"Thank goodness," she sighed in relief. "It missed all my vital organs and arteries. It's just stuck in my muscle tissue."
As Smolder approached, her tail flicking behind her, she asked, "Do you need help removing the bullet?"
Twilight sighed and scanned the area. "If it were closer to the surface, I'd ask for your assistance, Smolder." She took another deep breath. "But unfortunately, this is going to be painful."
She steeled her determination and directed all her focus towards the bullet. Her magic intensified, glowing brighter as she reached for it. With a steady hand, she began to extract the foreign object. A sharp intake of breath escaped her lips as agony spread through her side, but she refused to give up. The tiny piece of metal put up a fight, its rough edges catching on muscle fibers and causing her to clench her jaw. But after a few more tugs and a pained groan, the bullet finally came loose. It hung in the air for a moment before Twilight released it with a soft clang as it hit the platform.
"Mother Fucker!" Twilight cursed through gritted teeth, her hand pressed tightly against her side.
Sweat dripped down her face, dampening the collar of her shirt. She leaned back onto the bench, feeling every throb of pain as the adrenaline wore off. Her throat felt thick as she swallowed and tried to catch her breath.
“Twi…” Spike whispered urgently, moving closer to her side with concern etched on his face.
"That's it," Twilight gasped, using her magic to heal herself. "I've had enough. I'm giving up."
Spike and Smolder were taken aback by this revelation. From the moment they were hatched, they had been following the mare they saw as a sister who never gave up on anything. It was simply not in her character, especially after all they had been through together.
"But Twilight," Smolder exclaimed, her voice ringing with disbelief, "you've never given up on anything before!"
Twilight's voice shook with fury and agony as she pressed a hand against her bleeding side. "Let’s face it, Smolder," she hissed, shooting a venomous glare at her companion. "Everywhere we go, we are met with hostility and brutality. Bottles are thrown at me, shattering against my body. I've been kicked, spat on, stabbed, robbed, almost raped...and now I've been shot." Her voice rose to a crescendo as she recounted the horrors she had endured since leaving Canterlot, tears streaming down her face.
Twilight's anger only intensified with each word. "Let's be realistic, there isn't a single uncorrupted soul left in this godforsaken Hellhole!"
The young purple dragon's wide eyes betrayed his uncertainty as he asked, "So…do we return to Canterlot now?"
Twilight's response was immediate and filled with contempt. "Canterlot? No, Spike. There is nothing left for me there."
"But Twi..."
"No,” she interrupted him with a swift motion of her hand, leaving no room for argument.
Smolder broke the silence. "What's our next move?"
Twilight stood up, her injury now healed. "We'll stay here," she replied. "This is Ponyville, right?"
"Yep, welcome to Ponyville!" a cheerful voice chimed in from behind them, causing them all to startle in surprise.
They turned to see an energetic pink pony, her curly mane bouncing where she stood, a broad smile on her face.
"Hi there! I'm Pinkie Pie!" The energetic mare practically bounced forward, eager to shake their hands.
"Umm…Hi," Twilight replied, accepting the mare's hand as she began to vigorously shake it with enthusiasm.
"WejustmetbutIwouldliketotellyouwe'regonnabethebestoffriends!" The mare known as Pinkie said.
Spike struggled to keep up with her rapid speech. "Hold on, slow down!" he exclaimed. "You're going too fast!"
Pinkie Pie stopped in her tracks and beamed at Twilight, Spike, and Smolder. "Oh my gosh, I'm so sorry! I got super excited when I saw new visitors. Welcome to Ponyville!"
Before Twilight could respond, her stomach let out a loud growl, causing her to blush with embarrassment.
“It sounds like somepony is getting a little hungry,” Pinkie Pie joked, reaching into her vibrant mane and pulling out a cupcake. To everyone's surprise, the cupcake was completely free of any stray hairs.
"Here you go!" Pinkie declared, presenting the cupcake to Twilight with a wide smile.
Twilight's confusion was evident as she trailed off, "Why do you..."
Pinkie just giggled mischievously in response, her eyes sparkling with amusement. "Oh, don't think too hard about it. It's just one of those things I do."
Without another word, Pinkie bounced out of the station, leaving the three of them behind. Smolder was the first to speak, breaking the silence.
The Dragoness peered at the cupcake with a skeptical expression as she asked, "You're not going to eat that, are you?"
Twilight shook her head and placed the cupcake on the bench before standing up. "No way," she replied. "Let's go find some actual food. How much money do we have left?"
“Well…the money we’ve been using the last five years is low and we are down to our last 5 golden bits” Spike replied, checking his pockets and producing the mentioned coins. They glittered in the sun, a stark reminder of their dwindling resources.
Twilight let out a heavy sigh, feeling the weight of responsibility settling on her shoulders. "We'll have to be strategic about this. We need food, but we can't use up all our resources in one go."
“We can definitely make use of this,” Smolder declared, holding up a wallet smeared with fresh blood. “Our local scumbag was carrying a lot of cash, but it's strange that he tried to rob the train instead of just using his own money.”
“How much did he have?” Spike inquired, snatching the wallet from Smolder's grasp. He flipped it open without ceremony, revealing a substantial stack of bills inside. His eyes widened as he silently counted the money.
“A lot,” Smolder shrugged and nodded as she watched Spike silently count the bits in his head. "Probably around a hundred to a hundred and fifty.”
“Actually, it’s a two hundred and eighty,” Spike corrected with a satisfied smile as he tucked the wallet into his pocket. “With that, plus the five bits we still have, we should be able to make it last for at least another year if we're careful with our spending.”
“That sounds like a solid plan, Spike.” Twilight said with a note of relief in her voice. “Though, we should also consider looking for some work. We can’t depend on these windfalls forever.”
"Work, hm?" Smolder pondered, casually flexing her wings as she thought over the idea. "I suppose it was bound to happen eventually...So, any thoughts on what kind of job we should go for?"
Twilight was just about to offer a suggestion when her stomach grumbled again, causing her to furrow her brows and place a hand on her abdomen in contemplation.
"Right now, our main priority is finding food," Twilight urged, emphasizing the urgency of their situation. "Once we've eaten, we can figure out what to do next."
“That's a good idea,” Spike said, standing up and adjusting the wallet in his pocket. "Do you have any preferences?"
"A hayburger sounds delicious," Twilight replied, her stomach growling at the thought.
"That sounds like a plan," Smolder said with a grin, standing up and stretching her wings out to their full span.
After a quick bite at McHoof's, the Trio agreed it was time to head to city hall. As they ate, Smolder reminded them that they needed to find a place to stay before focusing on finding work. They could either look for a hotel or see about buying a house in the area.
[A/N: I have no idea what the procedure for getting a house is…so bear with me]
Upon entering City Hall, they were greeted by the bustling activity of the town's administration. Organized chaos ensued around them, with ponies briskly navigating their way through stacks of paper, shouting orders, and issuing complaints.
Approaching the front desk, they were met by a frazzled looking unicorn who glanced up at them from a tower of paperwork. "Can I help you?" she asked, pushing her glasses back onto her nose.
"We're looking for a place to stay," Twilight stated, trying to speak over the noise. "Which department do we go to?”
"That would be Housing and Registration," the unicorn responded, gesturing towards a corridor lined with various doors. "Third door on your right," she added before diving back into her pile of work.
Twilight expressed her gratitude to the pony, then led Spike and Smolder down the hallway, eventually arriving at their destination: the third door on the right. The wooden door suddenly burst open as a large white pegasus stallion was seen holding an earth pony stallion by his arms.
“And if I catch you here again,” a Mare yelled as she trailed after the hulking Pegasus. “I'll have Bulk tear you a new asshole!”
Without saying anything else, Bulk dragged the stallion away while the mare turned to face the trio.
“I apologize you had to witness that,” She said, her voice switching to a more pleasant tone. “I am Mayor Mare. How may I be of assistance today?”
“We are in search of a home,” Twilight restated, somewhat surprised by the mayor's unexpected shift in behavior.
“This is great news!” Mayor Mare's ears perked up and she couldn't contain her excitement, clapping her hands in delight. “I would be more than happy to assist you, especially since I am looking for someone trustworthy to fill a certain position after our previous candidate embezzled funds from the town.”
She hesitated, remembering the unpleasant incident from earlier. But she quickly regained her composure and gestured for them to enter her office. As they walked inside, it was clear that Mayor Mare was a highly organized and detail-oriented individual who took her job very seriously. The shelves were filled with law books, official documents were neatly arranged on her desk, and a large map of the town hung on one wall - all signs that she was a dedicated and efficient leader.
Mayor Mare cleared her throat before speaking, "Now then, I do have a few properties that are currently available for rent. However, if you are interested in purchasing a property instead, I can also show you what is on the market." She gestured towards the chairs around the table, "Please, have a seat and we can discuss your preferences further."
Twilight, Spike, and Smolder settled themselves onto the plush chairs before the Mayor's desk. Twilight looked at a few of the official-looking documents on the desk with curiosity as Mayor Mare rummaged in one of her drawers.
“First and foremost,” Mayor Mare inquired, “what is your budget?”
Twilight hesitated before responding, “The issue is that my friends and I have recently moved here and we don’t have a steady source of income. Currently, we only have two hundred and seventy bits left.”
"Only... two hundred and seventy bits?" Mayor Mare's expression shifted, her usual warmth faltering for a moment before she composed herself. "I understand. That does complicate matters."
Twilight nodded, "Yes, but we're willing to work to make up the difference. We just need somewhere to stay right now."
Mayor Mare furrowed her brow, pondering the situation as she tapped a finger against her desk. "I apologize, but most of the apartments and homes available for rent start at five hundred bits and can go up to a thousand. It seems like your best option for now is to stay at a motel until you secure stable employment."
Twilight’s heart sank at the news, but she nodded her understanding. What else could she do?
Twilight felt comforted by the arm Spike wrapped around her as they prepared to leave. "Don't worry, Twilight. We'll figure this out like we always do, right?"
The Mayor didn't enjoy doing what she was about to do, but it was clear these three needed help. She also knew that most of the motels in the city were notorious for illegal activities such as drugs and prostitution. However, a sudden idea came to her as they made their way out. She recalled an abandoned property that had been empty for years, but with some renovation and patience, it could become livable again. It wasn't perfect, but it was better than nothing.
"Wait!" she cried out, causing the group to stop and turn around.
In a frenzy, she searched through her drawers again until she found what she was looking for - a sheet of aged parchment covered in dust. It was the original contract for the property, still in relatively good condition despite its yellowed appearance.
With a delicate touch, she spread out the parchment on the desk and stated, "This could be your saving grace. It's been unoccupied for some years now, but if you're willing to invest some effort and make it habitable, I can rent it to you for two hundred bits per month. However, Mayor Mare paused as she saw their eyes light up with excitement. "There is one catch though," she added cautiously. "The property has a reputation for being cursed."
Spike stammered, his purple scales paling as he repeated the word. "C-cursed?"
"Yes, cursed." Mayor Mare let out a heavy sigh, running her hand through her grey mane. "According to rumors, the previous owner struck a deal with the Radio Demon. They say they disappeared without a trace, leaving behind a dilapidated property and an eerie aura in the air."
Twilight, Spike, and Smolder exchanged uneasy looks at each other. The idea wasn't welcomed by anyone in the group, but Twilight didn't believe in curses regardless. She had the ability to counteract any corruption that could manifest, a skill she acquired from Daybreaker. In her eyes, it was probably the only valuable lesson she learned from the burning tyrant.
Twilight inquired the Mayor, "What exactly is this curse you're referring to?"
The Mayor responded, "Mysterious noises at night, objects shifting by themselves, unexplained claw marks on one's body... You know, typical signs of a haunting."
Twilight thought to herself, weighing the pros and cons. They had no other choice, really. The only other options would be streets or seedy motels. And this challenge was right up her alleyway.
Mayor Mare observed the trio intently, her eyes filled with worry. "I feel obligated to give you a heads up. If you're willing to take on such a dangerous task... well, I can't prevent you from doing so."
"I believe we are capable of handling it," Smolder declared with an uncharacteristic sense of determination.
“Great,” Mayor Mare replied, visibly relieved. “I’ll start on the paperwork right away so we can get over there as soon as possible.”
She retrieved a quill and ink from her desk, which creaked under her weight as she leaned forward to write. With swift and practiced movements, she filled out the necessary documents. The room was quiet, except for the scratching of the quill against parchment and the occasional shuffling of papers.
Mayor Mare finished writing and blew gently on the parchment to dry the ink. She carefully folded it and pressed a wax seal in the corner. "There," she said, handing the document to Twilight. “Now you can rent out the building and potentially buy it in the future.”
“Thank you, Mayor Mare,” Twilight said, accepting the parchment with a grateful nod.
"Shall we get going then?" Mayor Mare asked, getting up from her desk that creaked under her weight. She motioned for them to follow her as she led them out of City Hall. "It won't take us long to drive there."
The group moved in silence to the parking lot where Mayor Mare's ancient car was parked. The once glossy black paint had faded to a dull grey, but with a turn of the key, the engine sprang to life with surprising strength and vitality.
Twilight, Spike, and Smolder were skeptical as they approached the car. They had all encountered these machines before, but none of them had ever ridden in one. With hesitant steps, they climbed into the backseat and looked around with wide eyes, taking in the unfamiliar surroundings. The interior of the car was worn but maintained well. The scent of old leather and dusty pages greeted their noses. As they settled in, Mayor Mare adjusted her rearview mirror to better keep an eye on them. She flashed a reassuring smile before navigating the old car out of the lot and onto the main road.
The journey to the old building was a surprisingly smooth one, considering the trio was riding in a metal death trap moving at breakneck speed. The world flew by in a blur of colors and shapes, leaving the trio with little time to take in the sights before they vanished. Finally, the car decelerated, pulling into the parking lot of a decrepit building. A large oak tree loomed over the entrance, adding to the eerie atmosphere. The once magnificent structure now stood as a testament to neglect, with crumbling stone walls and worn wooden structures slowly being reclaimed by nature. Vines and ivy snaked their way across the façade, giving it an almost haunting yet strangely beautiful appearance.
The oak tree, on the other hand, stood tall and unyielding, its trunk thick and gnarled with age. It bore the marks of countless storms and changing seasons, yet remained steadfast in its stance. Its luscious green leaves rustled softly in the gentle breeze, a symphony of sound that echoed through the air. The sun filtered through the canopy above, casting intricate patterns of light and shadow upon the decaying façade of the building below. It seemed to be guarding the structure, standing sentinel over a memory that was slowly fading away into the depths of time. As if it were a guardian of history, rooted in the earth and reaching towards the sky, forever watching over what once was and what still remains.
With a soft sigh, Mayor Mare turned off the engine and gestured towards the large metal sign on the front of the building. "Welcome to the Golden Oaks Library," she said, her voice tinged with sadness.
The trio leaned in to see the sign, its once bright golden letters now faded into a dull, brassy color. Silence enveloped them as they emerged from the car, their hooves echoing softly against the pathway that led to the entrance.
“So we now live in a library?” Smolder mocked with a raised eyebrow and a hint of sarcasm in her voice.
Twilight shot the dragoness a warning look, but Mayor Mare just chuckled, breaking the tense atmosphere for a brief moment.
"What?" Smolder asked defensively, shrugging her shoulders. "Am I supposed to be happy about living in a library?"
Without acknowledging Smolder's remark, Mayor Mare strode towards the building. "The Library is actually a full residence on the third floor," she said, her voice carrying through the still evening air. "Follow me, I'll give you a tour."
Mayor Mare took the lead, her hooves tapping against the stone steps as she ascended towards the entrance of the library. She pushed open the large wooden doors, which creaked loudly, and revealed a grand hallway with shelves upon shelves of books. Each tome was a remembrance of days gone by. The air was filled with the fragrance of old paper and dusty covers, evoking both feelings of wistfulness and melancholy
Twilight paused, her gaze falling upon something out of place. "Hold on," she spoke up, "you said this place has been abandoned for years, but there's hardly any dust on these books."
Mayor Mare glanced back at Twilight before turning around to face her fully. "You're right," she conceded, her expression now composed under the soft light above. "There must be a spell in place. It preserves the books and prevents them from collecting dust or decaying. They remain as fresh as the day they were first opened."
"I can definitely sense a spell in effect, but it's not just the lack of dust on the books," Twilight observed, walking over to one of the shelves and running her finger along the wood. To her surprise, there was very little dust. "Something else has been disturbing the dust on these shelves."
After she spoke, there was a brief moment of stillness as her words lingered in the air. The grand library seemed to absorb them, as the only sound that followed was the faint echo of her voice bouncing off the tall, curved ceilings and the tapestries that adorned the stone walls like whispering guardians.
Twilight's ears suddenly perked up as she caught a faint sound, the beating of wings. Acting on instinct, she turned around and quickly scanned the room with her eyes. In the dimly lit corner, she noticed movement: a shadow flitting just out of her line of vision.
Without warning, the shadow darted forward, zipping between the towering shelves. Mayor Mare let out a high-pitched scream, which seemed out of character for her typically composed demeanor. She swiftly dove behind a nearby table, displaying surprisingly agile movements for a pony of her age.
Spike yelled, "Get down!" as he prepared to unleash a stream of fire at the fleeting figure.
"Don't you dare!" Twilight interjected, using her magical abilities to close Spike's mouth. "I'll take care of this."
As Twilight's horn sparked with a vibrant purple glow, the library walls were engulfed in shifting shadows. The enigmatic figure descended, turning sharply towards the group. Reacting swiftly, Twilight extended her magic, creating a shimmering shield that captured the shadowy attacker in mid-flight.
"Ha! I've got you now!" Twilight exclaimed with satisfaction.
The creature, now trapped within its magical prison, flapped its wings in a frenzied attempt to escape. However, the powerful aura that had once seemed so threatening was quickly fading under the intense glow of magic. As the bubble slowly descended to eye level, it revealed the truth about their seemingly terrifying attacker - an irritated brown owl, who had apparently made its home in the abandoned library
Mayor Mare cautiously poked her head out from under the table, her mane in disarray. "Is it safe?" she asked.
Smolder smirked as she stepped forward. "The bird is contained," she reassured the Mayor. "But we may have underestimated the dangers of this library. If an owl can cause so much chaos, who knows what else could be hiding here?"
She cleared her throat and attempted to fix her ruffled collar, trying to regain a sense of composure. "I wasn't afraid," she stated confidently. "I was simply testing our emergency protocols."
Smolder's eyebrow raised in amusement as he struggled to hide his smirk. "Of course you were, Mayor. That's why you screamed like a newborn phoenix?"
"So...our assailant was...an owl?" the Mayor inquired, avoiding Smolder's knowing gaze.
"Yes, Mayor," Twilight assured her, her magical aura dimming as she gently lowered the trapped bird onto a nearby table. "She was probably alarmed by our intrusion."
“How do you know it’s a female?” Mayor Mare asked, curiosity seeping into her voice.
“It’s a hobby of mine to pursue all forms of knowledge, including ornithology," Twilight replied, her gaze fixed on the owl, who was now preening her feathers with a kind of resigned dignity. "And from the shape of her beak, I know she's a Tawny Owl, a species that is rare to find in these parts of Equestria. Also, her larger size and rounded facial features are typical characteristics of a female."
The owl let out a soft hoot, its amethyst eyes focused on Twilight as if asking to perch on her arm. She dispelled the magical bubble she had created and allowed the owl to hop onto her outstretched arm. Its wings fluttered gently as it emitted another sound, holding onto her with its sharp talons. There was a sense of peace in its large, shining eyes, almost as if it was comforted by her touch. As Twilight gazed into the bird's eyes, she couldn't help but feel a sense of familiarity, as if she had encountered this creature in a distant memory
“Do you think we should get rid of it?” Smolder inquired, her voice tinged with worry. "It could create more problems in the long run."
Twilight remained fixated on the owl as she responded softly, causing everyone in the room to turn and look at her in disbelief. "I don't think so," she said gently, "I believe this owl is just as much a part of this library as any book."
She softly caressed the downy feathers on its belly once more, causing the bird of prey to let out a contented coo.
"Maybe," Twilight suggested in a gentle tone, "she can assist us in navigating the library. After all, she's been a resident here for much longer than any
The group let out a collective gasp upon hearing this suggestion. Mayor Mare, in particular, appeared flustered. "A wild animal? Assisting you?"
“Owls are often associated with wisdom,” Twilight responded confidently to the Mayor before turning to address the owl directly. “And considering you've been living here longer, I'm sure you know where every book is located, don't you?"
In response, the owl let out a quiet hoot, its large eyes twinkling with what appeared to be recognition. Twilight grinned and lifted her forearm, coaxing the owl to hop onto her shoulder. With a smooth flap of its wings, the bird followed her suggestion and landed comfortably on her shoulder.
Mayor Mare suggested, "I still believe you should have that bird examined." She continued, "However, with your limited budget, visiting a veterinarian is not an option."
Spike raised an eyebrow at the Mayor's suggestion and inquired, "Do you have any other suggestions?"
“Just one,” the Mayor replied, a wry smile playing at the edges of her lips. "Fluttershy, Ponyville's resident animal lover. She would undoubtedly be eager to assist, and I doubt she would request any payment in return."
“That sounds like the ideal option,” Smolder grinned.
"Very well," Twilight concurred, "We'll pay a visit to this Fluttershy tomorrow."
“Excellent. Now, I’ll make some phone calls to arrange for your power and water services to be activated,” Mayor Mare stated as she pulled out her phone. “And just so you know, the first three month's rent for this place will be waived as a gesture of goodwill from Ponyville towards our new residents. We believe in supporting those who choose to make our town their home.”
Twilight felt a warm rush of gratitude. “That’s very kind of you, Mayor. We appreciate it a great deal.”
After the Mayor left to answer her call, Twilight shifted her focus to Spike and Smolder.
"We have a three-month deadline to organize this place," she declared, surveying the chaotic piles of books and boxes in the room. "But with our new feathered assistant, we should be able to navigate this labyrinthine library."
"But let's prioritize," Twilight continued, before being interrupted by Spike's groan.
"I'll start making a checklist," the purple dragon grumbled, massaging his temples in frustration.
The next morning, Twilight and Spike set off for Fluttershy's cottage. They had decided to let Smolder sleep in, and luckily Mayor Mare had given them clear directions on how to get there. As they made their way through the bustling town of Ponyville, they couldn't help but notice how far behind Canterlot was compared to the rest of Equestria in terms of modernization.
“Five years…” Twilight whispered, her voice barely audible. "It's hard to believe it's been five years since we left. Canterlot feels like a world away."
"I understand," Spike replied, holding the bird tightly against his chest. "We've truly entered a new era."
Twilight chimed in, her eyes betraying a hint of uncertainty. "I just hope we can keep up," she admitted. "I'm still trying to wrap my head around those small devices that everyone speaks into."
Spike let out a chuckle. "Those are cellphones, Twilight. You'll get used to them quickly."
Twilight nodded slightly, but her expression showed doubt. "I hope so, Spike..."
After a short trip, the two arrived at a charming cottage nestled in the midst of a dense forest. The house was surrounded by a beautiful and well-maintained garden where birds sang and danced among vibrant flowers. A variety of chirping birds and bright butterflies floated around the area. Deer peacefully grazed on the edge of the property while a mother rabbit kept watch over her playful litter. This serene environment was unlike anything the pair had seen before in all of Equestria.
"Looks peaceful," Spike commented with a grin, casually looking around at all the creatures.
"Peaceful is one way to describe it," Twilight replied with amazement in her voice, her eyes growing wider as she took in the vast array of animals surrounding them.
A narrow trail wound its way through the lush foliage, eventually arriving at the entrance of a cozy cottage. A hand-crafted sign hung on the door, with the word 'Welcome' painted in vibrant colors and three handprints below it - one pink, one red, and one a blend of both hues.
"Looks like we're at the right place," Twilight said, trying to hide her anxiety behind a thin smile.
Spike shifted the owl to his shoulder and asked, "Do we knock?"
Twilight responded with a nod and walked towards the cottage's door. She raised her hand and lightly tapped on the door while Spike waited beside her, both accompanied by the gentle hoots of the owl. The door opened, revealing a pale yellow Pegasus filly with a pink mane and two horns on her head. They peered down at her in surprise.
“Twilight…what kind of ani…” Spike began to ask before being interrupted by the Unicorn's sharp elbow jabbing into his stomach.
“Hello there, little one,” Twilight greeted, bending down to speak. "We're here to find Fluttershy. Is she around?"
The young filly bobbed her head eagerly, then moved to the side to reveal a figure behind her. A breathtaking pegasus mare with luscious pink hair and sparkling green eyes emerged from the quaint cottage. She stood taller than Twilight, with a coat in the soft hue of buttery yellow. As she gracefully stepped onto the porch, her wings fluttered gently. Her outfit consisted of a flowing sundress in a lovely shade of lilac, which perfectly complemented her delicate pale yellow coat.
As she approached, Fluttershy scooped up the filly and cradled her gently in her arms. "Can I help you?" she asked with a warm smile.
“My name is Twilight Sparkle.” Twilight introduced herself, gesturing to Spike beside her. “And this is Spike.”
Fluttershy raised an eyebrow at the two of them before her eyes landed on Spike. A soft gasp escaped her lips as she took in his appearance. "A dragon?" She whispered, her emerald green eyes filled with both curiosity and a touch of fear.
Spike blushed under her scrutinizing gaze, fidgeting with his own wings as she moved closer to him.
"I've never seen a dragon before," Fluttershy admitted in a barely audible voice. Her gaze traveled from Spike's snout to the tip of his tail, completely captivated by his features. "You-You are quite handsome,"
Spike felt his cheeks heat up even more, the purple scales on his face turning a darker hue. He struggled to find the words to say. "Um, thank you," he finally managed to blurt out.
The little Filly yelled out in protest, wrapping her arms around her mother protectively. "You can't take Mommy!" she exclaimed. "She already has Daddy!"
Fluttershy quickly brushed the filly's mane, trying to soothe her. "There, there, Scarlett," the mare cooed. She then faced Twilight and Spike. "What was it you wanted again?"
"We just moved into the Library and..." Twilight began, but Fluttershy interrupted her.
"The Golden Oak Library?" Fluttershy exclaimed in surprise, widening her eyes.
"Yes, and we found out there were others living there as well," Twilight said, motioning for the owl on Spike's shoulder to fly over to her arm. "We were wondering if you could examine her...our money situation is a little low at the moment."
"Yes, of course." Fluttershy said with a comforting smile.
She set Scarlett down and crossed the porch to the owl, her large green eyes filled with concern as she carefully examined the winged creature.
“A Tawny Owl?…don’t see many of those around here” Fluttershy murmured, her soft voice full of fascination.
“You know your animals, Miss Fluttershy” Twilight complimented, standing a bit straighter.
Fluttershy's cheeks pinkened as she gently stroked the owl. "Just Fluttershy is okay...and thank you. My critters are everything to me." She said softly, her gaze never leaving the owl. “So naturally I took the time to learn about them all.”
Fluttershy carefully examined the bird, even extending its wings herself. She gently ran her fingers along its feathers, feeling their softness and tracing the outline of its wingspan. The owl let out a gentle coo in response to her touch, ruffling its feathers slightly as it gazed up at Fluttershy with a sense of trust.
"Well," Twilight began, glancing nervously down at the owl perched on her arm.
“She’s a bit undernourished, but that's not surprising considering the library has been closed for nearly six years,” Fluttershy spoke cautiously, her gentle voice a soothing melody in the tranquil afternoon atmosphere. “Though there are no indications of sickness or harm. She just needs some tender affection and attention.”
Twilight let out a sigh, releasing the tension she didn't realize she had been holding. "Thank you, Fluttershy. We are grateful for your help."
Fluttershy's eyes moved from Twilight to the owl settled on her arm. "Please promise me you'll behave yourself now that you have a new owner," she said gently, speaking directly to the owl.
Spike looked at Fluttershy with a puzzled expression. "Um... are you having a conversation with the Owl?" he asked. Fluttershy, who was softly caressing the owl's feathers, turned to face Spike and nodded.
"Yes, Spike. Every creature has emotions and understanding beyond what we may think," she replied in a gentle and comforting tone, before returning her focus to the owl. "Isn't that right, my dear?"
The owl stretched out its wing and let out a satisfied hoot.
"It's also helpful..." Fluttershy added, revealing the triple butterfly cutie mark on her neck. "That I have special talent is communicating with animals."
Just as Spike and Twilight were about to continue their conversation, they saw a shiny red Limousine pull up alongside the cottage. It stood out as being sleek and in surprisingly better condition than the rustic cottage.
Twilight had just begun to wonder who could be arriving, but before she could finish her thought, the loud voice of a little girl interrupted.
"Daddy!" Scarlett exclaimed excitedly as she sprinted towards the limousine, the chauffeur standing by its side.
Spike and Twilight's eyes widened as they took in the horrifying sight of the Driver's disfigured face. Scars crisscrossed his skin, evidence of many old and fatal injuries. One eye, a milky white orb, bore into them from beneath a thick brow. His face was like a dark canvas splattered with grotesque markings. The pair shuddered as the Driver came closer, his every movement sending chills down their spines. He reached for the back door of the car, his gnarled fingers gripping the handle with surprising dexterity for someone so scarred and maimed
Stepping out of the rear of the luxurious limousine was a figure that exuded elegance and refinement. His coat, a striking shade of deep crimson, caught the light and shimmered like rubies. He wore a crisp white shirt with every button fastened, a sleek black bowtie perfectly centered at his neck, and a snug waistcoat in a rich chocolate brown that hugged his slender frame in all the right places. Matching trousers completed the sophisticated ensemble, tailored to fit him perfectly. Atop his head sat a top hat, adding an air of mystery as it partially obscured Twilight and Spike's view of his face. Casually draped over his arm was a jacket, while in his other hand he confidently held onto a ornate cane, its head adorned with intricate designs. As he stepped forward, the sound of polished shoes clicking against the pavement could be heard, announcing his arrival with regal grace.
The stallion approached Scarlett with open arms, handing his cane and jacket to his chauffeur before scooping her up in a hug.
Scarlett's laughter filled the air as she wrapped her small arms around his neck. "I've missed you, Daddy!" she exclaimed with joy.
"How was your journey, Radio?" asked Fluttershy, addressing the stallion.
Removing his top hat with effortless grace, the Stallion revealed a mane as black and sleek as a raven's wing. It was meticulously groomed to perfection. As he smiled, Twilight couldn't help but flinch. There was something about that smile that sent shivers down her spine. She couldn't quite put her finger on it, but there was an unsettling aura surrounding him. His features were strikingly handsome, almost too perfect to be real, yet there was a calculated coldness lurking behind the charm. It was as if he wore a mask of elegance to hide a ruthless nature within.
Approaching the group, Radio spoke in a smooth, molasses-like baritone as he placed Scarlett back on the ground. "It was quite stimulating," he said with a calm confidence.
He quickly scanned the group before fixing his gaze on Twilight. A chill ran down her spine as she met his intense, crimson red eyes.
"And who might you be?" Radio inquired, his voice low and commanding
Twilight shifted under his intense gaze, but she summoned the courage to reply, "I am Twilight Sparkle," she managed, her voice barely a whisper.
"A pleasure," Radio responded smoothly, not breaking eye contact. "And how do you find yourself in this company?"
Fluttershy gave the stallion a quick glance before turning back to the pair. "They wanted me to examine their owl," she explained, her voice gentle and calm. "Is there anything else you need?"
"No, thank you, Fluttershy. We simply wanted to ensure that she was okay," Twilight replied, attempting to maintain a steady tone.
Radio's eyes shifted back to the owl perched on Twilight's arm, his brow furrowing in contemplation.
"Interesting," Radio mused, his gaze lingering on the owl for a moment before refocusing on Twilight. "I assume you'll be departing now?"
"Yes, we should get going," Twilight nodded in agreement, adjusting her satchel before taking a step forward. "Let's go, Spike."
The small dragon had been uncharacteristically quiet throughout their conversation but quickly scurried to Twilight's side. "I'm right behind you," he announced eagerly.
Radio's voice trailed after them as they walked down the path. "Please do come back, Miss Sparkle. It's always... intriguing to meet new ponies here in Ponyville."
Twilight forced a smile and increased her speed, Spike following closely behind. She let out a sigh of relief once they were far enough away. She hadn't realized she was holding her breath the whole time.
Spike cast a quick glance up at her. "That was... an interesting experience."
"If by interesting you mean unsettling, then yes," Twilight muttered, still feeling her heart race as they made their way back home. "It was definitely that."
Back at Fluttershy’s Cottage, with their guests gone, Radio transformed back into his true self: Alastor the Radio Demon. A mischievous grin appeared on his face as he shapeshifted, no longer resembling a pony but instead taking on a taller, leaner form with red and black coloring dominating his frame. The casual grace of his previous equine appearance was now replaced with a more wicked charm, complete with sharp angles and pointed teeth. His dapper suit seemed to radiate against his infernal complexion.
Fluttershy, now used to his transformations, barely even flinched. The timid pegasus fluttered onto a nearby chair, taking in Radio's new form with a resigned sigh. "You could have at least tried not to scare her,"
"Where's the fun in that, my dear Fluttershy?" Alastor retorted, his voice taking on the eerie static he was infamous for before trying to enter the cottage.
"Hold on," Fluttershy said, blocking the demon's path. "I need to speak with you, Alastor."
Alastor chuckled and transformed into a shadow, reappearing behind the mare. He attempted to continue past her towards their shared room.
"Moondancer, Golden Oak Library," Fluttershy stated firmly, causing the Radio Demon to freeze in his tracks.
Alastor rotated his head with a series of loud snaps, pops, and cracks until he was facing Fluttershy. She stared back at him with a stern expression.
"I'm listening," Alastor urged, a curious yet slightly worried glint in his eye as his body spun around and his neck healed itself.
"Scarlett, Sweetie, why don't you and Niffty go play outside?" Fluttershy suggested gently, briefly shifting her focus to her daughter and the Demon filly.
Niffty looked at Alastor who gave a nod of approval, and the Filly and Demon quickly ran out of the cottage together, their laughter echoing behind them. With the house now quiet, Fluttershy turned back to Alastor. She took a moment to compose herself before starting the upcoming conversation.
"Twilight's owl is a Tawny Owl." Fluttershy said, her expression hardened as she met Alastor's gaze. "That type species of owl isn't found in this area of Equestria."
Alastor tried to appear innocent, though his insincere tone gave him away. "How odd," he said. "You're not implying that I had anything to do with it, are you?"
“The Library closed down when the Owner suddenly vanished without a trace,” Fluttershy continued, her voice steady yet accusatory. “You made a deal with Moondancer before you met me, didn’t you?”
Alastor's grin widened, his sharp teeth gleaming with an eerie light. "I did," he replied, as though proud of his accomplishment.
"And what did Moondancer get out of this deal?" Fluttershy asked, her voice barely above a whisper.
Alastor smirked, his grin never faltering. “She desired Intelligence and Wisdom in exchange for her soul," he replied with a hint of pride. "And so I transformed her into a Tawny Owl."
Fluttershy's eyes searched Alastor's face. "Can you change her back?" she asked.
The Radio Demon's gaze shifted to Fluttershy, a mischievous glint flickering in his eyes. "Even if I had the desire to do so... Which I don't," he scoffed as he settled onto the couch, his arms draped over the backrest, "I suspect that after being trapped in an owl's form for so long, her mind may have been consumed by her new animal instincts."
‘It's still more humane than leaving her in that form!’ Charlie yelled in Alastor's mind.
‘I will not change her back,’ Alastor declared, his voice echoing throughout his mind to his passenger ‘The deal has been made, her soul belongs to me now. There is no changing it, and I will not waste my time debating with someone who lacks the power to stop me’
‘The hell…’ was all Charlie could utter before his voice faded again
Fluttershy let out a heavy sigh, her voice dropping to a near whisper. "I know I can't change what happened," she said sadly. But then, a glimmer of determination appeared in her tone. "Promise me you won't do this again, Alastor. Not to anyone else."
Alastor's laugh was like static from an old radio, crackling and dissonant. "I make no promises," the demon replied, his expression unreadable. "To make such a vow would go against my very nature."
Fluttershy spoke softly, her gaze falling to the ground. "Maybe not," she murmured. "But I still believe you have the potential to improve." Gathering her courage, she lifted her head to meet his gaze again. "Would you... be open to talking about it?"
A smirk played on Alastor's face as he replied, "Talk? My dear, talking is one of my specialties." His voice crackled with static in amusement.
"I want to have a real conversation," Fluttershy spoke gently, looking around the dimly lit clearing. "There's a charming restaurant near the outskirts of town that serves amazing venison..." She paused, her tone hopeful. "Would you be open to discussing this over dinner? Maybe next week, after Scarlett's birthday?"
The Radio Demon's eyes sparked with interest, whether it was due to her boldness or the mention of his favorite protein was unclear. "My my... are you trying to negotiate with a demon by tempting him with his preferred meals?"
Fluttershy hesitated for a moment, but then a green collar materialized around her neck. Alastor gripped the chain attached to it in his hand and gently pulled her closer to him. Surprisingly, Fluttershy didn't resist; instead, she leaned into the pull with a coy smile. Alastor kept pulling until Fluttershy stood directly in front of him. She climbed onto the couch and straddled his legs. Taking a deep breath, she met his gaze confidently without wavering.
"And if I am?" Fluttershy asked boldly as she stared into Alastor's crimson eyes before wrapping her arms around his neck. "Is it working?"
Alastor's lips curled into a smile as he gently rested his hands on her shoulders. His fingers traced the edges of her dress collar, sending shivers down her spine.
"Maybe," he whispered, his voice dropping to a seductive murmur as his hands moved lower, ripping the fabric of her dress apart until it draped loosely around her waist
The Demon's eyes lingered on her ample F-cup breasts, now fully revealed. Fluttershy felt a flush creep up her face, but she held her ground and met his gaze with unwavering confidence. Alastor's hungry stare roamed over her exposed skin, a devious smile spreading across his lips. He couldn't resist running his hands along her bare waist and cupping her breasts in his palms. Fluttershy gasped at the sudden contact, but did not shy away. Instead, she returned the gesture by reaching up to cup Alastor's face in her hands, gently tracing the sharp edges of his teeth with her thumb.
"Perhaps I require further persuasion..." Alastor's voice was a deep, alluring purr as his hands roamed from the mare's chest to her backside, firmly gripping onto two handfuls of her ass. "With something more...Enticing," he suggested with a sly smirk.
Just as things were about to escalate, the front door swung open suddenly, startling both Fluttershy and Alastor. They both turned their heads towards the door, and there stood Scarlett.
“Mommy,” Scarlett exclaimed, her eyes growing wide at the sight of Fluttershy and Alastor in a compromising position.
"Oh my goodness, Scarlett!" Fluttershy exclaimed, hastily pulling her dress back up and fumbling with the torn fabric in an attempt to make herself decent.
Fluttershy immediately disentangled herself from Alastor, hastily arranging her now-ripped dress to preserve her modesty. A deep blush spread across her cheeks as she tried to calm her racing heart.
“What are you doing to daddy?” Scarlett asked, her crimson red eyes wide with confusion.
“I ripped my dress, sweetie” Fluttershy lied quickly, her voice wobbling under the weight of her daughter's innocent questioning. "Daddy was just helping me fix it."
“Okay,” Scarlett said, nodding slowly as she studied her parents. “But why were you sitting on daddy?”
Fluttershy's face turned a deeper shade of red as she stammered, "W-well, I... um..."
“Did you need something, My little Doe?” Alastor asked his daughter, swiftly changing the subject.
“I’m thirsty, Can I have some juice?” Scarlett replied, her gaze finally shifting away from her parents.
"Certainly, my dear," Alastor said, relieved to have a change of subject.
With a snap of his fingers, the Radio Demon conjured a glass of brightly colored juice and handed it to Scarlett. Her confusion from earlier seemed to fade away as she eagerly accepted the glass, her eyes lighting up with delight. Taking a sip, she couldn't help but smile as the corners of her mouth were tainted with juice.
"Thank you, Daddy!" she exclaimed before running back outside with the glass still in hand.
Fluttershy watched her Daughter disappear through the door, a sigh of relief escaping her lips. She turned back to Alastor, whose gaze was fixed on her, an amused smirk playing on his face.
“Don’t look at me like that," Fluttershy muttered, her cheeks still a vibrant red.
Alastor chuckled, regaining his composure after the abrupt interruption. "Why, I am simply admiring the view."
"Alastor!" she chided, swatting playfully at his arm.
"I'm serious," Alastor retorted, his red eyes sparkling with mischief. "You always look beautiful, Fluttershy, even when flustered."
Fluttershy's blush deepened at his compliment, and she cast her gaze downward to hide her embarrassment. "You're incorrigible," she muttered under her breath, her fingers playing nervously with the ripped fabric of her dress. “So does that mean you entertain talking over dinner next week?”
“I will certainly consider it, my dear," Alastor replied, his fingers gently tilting her chin up to meet his gaze. His eyes held a softness that was rarely gifted to anyone but her. "Although, I believe we have a dress to fix first."
Author's Note
Scarlett Why!!...You little Cock Blocker!!!
To be honest...that all kids are...little Cock Blockers. Cause the moment thinks are about to get all Hot and Steamy they always kill the mood.
Twilight has Finally moved to Ponyville and the first person she meets is Pinkie Pie. Not surprising in all honesty.
I hope you're ready for the next chapter. Cause we are gonna get a special surprise from our dear little Scarlett...and maybe...someone might find out the truth about Scarlett's Daddy...You'll have to wait and see.
Question Time BITCHES!!
My only complaint with this chapter is that Tempo didn't suffer enough before meeting his end by Truck-kun.
Also, will Grogar make an appearance in this story? If he does, will he be an enemy to Alastor or will they be teaming up to take down Daybreaker?
Me and my Co-Writer have agreed, that Grogar will be in this fanfiction however we haven't figured out wither he will be an Enemy or Ally
That's all the questions and remember if you want to ask something go for it. I will always address your questions right down here.
And As Always, Stay Tuned Folks
Chapter 23: Birthdays and Surprises
The sweet aroma of vanilla and strawberries wafted through Fluttershy's cottage as she carefully folded the cake batter, her movements precise and gentle. The kitchen counter was dusted with flour, and various mixing bowls were arranged in neat rows, each containing different components of what would become Scarlett's birthday cake. Outside the kitchen window, birds chirped their afternoon melodies while butterflies danced among the flowers.
The inside of Fluttershy’s cottage currently had a single pink mare darting all over the home , her hooves patter against the wooden floor as she flitted from one task to another ranging from decorating for Scarlett’s Birthday party to arranging games and gifts for the filly. Her mane, a cascade of pink curls, bobbed with each step she took, occasionally flipping into her wide blue eyes when she moved too fast.
Pinkie Pie turned to Fluttershy, who was just about to put her cake in the oven. "Are you sure you want to make the cake all on your own, Fluttershy?" Pinkie asked, her voice bubbling with excitement.
Fluttershy paused and smiled softly. "I really want to do this for Scarlett, Pinkie. It's nice to be able to do something special for her," she said before placing the cake in the oven.
Pinkie studied her friend for a moment, her usual wide grin softening into an affectionate smile. "That's so sweet of you, Fluttershy. But don't forget, you don't have to do everything by yourself!" she reminded her before bouncing off to finish blowing up balloons.
“I can't keep counting on you every year, Pinkie," Fluttershy chuckled softly as she closed the oven.
A knock at the front door interrupted the mares' conversation. Fluttershy flicked her tail as she made her way to answer it, leaving a trail of light hoofprints in the flour dust on the floor. As she opened the door, her expression turned sour upon seeing her younger brother, Zephyr Breeze. He was dressed in disheveled attire - a brown shirt with a noticeable green stain and a torn collar, tight jeans held up by suspenders that were frayed at the cuffs and stopped well above his ankles, revealing too much of his legs. To top it off, he had an obnoxiously blue fedora placed on top of his blonde manbun-style hair. Behind him stood their parents, Posey and Gentle Breeze, with gifts in their hands, smiling kindly at their son.
“Hiya sis!" Zephyr announced his arrival in his usual self-assured manner, attempting to push past his older sister.
"Why are you here, Zephyr?" Fluttershy questioned coldly, blocking her brother's path.
"Do I need a reason to visit my lovely big sister?" Zephyr retorted.
"I recall inviting Mom and Dad to meet their grandchild," Fluttershy replied with a sigh, turning her gaze towards their parents. "But I don't remember inviting you."
Zephyr's voice was sharp as he pulled a crumpled envelope from his pocket and held it out to her. There was a glimmer of triumph in his eyes as he asked, "Then what's this? It seems like an invitation to me."
Zephyr held out an envelope towards Fluttershy, his gaze dropping to the ground. Fluttershy's delicate hand reached out and gingerly took it, careful not to crinkle the colorful invitation inside. Her eyes scanned the playful handwriting of Pinkie before a moment of silence fell between them. Zephyr couldn't help but wait with bated breath, his purple eyes flickering with anticipation and nerves. Their parents watched on with uncomfortable silence, unsure of how this interaction would unfold. After what felt like an eternity, Fluttershy finally let out a weary groan, still gazing at the invitation in her hand.
"Come inside," she said with a hint of resignation in her voice, stepping back to make way for them.
“Cool,” Zephyr said, a mischievous smile forming on his face as he confidently walked through the doorway, followed by their parents.
But before he could fully enter the door, The mare yanked on his shirt and forced him to lower down to her level.
"Don't you dare ruin my daughter's birthday. If you do, I'll send you back to Cloudsdale in a coffin. Do you understand?" Fluttershy's typically gentle tone had a firm undertone that made Zephyr gulp and nod, his usually playful demeanor replaced with seriousness.
"Crystal clear, sis," he replied, trying to regain his confidence as he leaned away from her.
"Good." Fluttershy released his shirt and straightened, her face returning to its typically gentle expression.
She turned to her parents, who had been watching the scene unfold without saying a word. "Please come in, Mom and Dad," she said, beaming at them.
"It's so lovely to see you, my dear. You've grown into such a beautiful young lady!" Posey exclaimed as she hugged Fluttershy tightly and placed a kiss on her cheek. She couldn't contain her excitement at being reunited with her daughter.
"Thank you for having us over, Fluttershy. I just wish we had been invited sooner. I always dreamed of having grandchildren, but I knew Zephyr wasn't going to give us any anytime soon." Gentle Breeze whispered as he embraced his daughter and kissed the top of her head.
"I can't wait to meet our grandchild! We bought some gifts. Kinda wished you gave us some more details, but we hope these gifts will be good enough." Posey said with a bit of a nervous smile as she held up a both hers and Gentle’s gifts.
“I’m excited for you to meet my daughter as well,” Fluttershy said, her eyes glowing with pride. “Right now, She’s playing outside with the others,”
Fluttershy led her parents and Zephyr through the warm and welcoming rooms of her home, their steps softened by the plush carpet. As they stepped out into the backyard, a symphony of joyful laughter filled the air. Posey and Gentle's eyes gleamed with happiness as they saw a group of Four Fillies playing tag in the wide green space. The first filly was an earth pony with a sunny yellow coat, fiery red curls tied back with a dainty pink bow, and deep orange eyes. She wore an indigo shirt and blue overalls adorned with apples on the center pocket. Beside her was a pegasus with a bright orange coat, sleek purple mane styled in a daring fauxhawk, and brilliant purple eyes. She proudly donned a blue and yellow Wonderbolts T-shirt and khaki cargo shorts. The third filly was a graceful unicorn with a delicate pink coat and curly pink and purple hair styled into twin pigtails held in place by pretty white bows. Her mischievous green eyes sparkled as she pranced around in her Little Pink tutu dress decorated with tiny yellow flowers. And finally, there was the smallest member of the group - a tiny Pegasus with a cheery yellow coat and hot pink hair highlighted with bold red streaks. Her piercing ruby-colored eyes glinted from between slitted pupils, while two crimson horns protruded from her forehead. Fluttershy's family couldn't help but notice her sharp red nails as she gracefully floated around in a simple lavender dress with delicate white frills at the hem. A sash emblazoned with "BIRTHDAY GIRL!" in bold letters draped across her little body.
Both Posey and Gentle froze as the sight of their supposed grandchild and had a look of clear shock, confusion, and worry on their faces as they tried to hide it through forced smiles.
"She looks... Unique." Posey said, her voice laced with nervous laughter.
"That's an interesting... Style." Gentle commented, clearing his throat and adjusting his shirt.
Zephyr pointed at Scarlett and asked boldly, "What exactly is she?"
Fluttershy gave her younger brother a stern look before answering, "She's my daughter." She then called out to her daughter, "Scarlett, darling, come here!"
Without hesitation, the small Pegasus bolted over to her mother. Fluttershy bent down and placed a gentle kiss on her daughter's forehead, a soft smile spreading across her face as she picked up her child in her arms.
“Scarlett, sweetheart, these are your grandparents,” she said, gesturing to Posey and Gentle.
“What about me?” Zephyr chimed in, pretending to be offended. "Aren't you going to introduce me as well?"
Fluttershy rolled her eyes in exasperation as she watched her younger brother's lazy behavior. "This is my lazy jobless little brother, Zephyr," she introduced him with a sigh of frustration.
With a smile, the pegasus mare turned to her parents and introduced them to her daughter. "Mom and Dad, this is my little girl...Scarlett Wisp."
Posey and Gentle both wore expressions of concern and confusion as they approached Scarlett, but when they saw her face light up upon meeting them, their hearts melted. Posey was the first to react.
"Aww, my sweet baby!" She exclaimed, opening her arms for a hug. "Look at you! My first grandchild!" Posey cheered.
"Hello there, little one." Gentle smiled and lightly brushed his finger against Scarlett's cheek, causing her to giggle with delight.
"Is no one going to say anything about what Fluttershy just said? Moooom." Zephyr whined, looking to his mother for support.
"Shush, boy!" Gentle scolded him, trying not to draw attention. He leaned in closer to Fluttershy and asked in a hushed voice, "Um, honey? Where is the, um, the father?" He whispered. Not sure if that topic was sensitive or not.
“Daddy!” Scarlett exclaimed with a laugh, pointing behind Fluttershy’s parents.
Curious, they both turned to see a well-dressed Unicorn stallion standing there. His clothing was eccentric and appeared outdated, but it oddly suited his striking red coat and black mane and tail.
Posey was the first one to speak up when the unicorn approached, but even she didn't know what she was saying. "He's quite handsome," she blurted out.
"Posey!" Gentle scolded, giving his wife a disapproving look.
"Hello, my little doe," the unicorn said as he leaned in and lightly patted Scarlett's head.
She couldn't help but giggle as she reached out and jumped into his arms. The unicorn caught her by the hem of her shirt, holding her up with ease.
"Are you a tree frog, jumping around like that?" he teased with a smile, causing Scarlett to giggle even more. After a few playful moments, the unicorn handed her back to Fluttershy, giving Scarlett's cheek a playful pinch before doing so.
"Greetings, my name is Radio Waves. A true pleasure to meet you both." The newly named stallion extended a hand towards the newcomers before turning to Fluttershy. "And who might these fine ponies be?"
"My parents, Posey and Gentle Breeze," Fluttershy replied, proudly introducing her family to the unicorn stallion.
Radio graciously took Posey's hand and planted a soft kiss on it. "You are a stunning mare...I can see where your daughter gets her beauty from," he complimented, his eyes gleaming with charm.
Posey blushed and tried to hide it behind her hands. "Oh my…you’re quite the charming gentlecolt," she said bashfully.
Radio Waves then turned to Gentle Breeze, offering his hand for a firm handshake. "And you must be the father of this lovely young mare."
Gentle Breeze shook Radio Waves' hand, though he kept a cautious expression on his face. "Yes, that's me. And you are... Radio Waves, correct? That's quite an interesting name. What is it exactly that you do for a living?"
Before Radio could reply, Pinkie Pie burst out of the cottage with her mane wild and covered in streamer bits. "Shy, your cake is done!"
Fluttershy's eyes grew wide. "Oh dear, I almost forgot about the cake!" She handed Scarlett over to Radio and hurried inside, her wings flapping nervously.
"I'll lend a hand!" Posey chimed in, following her daughter into the cottage. This left the stallions and Scarlett in an uncomfortable silence.
Zephyr broke the silence by pointing at Scarlett and asking, "So, why does your daughter look like that?" His question was met with a quick smack from Gentle's hand. "Ouch! What was that for?!"
"Mind your manners, boy! I apologize for my son's rude comment, Radio Waves." Gentle quickly apologized for Zephyr's behavior.
Radio Waves' smile flickered for a moment, but he swiftly chuckled it away. "Don't worry, no trouble at all. My little one here is quite the wonder to the eye." He lifted Scarlet up and affectionately ruffled her hair, causing her to let out a delighted giggle.
"I'm a wonder show!" Scarlett exclaimed as she leaned back, causing Radio Waves to hold her up by her legs as she giggled and hung upside down. Radio shook his head with a smile and carefully set her back on solid ground.
"Off you go now, little one." Radio said.
"Bye Breezy! Bye Uncle Jobless!" Scarlett waved to her friends before running off to play.
"Hey!" Zephyr protested with a pout.
"That seems appropriate, if you ask me," remarked Rainbow Dash as she approached, followed by the orange Pegasus who seemed to be in awe of her.
"Oh hey, Rainbow Dash!" exclaimed Zephyr with newfound energy, turning to face the cyan mare with a silly grin. "Did you come all this way just to see me?"
Rainbow Dash let out an exasperated sigh and shook her head. "You must be dreaming, Zephyr." She glared at the pegasus with disgust. "I'd have to sink to the lowest of lows before even considering being with you."
"Aw, come on Dashie," Zephyr teased, walking towards the pegasus mare and playfully lifting her chin with his hand. "We both know you're just dying to find out how amazing I am in bed."
Unable to tolerate his arrogance any longer, Rainbow Dash swiftly placed her hands on Zephyr's shoulders and delivered a swift knee to his groin, causing him to crumple to the ground in pain.
“That’s for being a creep, Zephyr!” she hissed out harshly, glowering down at him. Everyone else watched on, some with shock and others with barely suppressed laughter.
As Radio Wave approached, Rainbow Dash stood protectively in front of the young filly. She could sense the fear radiating from the child towards the Stallion.
“I don’t remember you ever being with another stallion, let alone having a child of your own," Radio Wave remarked, eyeing Scootaloo suspiciously. "So which family did you steal this little creature from?"
"Scoots, why don't you go back and play with the others?" Rainbow said calmly, trying to keep her composure. The orange filly nodded and left the group.
Rainbow Dash's eyes narrowed as she faced Radio Wave. "I didn't steal her," she stated firmly. "After Scootaloo's parents were killed by Daybreaker's Sun Knights while traveling through Vanhoover two years ago, I adopted her as my sister." Her eyes narrowed at Radio Wave, daring him to challenge her statement.
"Yes, that was the talk of the town for quite some time. Such a tragedy." Radio said, but his tone seemed... amused?
"But today is not the day to dwell on the past, but to celebrate the joyous occasion of new life entering this world." Radio Waves laughed, while Gentle let out a forced chuckle. Zephyr remained on the ground, still holding onto his injured crotch.
In the kitchen, Fluttershy focused on spreading the red cream cheese icing onto the cake with great care. She couldn't help but feel a bit nervous; this was her first time attempting to make her daughter's birthday cake. In the past, she always relied on Pinkie Pie's baking expertise for special occasions. The bubbly, pink-haired mare had a talent for creating sugary masterpieces out of basic ingredients- it always brought smiles to everyone's faces. But this year, Fluttershy wanted to do something extra special for her daughter's fifth birthday.
As Posey and Pinkie set up snacks and games on the living room table, Posey turned to her daughter with concern. "Do you need any help, sweetheart?" she asked.
Fluttershy shook her head and replied quietly, "No, I'm okay Mama. I may not be as skilled at this as Pinkie, but I want to try my best." She continued to focus on arranging the items on the table.
Her mother's lips curved into a gentle smile, and she let out a soft sigh at the heartwarming scene before her. It was truly a sight to behold - her once shy little filly had grown up and found love with a Stallion, now with a child of her own. However, her granddaughter did have a unique appearance that caught Posey's attention. As she walked towards the table, Posey noticed some small sandwiches that resembled Daisy Sliders, but something seemed off about them.
"Fluttershy, these don't quite look like Daisy Sliders," Posey commented, tilting an eyebrow in curiosity.
Fluttershy glanced at the plate, a soft smile playing on her lips. "Oh, these? They're Venison Filly Cheesesteak sliders."
Posey's surprise was evident as she blinked and asked, "Venison? You mean... deer?" Her voice rose slightly, her eyes flicking nervously towards the miniature sandwiches on the plate.
"Yes, but those are mostly for Radio and Scarlett," Fluttershy explained, reaching over the counter to pluck a slider. She took a bite, her eyes closing momentarily as she savored the flavor. "Mmm... delicious."
Posey leaned back, her brow furrowing. "But... isn't this a bit morbid? Serving meat to your pony friends?" Her voice was hushed, tinged with a mix of shock and concern. "And you always used to hate the thought of eating meat."
Fluttershy's gaze softened, becoming distant. "I did," she murmured, chewing thoughtfully. "But pregnancy changed something in me. My tastes, my perspectives..." She trailed off, leaving the sentence unfinished.
Posey stared, her mind reeling. This was her daughter—the same Fluttershy who once couldn't bear to swat a mosquito, who spoke soothingly to every creature, no matter how small. And now, here she was, casually enjoying a meat slider as if it were the most natural thing in the world.
"H-How exactly did you and... Radio Waves m-meet?" Posey asked, her trembling fingers pushing the sliders aside.
Fluttershy's smile softened, a distant look glazing her eyes. "It was one night after work," she began, the memory unfurling like a delicate memory. "I was utterly exhausted, completely drained."
She paused her cake decorating, letting her hands rest on the counter's edge. "He noticed how worn down I looked and offered to help," Fluttershy said, her voice carefully measured. There was something beneath her words—a subtle complexity that hovered just out of reach. "He helped me through a difficult situation with my old boss, and somewhere in that moment, something changed."
A shadow crossed her expression, transforming her usual gentle demeanor into something deeper, more nuanced. "No one had ever shown me such genuine kindness before," she murmured, her voice barely above a whisper. "And I... fell for him. I fell for him hard."
Posey instantly noticed the subtle shift in Fluttershy's demeanor—the way her shoulders tensed, the vulnerability flickering in her eyes. She walked over and gently placed her hand on her daughter's, her touch warm and reassuring.
"Love finds us in the most unexpected ways," Posey said softly, her voice rich with maternal wisdom. "It can emerge in our highest moments and our lowest valleys. Sometimes it arrives at the most imperfect times, but if this man truly brings you joy, truly makes your heart light, then it is love."
She pulled Fluttershy into a tight embrace, feeling her daughter's slight trembling.
Fluttershy clung to her mother, fighting back tears that threatened to spill. "Thank you, Mom," she whispered, her voice thick with emotion. "I never expected to find love like this."
Pulling away from the embrace, Fluttershy turned back to the sliders and the cake, using the culinary tasks to channel her swirling emotions. Minutes passed in a whirl of precise movements and careful decorations. Finally, she presented the finished cake to her mother, stepping back with a mix of pride and vulnerability.
A moment of reverent silence filled the kitchen as they both admired the creation. The silence shattered with Pinkie Pie's characteristic explosive enthusiasm.
"Oh my gosh, oh my gosh, OH MY GOSH!" Pinkie exclaimed, bouncing into the kitchen like a pink cannonball. "Fluttershy, the cake! It looks absolutely positively amazingly wonderfully perfect!"
And perfect it was. The cake was a masterpiece of culinary art, covered in a rich red cream cheese frosting that gleamed under the kitchen lights. Delicate black buttercream details traced intricate radio dials and vintage microphones across its surface, each line executed with surgical precision. Delicate sugar deer silhouettes nestled along the edges, while hand-crafted pink and yellow butterflies seemed to dance across the top layer, their sugar wings catching the light with a subtle, ethereal sparkle.
Every detail whispered of love—of Fluttershy's heart carefully translated into sugar, butter, and creative passion.
Fluttershy blushed, her smile wavering between pride and characteristic self-doubt. "You really think so?" she asked, her voice a soft tremor of uncertainty.
"Are you kidding? It's spectacular!" Pinkie beamed, circling the cake like an excited inspector, her eyes drinking in every minute detail. "The details are just perfect! And those little deer? So cute!" Her hand began to reach toward one of the sugar deer when Posey's hand swiftly intercepted, swatting away Pinkie's attempt.
"Pinkie!" Fluttershy interrupted, her gentle reprimand carrying just enough firmness to halt her friend's impulsive action.
"Oh! Right! Sorry!" Pinkie giggled, her eyes dancing with barely contained mischief. "I can't help it, everything just looks so delicious!"
Stepping back, Fluttershy surveyed the room—the sliders, the cake, the moment itself—and released a satisfied sigh that seemed to carry the weight of her entire emotional journey.
"It's time for her Birthday to really get started," Fluttershy announced, just before a scream echoed from outside the house.
Fluttershy, Pinkie, and Posey all rushed out to the backyard, but someone had already burst through the back door. Rainbow Dash, usually fearless and confident, looked visibly panicked.
"Flutters!" Rainbow Dash gasped, her eyes wide with fear. "You need to come see this right now!"
Rainbow Dash led Fluttershy outside, and she stopped in her tracks at the sight before her. In the middle of her backyard stood a bear cub covered in bright red fur, happily indulging in the cupcakes that Pinkie had prepared for the party.
“NOT MY CUPCAKES!” Pinkie wailed, rushing forward as though intending to wrestle the bear cub for her confections. Posey grabbed her by the tail, pulling her back before she could reach the animal.
"WHAT THE FUCK?! DO WE HIT IT OR PET IT?!" Rainbow Dash exploded, her arms gesturing dramatically toward the cub sporting a chocolate-frosted mouth.
"Is that a baby bear?" Posey asked, her head tilting in bewildered curiosity.
A shrill, feminine cry pierced the air. All eyes swiveled to Zephyr, who was dramatically launching himself into Gentle Breeze's arms.
"MONSTER!" Zephyr wailed, his theatrical terror contrasting sharply with Gentle's look of pure, weary disappointment.
The red cub snagged another cupcake, grinning as it eagerly devoured the sweet treat.
"Oh, Fluttershy dear," Radio Waves said, using his cane to gently nudge the cub away from the cupcakes, "would you care to remind our hungry little critter about proper dining etiquette?"
The cub paused mid-chomp, its paw still in its mouth. Catching Fluttershy's eye, it lit up with unbridled joy. In a motion startlingly reminiscent of a human child, it raised its little paws, silently pleading to be picked up.
Fluttershy scooped up the cub without hesitation, meeting its gaze. Something flickered in her eyes—a strange, unsettling sense of familiarity.
"Well, hello there," she cooed softly, her voice a gentle melody. The cub stared back, innocence personified, a smear of frosting adorning its snout. "Would you mind being a bit more polite when you eat? These cupcakes are for everyone."
A squeaky whine escaped the cub—seemingly apologetic. But for Fluttershy, who could understand the language of animals, the sound carried a meaning that drained the color from her face.
"I'm sorry, Mommy," the bear cub spoke—using Scarlett's unmistakable voice.
"S-Scarlett?" Fluttershy stammered, the cub suspended between her trembling arms.
"Mommy!" Scarlett giggled, pure and unrestrained.
To the others, the cub's communication was nothing more than a series of gentle growls and simple animal noises.
"Flutters, if you're going to adopt a new animal, at least give it a different name than your own daughter. Just to avoid confusion," Rainbow Dash said, arms crossed and completely oblivious to the extraordinary truth.
"This is Scarlett, Rainbow," Fluttershy whispered, her voice heavy with an inexplicable weight. Her hand trembled as she stroked the cub's soft fur, a single tear tracing a path down her cheek.
"What?" Rainbow's wings fluttered in confusion. "You mean, like, really Scarlett? Your actual daughter?"
"Yes," Fluttershy breathed, the word barely audible. "Somehow... she's really her."
A stunned silence descended, thick and suffocating. Rarity was the first to shatter it.
"That cannot be," she said, her gaze locked on the cub. "It's simply not possible."
Sweetie Belle, who had been inching closer with wide, wondering eyes, spoke softly. "But it is true. I was there. I saw everything happen. I was trying to tag Scarlett when she bumped into Fluttershy's bear and then..." She gestured to the red cub, "...she became this."
"Can I have another cupcake?" Scarlett asked Fluttershy, utterly unperturbed by her miraculous transformation.
Radio tapped her snout gently. "Now now, being an animal doesn't excuse poor manners."
"Can I have another cupcake, please mommy?" Scarlett's beady eyes were impossibly endearing.
"Change back first," Fluttershy said, her voice a delicate balance of concern and maternal firmness, "then you can have a cupcake."
"But I don't know how to change back!" Scarlett whimpered, tiny bear paws waving in distress. "I didn't even know I changed!"
Fluttershy looked helplessly at her friends, lost in an inexplicable moment. Radio approached, his horn beginning to glow a soft, otherworldly green.
"I believe a simple spell should suffice to return my little doe to her normal self," he murmured, tapping Scarlett with his cane.
A shimmering green light enveloped Scarlett. Her bear form began to shift and shrink, rapidly transforming back into the familiar shape of a young girl. Within seconds, she stood before them—completely normal, save for a lingering trace of chocolate frosting at the corner of her mouth.
"Wow..." breathed Applejack, watching in awe as Radio effortlessly transformed Scarlett. "That's some powerful magic."
"What can I say?" Radio's laugh rang out, sharp and melodic as he ruffled Scarlett's mane. "I love putting on a good show!"
"Are we NOT going to question that the little girl just transformed into a BEAR?!" Zephyr looked around like everyone had lost their minds.
A static-filled voice slithered through Zephyr's mind, cold and menacing. "Not if you value your life."
Zephyr jerked back, eyes darting wildly. The room remained unchanged—familiar faces, none showing any sign of hearing the threatening whisper. "Did you all...?" He began, then trailed off, uncertainty choking his words.
"Did we what, Little Brother?" Fluttershy's look was razor-sharp, silencing Zephyr instantly.
"T-T-That voice just—" His stammering cut short by Radio's cane pressing against his face.
"I do believe he is simply famished!" Radio's smile never wavered, his tone a perfect blend of cheerful and threatening. "Please, enjoy these delectable treats our dear friend Pinkie and my lovely gal Fluttershy prepared."
A cupcake was forcefully pressed into Zephyr's trembling hand.
"Um, yeah, right. Cupcakes..." Zephyr muttered, eyeing the green-topped treat suspiciously before taking a hesitant bite.
"Okay, I think it's time for some games," Fluttershy announced, clapping her hands. Her bright tone masked any underlying tension. "Afterwards, we'll move on to presents and cake."
Eager to dispel the mounting unease, she ushered everyone into the spacious living room for a merry game of 'Pin the Tail on the Donkey.' Zephyr, still rattled by the spectral voice, nibbled his cupcake while watching the others play—his eyes occasionally darting to Radio, who seemed to be enjoying the scene far too much.
While the adults played alongside the children—a concession made only after four fillies deployed their most devastating puppy dog eyes—Fluttershy pulled the disguised demon aside, finding a quiet corner away from the echoing laughter and cheers.
"Alastor," she whispered, her eyes pools of maternal concern, "do we need to worry about Scarlett? I mean... she turned into a bear."
"Hell Bear," Alastor corrected automatically, dropping his unicorn disguise in an instant. His familiar red and white color scheme replaced the previous equine form, antlers sprouting as his demonic essence reasserted itself.
Fluttershy blinked. "What?"
"Scarlett didn't turn into a bear," he said, arms crossing over his chest. "She turned into a Hell Bear. There's a significant difference."
"But... isn't that worse?" Fluttershy's voice trembled, her eyes widening with a mixture of fear and fascination.
Alastor's grin widened. "Depends on how you look at it."
"Alastor, she has powers!" The whispered exclamation carried the weight of a thousand unspoken worries.
"Well, Scarlett is half demon," he replied with infuriating casualness. "It was only a matter of time before her powers surfaced. Consider this a... developmental milestone."
Fluttershy ran her fingers through her mane, a gesture of pure maternal panic. "But what do we say? How do we explain this? She's still a pegasus! How do we rationalize this kind of 'magic' to others?"
“I could always…Kill them ,” Alastor suggested, with a casual shrug of his shoulders.
Fluttershy gasped, backing away in horror. "No, Alastor! We can't do that!"
“Then that leaves you with one option,” Alastor said, his grin softening slightly. "You tell them about our deal."
“I couldn’t tell them…that I considered…killing myself” Fluttershy whispered, tears welling up in her eyes.
"No one has to know the specifics, my dear," Alastor offered, his voice unexpectedly soft. "Just tell them you made a deal with me, for which I gave you a child in exchange for your soul."
Fluttershy paused, blinking away nascent tears. "You mean... a lie?"
"Not a lie," Alastor corrected, his characteristic grin returning. "More of a... half-truth. You did make a deal with me, didn't you?"
"I-I can't do that. They're my parents, I can't—" Alastor silenced her with a gentle finger pressed against her lips.
"My dear, a white lie never hurt anyone," he murmured. "You could tell them everything, or you could skim the words, leave some unimportant details out, and craft a little white lie."
Fluttershy bit her lip, wings fluttering with anxiety. "I don't know, Alastor," she breathed. "It doesn't feel right."
"Life rarely feels right," he assured her, his voice carrying an oddly comforting resonance. "But sometimes the wrong choices lead us to the right places."
His hand reached out, brushing stray strands of hair behind her ear. Fingers traced down her cheek, his palm cupping her chin. "After all," he whispered, "those decisions led me to you. My dear Fluttershy."
Her eyes closed, drawing a deep breath. The distant laughter from the living room seemed to fade as she wrestled with her thoughts. When her eyes opened, determination had replaced uncertainty.
"We need to help Scarlett understand her powers," Fluttershy said firmly. "She can't just transform into a Hell Bear whenever she wants."
A sly grin spread across his face - the same face that moments ago had been jovial and playful as Radio. "Oh, but where's the fun in that?" Alastor's voice was now more pronounced, the static underlying his words more evident.
"This is serious," Fluttershy warned, though there was a hint of a tremor in her voice. "You managed to transform her back this time, but what if next time—"
Alastor placed a finger across Fluttershy’s lips silencing her, "Ah, always worrying about the 'what ifs,' aren't we?" he teased, his eyes gleaming with an unsettling light. "But you're forgetting that you gave me everything…that includes Scarlett…So I’ll take great care in teaching her to control her powers”
"Besides, who better to teach her than the great Radio Demon?" Alastor said, his voice cracking with static as his eyes turned to radio dials for a moment. The sight made Fluttershy gulp with unease as she clenched her fists and put on a brave face.
"I-I know our deal. B-But she is still m-my daughter and I want what's best for her." Fluttershy said, her words held determination and courage even while her body trembled a bit.
"And I respect that," Alastor replied smoothly, the crimson of his eyes flickering back to their usual hue. "But know that her powers will only grow as she does. It's important for her to understand them now, while she's still young and easier to guide."
Fluttershy slowly nodded, releasing the breath she hadn't realized she'd been holding. "I... I understand. Just promise me you'll be careful with her, Alastor," she implored, suddenly looking nervous.
"You have my word, my dear," he said, taking her hand gently. "And my word..."
“Is your bond,” Fluttershy finished, a small sigh of relief escaping her lips. She looked into Alastor’s eyes, searching for reassurance and found it in the depths of his crimson gaze.
“Very well,” she said, her voice barely above a whisper. “Then I will trust you with Scarlett’s tutelage.”
"Lovely, we should continue this conversation over dinner tonight," Alastor suggested, his tone as casual as if discussing a simple dinner party rather than the supernatural future of their daughter. "After all, we shouldn't sneak away on her special day, should we?"
Fluttershy looked momentarily rebellious, but then surrendered with a soft sigh. "You're right," she admitted, her expression softening. "We should get back to the party."
In an instant, Alastor transformed back into Radio Waves. The sinister edge melted away, replaced by a warm, playful smile that seemed to radiate genuine joy. He nodded, twirling his cane with practiced ease as he walked back into the living room.
"Who's up for a round of 'Duck Duck Goose'?" Radio announced, his voice brimming with infectious enthusiasm. A chorus of excited squeals erupted from the children, transforming the room's atmosphere in an instant.
The living room was bathed in a warm orange glow as the sun set, casting golden rays through the window. Scarlett sat at the dining table, her candles now extinguished and parts of her cake missing, surrounded by a mountain of opened presents. The previously laid out snacks from Fluttershy, Posey, and Pinkie were now just crumbs and empty platters, evidence of the joyous celebration that had taken place earlier in the day.
Rarity had presented Scarlett with an exquisite butterfly hair pin that perfectly complemented her unique mane - hot pink with striking red streaks. The pin was delicate, with tiny crystalline accents that caught the light, matching the subtle glint of her two red horns.
Her friends - Apple Bloom, Sweetie Belle, and Scootaloo - had collaborated on a set of stuffed predator animals. A fierce-looking wolf, a snarling bear, and a prowling mountain lion sat among her other gifts, each carefully selected to reflect Scarlett's emerging half-demon nature.
Zephyr stood in the corner, conspicuously gift-less and still looking somewhat unsettled from earlier events.
Pinkie bounced forward, her gift wrapped in the most explosive, glitter-covered paper imaginable. "Open mine! Open mine!" she squealed with excitement.
Pinkie bounded forward, her gift wrapped in the most explosive, glitter-covered paper imaginable. With a dramatic flourish, she helped Scarlett unwrap the present to reveal a quirky t-shirt featuring a detailed illustration of a male deer - a buck - standing proudly.
"Oh my gosh!" Scarlett's eyes lit up, and she immediately turned to her father, holding the shirt up excitedly. "Daddy! It's you!" she proclaimed, her innocent joy causing Radio to pause for just a moment.
The shirt was indeed a comical representation of a buck - antlers proud, stance strong, with a mischievous glint in its eye that seemed to mirror Alastor's own characteristic grin. It was as if Pinkie had somehow captured the essence of Radio's demeanor in deer form.
Radio chuckled, a sound that was part static, part genuine amusement. "Well, isn't that something?" he said, twirling his cane and exchanging a knowing glance with Fluttershy, who watched the scene with a mixture of fondness and underlying tension.
The other party guests - Applejack, Rainbow Dash, and the others - looked on, unaware of the deeper significance behind the simple gift and Scarlett's excited declaration.
Ignoring the confusing comment between Scarlett and her father, Rainbow Dash stepped forward next, her gift wrapped in a sleek, beautifully wrapped package. She had asked Rarity to wrap it for her because she knew she would make a mess of it, just like she did last year and the year before. Scarlett pulled out a custom-made bag designed for young adventurers - tough, waterproof, with multiple pockets and a rainbow-colored trim.
"I figured since you’ll be starting school with Scoots and the others once summer is over," she announced with a confident grin. "And every awesome student needs a good bag."
“I’m surprised Dashie,” Pinkie piped up, her eyes sparkling, “I would have thought you would have gotten her some kind of extreme sports gear or something!"
Dashie blushed, her wings fluttering slightly. "Hey, even I can be practical when I want to be," she countered, puffing out her chest in mock indignation.
Scarlett giggled, running her fingers along the sturdy material of the bag. She opened it, delight filling her eyes as she explored the various compartments and pockets. The bag was spacious on the inside, perfect for storing books, notebooks, and any other trinkets.
Applejack's gift was next - a apple red cowgirl scarf that was soft to touch and rich in color. Her green eyes twinkled with an underlying sense of humor as she tied the scarf around Scarlett’s neck. "Reckon every filly should have a bit of style, don't ya think?"
Fluttershy's gift was more personal - a delicate locket on a silver chain. When opened, it revealed a small photograph of herself and Scarlett the day she was born, carefully clasped the locket around Scarlett's neck.
"This is to show you that no matter how far apart we are I will always be with you." Fluttershy said as Scarlett ran up and practically flew into her mother's arms. Squealing with joy and shouting "thank you" over and over.
Next up, where the grandparents. Gentle Breeze and Posey's gifts were particularly interesting. They had clearly gotten or made their gifts without fully understanding the details of their granddaughter's existence. Posey had knitted a soft, pastel-colored blanket - large enough for a young filly, but with an uncertainty in its creation that suggested she wasn't quite sure of the recipient's exact age or preferences.
Gentle Breeze's gift was equally telling - a classic storybook about young pegasus adventures, wrapped carefully but with a slightly bewildered look that suggested he was still processing the sudden appearance of a granddaughter he knew nothing about.
“Sorry our gifts aren't exactly what you might expect," Gentle Breeze said with a shy smile, "but we hope you'll find them useful or entertaining in some way."
“I love them, they're perfect!” Scarlett exclaimed, running over to hug her grandparents. There was an earnestness in her voice, a sincerity that warmed the hearts of both Gentle Breeze and Posey. They both returned the hug, their eyes sparkling with unshed tears.
Scarlett broke away from the hug with a smile, eagerly taking the blanket and book in her hands. She quickly wrapped the soft blanket around her shoulders and began to flip through the pages of the book. However, her attention was soon drawn to a shimmering green aura surrounding one last present. To her surprise, it was a gift from her father himself.
The magic faded revealing an ornate music box. With a tremulous hand, Scarlett unlatched the small, golden clasp and lifted the lid cautiously. The box played a haunting melody that seemed to echo through the very fabric of time.
The Melody seemed to cause everyone’s blood to run cold and as it played, a chilling air swept across the room. A feeling of unease filled the atmosphere, yet it was accompanied by an inexplicable sense of familiarity. The melody was a hauntingly beautiful one, its notes resonating with an ancient magic that seemed to speak directly to Scarlett's soul.
“So, My little doe?” Radio said walking over to his daughter. “Do you like your gift?”
Scarlett nodded, her eyes wide as she listened to the melody. "It's beautiful," she said, her voice trembling with emotion. "I've never heard anything like it."
"I figured my little doe deserves a sweet melody of her own. Something my mother did for me." Radio said, a small, extremely rare, moment of... Humanity showing.
Scarlett rushed to her hooves and hugged Radio's leg, hugging him tightly as Radio gently patted her head with an unsettling smile.
"Now what do we say to all the lovely gifts you received?" Radio asked Scarlett. Scarlett let go of his leg and turned to everyone, lifting up her dress a little and bowing.
"Thank you!" Scarlett giggled as she looked up at Radio, seeing him smiling approvingly at her and patting her back.
The remainder of Scarlett's birthday party continued with joy and laughter. As the sun began to set, everyone parted ways, with Gentle and Posey pulled aside as Fluttershy carefully explained how and why her daughter had transformed into a 'Hell Bear'. Following Alastor's suggestion, she shared just enough to help her parents understand without instilling overwhelming fear about her new reality.
Moonlight spilled through the windows as Scarlett was left alone with Radio in her room. Tucked beneath a flurry of blankets and pillows, a music box on her bedside table played a gentle melody. Just outside the door, Fluttershy continued her conversation with her parents.
"So... your soul?" Posey asked, her voice shaken.
Fluttershy's smile was tinged with vulnerability. "Y-Yeah…I didn't have many options. My life wasn't glamorous, and I lacked stability. Radio Waves helped me find a steady path. With that, I received the greatest blessing anyone could ask for." Her hand rested over her heart, memories of Scarlett's birth warming her eyes.
"But you made a deal with the Radio Demon!" Gentle exclaimed, disbelief and worry threading his words. "Do you have any idea what kind of danger that puts you in?"
“He owns your soul, Dearie!” Posey interjected, her voice wobbling with fear. "You're not just in danger... you're his!"
“I don’t regret what I’ve done,” Fluttershy responded, her voice firm and confident. She met her parents' eyes with conviction, her own gleamed with a determination that was unshakeable. "I would do it all over again if it meant having Scarlett in my life."
"But...the Radio Demon..." Gentle whispered hoarsely. "Fluttershy...he’s…He’s a monster responsible for countless tragedies and miseries."
Fluttershy looked at her trembling father with a nod of understanding. She closed the gap between them, her hand reaching out to grasp his own.
“Please…Mom…Dad, I know your fears," she said, her voice a soothing balm in the tense atmosphere. "I know about the horrors he has caused and his ruthless nature. But he's also the reason I have Scarlett. I cannot - and will not - regret that."
"But, Fluttershy," Posey interjected, her eyes welling up with tears. “What if…”
Gentle placed a hand on his wife’s arm and silenced her before looking into his daughters eyes. “Are you happy?” Fluttershy’s father asked softly, his gaze full of concern and love. “Did giving up your soul bring you happiness, even with all the risks?"
Fluttershy paused, considering his words. Her gaze shifted to the small crack in the door that led to Scarlett's room. The gentle tinkling melody of the music box floated through the silence, a quiet testament to the life she had created.
“Yes, Dad,” she replied, her voice barely above a whisper. “Despite everything, I am happier than I’ve ever been in years.”
"I... I don't think you fully understand what you're getting yourself into,” Gentle whispered calmly before letting out a heavy sigh. “But…I know you're an adult and will make your own decisions. Just know that we'll be here for you."
“Thank you mom and Dad,," Fluttershy replied, her eyes shimmering with unshed tears of gratitude. "I appreciate your support. I know it's hard for you to understand."
Posey and Gentle exchanged a look before pulling their daughter into a tender embrace. The fears and worries still lingered heavily in the air, like a dense fog that refused to lift. Yet, there was a sense of acceptance too, delicate as the wings of a butterfly but precious all the same.
As the embrace lingered, Gentle cleared his throat softly. "We should let you and Scarlett rest," he said, his voice a mixture of concern and resignation.
Posey dabbed at her eyes with a delicate handkerchief, casting one last worried glance towards Scarlett's room. "Promise me you'll be careful," she whispered to Fluttershy, her hand squeezing her daughter's.
Fluttershy walked them to the door, her movements gentle but sure. "I'll always be careful," she assured them, though the words held a depth of meaning far beyond a simple promise.
Gentle paused at the threshold, turning back to look at his daughter one last time. The moonlight caught his face, casting shadows that seemed to highlight every line of worry and love. "We love you, Fluttershy," he said softly. "Both of you."
A soft smile played on Fluttershy's lips. "I love you too," she replied.
As the door closed behind her parents, Fluttershy leaned against it for a moment, releasing a breath she hadn't realized she'd been holding. The house settled around her, quiet except for the gentle melody still drifting from Scarlett's room.
Fluttershy turned from the door and found Alastor standing before her, transformed from his earlier Radio persona into an immaculate figure dressed in a sharp red suit. The deep crimson fabric was perfectly tailored, complemented by a pristine white shirt and a black bowtie. A matching red top hat sat at a rakish angle, casting a subtle shadow across his features.
"Well, don't you clean up nicely," Fluttershy said, a soft smile playing on her lips. Her eyes swept over him appreciatively, taking in the elegant ensemble. "You look incredibly handsome."
Alastor's characteristic grin widened, a hint of static crackling around the edges of his smile. "One must always dress to impress, my dear," he replied, tipping the top hat slightly. "Shall we?"
“Give me a moment to get dressed," Fluttershy said, a blush staining her cheeks. Alastor nodded with a small bow, his eyes never leaving her as she turned away to retreat into her bedroom.
The door closed softly behind her, leaving Alastor alone in the quiet house. However, despite the quiet, Alastor was not alone.
“You’re getting stronger,” Alastor addressed the presence dwelling within his own body.
“A music box?” the familiar voice of Charlie rang from Alastor’s microphone cane. “Could you be any creepier?!”
Alastor chuckled under his breath, the sound echoing oddly in the quiet room. "Oh, Charlie" he began, his voice dripping with an ironic sweetness that seemed to ripple against the silence as he spoke to, "one can't truly appreciate the beauty of life without a little bit of creepiness."
"A little bit of creepiness?" Charlie's voice crackled with indignation. "You're giving a music box that plays a haunting melody to a child who's half-demon. That's not 'a little bit of creepiness' - that's psychological manipulation!"
Alastor's grin never wavered, though the static around him intensified slightly. "She'll learn to appreciate the nuances of sound," he replied smoothly, his voice a blend of charm and menace. "After all, music is the language of the soul - and her soul is... quite unique."
"You're preparing her for something," Charlie accused, his mental voice growing stronger. "What are you planning, Alastor? What game are you playing with Scarlett?"
A low chuckle escaped Alastor's lips, a sound that seemed to vibrate with malevolent amusement. "Planning? My dear Charlie, I'm simply nurturing potential."
Before Charlie could retort, Alastor's consciousness pushed back, forcing the other presence deeper into the recesses of his mind. The static momentarily crescendoed, then settled into a low, almost imperceptible hum.
As Fluttershy emerged from her bedroom, she wore a soft strapless green dress that hugged her figure just right, accentuating her gentle curves and stopping around her thighs. Her hair, always so meticulously styled in a high ponytail, floated down in a cascade of soft pink waves. She had adorned her ears with small diamond earrings that twinkled under the dim light. Her face was aglow with a natural blush, her eyes sparkling with anticipation.
The Mare moved through the hall but stopped as her ears perked up, She heard the static filled voice that obviously belonged to the demon she fell in love with. The other voice however, was unknown to her, a male voice tingling with both frustration and anger. Fluttershy felt her heart drop into her stomach as she silently listened to the conversation unfurling.
"A little bit of creepiness?" the unknown voice crackled with indignation. "You're giving a music box that plays a haunting melody to a child who's half-demon. That's not 'a little bit of creepiness' - that's psychological manipulation!"
Fluttershy could hear Alastor's static intensified slightly. "She'll learn to appreciate the nuances of sound," he replied smoothly, his voice a melody of dark charm. "After all, music is the language of the soul - and her soul is... quite unique."
"You're preparing her for something," the voice accused, his voice growing stronger. "What are you planning, Alastor? What game are you playing with Scarlett?"
The familiar chuckle of Alastor echoed through the air, a sound that sent chills crawling up Fluttershy's spine. "Planning? My dear Charlie, I'm simply nurturing potential."
And that was all, the voice of this Charlie person suddenly vanished, swallowed by the thick silence that hung in the air. Fluttershy stood frozen in the hallway, her heart pounding in her chest. She knew Alastor had his secrets, but this... this was different.
She had heard everything.
The conversation between Alastor and the voice - Charlie - had been crystal clear. But years of dealing with Alastor had taught her a crucial lesson: sometimes, silence was safer than confrontation.
Fluttershy, after steeling her nerves , took a deep breath and walked away from her hiding spot to avoid getting caught by Alastor, or whoever it was that was speaking. Knowing that this is something that Alastor is familiar with, unlike her who would probably make things more complicated for Alastor if she were to get involved right at this very moment.
However the moment she turned around, her face bumped into something solid, and she stumbled back with a small gasp. Blinking in surprise, she found herself looking up into familiar, glowing eyes.
“A-Alastor…” Fluttershy stammered out, her heart hammering in her chest.
Alastor reached out to Fluttershy, his fingers gently brushing against her cheek. The sensation made Fluttershy gasp quietly as Alastor cupped her cheek.
"You look absolutely ravishing, my sweet." Alastor said, that voice making her cheeks flare up a bit with both excitement but also a small hint of intimidation.
"I shall wait for you in the living room, I have a few things to take care of. I do plan on giving my gal a grand night." Alastor smiled as he turned and walked to the living room. His footsteps echoing against the wooden floorboards.
Fluttershy felt a rush of emotions crashing in thick waves around her. She watched as Alastor's figure retreated, his tall, imposing outline seeming to swallow the dim, flickering light from the candles. The silence that followed felt oppressive, like a weight pressing down on her chest.
She was left alone in the hallway, the only sound being her own heartbeat pounding wildly in her ears. She stood there for a few moments, lost in her thoughts and battling with the turmoil of feelings inside her. Her mind kept replaying the conversation she had overheard and Alastor's cold charm.
Fluttershy shook her head, Date nights were rare and few between with Alastor and she was determined not to let her fears interfere with the little precious time she had. She willed her heart to slow its frantic pace and turned towards the living room. Her hooves clicked softly against the wooden floor as she moved to join Alastor in the living room.
“Are you ready?” Alastor asked taking her hand and pulling her close. “Cause if you are, be prepared for one Hell of a night”
Alastor gently spun Fluttershy, her dress billowing around her as she twirled. With a graceful flourish, he pulled her close, dipping her low as his face moved in towards hers. Fluttershy's eyes widened slightly, her heart pounding in anticipation, before Alastor pressed his lips against hers in a passionate kiss.
The moment felt charged with a mix of tension and intimacy, their bodies intertwined as Fluttershy surrendered herself to Alastor's embrace. For a brief instant, the rest of the world faded away, leaving only the two of them locked in a passionate embrace.
That moment was ruined however when the front door opened, “I'm so sorry Fluttershy, Sweetie seemed to have left....” Rarity froze in her tracks as she spotted Fluttershy in the arms of the feared Radio Demon.
“It's rather rude to stare,” Alastor said with a mock chiding tone, straightening up while still keeping one hand on Fluttershy's waist. His voice held a dangerous edge that sent a shiver through Rarity's spine.
Rarity’s breathing quickened as she continued to look at Alastor in a mix of horror and shock, her eyes wide with disbelief. She gulped nervously, clutching her handbag tighter as Alastor's hauntingly crimson eyes met hers.
"Rarity..." Fluttershy began, her voice barely a whisper as she disentangled herself from Alastor's grip.
Rarity was mere moments from screaming her lungs out and running for her life, However two things stopped her from doing either of those things, and both was due to a single Demon snapping his fingers. With a Snap of his fingers, Fluttershy’s front door closed and locked itself, and the next which prevented the mare from screaming was a her lips being replaced by a zipper which sealed her mouth shut.
The Demon walked closer to the mare, causing her to stumble over her own hooves in an attempt to escape. She didn't stop running until she reached the door and pressed her back against it. Closing her eyes, she lifted her hands in surrender, waiting for the end to come. But instead of death, she felt a cold touch tracing along her lips, where a zipper had been sealed shut by a spell. She flinched at first, expecting something more malicious, but when she cautiously opened her eyes, she saw Alastor standing before her with a smile on his face.
“We just put Scarlett to bed,” Alastor said, his voice a melodic purr that seemed to pull the very air from the room. His smile widened at the sight of Rarity's terrified expression, delighting in the fear his presence brought. “I'd be a real pain to wake her up.”
“So…” Alastor's clawed hands lifted quickly and without warning - causing Rarity to flinch - as he grabbed the small tab of her zipper. “Are you going to be silent?”
Rarity nods her head feverishly, her eyes wide with fear and desperation. She marked the briefest flicker of satisfaction in Alastor's eyes before he pulled at the zipper, breaking the spell that had bound her mouth shut. Air rushed into her lungs and she gasped, cherishing the ability to breathe freely again.
"Good girl," he purred, releasing the zipper.
“y...you...you're the Radio Demon...” Rarity stammered out, her voice trembling like a leaf in the wind as she pointed a shaky finger at Alastor. His grin only widened, hinting at rows of sharpened teeth that could tear through flesh and bone with ease.
“The one and Only...” Alastor replied, his voice dripping with a frightening amusement.
"The... the stories about you..." Rarity swallowed hard, her eyes glued to his. She could not summon the courage to look away, even as her heart pounded in her chest.
"All true, I assure you," he said with a nod that seemed more like a bow, his eyes gleaming dangerously under his hat as he drummed his claws on his cane. "Every. Single. Word…”
Rarity finally broke her gaze from the demon and looked to her friend. “…And you know....”
Fluttershy was silent, her wings trembling at her side. “I do,” she murmured, unable to meet Rarity's gaze. "He’s Scarlett’s Father”
“And-and Scarlett's....” Rarity struggled to continue, the words catching in her throat, trapped between disbelief and a horrible realization. "She's... part demon?"
Fluttershy nodded weakly. Her voice was barely a whisper as she confirmed, “Half-Demon actually.”
A low, rumbling laughter emerged from Alastor's throat and filled the room, sending shivers down Rarity's spine. "As entertaining as it is to hear the fear in your voice while we explain everything to you...we don't have the luxury of time." Alastor moved forward, adjusting his top hat as his shadow loomed over Rarity. "I've made a promise to Fluttershy, and I always keep my word when it comes to a date."
Alastor snapped his fingers which cause the front door to open in the opposite direction and caused Rarity to fall backwards and onto her flank. Rarity stared up at Alastor in a mix of fear and disbelief as he loomed over her. The sheer power and presence emanating from the demon was palpable, making the hair on the back of her neck stand on end.
Rarity stared in sheer disbelief as Fluttershy wrapped her arm around Alastor’s, “Fl-Fluttershy…you…you can’t seriously be going with him!" Rarity stammered, her eyes wide with a desperate plea. Alastor's grin widened, the glint in his eyes almost malicious.
Fluttershy looked down, then back up at Alastor. “But…” Fluttershy paused for a long, fraught moment. "I was the one who asked for this date,”
Rarity watched in horror as Fluttershy and Alastor stepped out into the dusky evening, leaving the room bathed in an eerie calm. She felt a twinge of betrayal cutting through her heart, but it was swiftly overshadowed by a deep-seated fear.
Before long, A crimson Limousine pulled out in front to the pair, its windows tinted a darker shade that matched Alastor's dark sense of humor. The chauffer, a skeletal figure drenched in shades of black, emerged from the driver's side and opened the back door with a low, reverential bow. Fluttershy thanked Joe and climbed into the limousine first, Alastor however turned back to the Mare who was still on the ground.
“Do be safe on your way home,” Alastor said ominously the the front door closed on its own, his smile never faltering. "And do try to avoid any dark corners, dear Rarity. One never knows what might be lurking there....within the shadows"
With a final tip of his hat, Alastor climbed into the limousine, the door shutting behind him with a heavy thud. The zombie chauffer moved from the rear to the drivers seat and with the twist of a key, the limousine roared to life. It glided off into the darkening horizon, leaving Rarity alone with her fears and a deep sense of unease.
As Rarity watched her friend leave with the demon, suddenly the front light turned dark and with it, the rest of the once vibrant cottage seemed to lose its color. The cheerful chirping of the crickets fell silent, replaced by the eerie whispers of the night.
Rarity felt a chill run down her spine - not from the sudden drop in temperature, but rather from an inexplicable sense of foreboding. She pulled her elegant shawl tighter around her shoulders, attempting to ward off the growing chill.
Without warning, Rarity felt something grab her ankle forcefully, causing her to yelp in surprise. She tried to jerk her hoof free, but the grip was strong and unyielding. Looking down, she saw the gnarled hand of a creature emerging from the shadows around Fluttershy's home, its fingers wrapped tightly around her hoof. the Mare screamed out in terror, her voice echoing through the deafening silence of the night. More hands joined the first one, each one more grotesque and sinister than the last. They clawed at her elegant dress, tugging her towards the encroaching shadows.
"Let me go!" Rarity cried, trying desperately to pull away. But the hands were relentless, their grips tightening with every futile attempt she made to escape.
However this far from Ponyville there was no one to hear her desperate cries, no brave stallion to come rushing to her aid. The eerie silence of Fluttershy's once vibrant cottage now seemed mocking, amplifying her terror. Soon the gnarled hands took hold of her body and clothing, pulling her inexorably into the dense, murky shadows. The Unicorn Mare continued to scream as she dug her fingers into the ground, the more the hands pulled the more her dress started to rip and tear until it was nothing more than tattered shreds of once elegant fabric. Her pleas were soon lost to the whipping wind, swallowed by the empty night.
Suddenly, the grotesque hands halted their relentless tug. For a moment, Rarity dared to hope her ordeal was over. But as she turned her head to look back, one large hand burst from the shadow and grabbed her face, its claws digging cruelly into her tender flesh. As she shrieked in terror and pain, it malevolently forced her into the shadows.
Silence…
The hush of the night deepened, casting an unsettling pall over the abandoned cottage. In the distance, the crickets resumed their nocturnal serenade, oblivious to the dread that had just unfolded. The wind rustled through the surrounding trees, whispering secrets to the moon in a dance older than time itself.
Rarity was dropped screaming onto her bed, her screams stopped when she realized she was back in the comfort of her own room. Her elegant bedposts, crowned with diamonds and draped with sheer pink fabric, stood around her, offering a familiar sense of safety. The lovely chandelier she had crafted herself twinkled above, casting a soft light that danced across the room.
Her heart pounded in her chest as she frantically whipped her head around, eyes filled with terror, expecting to see those gnarled hands reaching out for her from the shadows.
But there was nothing.
The mare slowly inched towards the edge of her bed, her breath hitching in her throat. The room was bathed in darkness, the only source of light being the silvery glow of the moon filtering through the delicate lace curtains. The mare wasted on time in running out of her Room and heading downstairs to the kitchen, once their she tore open a specific cabinet and grabbed an unopened bottle of Hard Apple Cider and immediately uncorked it with her magic. The liquid inside was amber-colored and shimmered vaguely in the dim moonlight. She took a large gulp, the strong alcohol burning all the way down her throat and spreading a temporary warmth throughout her body. As if on autopilot, she downed another gulp, then a third, the bottle's contents dwindling steadily as she sought to drown out the memory of tonight.
It goes without saying that Rarity found herself waking up on the kitchen floor the following morning, with only the harsh sunlight to greet her. She was surrounded by empty bottles and plagued by a terrible hangover. To make matters worse, the memories of the previous night had not faded away as she had hoped they would.
Author's Note
Holy..or rather Unholy Shit....10k+ words. This is BY FAR!! the longest chapter I have written in this chapter. Now I'm not gonna lie to you guys. Next chapters Date Night will be paired with a night of
It will not be like some of the other sex scenes I have done and it will a new experience for Fluttershy..given what her past job was.
Question Time BITCHES!!
So someone is going to find out the truth about Scarlett. If it's Twilight, I hope she stops Smolder from doing something stupid. Spike seems to have a good head on his shoulders but from what we've seen of Smolder. She'd definitely be the type to shoot first and maybe ask questions later.
Speaking of familial connections. Will Alastor try and find a way to use Twilight against Shining Armor when he discoveres that they're siblings?
As you can see Zaku, Rarity has been the first one to discover about Alastor and Fluttershy. and to answer your second question. I don't know yet. I do plan on Shining and Twilight scene but beyond that I have no clue whether or not Alastor will use her against him.
So since nobody has asked any questions that's the end of Question Time. Remember if you want to ask something go for it, I will always address your questions right down here.
And As Always, Stay Tuned Folks
Chapter 24: Sugar, Spice, and Something NiceView Online
Chapter 24: Sugar, Spice, and Something Nice
The Limousine pulled out in front of busy restaurant, the Valet walked up and opened the rear door, Alastor stepped out wearing his pony disguise before turning and offering a hand to allow Fluttershy to step out gracefully. She was stunning, her yellow coat shimmering in the glow of the street lights, and her soft pink mane cascaded down her back, wafting gently in the evening breeze. The crowd of ponies and employees stepped back in awe, their murmurs turning into whispers of intrigue and admiration.
Fluttershy wrapped her arm around Alastor's, pressing a bit closer to him as they walked towards the restaurant. The mare looked up and down the restaurants exterior. The restaurant's exterior is grand and elegant, with large glass windows framed by intricate golden designs. The entrance is marked by two grand pillars and a marquee sign reading ‘The Prime Cut’ in sleek lettering. The Prime Cut stood as a testament to carnivorous elegance, its façade a striking blend of Victorian gothic and modern refinement.
“Oh my…” Fluttershy gasped, her eyes widening in awe at the grandeur surrounding her. "I don't think I've ever been to such a magnificent place," she whispered with amazement.
Alastor flashed a grin as he spoke, "I always strive to give you the very best, my dear. As a showman, it's important to go all out."
Alastor held the door open for Fluttershy as they stepped into the restaurant. The moment they entered, they were enveloped by the elegant atmosphere of The Prime Cut, which felt like a comforting embrace. Just as beautiful on the inside as it was on the outside, the high ceilings were adorned with sparkling crystal chandeliers, casting a warm and gentle light throughout the room. The floor was made of polished dark wood, reflecting the vibrant colors from the stained glass windows. Shiny brass fixtures stood out against the dark mahogany paneling, and in one corner of the room, a string quartet played soft melodies. The tantalizing scent of expertly cooked meals drifted in from the kitchen, mingling with the sweet fragrances of aged wine and fresh flowers that filled the air.
“I apologize,” A male griffin with dark green plumage and a charcoal grey beak approached them, arching an eyebrow. "but we do not cater to Equines in this establishment.”
“Our reservation is under the name Alastor,” interjected the cool and composed man, his unwavering gaze fixed on the griffon.
The griffon sneered and narrowed his eyes. “Nice try, Asshole,” he retorted. "But I’m not falling for it. Get out of here, pony."
Alastor's chuckle echoed through the room as he elegantly removed his top hat. In a mere moment, his disguise disappeared, revealing his true demon form. The host visibly flinched in fear.
"I believe I have a reservation," Alastor repeated, his voice laced with dangerous intent. His ruby red eyes glinted with a fiery light that made the griffon tremble.
The griffon frantically scanned the reservation book until he found the name. "A-Alastor... party of two... V.I.P." he stuttered, his feathers ruffled in fear. He hastily bowed and took a step back from Alastor's formidable presence. "Please forgive me, sir. I... I didn't realize it was you."
Alastor quickly regained his cool, elegant demeanor. "No harm done," he said, smoothly as if nothing had happened.
The griffon's voice trembled as he led them to the most desirable table in the restaurant. "Follow me," he muttered nervously.
Nestled in a secluded corner of the restaurant, a private booth offered a commanding view of both the dining area and the starry night sky through its glass ceiling. Plush velvet seats in a deep shade of crimson matched the neatly folded napkins on the spotless white tablecloth. A tall silver candelabra, with its multiple arms alight with flickering candles, added an elegant touch to the setting, casting a warm glow over the crystal glasses and gleaming silver cutlery. As they settled into their seats, Alastor casually motioned for the griffon attendant who nodded quickly before scurrying off after giving them their menus. As the griffon ran off and blended in with the busy atmosphere of the restaurant, Alastor focused his attention on the menu. He was greeted with a list of delectable dishes, each one sounding more tempting than the next.
Alastor's red gaze swept over the menu with a discerning eye, his sharp claws tracing the elegant lettering delicately. Fluttershy, still in awe of the restaurant's opulence, nervously smoothed out her dress and looked around the room.
"Everything seems so... overwhelming," she murmured quietly, her voice a gentle tremble of uncertainty.
Alastor let out a warm chuckle, tinged with mischief. "Don't worry, my dear. Let me take the reins and guide us through this culinary adventure. What sounds good to you tonight?"
Fluttershy's eyes widened in surprise as she examined the menu. The selection of elegant dishes felt like a far cry from her usual basic, homemade meals. Her hands shook slightly as she read through the list of steaks and appetizers to make her choice.
"I've never experienced anything like this before.” Her yellow cheeks turned a soft pink as she confessed, “The closest I've come was the Venison with Blackberry Wine Sauce dish you cooked for me last month."
"But tonight," he leaned in closer, "we will dine like royalty. I highly recommend the dry-aged Porterhouse. Not only is it delicious, but it promises to be a theatrical culinary experience."
In that moment, a sommelier glided towards their table, carrying a white towel over his arm. His movements were deliberate, almost like a dance, as he greeted them with a small nod.
"Welcome," he said in a professional and polished tone. "Would you like me to recommend a wine pairing for your meal?"
The sommelier stood attentively, his keen eyes flicking between Alastor and Fluttershy, patiently waiting for their response.
"I'll have a bottle of Château Margaux," Alastor said, his tone carrying a quiet confidence that put Fluttershy at ease. “Red wine from the Bordeaux region of Prance. I believe it will perfectly complement our chosen entrée."
The sommelier arched an eyebrow, obviously impressed by his selection. "A truly superb choice, sir. May I ask which vintage you prefer?"
The sommelier's eyebrow raised, clearly impressed by Alastor's selection. "A superb choice, sir. Would you happen to have a preferred year?"
Alastor's smile grew wider, his eyes glinting with a sharpness like a razor. "Naturally, 1933."
"A splendid year, sir," The sommelier gave a slight bow before disappearing to retrieve their wine, leaving Alastor and Fluttershy alone at their cozy table.
"Is the wine supposed to be good?" Fluttershy asked, her curiosity piqued by Alastor's earlier enthusiasm.
Alastor leaned in with his usual dramatic flair and replied, "The 1933 vintage was truly remarkable. Some of the finest Bordeaux wines were produced that year, including the renowned Château Margaux. Its incredible depth, rich full-bodied flavor, and complex notes of dark fruits are a testament to the exceptional growing conditions of that year."
As he finished speaking, a griffon waiter approached their table. His feathers were a vibrant shade of red, accentuated by a warm brown beak. He was impeccably dressed in a perfectly fitted black suit with a crisp white shirt and a deep burgundy bow tie.
The griffon greeted them, pulling out a small notepad in a professional manner. "Good evening, are you ready to place your order?"
Alastor nodded confidently. "We'll begin with the Roasted Bone Marrow to share," he stated. "For my main course, I'll have the Strip Steak with a side of Wild Mushroom Risotto...cooked rare, of course."
Fluttershy spoke in her gentle voice, "I was wondering about the Neighpanese-"
"Fluttershy?" The waiter's smile widened as he interrupted. "What are you doing in such an upscale place?"
Fluttershy stuttered, her voice barely above a whisper as she tried to hide behind her menu. "U-Um, R-Red Wing? It's been a while..."
"Hey there, baby cakes," Red Wing chuckled, his feathers ruffling slightly with amusement. "Last time we saw each other..." He leaned in closer and lowered his voice to a whisper. "You were begging for my cock to fill you up."
Fluttershy felt a shiver of fear run through her body as she saw the griffon, but something inside her made her gather her courage. She closed her eyes, took a deep breath, and exhaled slowly before opening them again and crossing her arms.
"What do you want, Red Wing?" Fluttershy asked with a determined tone.
"Just wondering if you're still available," Red Wing replied with a mischievous glint in his eyes. "It's been ages since I've had a pony as skilled as you."
"I...I'm actually on a date at the moment..." Fluttershy murmured, her voice soft but steady. She glanced over at Alastor, who was watching the exchange with an unreadable expression.
Red Wing's smile faltered, his gaze shifting towards Alastor. The griffon appeared to assess him for a brief moment before letting out a laugh.
"Is that so?" He sneered. "Well, I'm sure he won't mind if an old friend steals you away for just a moment."
"I certainly would," Alastor interrupted, his tone dripping with disdain.
“Keep your britches on, Pony,” Red Wing snapped back, his feathers ruffling slightly. “I’m not going to outright steal your fucktoy, I just want to know if she’s free after you fuck her brains out”
“Leave...” Alastor commanded, his tone leaving no room for discussion.
Red Wing took a moment to evaluate the situation before responding, nonchalantly shrugging his shoulders.
"Fine, what do you want, Slut?" Red Wing inquired, oblivious to the fact that the pony's hands had turned into sharp talons and were now digging into the table.
Fluttershy's voice quivered as she ordered, "I'll have the Neighpanese Wagyu Ribeye with the Seasonal Roasted Vegetables." She did her best to ignore Red Wing's taunts.
Red Wing let out a loud guffaw, his booming laugh filling the restaurant. "Picking the priciest item on the menu? You've certainly become quite the high-end slut since we last saw each other," he chided, his grin widening at Fluttershy's slight blush.
The air in the room suddenly changed, becoming thick with a sense of foreboding as Alastor's slow movement caught everyone's attention. His piercing gaze focused on the griffon, almost like daggers stabbing into his soul.
"Please refrain from using that name," Alastor cautioned with a twisted grin on his face. "Or I may have to resort to some...unpleasant measures."
The waiter brushed off the warning with a wave of his hand, oblivious to the sudden drop in temperature and the disguised Demon lurking nearby.
Alastor was ready to escalate the situation, but Fluttershy intervened by reaching across the table and placing her hand on Alastor's claw. Her gentle touch conveyed a desire for peace, at least for the remainder of the evening.
"It's okay, Alastor…" Fluttershy's voice was barely audible, her tone gentle and calming despite the tense situation.
But Alastor's expression remained unchanged. He continued to stare intently at Red Wing, though he did give Fluttershy's hand a reassuring squeeze in response to her touch.
"As you wish, love," Alastor murmured, retracting his sharp claws and instead using them to tenderly stroke her hand.
The sommelier reappeared, seemingly unaware of the tension that had just passed. He glided with practiced ease, holding the bottle of Château Margaux delicately in his arm as if it were a rare and valuable artifact.
"The 1933 vintage," He spoke softly as he presented the bottle from 1933 for Alastor to inspect. The label was a rich burgundy color, and in the flickering candlelight, it shimmered with a hint of delicacy. The paper, though aged, seemed to have been well-preserved.
He skillfully extracted the cork from the bottle, producing a faint pop. He paused for a moment to let the wine aerate before pouring it into two glasses. The fragrant bouquet filled the air - notes of dark fruit and something alluringly elusive.
Alastor raised his glass, capturing the aromatic scent of the wine in one deep inhale before allowing Fluttershy to have a taste first. She nodded approvingly, and he took a sip himself.
"The 1933 Château Margaux," he mused, letting the wine spread across his tongue before swallowing. "A remarkable vintage. Elegant, with profound depth and a lingering finish."
After placing the bottle in a nearby ice bucket, the sommelier retreated with a respectful nod, leaving them once again in the soft glow of the candlelight.
Alastor leaned closer, his gaze narrowing as he peered into Fluttershy's glass of wine. "My dear," he spoke with a hint of worry, "I think there may be a small insect in your drink."
Fluttershy's eyes grew wide and she let out a soft gasp. "Oh!"
Alastor stood up gracefully and reached for Fluttershy's glass. "Allow me," he said before taking it. "I'll speak to the staff about this immediately."
As Alastor rose, his tall figure cast a shadow over their private table, creating an intimidating aura. He moved with calculated precision, like a predator stalking its prey. Crossing the dining room, he caught the attention of a griffon leaving the kitchen.
"Excuse me," Alastor said, with an icy calm. "There appears to be an insect in my lady's wine."
The griffon frowned and squinted at the glass, confused. "But there's nothing here," he said, staring into the crystal.
In a sudden move, Alastor hurled the contents of the wine glass directly into the griffon's face. Caught off guard, the griffon was unable to react before Alastor grabbed him by the neck with his sharp, clawed hand, silencing any potential outcry.
"You naïve creature," Alastor murmured, his tone dangerously tranquil. "When I spoke of an 'insect,' I was referring to you."
Alastor swiftly grabbed Red Wing and forcefully pushed him back into the kitchen before anyone could witness. The door was slammed shut behind them, muffling the sounds of clanging pots and startled shouts.
Although Alastor appeared composed, his grip on Red's neck tightened and his eyes burned with fury. He roughly shoved Red Wing against a counter, scraping his face along the surface as he did so. With no hesitation, Alastor brought Red's face close to the hot stove, where a pot of soup was boiling steadily.
"I think it's time for you to have a makeover that truly reflects your charming personality."
With swift and purposeful movements, Alastor knocked over the pot and shoved Red Wing's face towards the flames of the stove. The griffon let out a panicked squawk as he flapped his wings in an attempt to escape the burning heat. Despite Red's struggles, Alastor maintained his smile and only increased his grip on the griffon's neck.
“Hey!” bellowed the head chef, a dragon with dark blue scales and black spines. He stepped forward, brandishing a large meat cleaver in his claw.
As soon as the dragon touched the disguised demon, his pony form vanished and his true form was revealed. Alastor's head snapped around, his neck twisting unnaturally to face the dragon with a menacing glare. Each vertebra in his spine popped loudly as it strained under the pressure. His blood-red eyes bore into the emerald orbs of the dragon, emitting a deep growl that echoed through the kitchen. It was a clear warning to back off.
“Don't interfere,” Alastor hissed, his voice dropping to a menacing tone that sent shivers down the dragon's spine. The kitchen fell silent in fear, no one daring to move, not even the trembling griffon held tightly in Alastor's grasp.
Alastor turned his steely gaze back to Red Wing. With a final exertion of strength, he thrust the griffon's face into the open flame. Red Wing's screams pierced through the air, a gut-wrenching sound that seemed to echo endlessly within the small confines of the kitchen. The griffon frantically flapped its wings in terror, but Alastor's grip remained unyielding. An eerie grin spread across his face, a stark contrast to the chaos unfolding before him. As the smell of burning feathers filled the room, a cacophony of yells and cries erupted, but they all sounded muffled and far away. Alastor's focus was solely on Red Wing, never loosening his hold as he continued to torture him with the searing heat of the flame.
Alastor's grin grew wider as he finally pulled Red Wing from the raging inferno. The griffon’s once vibrant red feathers were now burned to a crisp, leaving them a dark black. Instead of cries of fear, all that could be heard were whimpers of agony as Red Wing trembled in Alastor's arms. His eyes struggled to open, revealing two charred sockets. Despite the gruesome sight, Alastor couldn't help but let out a loud laugh while the paralyzed spectators stared at the deformed griffon.
"Well, well, it seems like you have a more fitting appearance now," Alastor said with a chuckle before dropping Red Wing onto the cold marble floor.
Red Wing's body made an audible thud as it hit the ground, his once strong frame now limp and struggling for any sign of life. The contrast of his smoldering form against the clean white tiles created a grisly scene.
"Apologies for barging in," Alastor said casually as he walked towards the door, his arrogant attitude evident as he transformed into his Pony form.
With a quick movement of his hand, a fresh wine glass, identical to the one he had been holding moments ago, materialized in Alastor's grasp. He returned to the table and placed the glass before Fluttershy.
"You didn't kill him, did you?" Fluttershy asked as Alastor picked up the wine bottle and poured her a drink.
Alastor's voice was saccharine and smooth, but there was a hint of malice lurking beneath his words. "He may still be alive, my dear," he purred, "But his once handsome appearance will never be the same." He stopped pouring her wine and locked eyes with her, still holding the bottle tightly.
The Demon slid the glass towards Fluttershy with a sinister grin. "Now drink up and forget about that foolish creature."
"I'm upset that you did that..." Fluttershy murmured softly as she cautiously took the glass. "But I know you are keeping your end of the bargain by preventing my past from haunting me."
"Oh my dear, you have me all wrong. I didn't do this because of our deal." Alastor laughed as he leaned over to Fluttershy, his face hovering over hers by mere inches while his fingers gently glided across her cheek and brushed a strand of her hair behind her ear. "I did it because you are mine. I was merely ensuring that what I own isn't harmed. Nothing more."
A blush crept up Fluttershy's cheeks as she felt the warmth of his touch, causing a delightful shiver to run down her spine. She quickly took a sip of the sweet wine, grateful for the temporary distraction from Alastor's intense gaze.
"Alastor," she whispered, placing her glass back on the table and meeting his unwavering gaze. "Please promise me that you won't involve our daughter in this," she pleaded, her voice shaky with fear for her child's safety.
"Your concern for our child is touching, Fluttershy," The Radio Demon responded, his voice dripping with feigned empathy.
“I understand that I can't stop you from making deals or even...harming others,” the pegasus mare continued, her voice trembling with the potent mix of fear and sorrow. "But promise me one thing, Alastor. Promise me that our daughter will never be a part of this...this world you live in."
Alastor's grin faded, replacing his previously playful demeanor with something far more serious. He regarded Fluttershy for a long moment before finally nodding. "Very well," he said, his voice solemn. "I won't involve our little one in any of this."
Fluttershy took another sip of her wine as she studied The Radio Demon, Alastor proved to be a paradox she struggled to understand; on one hand, he was a ruthless demon who didn't hesitate to harm or even kill, but on the other, he showed a possessive, almost protective side towards her and Scarlett. It was a strange dichotomy that left her both terrified and oddly reassured.
Alastor took a sip of his wine and playfully teased, "You may start to give off the impression that you're madly in love if you keep staring at me like that, my dear." His eyes were closed, but he could feel Fluttershy's gaze on him. A mischievous smile spread across his face.
Fluttershy's blush deepened, and she looked away, flustered. "I'm not...I was just..."
Fluttershy was utterly perplexed, she knew that the creature across from her was a feared demon and yet she couldn’t figure out why he had such an effect on her, why she felt a sense of security in his presence, even when every instinct told her to fear him. She glanced back at Alastor, finding him watching her with a curious expression. He was still a mystery to her, a riddle wrapped in an enigma, even his smile itself was an enigma to Fluttershy.
Alastor let out a chuckle, breaking the silence. "What's the matter, Fluttershy?" he asked with a teasing grin. "Cat got your tongue?"
Fluttershy was about to reply when another waiter arrived, visibly trembling and with a look of terror in his eyes. He carefully set their shared starter on the table.
"H-here is y-y-your R-roasted Bone Marrow A-appetizer for two,” the griffon stammered, his claws quivering and his feathers fluffed up in nervousness.
The dish before them was a masterpiece, as the marrow was presented in a bone that had been carefully hollowed out and laid on top of a bed of toasted bread. Fluttershy couldn't resist the mouth-watering scent and found herself eagerly anticipating the first taste.
Alastor's face lit up as he applauded with enthusiasm. "Excellent!" he said, bringing his hands together in a loud clap. "Thank you ever so much, my good sir."
The griffon waiter bowed hastily before quickly scurrying off, fear still evident in his eyes. He hurried away, almost stumbling over his own feathers in his hurry to escape.
Alastor's gaze returned to Fluttershy, a wide and sharp-toothed grin on his face. "Are you ready?" he asked, grabbing a knife and effortlessly spinning it between his fingers.
Fluttershy gasped at the sight of the dish in front of her. "Oh...my..." she whispered, her eyes growing wider. "Before I met you, I would have found something like this utterly disgusting. But now..."
Alastor's laughter filled the room as he reached for the knife and used it to scoop some of the bone marrow onto a slice of toasted bread. “You can't resist drooling at the sight, can you?” His voice was smooth as he held out the loaded piece of bread for her to try.
Fluttershy's muscles tightened and her lips sealed shut as she looked away, picking up her glass and taking a small sip of wine.
"Oh, no... I wasn't staring at it. Just admiring its appearance," Fluttershy stuttered, trying to hide her embarrassment. She averted her gaze from the grinning Alastor, not wanting to make eye contact. The bone marrow sitting in front of her glistened in the dim candlelight, almost whispering her name.
Alastor smirked and took a bite of his meal. The satisfying crunch of the toasted bread caught Fluttershy's attention and she couldn't help but glance at him. Her stomach grumbled in response, craving the taste of the forbidden meat on his plate.
Fluttershy hesitated, her voice barely a whisper. "Maybe just one bite..."
Alastor looked at her knowingly and used the knife to scoop some of the marrow onto another piece of bread. He held it out to her with a constant smile on his face. "You won't know unless you try," he said encouragingly.
Fluttershy took a small bite of the delicacy offered to her, savoring each chew with her eyes closed. She was pleasantly surprised by the creamy texture and the burst of savory flavors in her mouth. It was a whole new level of umami, one that she had never experienced before. Her face lit up with pleasure and amazement, causing Alastor's smile to widen even more.
"See? Trying new things can be enjoyable," he remarked, his eyes twinkling with glee.
Fluttershy swallowed and her eyes widened with surprise. "It's... it's delicious!" she exclaimed, unable to hide the shock in her voice.
"Please don't let me interrupt your enjoyment. Continue, please," said Alastor as he took another slice and spread some toppings on top of it. He handed the prepared slice to Fluttershy, feeding her gently. A genuine smile covered his face.
Fluttershy accepted the slice with a sheepish grin, feeling her earlier anxiety start to dissipate under the comforting gaze of Alastor's kind eyes. She took another bite and let out a small sound of pleasure as the flavors danced across her taste buds once more.
Alastor couldn't help but let out a soft chuckle, delighted by Fluttershy's reaction. He leaned in, folding his hands together and resting his chin on top of them. He studied her intently, enjoying the joy in her eyes and the expression on her face as she savored each mouthful.
"Beautiful..." Alastor murmured to himself.
Taken aback, Fluttershy halted her chewing and blushed a bit as she looked at him. "What?" she murmured, her voice muffled by the bread in her mouth.
Alastor quickly caught on to what he just said and for a split second he panicked. His eyes widened and his body tensed up. Quickly gaining his composure as he held up his wine and stared around the restaurant.
"The restaurant. The lighting, the food, the atmosphere of it all, simply beautiful. Isn't, my dear?" Alastor said. Hiding his earlier panic.
Fluttershy swallowed, her eyes dropping to the half-eaten piece of bread in her hands as she nodded. "Yes, it's quite lovely," she agreed, unable to meet Alastor's gaze.
Alastor, relieved by her response, picked up his own piece of bread and took a bite. He watched as Fluttershy finished and enjoy the spread and sipped on his wine in thoughtful silence.
Interrupting their quiet reprieve, The waiter returned with their food. “Strip Steak with Wild Mushroom Risotto” the waiter said placing the food in front of Alastor.
The food was beautifully arranged - the strip steak was seared to perfection and sliced, shimmering in the gentle glow of the restaurant's lighting as it lay atop a bed of risotto. The wild mushroom risotto itself was a decadent blend of buttery Arborio rice and sautéed fungi, enhanced by the aroma of truffle oil.
“And for you, the Neighpanese Wagyu Ribeye with Seasonal Roasted Vegetables,” the waiter announced, setting the second plate delicately in front of Fluttershy.
The Ribeye steak was expertly sliced and presented in a way that showcased its marbling. Each cut of meat was so tender and delicate, it practically melted at the slightest touch. The seasonal vegetables provided a burst of color, ranging from rich emerald greens to vibrant oranges. The carrots, peppers, and mushrooms had been roasted to perfection, their caramelized edges releasing a savory aroma.
Fluttershy's eyes were fixed on the Neighpanese meal in front of her, the taste of the perfectly cooked meat still lingering on her tongue. She couldn't help but feel her mouth water a little at the sight.
"It looks absolutely delicious," Fluttershy exclaimed with genuine enthusiasm.
"Enjoy your meal. If you require anything else for the evening, please don't hesitate to let me know," the waiter said with a bow before quickly walking away and leaving the couple to their dinner.
Alastor picked up his knife and fork, eagerly cutting into his steak. The silverware glided through the tender meat effortlessly, making his mouth water in anticipation. He speared a piece with his fork and brought it to his lips, savoring the flavors as juices dripped from the corners of his mouth. Alastor licked the stray meat juice before he stole a glance at Fluttershy, who was also enjoying her meal.
"I must admit, this evening is turning out to be quite enjoyable," Alastor remarked between bites.
Fluttershy blushed, her gaze shifting to the table. She silently agreed and picked up her utensils, cutting into her Ribeye. As she savored the first bite, a look of pure bliss crossed her face. The combination of flavors - the subtle sweetness of the meat, the deep richness of the roasted vegetables, and the aromatic mix of rosemary and thyme - was like a symphony for her taste buds.
"I couldn't agree more," she finally spoke, opening her eyes to meet Alastor's amused gaze. "The flavors are so…intense"
As Fluttershy savored the succulent meat, Alastor's eyes stayed fixed on her, watching her every move. He couldn't help but appreciate the way she bit into the tender flesh, a smile curling onto her lips as the juices dripped down her chin.
"Quite intense," Alastor remarked, leaning in closer and wiping away the mess with his thumb. He then slowly licked the flavor off his digit, savoring every moment of it.
Alastor leaned in closer, remarking on the intensity of the situation. He used his thumb to wipe away some of the mess and then slowly licked it off, enjoying the taste thoroughly.
"And incredibly sweet, if I may add," he added, meeting Fluttershy's gaze with a sharp and powerful look. It felt like she had a collar around her neck under his intense gaze. This always sent shivers down her spine.
Fluttershy looked away, feeling her cheeks heat up even more. She nibbled on her lip, unsure of how to answer him. She was captivated by Alastor's charm and energy. There was a dangerous pull to him, but she couldn't help being drawn in.
All of a sudden, the room fell quiet and time seemed to slow down. The clinking of glasses, the murmurs of conversation, and the gentle music from the live orchestra playing in the background all faded into a soft drone
“Alastor…I…I…” She struggled to find the words, her heart beating fast in her chest.
"Go on," Alastor urged, his voice a seductive murmur that sent shivers down her spine. His eyes never strayed from her face as he examined every inch of her, as if trying to commit her to memory.
Gathering her courage, Fluttershy took a deep breath before finally speaking up. "I... I want to go back home... I... I..." Her words faltered as she felt Alastor's hand on hers, holding it in a firm yet gentle grip. She looked up at him, meeting his gaze as he spoke.
"Tell me the truth. What is it that you truly desire, my dear Fluttershy?" Alastor's tone conveyed that he understood what Fluttershy was trying to say but wanted to hear it directly from her.
"It's just me. No one else matters right now." Alastor's words offered support and reassurance as his thumb softly stroked the top of her hand.
Fluttershy found herself needing a little extra courage to say what she wanted…what she desired. The Pegasus Mare quickly downed her entire glass of wine and then, with a newfound resolve, looked up at Alastor.
“I want you…” she finally whispered, her gaze conveying both hesitation and determination. “I want to know what it feels like...to be yours,” she concluded, her words barely audible amidst the background noise.
Alastor couldn't get her words out of his head; they were like a catchy record that kept playing in his mind and ringing in his ears. He grinned even wider as he held Fluttershy's hand tightly, bringing it up to his mouth for a kiss.
"Well, it seems you've become quite bold, my dear Butterfly~" Alastor purred with a hint of arousal. "I suppose this means you wish to skip straight to dessert~?"
His words were laced with a playful, yet seductive, promise that set her heart to race even faster. Could she really be taking this leap?
Fluttershy nodded, her pink cheeks flushing a deeper shade of red. "Yes... I'd like that very much," she admitted softly.
A glint flashed in Alastor’s eyes as he snapped his fingers, within seconds the waiter returned.
“C-Can I help you with anything?” The waiter stuttered, his eyes darting between Fluttershy’s flushed face and Alastor’s triumphant grin.
"Yes," Alastor stated, releasing Fluttershy's hand momentarily to reach for his wallet. "I believe we're finished here. I'd like to settle the bill."
“Would you like your meal to go as well?” The waiter asked, his voice quivering slightly as his gaze flitted uneasily between Alastor's confident facade and Fluttershy's flustered expression.
"No, that won't be necessary," Alastor replied, a note of finality in his voice.
He handed over his card to the waiter who took it and returned swiftly with the receipt. Alastor signed it promptly, putting an end to their night at the restaurant.
The waiter wished them a good evening as he disappeared back into the throng of servers bustling about, leaving Alastor and Fluttershy alone again.
“Shall we?” Alastor asked, extending his arm back towards Fluttershy. She nodded, regaining some control over her rapid heartbeat as she placed her hand in his.
Fluttershy nodded and sheepishly yet excitedly held on to his arm, leaning into his chest as they walked out, heading to the limo that awaited them.
As Fluttershy stepped into the limo, Alastor followed closely behind her. The tension between them seemed to grow with each passing moment, adding to the already uncomfortable heat filling the limo. Unable to resist any longer, Alastor directed Fluttershy to sit on his lap, her body pressed against his chest. He lowered his head and grazed his teeth along her neck, sending shivers of pleasure through her body. But Alastor's desire was insatiable. His hands traced up her smooth thighs and slipped under her dress, teasing her gently through her panties with his fingers.
Fluttershy's breath caught in her throat, barely audible over the gentle hum of the limo's engine. Her heart thumped against her ribcage, beating faster and faster. Alastor's lips moved from her neck to her earlobe, causing shivers to run down her spine. She closed her eyes tightly, her mouth dry as she let out a small whimper. His fingers trailed along the edge of her panties, teasing and tantalizing her with the promise of pleasure to come.
"Alastor," She gasped out his name, her voice trembling as she held onto his arm tightly.
Fluttershy halted the demon's hand just as it was about to reach her most delicate area. She turned towards him, her eyes showing a mix of fear and longing.
"Please, wait," Fluttershy pleaded in a barely audible voice, trying to catch her breath.
He paused and pulled back slightly, but his hand remained on her face. "Yes?" he murmured.
"Change... change back..." Fluttershy whispered, moving her hand to gently touch Alastor's cheek.
Alastor couldn't help but chuckle at Fluttershy's curiosity about his true appearance. He took a step back from her and snapped his fingers with his free hand, causing his disguise to immediately fall away and reveal his real form.
"Be careful, my dear. I might leave a mark or two in this form~" Alastor teased, flashing his wicked smile and baring his sharp shark teeth.
His fingers slid beneath her underwear, finding her sensitive spot with ease. He traced slow, circular movements with his thumb while using two fingers to spread and rub against her slick folds. Fluttershy couldn't help but whimper as the heat and desperation built inside of her. Her body trembled, not from fear, but from the intense anticipation of his touch. Alastor continued his expert caresses, driving Fluttershy to the brink of madness with pleasure. Despite her initial fear of being intimate with a demon, there was an undeniable thrill in the danger that only added fuel to her desire.
A sharp intake of breath escaped Fluttershy's lips as Alastor's touch grew more urgent, his fingers gathering the wetness that had pooled between her legs. His hungry gaze never left her, adding to the anticipation coursing through her body. Every caress and stroke was calculated to ignite the fire within her. A flick of his thumb against her clit sent sparks through her nerves, and she bit down on her lower lip to stifle a moan. Alastor watched closely as pleasure washed over her face, only intensifying his own cravings.
The Demon drew closer, his breath tickling her ear as he spoke in a deep, seductive voice. "You’re enjoying this, aren't you?"
Fluttershy could only nod, unable to find her voice amidst the overwhelming sensations he was creating within her body. Her breathing became erratic as she felt herself getting lost in the moment.
Alastor's hot breath on Fluttershy's ear sent shivers down her spine. She bit her lip and closed her eyes, gripping the seats tightly as Alastor whispered, "I am going to ravish you, my dear~" Her knuckles turned white from the intensity of her grip.
"Y-You jerk~ I-I c-can't even-Ah~!" Fluttershy moaned as Alastor's tongue teased her ear. The pleasure was overwhelming, making her whole body tremble. She tried to calm herself by crossing her legs, but Alastor's fingers only made it worse.
"You're so adorable when you're flustered~" Alastor purred, enjoying how she squirmed under his touch.
The Demon slowly inserted his fingers inside her, causing Fluttershy to gasp in surprise. The sensation was jarring at first, but soon she was overcome with pleasure and began moving her hips against his hand. Alastor's smirk grew wider as he observed her reactions, his fingers continuing to move in a steady rhythm inside of her.
Fluttershy couldn't help but rock her hips against Alastor's skilled fingers, urging him to continue. She gripped his thigh with one hand and reached around to hold the back of his head, wanting to be as close to him as possible. Despite her attempts to bite her lip and stifle her moans, Fluttershy could feel herself giving in to the pleasure. Her other hand rubbed and squeezed Alastor's thighs as she reciprocated the pleasure he was giving her.
Alastor let out a deep chuckle that sent shivers down Fluttershy's spine. "My dear little mare, you truly are insatiable," he remarked, his voice rumbling through her body.
His words wrapped around her like a warm embrace, and his voice was smooth and alluring. "Oh, my dear, if you continue to behave this way, I fear I won't be able to restrain myself~"
"That's W-What I waAAnt~" Fluttershy responded in a breathless, husky tone. Her entire body trembled with desire, her wings fluttering from arousal as she pressed closer to Alastor, her fingers digging into his thigh. She couldn't resist kissing him, her tongue teasing against his sharp fangs as her arousal only intensified.
Alastor eagerly returned the kiss, a deep growl of pleasure vibrating in his throat as their tongues intertwined. His long demonic tongue easily dominated Fluttershy's sweet mouth, savoring her intoxicating blend of innocence and arousal that was unique to her. Her flavor fueled his own burning desires, and he increased the rhythm of his fingers inside her, adding a third one. Fluttershy couldn't help but let out a surprised moan as she arched against Alastor, her nails digging into his thigh as she silently begged for more. Her wings twitched uncontrollably at her sides, a clear indication of her mounting pleasure.
As he observed her reaction, Alastor traced his hand along her body until it rested on her breast. He kneaded the soft flesh with a firm grip, his thumb teasing and stroking her nipple through the fabric of her dress. Fluttershy shivered at his touch, feeling her body respond with arousal as her own wetness coated his fingers.
"Oh, Alastor~" She whimpered, her lips still locked with his.
Alastor's heart raced in his chest, his demonic essence ignited with a fervor that had been dormant for what seemed like an eternity. He could sense Fluttershy pressed against him, and as she let out a throaty moan, he savored her intense desire, her unquenchable craving. It was intoxicating.
So intoxicating that Alastor refused to wait for the limo to reach their destination, Both Alastor and Fluttershy was engulfed in emerald flames and when the flames cleared, they were no longer in the limo but in an Fluttershy’s room. Alastor’s magic spread across the entire room, soon several candles appeared across the room with each one being lit by a enchanting green flame. One of his radios materialized in the corner of the room, playing a slow, sultry jazz tune that complimented the sensual atmosphere.
The music floated through the semi-darkness, weaving a spell of seduction as Alastor's hands continued their exploration of Fluttershy's body. He pulled back from their heated kiss, his crimson eyes flaring in the candlelight as they roamed over her flushed and panting form.
"Simply irresistible," Alastor murmured, his voice a sensual purr that sent shivers racing through Fluttershy's body.
Tracing a path down her neck, his fingers glided along the curve of her collarbone before reaching the gentle slope of her breast, still hidden beneath the fabric of her dress. With his clawed thumbs, he pulled at the edge of her dress, revealing the soft curves of her bosom. Fluttershy's breathing caught in her throat at the sudden exposure, but she made no attempt to cover up. Instead, she bit her lower lip and looked at him with desire-filled aqua eyes.
With practiced skill, Alastor's hands continued their graceful movements, pulling down her dress to reveal more of her exquisite figure. His fingers glided over her exposed belly, sending a shiver of anticipation through her body. His touch was both seductive and comforting - gentle yet firm, stirring up desire within Fluttershy. She felt herself becoming overwhelmed by the intensity of his caresses, the warmth of her body intensifying in response. The sensation of his clawed hands against her skin ignited a primal urge she had never experienced before.
"Alastor~" she exhaled, her voice barely heard above the sultry jazz notes that now enveloped them.
As his fingers trailed down her back, Fluttershy couldn't help but shiver with excitement. Alastor's hand then moved to her waist and gently stroked her behind. Fluttershy gasped and startled at his touch, but she didn't pull away. In fact, she pressed herself closer to him, inviting more of his touch.
"Why..." Fluttershy thought in her mind as her body writhed and shivered under Alastor's touch. "Why do I feel this way with you...?"
As Alastor helped her remove her clothing, she couldn't help but think of the demon standing before her. He was infamous for his cruelty, ruthlessness, and unquenchable thirst for chaos. Yet from the moment she met him, he had turned her toxic life into a sweet elixir. He liberated her from many things - her demanding job, the abuse from her boss and colleagues, her damaging addiction to drugs, and even her crippling fear of intimacy. Incredibly, Alastor had given her all the good things in her life, including their half-demon daughter. He could have easily abandoned them or used them for his own devious plans, but instead he chose to keep them by his side and share his life and power with them. While he certainly wasn't perfect and had his own flaws and cruel tendencies, she found herself irresistibly drawn into his world of chaos and love.
After Fluttershy's dress dropped to the ground, she gingerly stepped away and started to unbutton Alastor's clothes, her hands shivering slightly. But Alastor stopped her and held her hands in his own.
"Let me help you," he said as his magical energy enveloped them both, causing their clothes to disappear until they stood before each other, completely bare.
Fluttershy was touched by the sight of Alastor's scarred body, and when she looked into his eyes, she could have sworn she saw a glimpse of vulnerability in the Demon. Gently, she placed her hands on his chest and pushed him back onto her bed. Climbing on top of him, her delicate frame barely made a dent against his strong physique. For a moment, they simply stared at each other, a wordless understanding passing between them before Fluttershy finally broke the silence with her words.
“I think I’ve finally figured it out,” Fluttershy whispered, her voice barely audible.
“And what might that be, my dear butterfly?” Alastor asked, his voice filled with both curiosity and amusement. "Why do you believe I am the perfect match for you?"
Fluttershy halted, her fingers tracing the scars on his chest softly. "Because," she whispered, "you're just as broken as I am... both mentally and physically... and that's what makes us perfect for each other."
"Why force two pieces to fit…” Alastor murmured in agreement, his voice smooth as honey, yet heavy with resonance. “When we can shatter and fall into place together?"
A warm glow lit up Fluttershy's face and tears welled in her eyes, but she held them back, not wanting to break the moment. Her hand gently stroked Alastor's cheek as she looked into his beautiful eyes. She felt a sense of tranquility engulf her, a feeling of safety and love that she had never experienced before. There were so many things she wanted to say to him, so much she wanted him to know, but the words wouldn't come. Instead, she let her actions speak for themselves. She wrapped her arms around his neck and pressed her lips to his, letting out a blissful moan.
The kiss from Alastor ignited a fiery passion within her that sent her heart racing. His hands explored her body, delicately tracing the contours of her spine beneath her downy fur. Their lips stayed locked together, two souls merging in an unspoken declaration of love and deep understanding.
As their lips intertwined in a passionate kiss, Fluttershy couldn't help but melt into the moment. She pressed herself closer to Alastor, eager for more. Alastor responded with a low moan as his hands explored her back and traveled down to her legs. He lifted and spread them against his sides, grinding against her growing arousal. They broke the kiss briefly to catch their breath before diving back in, their bodies on fire with desire. When they finally parted again, Fluttershy let out an excited yelp as she felt something smack against her rear. Turning to look, she saw Alastor's erect cock brushing against her ass teasingly.
Alastor's lips twisted into a sly grin. "I've been curious, my Dear..." he began, his voice a low whisper that sent shivers down her spine. "Just how good were you at your job?"
Fluttershy smiled and fluttered her long lashes, her eyes like gentle butterflies as she leaned in closer to Alastor's ear.
"Let me demonstrate," she purred, planting a kiss on his cheek before slowly swiveling her hips against his growing arousal. Her legs wrapped around his waist, bringing her even closer to him. Fluttershy then trailed soft kisses down Alastor's neck, her delicate hands exploring his back and neck.
"Allow me to show you paradise~" she moaned delicately.
Fluttershy slowly lowered herself onto her lover's throbbing manhood, feeling a rush of pleasure as she took him in, inch by inch. Her eyes closed and a deep groan escaped from her lips as they moved together in perfect harmony. Alastor's fingers dug into her soft fur, pulling her closer to him with each thrust. He let out a possessive growl as Fluttershy eagerly took all eleven inches of him inside her hot body, sending intense waves of ecstasy coursing through them both.
“Oh…God~” Fluttershy moaned and arched her back, spreading her wings wide as she surrendered to the pleasure.
Alastor clenched his jaw and gripped onto the sheets, suppressing a loud groan that almost slipped from his lips. The feeling of Fluttershy's tightness surrounding him was like a wave of pure ecstasy crashing over him.
"Not God, my Dear~" Alastor playfully remarked as he took hold of Fluttershy's hips and flipped them over, now placing her on her back.
Alastor slowly backed up his hips, having to be a bit forceful as Fluttershy gripped his shaft fiercely like a snake, until only the tip remained inside. With a low, primal grunt Alastor thrusted his hips forward, his cock pushing inside her and spreading her walls. Feeling every inch of Alastor's cock stretching out her walls, her entire body trembling with pleasure. Fluttershy felt a jolt wash over her when Alastor said cock kissed her cervix. The feeling made her legs weak as they wrapped around Alastor.
"Alastor~ A-Ah~"
"It's no wonder Filthy didn't want to let you go," Alastor whispered in her ear, gently nibbling on her earlobe. "You're absolutely divine."
Fluttershy whimpered as he continued his slow, deep thrusts. Each movement was calculated, each groan from her and grunt from him perfectly in time with the other. This was a first for Fluttershy, Everyone she’d been with was always so forceful and quick, eager to finish within minutes. But Alastor was different. He took his time, savored every inch of her body, ensuring every stroke was filled with purpose, each touch designed to make her body sing with euphoria. The sheets below them grew damp with their sweat, their bodies rocking rhythmically against each other. Fluttershy's moans grew louder, echoing throughout the room, as Alastor picked up his pace. His sharp claws scratching against her soft fur as he held onto her, overwhelmed by the pleasure that coursed through him.
“Alastor, I’m so close,” Fluttershy whimpered, her eyes fluttering shut as she desperately clung to him.
“Are you now?~” Alastor said reaching behind his head and grabbing Fluttershy’s wrists before pinning them above her head. His crimson eyes bore into hers as he quickened his pace slightly, just enough to keep her on the edge.
"Please," she panted, writhing on the bed beneath him. "Please!"
“Tell me?~” Alastor teased, his voice dropping to a husky whisper before dragging his tongue along the delicate curve of her neck. "Tell me who owns you?”
"Y-you... You do, Alastor," Fluttershy confessed, her voice barely above a whisper.
A wicked grin spread across Alastor's face at her confession. He tightened his grip on her wrists, the sharp points of his nails digging into the soft flesh as he pushed himself deeper within her.
"Yes, I do," Alastor affirmed, his voice carrying an intoxicating mix of delight and surprise. "And don't you ever forget that."
His claws scraped lightly against her skin, causing Fluttershy to gasp as a wave of pleasure-pain washed over her. That was the final push she needed, her eyes rolling back as she was overcome with ecstasy.
“I’m C-cuming," she managed to gasp out, her entire body shaking as Alastor's thrusts became more erratic.
"Good girl," Alastor huskily praised, his pace not slowing as he helped her ride out her climax. Her body tightened around him, the sensation pushing him to the edge alongside her.
With a triumphant roar, Alastor reached his own peak, his body shuddering as he let out a deep, guttural growl. His release came in a series of powerful waves, his grip on Fluttershy’s wrists tightening even more as he spilled his essence within her. Their bodies trembled together, riding out the throes of ecstasy before finally collapsing in a tangled heap.
“I…I…I Love..you, Alastor…” Fluttershy whispered, her voice shaky and filled with raw emotion. The words hung in the air between them, echoing in the silent room.
Laying side by side, Alastor turned his head to gaze at her, his crimson eyes softening at her confession. A hint of surprise was evident in his expression as he gently caressed her flushed cheek with the back of his hand.
"Fluttershy..." He began, the name rolling off his tongue like a sacred prayer. “I…I love you too”
The silence of the night enveloped them as they drifted off together, Fluttershy nestled against Alastor's chest, his arms wrapped protectively around her. Her soft breathing eventually slowed to a peaceful rhythm, matching the gentle rise and fall of his chest. They remained that way for hours, finding solace in each other's warmth.
Afterwards, in the peacefulness of the night, Alastor delicately untangled himself from their entwined bodies, making sure not to disturb her slumber. The bright light from the bathroom created sharp shadows on his face as he stood in front of the mirror. He splashed his face with cold water, tiny droplets clinging to his eyelashes as he examined his reflection. His hands tightened around the edges of the sink, his knuckles turning white with stress.
At last, the Deal between Alastor and Fluttershy was finally complete. She had finally experienced True love, a love that was untainted by lust or deceit. All the Demon needed to do now was collect his prize...and then kill her.
Alastor spoke to his reflection in the mirror, "A deal's a deal, and I always keep my word."
But his signature smile, which was usually so effortless and captivating, now appeared strained. It was as if he was desperately trying to hold onto it like a mask. He splashed more water onto his face, watching as his hands shook and his smile wavered ever so slightly.
"Fluttershy will understand; she agreed to this in the first place. It'll be easy for her. So... so easy." Alastor's voice faltered, his eyes quivering as he relived their memories together. His hands shook uncontrollably, overwhelmed by emotions and thoughts of their time spent together.
He couldn't help but think back to their first encounter. She had captured his heart with her pure kindness and gentle nature. He also remembered all the times he had stood by her side, protecting her from her abusive boss. But the memories that hurt the most were the ones they shared together, especially the birth of their daughter Scarlett. The pain of those moments felt like a sharp needle piercing his heart, leaving him gasping for air. Closing his eyes, he could still feel the warmth of Fluttershy in his arms, her soft laughter as he tickled Scarlett. These memories were too precious, too sacred to be lost in the abyss of time.
"Damn it all," He muttered under his breath with frustration. “I must…I have to…I…”
Alastor's words trailed off as he felt something wet trickling down his cheeks. Touching his face with a shaking hand, he pulled it back to see tears glistening in the harsh light. He was crying.
He couldn't help but let out a bitter chuckle as he stared at his own reflection. "A crying demon... Isn’t that a sight?."
He looked at his trembling hands, the same ones that held Fluttershy and Scarlett in numerous moments of love and laughter. Now, they were poised to betray everything he held dear.
"Th-there's got to be another way," he stammered, gripping the sink tighter. His knuckles turned even whiter, until the porcelain cracked beneath his grasp.
“I can’t kill her. I can’t,” Alastor muttered to himself frantically. “I WON’T!”
Emotions flooded through Alastor, causing his magic to erupt in a burst of power. The bathroom mirror couldn't handle the raw energy and shattered into countless shards that rained down like dangerous snowflakes. Amidst the chaos, he caught glimpses of his own horrified expression reflected in the broken glass. A soft knock on the bathroom door jolted him back to reality, the sound ringing out like a gunshot in the otherwise silent room.
"Daddy?" Scarlett's pure voice cut through his tumultuous thoughts, and he froze as she opened the door.
"Scarlett…" Alastor whispered to his daughter, Scarlett, as he picked her up to keep her from stepping on the shattered glass scattered across the floor. "What are you doing out of bed at this hour?"
"I... I felt your magic and heard a loud noise," she replied, gripping onto him with her small fingers. "It scared me."
"Shh... It's okay, my little doe," Alastor managed to say, his voice wavering.
He held Scarlett tightly, carrying her as he carefully navigated through the broken mirror shards on the bathroom floor. Once outside, he led her back to her bedroom, making sure to shield his tear-stained face from her view. He tucked her into bed with trembling hands, gently pulling up the soft pink blanket to cover her small frame. She gazed up at him with those innocent, doe-like eyes that were so similar to her mother's - it was almost too much to bear. Alastor tenderly brushed aside some of Scarlett's hair as she let out a sleepy yawn, struggling to keep her
In a soft, weary voice, Scarlett spoke up. "Daddy?"
Alastor answered in a low tone, careful not to disturb her peaceful state. "Yes, my sweet doe?"
She held onto him with her small hand, the size difference between them obvious but comfortable. "You'll always be by our side, right? You won't ever leave us?"
Her words cut Alastor deeper than any physical wound ever could. Scarlett, the child he had helped raise alongside Fluttershy. The daughter he had tucked into bed every night. The daughter he had laughed and played with. The daughter he will teach everything he knew about magic when the time was right. She was his...his...
"Daddy?" Scarlett's voice broke through Alastor's thoughts. He smiled down at her and gently kissed her forehead.
"I will always be here for you, my little one. My precious daughter." Alastor replied, rubbing her back soothingly. "Now go to sleep, my darling."
"Daddy...can you sing me a lullaby?" Scarlett's words were barely audible as she drifted towards sleep.
Alastor nodded with a tender smile, his expression growing softer. "Of course, my little doe."
Static began to fill Scarlett's room as Alastor's voice crackled through the air, taking on that distinctive radio quality he was known for. The sound was warm and rich, like vintage vinyl.
"It always seems more quiet in the dark," Alastor began, his voice carrying that slight echo of old-time radio broadcasts. "It always feels so stark...how silence grows under the moon."
The shadows in Scarlett's room came to life, twisting and contorting into intricate shapes. Celestial bodies materialized on her walls - constellations taking form with dark tendrils weaving together to create the outlines. One shadow, larger than the rest, formed into a moon with static crackling around its edges; Alastor's magic at work. The shadows continued to shift and morph, creating new patterns in the celestial display. The stars rearranged themselves into the proud silhouette of a buck, standing guard over a delicate constellation shaped like a doe. Scarlett couldn't help but widen her eyes in amazement as she watched the celestial deer, her grasp on Alastor's hand loosening slightly in awe.
"Constellations gone so soon..." Alastor continued, his voice carrying that slight feedback hum of radio waves as the shadow-stars began to shift and move, the deer constellations appearing to nuzzle each other before dissolving back into traditional star patterns.
"I used to think that I was bold," Alastor sang, his eyes fixed on the shadow-moon he'd created, "I used to think love would be fun. Now all my stories have been told, except for one."
As he ran his hand through Scarlett's soft locks, red sigils began to glow faintly in the air, their eldritch light mixing with the shadows to create an ethereal atmosphere. Her breathing slowed, becoming deep and even as sleep began to take hold.
"As the stars start to align," he continued, his voice taking on that multilayered quality unique to his radio demon nature, "I hope you take it as a sign...you'll be okay, everything will be fine."
The shadows twisted and danced across the walls, now taking the shapes of radio waves that pulsed in rhythm with his song. Small portals opened and closed in the corners of the room, each one showing glimpses of starlit skies from different regions.
"And if the seven hells collapse, although the day could be my last," Alastor sang, his shadow-self joining in harmony with his voice. "You will be okay. When I'm gone you'll be okay."
The shadows began to coalesce, merging with the eldritch sigils to create moving scenes from their shared memories. Each shadow-scene was accompanied by faint radio static and the warm crackle of vintage broadcasts, creating a symphony of sound and shadow.
"And when creation goes to die, you can find me in the sky," Alastor's voice echoed with otherworldly resonance, the shadows growing softer as he concluded, "Upon the last day, you will be okay."
As his voice faded to a whisper, the shadows retreated to the corners of the room, leaving only the gentle silhouettes of the buck and doe constellations above Scarlett's bed, their edges flickering with soft static. Alastor looked down at his sleeping daughter, her peaceful face illuminated by the faint red glow of his remaining sigils.
"You'll be okay," Alastor repeated one final time, his voice carrying that slight radio distortion that made it uniquely his.
He pressed a kiss to her forehead, his shadow-self mimicking the gesture on the wall behind them. Making sure she was fully tucked in, Alastor stood and walked to the door. He paused in the doorway, where his shadow stretched across the floor to gently brush against Scarlett's sleeping form.
"Goodnight, my little doe," he whispered, his words accompanied by a final soft crackle of radio static as he closed the door, the buck and doe constellations finally fading into darkness.
Author's Note
Another 10,000-word chapter down. Wow, I'm on a roll this month! I hope you enjoyed it; I promised some passionate love in this one. My apologies if you were expecting more graphic sex scenes. For the next chapter, I think I'll take a break from Alastor and Fluttershy and instead focus on either another past deal or a Canterlot-based chapter.
Question Time Bitches!!!
Thanks for yet another awesome chapter!
So is Rarity going to become an alcoholic to deal with the trauma of Alastor's threat or will someone help her before that happens?
No. Rarity will have someone comfort her the same day she woke up with a hangover
There is one thing i am wondering at this point. Has the details of fluttershy's deal with alastor changed? From what it looks like alastor and charlie care deeply (if not outright love) for fluttershy and scarlet. But the deal was that fluttershy would be killed after experiencing true love if i'm not misremembering, and that seems to have been fulfilled at this point. So i see either 2 options, 1 alastor has changed the details or is infinitely delaying that part of the deal, or 2 he is going to kill her at the most heart-wrenching moment possible. So the question is do alastor still intend to kill fluttershy or has he changed his mind.
No. Alastor does not plan to kill her...even if he'll live to regret it
That's all the questions and remember if you want to ask something go for it. I will always address your questions right down here.
And As Always, Stay Tuned Folks
Edit: 1/10/25
So I'm going to take a bit of a break from this website to work on some of my Non-MLP fanfictions. I apologize and I hope you guys can understand. Thank you.
Chapter 25: Shadows of Truth
High above the sky, The gilded City of Canterlot stood, a beacon of majesty for all to see. Its towering spires, cast in white marble and adorned with glinting gold, reached out towards the heavens – each one a testament to the grandeur of the city's ancient architects. The sun's rays spread a golden-orange glow over the city, courtesy of Daybreaker. Today, however, the sun seemed to blaze with an intensity hotter than usual.
Inside the throne room, Daybreaker sat upon her throne, her fiery mane undulating and casting a warm, golden light across the room. Her throne which was forged from a heat resistant metal and even enchanted to withstand the fires of her very form, was on the verge of melting as she read a report from one of her Sun Knight Captain. The report burst into flames as she glared as Shining Armor.
“5 years…” Daybreaker seethed, her eyes flickering like molten gold. “It has been five years since the Radio Demon has shown himself, Captain Armor”
"Yes, my Empress," acknowledged Shining Armor, his voice steady despite the tension that hung in the air. His polished armor glistened under Daybreaker's incandescent presence. "He is as elusive as ever."
The captain’s answer did little to quell Daybreaker's growing irritation. Her flaming mane flared as she rose from her throne.
“I don’t want him gone!” Daybreaker roared, the searing flames of her mane illuminating her fury for all to see. "I want him and his corruption to die!"
The enraged command echoed through the vast throne room, bouncing off the marble walls with an intensity that made Shining Armor flinch.
“We are trying to locate the Radio Demon, Your Majesty," Shining Armor responded, his voice firm despite the palpable eruption of rage from the empress.
Daybreaker was further enraged, to the point where she drew the pistol from her prosthetic arm and fired several rounds into the Captains armor.
“TRYING! TRYING!” Daybreaker screamed, the shots reverberating throughout the chamber with ear-splitting echoes. Each bullet, blazing with the intensity of a miniature sun, slammed into the captain's armor, denting and scorching but not penetrating.
"IS NOT GOOD ENOUGH!" Her booming voice surpassed the loudness of her fiery pistol. “A demon who relished in death, carnage, and chaos, does not simple disappear for five years Captain!”
"Your fury is noted, my Empress," Shining Armor replied, his voice barely a whisper against Daybreaker's deafening rage.
“My Fury doesn’t even begin to cover it, Captain!” Daybreaker Roared, the flames of her mane burning hotter and brighter. “First you manage to wound but not kill Alastor, then you not only let him get away but lose your sword…”
The enraged mare then grabbed the pony by his golden bracer. “…And now, you fail me by not locating him!"
Daybreaker’s anger was reaching its breaking point as the metal armor she held in her grip was starting to melt, causing Shining Armor to grit his teeth against the searing pain. His eyes, however, remained steady, meeting Daybreaker's wrathful gaze with unwavering resolve.
"Your Majesty," he began, his voice strained but clear over the crackling of the melting gold and the raging flames. "I assure you, every resource at our disposal is being used to find him”
Daybreaker let go of Shining Armor’s arm and stepped back, the flames of her mane swirling around her like an enraged tornado of fire and fury. Her angry breaths echoed through the silence that had descended on the throne room, each inhale and exhale a hauntingly clear reminder of her wrath.
“Every resource…” She muttered, her words etching into the air as she reached down and picked the stallion off the floor by his neck.
Daybreaker dragged the Sun Knight captain behind her throne before stepping out onto the balcony that overlooked her Eden, with a calculated hand, the Alicorn of the Sun held Shining Armor over the edgeof the precipice. The kingdom sprawled out beneath them, bathed in the harsh light of her sun.
"Look at them," she commanded, her voice less a roar and more a deadly whisper. "Look at my subjects, Captain. Look at the peace they are experiencing, the tranquility they enjoy under my reign.”
Shining Armor struggled, but he managed to turn his gaze towards the kingdom below. The city streets were bustling with ponies going about their daily lives, completely oblivious to the drama unfolding high above them. Markets were churning with vendors hawking their wares, children playing in the parks, families sharing meals in the comfort.
“The Longer it takes to kill the Radio Demon, the longer that tranquility is threatened,” Daybreaker continued, her voice a dangerous purr. "My subjects' peace is in your hands, captain. You must rectify the chaos you've allowed to persist.”
She then threw Shining Armor back onto the balcony floor, the strength of her throw leaving him winded.
Shining Armor slowly pushed himself back up to his feet and cleared his throat, his hand rubbing against his neck as he winced, Daybreaker nearly scorching his neck as he could still feel the heat from her hand.
"I will not fail you, your majesty. I will personally bring Alastor to you once we find him." Shining Armor said as he saluted her.
"Do not fail me, Captain. Or you shall feel the full wrath of the sun." Daybreaker warned him as she looked over her subjects. Her mane is still burning bright with her rage as the heat radiating from her could be felt even outside the throne room. Shining Armor bowed and quickly hurried off, to find Alastor and to get away from Daybreaker to avoid her wrath for just a while longer.
However, before he could leave, Daybreaker spoke up again. “Oh and while you are searching for the Radio Demon, I’d like for you to find the location your sister as well”
Shining Armor froze in his steps, the words of his sovereign echoing in his ears. He turned around slowly, his heart pounding loudly in his chest. "What... what do you need with Twilight?" he asked.
Daybreaker's smile was a cruel thing. “I do not need anything from one who has fled my Eden” Daybreaker replied, her voice cold and emotionless. "However, I demand what she stole to be returned immediately."
“My I ask what my foolish sister stole from you, your majesty?” Shining Armor asked, trying to keep his voice steady.
The Alicorn gave the pony a side glare, her eyes alight with an eerie, fiery glow. "Your sister has taken something very precious to me," she said cryptically, the ends of her flaming mane flickering like a volatile flame. "That is all you need know, Captain Armor ”
Shining Armor knelt before Daybreaker, his voice spoke with unwavering loyalty. “It shall be done, your majesty. my traitorous sister will be found, and your property returned.”
Daybreaker's eyes blazed brighter, "See that it is, Shining Armor. You may take leave now."
Saluting, he turned and marched out of the throne room, his armor clinking with each determined step. With each step his mind was on his foolish younger sibling, Not only had she left the paradise they lived in but also stolen from her beloved mentor, Not only that…She took the Spike and Smolder, the servants of their family, with her.
“What in Daybreaker’s Sun were you thinking, Twilight?” Shining armor muttered to himself as he stalked the palace halls.
As Shining Armor left, Daybreaker surveyed the near-empty throne room, her mind swirling with dark thoughts. She knew that Twilight was clever and resourceful, likely hidden away in the corners of this world yet untouched by Daybreaker's fiery reign.
“Alastor’s corruption is vast indeed,” Daybreaker growled as she gripped the balcony’s railing. “It has once again made it’s way into my Eden and turned another one of my students against me”
She cast her gaze out over the kingdom she’d tirelessly created, her eyes filled with a fiery determination that rivalled the burning sun overhead. It was a kingdom primed for absolute order and perfect harmony, it was an Eden in the truest sense of the word. Yet, as she stood there, staring out at her dominion, she felt the sharp sting of betrayal. A betrayal that came from one she had nurtured and guided, one she considered akin to her own blood.
“Twilight Sparkle,” Daybreaker said, her voice barely more than a whisper. “Why have you forsaken me, Just as Sunset did all those years ago?" Her voice echoed through the empty throne room, as loud and as harsh as a thunderous storm.
Her thoughts were disrupted by a soft knock on the colossal doors of the throne room. "Enter," she commanded, her voice reverberating off the high arching walls.
The doors creaked open and a petite alicorn timidly entered the room. It was Flurry Heart, the daughter of Captain Armor and Princess Cadance, her soft pink and purple hues contrasting starkly with the harsh red and orange of Daybreaker’s reign.
“Flurry…” Daybreaker softened, her hardness melting away at the sight of the young princess. "What brings you here?"
“The Children that I’ve been tasked with educating, they are questioning the need to stay in Canterlot…” Flurry Heart said, her voice wavering with uncertainty. “They are asking what is out there…on the surface below”
“There is nothing below us but chaos and discord, my dear," Daybreaker responded, her voice steady yet brimming with concealed emotion. "We have built this paradise to shield us from the darkness that lies beneath.”
Flurry Heart looked up at the queen, her turquoise eyes filled with concern and curiosity. "But Auntie Daybreaker, they keep asking about Nightmare Moon and Sunset Shimmer. They want to know why they left, why they chose chaos over your paradise."
Daybreaker's expression hardened, her eyes blazing brighter for a moment. "Such talk is dangerous, Flurry Heart," she warned. "It undermines the harmony we've created here."
The teen Alicorn nervously shifted her weight, her hooves tapping against the marbled floor. "I know, Auntie... but they're curious. And... and I must admit, I am too."
"Tell them the truth," Daybreaker said firmly. "They chose discord over order, chaos over harmony. They chose to turn their backs on our kingdom and its values."
“But…” Flurry began only for her words to be cut off by Daybreaker.
"No 'buts', Flurry Heart," Daybreaker interrupted sternly, her eyes blazing with a fiery light. "You are of royal blood. You have a duty to uphold the order and stability of our kingdom. Curiosity can lead to chaos, and chaos is what we aim to avoid at all costs."
Flurry Heart swallowed hard, her gaze dropping to the floor. "Yes, Auntie Daybreaker."
Daybreaker softened her gaze slightly, understanding the burden of the young alicorn. "Flurry," she said more gently now, "I understand this is difficult. But remember that not all questions have answers that bring comfort.”
“Then…Then why do you send My Father as well as all of the Knights of the Sun to the world below?” Flurry Heart asked, looking back up at Daybreaker.
Daybreaker paused, caught off guard by the question. "It is not a decision taken lightly," she said after a heavy silence. "Your father, the Knights of the Sun’s Captain leads his loyal soldiers to combat the corruption that the Radio Demon spreads”
Daybreaker continued. “Our responsibility doesn't end at the borders of our kingdom. We strive to bring order, not just in our paradise, but also to the chaotic world below. It’s a dangerous task only those who are truly brave and committed can undertake."
“I understand, Auntie," Flurry Heart nodded, absorbing the heavy truths being imparted to her.
“Then make your students understand, Flurry Heart," Daybreaker commanded, her tone brooking no argument. "You must make them see that the path we tread is one of necessity, not of choice. Our duty is to keep the balance of order and chaos. We cannot allow the shadows of Nightmare Moon or even Alastor to darken our world again."
"Yes, Auntie Daybreaker. I-I apologize for my rude questioning." Flurry lowered her head in both a sign of respect and also a bit of fear. Daybreaker saw this display and sighed softly, taking a more gentle facial expression.
"Flurry Heart, I know things don't make much sense, but it's because they didn't make sense in the first place. I cannot understand why my sister and Sunset chose chaos because I simply cannot see any sensible reason to do so. Not every answer will make sense, nor will any answer give us a sense of peace. But we mustn't let their actions affect our people and bring ruin to all we hold dear." Daybreaker placed a hand on Flurry's shoulder and looked her in her eyes.
"Remain strong, my shining crystal. You are a symbol to our people." Daybreaker said. Flurry listened to her words and took a deep breath, nodding her head.
"Thank you for your wisdom, Auntie. I will do my best to live up to your expectations." Flurry bowed.
"I know you will."
Once Flurry left, Daybreaker turned her gaze to the city outside and then looked beyond the gilded cities borders…to the Equestria she wished cleansed. her thoughts however were more about her former student.
“You may decide to run Twilight, but make no mistake…” Daybreaker murmured, her fiery gaze hardening upon the far horizon, "You cannot hide from the light…and I will have what was stolen returned…”
Daybreaker stood for a moment, allowing the last of her words to hang in the heavy air before she took to her resplendent wings. The sun itself seemed to flinch as she took flight, her aura a living flame that illuminated the dusky skyline.
“But unlike Sunset, You will not escape and you will pay for your crimes"
Around mid afternoon, Both Alastor and Fluttershy were sitting inside their Limo. Both were enjoying the Ride to Rarity’s home/business.
“So…you fully intend to tell your pony friend about our deal?” Alastor asked Fluttershy, who was busy looking out the window at the passing scenery. She turned to him with a soft smile.
"Yes, I do," she responded, her voice barely more than a whisper in the quiet hum of the limo. "Rarity is not just my friend, she is family. And as you should know, Alastor, families share their burdens and their blessings. She deserves to know."
“And what of your parents?” Alastor asked with a smirk on his lips. “Didn’t they deserve to know everything?”
“That…That was different” Fluttershy responded, a shadow coming over her gentle expression. “I…Just didn’t have the heart to tell them”
“Hmm,” Alastor mused as the limo slowed to a stop.
The Undead Driver opened the door, and Fluttershy took a deep breath before stepping out. Alastor followed her, his crimson eyes scanning the elaborate boutique. He observed the meticulous attention to detail in its design, a testament to Rarity’s refinement and dedication to her craft.
Inside of Carousel Boutique, Rarity was pacing the marble floor, her disheveled purple mane a clear indication of her current state of mind. A pair of dark glasses clung to her face while a glass with fizzing water was clenched in her hand.
“Rarity?” Fluttershy called tentatively, stepping into the boutique with Alastor close behind her.
The Unicorn flinched from the sudden noise as she placed a hand to her aching head. "Darling, could you keep it down?" she asked, her voice hoarse. "I’m not really in the mood for company"
Fluttershy opened her mouth to speak but hesitated, unsure of what she could say or what to do. Remembering the shock and horror on Rarity's face after she had discovered that she was dating Alastor, the infamous Radio Demon.
Alastor, however, wasn't as patient as Fluttershy as he immediately walked up to Rarity.
"Goodness, you look like a showgirl after performing five shows in one night." Alastor said as he then took a whiff of Rarity's breath. "And smell like one, too." Rarity's eyes widened upon hearing Alastor's voice and she looked up at him, her entire body turning white, well more white than she normally is, as she trembled with undeniable fear.
"Relax, darling," Alastor drawled, leaning casually against his cane. "I'm not here to cause trouble... yet." His crimson gaze flicked over to Fluttershy, who was wringing her hands nervously. "Isn't that right, dear?"
Fluttershy nodded swiftly, though her wide eyes were still fixed on Rarity. "Y-Yes," she stammered, stepping forward from the door. "We just came to... to talk, Rarity."
"T-T-Talk... I-I didn't say anything. I-I said nothing to no pony." Rarity forced the words out despite the pain she felt in her throat.
"Oh dear, we didn't come for that. Besides, even if you did plan on telling anyone I would be known." Alastor said, the sound of static echoing around him as his eyes turned into radio dials. Rarity whimpered and stepped back in fear, but thankfully Fluttershy was there to deescalate things.
"Wait! We didn't come because of that! We just wanted to talk. I... I owe you an explanation." Fluttershy said with a guilty look in her eyes.
Rarity, still trembling, finally steadied her gaze on Fluttershy. Her eyes widened slightly in anticipation but she nodded nonetheless, motioning for the Pegasus to continue.
Fluttershy took a deep breath and began to explain. “You know how I was…my job…”
"Yes, I know about your old job," Rarity said quickly, not wanting to dwell on the uncomfortable subject. She glanced nervously at Alastor before focusing back on Fluttershy. "But what does that have to do with...him?"
“About a year before Scarlett was born, I was feeling down…so much so that I wanted to kill myself” Fluttershy admitted, her voice barely above a whisper.
The realization that her friend, someone who Rarity always saw as this positive, sweet, kind soul, could be capable of even thinking of such an act shook her to her core. Her eyes widened in shock with the potential idea that Rarity could've found Fluttershy dead in her cottage or read about her death in the papers. Just the mere idea of it made Rarity tremble as she tried to scream, only to let out a horrendous cough. The sound alone almost made it seem Rarity was dying.
“Fluttershy…Please tell me you are joking?!” Rarity gasped, clutching her chest as she fought to regain her breath. “You can't possibly mean that! You’ve always been so… so full of life!”
“I-I wasn’t,” Fluttershy replied, tears glistening in her eyes. “I was in a dark place, Rarity. I thought there was no other escape other then death”
“Which seemed to grow more when we crossed paths,” Alastor interjected, his voice a mixture of static and gravity that sent shivers down Rarity's spine. “When we met she practically begged me for death, I was quite shocked…most beg me for mercy”
“That night, I made a deal with Alastor,” Fluttershy continued, her voice trembling but resolute. “In exchange for feeling true love, I’d allow Alastor to kill me in whatever manner he wanted”
Rarity's mouth hung open in shock, her hangover momentarily forgotten. "YOU MADE A DEAL WITH THE RADIO DEMON TO... TO WHAT?" she shrieked, her voice cracking with a mix of horror and disbelief. She whirled to face Alastor, then back to Fluttershy, her body trembling.
"Are you out of your MIND?" Rarity continued, her voice rising with each word. "A deal? With HIM?" She jabbed a shaking finger in Alastor's direction. "The most feared demon in Equestria, the Radio Demon who's known for torturing souls, and you just... just BARGAINED with him?"
Fluttershy looked down, her wings drooping. "I was desperate, Rarity. You don't understand how low I had fallen."
"Then MAKE ME understand!" Rarity demanded, her dramatic flair mixing with genuine concern. "What possible price could Alastor have asked for?"
A soft, almost wistful smile crossed Fluttershy's face. "He wanted a song," she said quietly. "Just one song, sung with my true voice."
Alastor's eyes gleamed with a mixture of remembered pleasure and anticipation. "Not just any song," he interjected, his voice taking on a musical quality. "An angelic performance that would capture the very essence of her soul."
Rarity blinked, confusion replacing her initial anger. "A song? That's... that's it?" She looked skeptical, sensing there was more to the story than just a simple musical request.
“That’s all Alastor has asked for,” Fluttershy said with a tremor in her voice.
“You…You slept with a demon…for a song?” Rarity stammered, her disbelief palpable.
Fluttershy’s face flushed red, “How…how did you know?”
“Your daughter is Half-Demon, Fluttershy!” Rarity exclaimed, unable to keep the tremor from her voice.
Fluttershy's voice trembled as she corrected herself, "O-oh, right, Scarlett." Her face flushed even darker as she realized her friend had no knowledge of the previous night's events. “Scarlett’s Birth…is a different story entirely."
"Different how?" Rarity pressed, her earlier anger giving way to a deep-rooted concern.
She could see the way Fluttershy’s hands trembled, the flicker of shame in her eyes as she tried to gather the threads of this complicated tale.
“Before I left my job……” Fluttershy continued, her voice wavering but determined. “I got pregnant,”
"Pregnant? You mean Scarlett is…?" Rarity questioned, still baffled that her friend had some strangers child.
"Before when I-I was... Working, I had a minotaur as a client.. He... He was the one who got me pregnant." Fluttershy confessed, holding herself as she felt disgusted just mentioning that brute.
"What... What happened? Did you...." Rarity covered her mouth as her mind was racing with different possibilities of what Fluttershy did next.
“I left my job, and Alastor helped me in getting my contract from Filthy,” Fluttershy explained, her voice steadying slightly as she recalled the events. "Once freed, I burned and destroyed every link to my past and that included Scarlett”
Rarity’s heart sank. “You what?!” she gasped, horrified at the implication. “But Fluttershy, that… that is monstrous! She’s your daughter!”
“No!” Fluttershy interrupted, her eyes wide with anguish. “Not like that! I didn’t literally hurt her; I meant I broke every connection to that life! I wanted to keep her safe from the demons of my past—both metaphorically and literally!” Her voice cracked as she pressed a hand to her forehead, struggling against the flood of emotions.
Alastor's laughter rumbled softly, the static in his voice intensifying as he leaned in closer. "She couldn't get rid of that part of her past, but I could," the Radio Demon boasted with a twisted sense of satisfaction. "And in return, she made another deal with me."
“You…You made another deal with him?!” Rarity felt the chill creep down her spine, her heart racing as she took a step back. “What was it this time, Fluttershy? What could possibly justify—”
“In return for destroying the Minotuar’s essence from her womb…” Alastor grin widened as he found such delight in the tension growing between the two friends. “She gave me…Everything ,”
Rarity's breath hitched in her throat, the gravity of Alastor’s words sinking in like lead. “Everything? What do you mean by everything?” she asked, her voice barely above a whisper.
“Her life, her body, her emotions, her heart, her soul, everything she owns, and even her Daughter,” The Radio Demon continued, his voice dripping with malice. “For my services, she willingly signed her existence over to me. A beautiful contract, if I do say so myself.”
"A contract? Fluttershy, if everything you said is true, I can understand your life being harsh but to make a deal with... Him?! Fluttershy, have you completely lost your mind?" Rarity stood there completely dumbfounded by Fluttershy's insane decisions and her willingness to make a deal, and form a relationship, with a demon. The most dangerous being Equestria has seen in centuries.
"It... It wasn't an easy decision. But it's a decision I never regretted. Alastor gave me everything I ever wanted. A life I look forward to, a life where I never wake up wishing I didn't. A life I am happy to be living, and most importantly he gave my biggest blessing." Fluttershy said.
Rarity’s hands balled into fists, her nails digging into her palms as she struggled to process the whirlwind of Fluttershy’s confessions. “Your biggest blessing? You mean Scarlett?”
Fluttershy nodded, a soft smile breaking through the storm clouds of her previous despair. “Yes, Scarlett is…everything to me. I would go through it all again just to hold her in my arms.”
“But at what cost?” Rarity's voice wavered, torn between disbelief and an urge to protect her friend from the darkness that surrounded her. “You sold your soul! You’re tethered to him—a demon who thrives on chaos and despair!”
Alastor interjected with a tone laced with amusement, "Such flattery, Miss Belle."
"Don't you DARE act smug about this!" Rarity snapped at Alastor, a flicker of bravery cutting through her fear. "You've taken advantage of my friend's vulnerable state and—"
"Rarity, please," Fluttershy interrupted, stepping between them. "It's not like that. He didn't take advantage of me. I... I knew exactly what I was doing when I made those deals."
"Did you?" Rarity challenged, her voice breaking. "Did you really understand what you were giving up? Your soul, your freedom, your daughter's future—"
"Her future is secure," Alastor interjected, his static-filled voice carrying an edge of warning. "More secure than any mortal could provide. After all..." His grin widened impossibly. "What father wouldn't ensure his daughter's safety?"
Rarity froze, the implications hitting her like a physical blow. "Father? You mean... Scarlett isn't just under your control through the deal, she's actually..."
"His biological daughter," Fluttershy confirmed softly. "When Alastor... changed the essence within me, he didn't just remove the previous connection. He..." She blushed slightly. "He replaced it. With his own."
"But that would mean..." Rarity's eyes darted between them, her glasses slipping down her nose. "Scarlett truly is half-demon. Not just through magic or contracts, but by blood."
"Indeed!" Alastor's voice crackled with pride. "And such a delightful little creature she is. Takes after her mother's gentleness..." His eyes glowed menacingly. "And her father's appetite for chaos."
Rarity sank into the nearest chair, her legs no longer able to support her. "This... this is too much," she whispered, removing her dark glasses to rub her temples. "My best friend made deals with a demon, had her unborn child's very essence altered, and is now..." She gestured vaguely between Fluttershy and Alastor.
"In love?" Fluttershy offered gently, moving to kneel beside her friend's chair. "Rarity, I know it's a lot to take in, but Alastor has given me more than just protection or power. He's given me happiness, purpose... a family."
"A family?" Rarity echoed weakly. "With the Radio Demon?" She glanced up at Alastor, who was watching the scene unfold with evident amusement. "The same demon who... who sent those horrible shadows after me last night?"
Alastor's grin widened. "Ah, you enjoyed my little escort service? I thought it would be more... entertaining than letting you walk home alone."
"Entertaining?" Rarity's voice rose sharply. "You terrorized me! I thought I was going to die! I—" She suddenly stopped, looking at Fluttershy with new understanding. "Is this... is this what your life is like now? Living with such... such..."
"Such delightful chaos?" Alastor suggested, twirling his microphone staff. "My dear Rarity, you've only scratched the surface of what our little family is capable of."
Fluttershy placed a gentle hand on Rarity's trembling one. "It's not what you think. Yes, Alastor is... who he is. But he protects what's his. And now, that includes me and Scarlett."
Rarity took a deep breath, her professional composure slowly returning despite her lingering fear. "And what about Scarlett? How do you plan to explain to her that her father is..." She gestured at Alastor. "Well, who and what he is?"
"She already knows," Fluttershy said softly. "She's always known. Alastor doesn’t hide who or what he is around her”
Rarity's heart sank as she processed Fluttershy's words. "You mean she has to live with that knowledge? Knowing her father is a creature of chaos and darkness?"
Fluttershy’s eyes shimmered with a mix of sorrow and defiance. “Because growing up in a world filled with love is more important than the labels we place on people. Alastor may have his dark side, but he has shown Scarlett kindness and warmth – things I couldn’t give her alone.”
"Kindness and warmth? From him?" Rarity stared at Alastor incredulously, unable to reconcile the terrifying demon who had tormented her the previous night with the image of a loving father.
Alastor chuckled, a sound that reverberated with both menace and charm. “Ah, the perplexities of perception! It’s fascinating how mortals can be so quick to judge based on appearance.” He leaned in closer, his eyes gleaming like shards of glass. “But tell me, Rarity, what do you know of warmth? Of love? Isn’t it often buried beneath layers of expectation and societal norms?”
Rarity bristled at the insinuation, her composure faltering once more. “I know plenty about love! Real love—unconditional, unwavering. Not this twisted version you flaunt!”
“Twisted?” Alastor chuckled, his voice a smooth ripple of amusement. “Oh, my dear, you wound me. I’d prefer to call it..creative expression.” He straightened, his posture turning theatrical as he gestured around. “Life is but a stage, Rarity! And what is a stage without a touch of chaos? It adds drama, excitement—an element of surprise!”
Rarity narrowed her eyes, frustration bubbling beneath the surface. “You mistake my concern for disdain! This isn’t some whimsical performance; we’re talking about a child’s life! And not just any child, but one with the ability to transform into animals.”
Alastor's static crackled with pride. "Our little doe has quite the talent for the supernatural. Why, I wouldn’t be surprised if she could summon a menagerie of creatures with just a flick of her tiny wrist. But let’s not dwell on that, shall we?” He leaned back slightly, the playful glint in his eyes softening for a moment as he looked at Fluttershy!"
"Summon a—" Rarity's eyes widened in horror. "Fluttershy, she's just a child! How can you let her—"
"I can't stop her from being who she is," Fluttershy interrupted, her voice suddenly firm. "Just like I couldn't stop being who I am. Scarlett is special, and yes, sometimes that means she does things that might frighten others. But she's still my daughter, and I love her unconditionally."
"And what happens when others find out?" Rarity asked, her voice barely above a whisper. "When they discover what she is? What you've become?"
"That…That's actually partly why we're here," Fluttershy admitted. "You're the second pony to know, Rarity. And I... I need you to understand. To accept us, if you can."
“Second?!” Rarity gasped, the weight of Fluttershy’s revelation pressing heavily upon her. “Who was the first?”
“That Pink mare who decorated for Scarlett’s party,” Alastor interjected with a sly grin, his eyes dancing with mischief. “You know her—Pinkie Pie, the exuberant jester of joy. I must say, she took the news rather well. Giggling and bouncing, as is her nature. I dare say she might even throw a ‘Welcome to the Chaos Family’ party in honor of your little revelation.”
Rarity shook her head in disbelief. “Somehow that does not surprise me.” the unicorn mare muttered, her mind racing with the implications. “Pinkie’s inability to grasp the gravity of situations is both remarkable and infuriating.”
“Rarity, I’d like to ask that you not reveal any of this to anypony,” Fluttershy implored, her voice trembling with a mix of urgency and fear.
Rarity hesitated, the turmoil inside her swirling like a tempest. however before the mare could speak, Fluttershy spoke again.
"I know it's a lot to ask, but we can't take any chances of The Sun Knights finding out," she whispered, more to herself than the others. "If they ever found out about this..." She looked up at Rarity with genuine concern and fear in her eyes.
"They would never stop hunting us," Fluttershy finished softly, unconsciously moving closer to Alastor. "They would see Scarlett as an abomination, me as a traitor, and..."
"And me as their greatest prize," Alastor interjected, though his usual jovial tone carried an edge of steel. Static crackled around him as his eyes narrowed. "Though I must say, I'd rather enjoy watching them try."
"This isn't a joke, Alastor," Fluttershy chided gently. "The Sun Knights are... they're fanatics. They wouldn't just come for us – they'd target everyone in this city..." Her eyes met Rarity's. "you and I both know they are convinced everypony is corrupted with Alastor’s influence."
Rarity straightened in her chair, a flash of her characteristic determination breaking through her fear. "Darling, do you really think I would ever betray you? After everything we've been through?"
"No, but..." Fluttershy hesitated. "I needed you to understand the risk. What knowing about us could mean for you."
“I know the risk,” Rarity said with venom in her voice. “The last thing I’d do is give you up to the same bastards that killed my father,”
The mare then turned her gaze to a small little alter in the center of the room which held a urn with a picture of Hondo Flanks and a single white rose laid delicately atop it. The soft glow of the candles flickered, casting shadows that danced against the walls, echoing the tension that filled the room. A lump formed in Rarity’s throat; for a moment, she felt the weight of her father’s absence more acutely than ever.
Rarity closed her eyes and took a deep breath, slowly exhaling as she turned to face Fluttershy and Alastor.
"I still think this is utterly insane, and I still don't fully see how you see it, you are still my friend. You have my word that no one else will ever find out about this from me. And you!" Rarity gulped as she nervously looked at Alastor.
"You will be nothing but an upmost gentleman to Fluttershy. O-Or else." A bead of sweat trinkled down Rarity's forehead as she gave a "warning" to Alastor.
"Oh if I wanted to hurt Fluttershy I would've done so." Static rang out as Alastor's eyes turned into dials and his smile gave off a faint yellow glow. But he quickly reverted back to normal. "But you have my word, miss Rarity. Fluttershy is in good hands."
“Thank you, Rarity,” Fluttershy breathed, her voice trembling with relief. “That means more to me than you know.”
Rarity forced a smile, but the shadows of uncertainty still clung to her heart. “Just… promise me you’ll stay safe. I can’t bear the thought of losing you.”
Fluttershy nodded earnestly, her eyes shimmering with unshed tears. “I promise. We’ll be careful.”
Rarity stood from her chair, her legs still a bit shaky but her resolve firm. Without warning, she pulled Fluttershy into a tight embrace, holding her friend as if afraid she might disappear.
"Oh, darling," she whispered, her voice thick with emotion. "Just... just promise me one more thing. Don't disappear on me. Even with all of..." she gestured vaguely toward Alastor with one hoof, "this, you're still my dearest friend."
Fluttershy returned the embrace just as tightly, burying her face in Rarity's shoulder as tears rolled down her cheeks. "Never," she promised softly. "You're family, Rarity. That won't change."
Alastor watched the display with his usual smile, though his static had softened to a gentle hum. "As touching as this is," he said, checking his pocket watch, "we should be going. We still have other plans today, and time waits for no pony.”
The two mares separated, quickly wiping away their tears. Fluttershy moved to Alastor's side, taking his offered arm as he opened the boutique's door with a gesture of his staff.
Outside, the crimson limousine waited, its skeletal driver standing at attention. As Joe opened the door with a bow, Fluttershy turned back one last time.
"I'll see you soon?" she asked Rarity, hope tinging her voice.
Rarity nodded, managing a genuine smile despite her lingering fears. "Of course, darling. Someone has to keep you fashionable, after all."
Once inside the car, Fluttershy sank into the plush velvet seat, a sense of foreboding settling over her like a heavy blanket. Alastor slid in beside her, his presence both reassuring and disconcerting. The door clicked shut behind them, sealing them in a cocoon of opulence that felt strangely at odds with the storm brewing outside.
“That was more stressful than I anticipated,” Fluttershy admitted, her voice barely a whisper as she shifted uncomfortably in her seat.
Alastor chuckled, a sound that reverberated through the luxurious interior like a distant thunder. "Stressful? My dear Fluttershy, I thought it was rather delightful. You and Rarity have such a charming dynamic. But let's not dwell on the past; we have more pressing matters at hand."
“You’re right,” Fluttershy said, clenching her hands in her lap. “As much as I don’t want this, Scarlett needs this”
“Joe,” Alastor called, his voice smooth and commanding, “Ponyville Elementary.”
The skeletal driver nodded and the limousine glided away from the boutique, merging into the bustling streets of Ponyville. Fluttershy gazed out the window, watching the familiar sights of her childhood blur by like a nostalgic dream. But as they approached the school, her heart began to race, each beat echoing the unspoken anxiety she felt.
Feeling her reservations, Alastor leaned closer, his gaze piercing yet oddly warm. “I sense that you’re feeling apprehensive.”
"It's just... I'm worried about Scarlett and her starting school. What if she gets scared? What if she doesn't like school? What if none of the other kids like her and bully her? What if she uses her powers and the Sun Knights finds us? What if she gets hurt?" Fluttershy flew off the railings with horrible scenarios, each worse than the last as she looked panicked and concerned over Scarlett.
Fluttershy’s panicked thoughts was swiftly halted when she felt herself being pulled closer to the Demon. “You are so focused on ‘What If’s’ instead of thinking about the possibilities,” Alastor interrupted, his voice a soothing melody amidst Fluttershy’s storm of worry.
“What if she makes friends?,” Alastor continued, his smile widening as he spoke. “What if she finds joy in learning? What if she becomes the most popular filly in her class?”
His words seeped into her distress like sunbeams breaking through clouds. Fluttershy took a deep breath, allowing herself a moment to process his perspective. “But it’s so different for her,” she said, her voice trembling slightly. “She has… powers. What if they see her as strange?”
“If you feel fear about her being singled out, we could educate her ourselves.” Alastor suggested, his tone light yet serious.
“No,” Fluttershy interjected, shaking her head vigorously. “She needs to experience the world. She needs to learn how to fit in with others, not just hide away like me.”
"Well said," Alastor remarked, pride evident in his static-filled voice. "Our little doe deserves to shine, not skulk in shadows. Though," his grin widened mischievously, "the shadows are quite accommodating when needed."
The limousine slowed to a stop in front of Ponyville Elementary. Through the tinted windows, they could see foals playing in the schoolyard, their laughter and shouts muffled by the car's luxurious interior.
"Are you ready, my dear?" Alastor asked, his eyes fixed on Fluttershy's worried expression.
Fluttershy took a deep breath, squaring her shoulders with newfound determination. "Yes," she said softly but firmly. "Scarlett needs this. She needs to learn who she is – all of who she is – and find her place in this world."
"And we'll be right here," Alastor assured her, his usual manic energy softening just slightly. "To guide her, protect her, and..." his grin turned slightly wicked, "teach any bullies a lesson they won't soon forget."
"Alastor," Fluttershy chided gently, though a small smile tugged at her lips. "No traumatizing foals."
"Wouldn't dream of it, darling," he replied with a theatrical bow. "Now, shall we meet with this Cheerilee and get our little doe enrolled?"
Fluttershy nodded, and Joe opened the door, letting in the sounds of playing children and the promise of new beginnings. As they stepped out into the autumn air, Fluttershy couldn't help but wonder what adventures – and challenges – awaited their unique little family.
Author's Note
Okay first things first, I know i said I'd take some time away from Alastor and Fluttershy....however...I ran out of idea involving Daybreaker and Canterlot. I'm not going to try and Bs you guys. I have literally no idea what to do for the next chapter.
Not. One. Single. Idea!
Question Time Bitches!!!
So Alastor has accepted that he truly loves Fluttershy. Please tell me Alastor will find a way to break his deal with Fluttershy without shattering her heart.
Also, will Discord have a role to play in Daybreaker's downfall or will he make an appearance after she's been defeated?
Okay, I must apologize. But I cannot answer your first question without spoiling what i have planned.....However! I can answer the question regarding Discord. Yes Discord will indeed play quite a big role in Daybreaker's downfall
That's all the questions and remember if you want to ask something go for it. I will always address your questions right down here.
And As Always, Stay Tuned Folks
Chapter 26: Trust in Me, Child
The timepiece on the wall ticked steadily as a pony pored over his calculations for the hundredth time. Scattered papers covered his workbench, filled with complex equations and diagrams that would look like nonsense to most ponies. The flickering lamp light caught the brown earth pony's disheveled mane as he paced his lab, his normally neat brown hair sticking up in all directions from running his fingers through it in frustration. His long brown coat - a peculiar piece of clothing he'd always favored - was wrinkled from days of wear, the pinstriped suit beneath it equally rumpled. His red tie hung loosely around his neck, and even his favorite pair of glasses sat askew on his muzzle as he frantically moved between books and papers.
Dr. Whooves paused at his workbench, his brown tail swishing agitatedly as he flipped through another medical text. The white collar of his dress shirt was unbuttoned, and one of his hands absently played with the chain of his pocket watch - a nervous habit he'd developed over years of research. His normally bright eyes were dulled with exhaustion and worry as he glanced around his lab.
"Come on, come on," he muttered, his brown coat catching on the edge of a shelf as he turned to grab another book. "There has to be something I'm missing..."
He rubbed his temples, the remnants of a sleepless night clawing at his thoughts. Time was a fickle mistress, one he had always both revered and feared. Each tick of the clock echoed like a heartbeat in the silence, reminding him that every second mattered.
Dr. Whooves hadn't slept in days. His normally organized lab was in complete disarray - medical texts piled everywhere, experimental potions bubbling, and research papers scattered across every surface. He barely noticed the chaos, his bloodshot eyes fixed on yet another medical journal.
"No, no, NO!" He slammed the book shut, adding it to a growing pile of useless references. "There has to be something..."
“Gear…Please get some sleep,” a familiar voice begged, breaking through the fog of his exhaustion.
The Dr. glanced toward the lab's doorway, where his wife, Roseluck, stood. They had been married for a decade. Roseluck, an Earth pony, had a pale yellow coat, a shoulder-length raspberry mane with lighter streaks, chartreuse green eyes, and a cutie mark of a single red rose around her neck. Tragically, she was accompanied by an IV drip carrying bags of fluids, medications, and nutrients—a painful reminder of the mysterious illness that had afflicted her for the past three years. The origins of the disease were unknown, and it had steadily worsened her condition. Despite the best efforts of Dr. s, unicorn healers, and even cures from the Zebras of Zebrafica, nothing had worked. Science, magic, and traditional medicine had all failed, and he was running out of both money and time.
Gear felt a pang of guilt as he saw her frail frame standing in the doorway, the weight of the world reflected in her weary gaze.
"I'm fine, Roseluck," he insisted, forcing a smile that faltered under the strain of his fatigue. "I just need to figure this out. You know I can’t—"
"Gear," she cut him off gently, moving into the lab with slow, careful steps. The wheels of her IV stand squeaked softly against the floor. "You've been at this for days. You're exhausting yourself."
He moved quickly to her side, supporting her as she swayed slightly. "I can't stop," he whispered, his voice breaking. "I won't stop. There has to be an answer somewhere. Some solution we haven't thought of yet."
Roseluck reached up with a trembling hand to touch his cheek. "My brave, brilliant Dr. ," she said softly, using the nickname she'd given him years ago. "You can't help me if you collapse from exhaustion. Please, just a few hours of rest. For me?"
The Dr. looked down at his wife, seeing the worry in her chartreuse eyes. She was concerned about him, even now, even when she was the one who... He couldn't even finish the thought. Instead, he pressed his forehead gently against hers, breathing in the faint scent of roses that still clung to her mane despite the sterile smell of medicine that now followed her everywhere.
"One hour," he compromised, his voice rough. "I'll rest for one hour. But then I'm getting back to work. There's a conference paper I found about experimental magical-scientific fusion therapy that might—"
"Two hours," she countered with a weak smile, some of her old spirit showing through. "And you'll eat something too. Dr. 's orders."
He managed a small, genuine smile at that. "Yes, ma'am."
As he reluctantly pulled away from her, Gear turned his gaze back to the chaotic mess of his lab. For just a moment, he felt the crushing weight of despair lift, replaced by the warmth of Roseluck's touch. She always had this uncanny ability to soothe the storm within him, even when darkness loomed ominously on the horizon. The Earth Pony trudged to the small cot tucked away in the corner of the lab, its sheets rumpled from the last time he had attempted to rest. Each step felt heavier than the last, but he willed himself to move forward, knowing that Roseluck's eyes followed him with a gentle concern that tugged at his heartstrings.
As he settled onto the narrow bed, he felt the tension in his muscles begin to ease, if only slightly. He closed his eyes, allowing the lull of exhaustion to wash over him. Rose slowly approached, her IV drip trailing behind her like a lifeline. She took a seat on the edge of the cot, brushing her fingers through his disheveled mane as he drifted closer to sleep. The rhythmic beeping of the machinery in the lab began to fade into a soothing background hum.
The Dr. had meant to rest for only two hours, but exhaustion had finally claimed him as he dozed in his study chair. He jerked awake suddenly, his hearts racing with inexplicable dread. Something felt wrong.
"Rose?" he called out, adjusting his crooked glasses. No answer. "Roseluck?"
The silence that greeted him sent chills down his spine. He bolted up from his bed, his brown coat swirling around him as he rushed toward their bedroom. "Rose!"
His blood ran cold at what he saw. There, just outside the bedroom doorway, lay Roseluck. The IV stand had toppled beside her, and she was completely still.
"No, no, no!" He ran to her side, his hooves sliding on the wooden floor in his haste. "Rose! Rose, can you hear me?" His trembling fingers checked her pulse - it was there, but weak and irregular. Her breathing was shallow, her coat clammy.
"Stay with me, love," he pleaded, gathering her gently in his arms. "Please, just stay with me."
Dr. Whooves wasted no time in rushing Rose to the hospital.
The halls of Ponyville Hospital had become all too familiar over the past three years. Dr. Whooves paced anxiously outside Rose's room, his hooves clicking against the sterile floor as Dr. s rushed in and out. His brown coat was even more disheveled now, his tie completely askew as he waited for news.
"Gear Whooves?" a young Nurse Redheart emerged from the room, her expression grave.
He turned, his heart leaping into his throat at the sight of her. “Is she... is she okay?”
"The latest tests show her condition is accelerating," Nurse Redheart explained softly. "Her body is rejecting the medication…and the disease…”
“Tell me,” Gear pleaded, desperation edging his voice.
“It has completely damaged her liver as well as her kidneys and lungs…and…The disease has now reached her heart." Nurse Redheart said, The words hit him like a tidal wave, crashing down with an unbearable weight.
"No..." Gear's legs nearly buckled beneath him. "There has to be something... some treatment we haven't tried..."
Nurse Redheart placed a gentle hand on his shoulder. "We're doing everything we can, but... I think it's time to prepare yourself. At the rate the disease is progressing..." She couldn't finish the sentence, but she didn't need to.
"How... how long?" The words felt like ash in his mouth.
"Days. Maybe a week at most." Nurse Redheart's voice was heavy with sympathy.
The world around Gear Whooves spiraled out of focus, the sterile walls of the hospital morphing into a blurring backdrop of agony. Days? Just days? It felt impossible, like the very fabric of reality was twisting and warping around him.
"I'm not ready," he breathed, his voice cracking under the weight of despair. "I can’t—she can’t—"
Nurse Redheart's gaze softened with understanding. "I know this is difficult, but you need to be strong for her now."
He shook his head in disbelief, images flashing before him: Roseluck’s laughter echoing through their shared moments, her gentle touch that had become his solace in a world rife with chaos. Each memory cut deeper than any blade, a reminder of everything he stood to lose.
"Strong for her?" he echoed, bitterness seeping into his words. "She’s the one who needs strength. And I… I’m losing her."
Dr. Whooves stumbled away from Nurse Redheart, his mind refusing to accept her words. Days. Just days. No, that wasn't acceptable. He couldn't lose Rose – wouldn't lose her.
"Dr. , please," Nurse Redheart called after him as he ran down the hospital corridor. "You need to spend this time with—"
But he was already gone, his hooves carrying him through Ponyville's darkening streets. Rain had begun to fall, plastering his disheveled mane to his face, but he barely noticed. His lab. He needed to get back to his lab. There had to be something he'd missed, some solution hidden in the thousands of pages he'd studied.
The door crashed open as he burst into his workshop, water dripping from his coat onto scattered papers. His bloodshot eyes darted frantically around the room, taking in the mountains of research, the bubbling experiments, the complex equations scrawled across every available surface.
"Think, think, THINK!" he growled, yanking books off shelves with trembling hands. "Magical fusion therapy... no, too slow. Zebra remedies... already failed. Unless..."
He grabbed his quill, scribbling equations across a fresh sheet of paper. "If we combined the thaumaturgical resonance with concentrated alchemical solutions... adjust for the temporal variance..."
The numbers didn't add up. He crumpled the paper, throwing it aside with a cry of frustration. More books. He needed more books. His fingers flew across the spines of ancient texts, medical journals, forbidden research – anything that might hold answers.
Hours blurred together as he worked, the steady ticking of the clock on the wall becoming a mocking countdown. Empty coffee cups littered his desk, their bitter dregs keeping him awake as he pushed through the exhaustion. His normally pristine coat was stained with ink and various failed potions, his tie long since discarded.
"No... no... NO!" Each failed calculation, each dead end pushed him further into despair. "There has to be a way! I won't accept this!"
A crackle of static suddenly cut through the silence of the lab, making Dr. Whooves' ears twitch. He hadn't left any radio on... had he? In his exhausted state, he could barely remember. The static grew louder, an unsettling buzz that seemed to fill the room with white noise.
Then, through the static, a voice emerged – smooth as silk but with an edge that sent chills down his spine. The voice had an old-time radio quality to it, like something from a bygone era of broadcasting, complete with that slight crackle and pop of vintage equipment.
"*static* ...My, my, what do we have here?" the voice practically purred through the static. "Such exquisite despair! I haven't felt anything quite this... delectable in quite some time."
Dr. Whooves spun around, searching for the source of the voice. An old radio sat on a shelf he didn't remember seeing before, its dials glowing with an unnatural red light. The static continued to pulse through the room, creating shadows that seemed to dance and twist in impossible ways.
"A brilliant mind, driven to the brink by love and loss," the voice continued, clearly amused. "Watching you tear yourself apart trying to save her... it's simply magnificent! Tell me, dear Dr. , what would you give to save your precious Rose? *static* What lengths would you go to? *static* ...What deals would you make?"
The Dr. backed away from the radio, his scientific mind struggling to process what was happening. This couldn't be real. It had to be the exhaustion, the coffee, the stress...
"Oh, I assure you, my good Dr. ," the voice chuckled, as if reading his thoughts, "I'm quite real. And I might just have the solution you're looking for... *static* ...for the right price, of course."
"No, no, this isn't real," Dr. Whooves muttered, pressing his fingers against his temples. "Sleep deprivation. Yes, that's it. Extended periods without proper REM cycles can cause auditory hallucinations. Perfectly reasonable explanation."
The radio's static crackled with what sounded suspiciously like laughter.
"Or perhaps it's the caffeine," he continued, pacing frantically. "Excessive consumption can lead to paranoid episodes. Combined with stress-induced cortisol elevation and—"
"*static* My dear Dr. , your attempts at rationalization are thoroughly entertaining!" the voice cut in, somehow sounding even more amused.
"Temporal displacement psychosis!" the Dr. nearly shouted, his mane becoming even more disheveled as he ran his fingers through it. "All my research into time mechanics must have caused a localized reality distortion. The mathematics clearly show—"
"*static* ...Oh, do go on! Your scientific babbling is simply delightful!"
"Or maybe..." Dr. Whooves' voice cracked as his desperate reasoning began to fail him. "Maybe I've finally cracked. Lost my mind trying to save her..."
The radio's static grew louder, almost mocking. "*static* Now that's just rude, my good fellow! I assure you, your sanity is quite intact... for now!"
Something in that last statement snapped what remained of the Dr. 's patience. With a cry of frustration, he grabbed the radio and hurled it against the wall. It shattered into pieces, blessed silence finally returning to the lab.
The Dr. stood there breathing heavily, staring at the broken remains of the radio. "There. Scientific method. Hypothesis tested. No radio, no voice, no—"
"My, my! Such a violent outburst!"
The voice was no longer filtered through static and speakers. It was crystal clear, coming from directly behind him. Dr. Whooves slowly turned around, his blood running cold at what he saw.
There, standing in his lab as if he'd always been there, was a tall, crimson figure. The being's smile was impossibly wide, filled with sharp yellow teeth, and his red eyes glowed like radio dials behind a monocle. He twirled a staff-like microphone as he regarded the Dr. with evident delight.
"Now then," Alastor said, his grin somehow growing even wider, "shall we discuss business without all these technological middlemen? I believe you have a rather pressing deadline to meet, after all!"
"You’re…You’re Alastor!” Dr. Whooves stumbled backward, knocking over a stack of medical journals. "What... what are you doing here?"
"Ha! Straight to the point!" Alastor's voice carried its signature radio quality, static crackling around his words. "Why, I'm here to help, my dear Dr. ! Your desperation called out like a beacon - simply impossible to resist!"
"Help?" Dr. Whooves felt a mixture of fear and... something else. Hope? Desperation?
"A cure, of course!" Alastor's grin widened as he twirled his microphone staff. "Your precious Rose, wasting away in that dreadfully dull hospital room. Tick tock, tick tock! Not much time left, is there?"
The Dr. 's ears flattened against his head. "How do you—"
"Your despair is simply delectable!" Alastor interrupted, clearly enjoying himself. "A brilliant mind reaching its breaking point, a loving husband unable to save his dear wife... it's the kind of entertainment I simply can't resist!"
"Entertainment?" Dr. Whooves felt a flash of anger cut through his fear. "My wife's life isn't some show for your amusement!"
"Everything's a show, dear Dr. !" Alastor laughed, accompanied by his signature invisible audience's applause. "But I'm not just here to watch. I'm here to offer you a deal!"
The word 'deal' seemed to echo in the lab, carried by shadows that danced across the walls. Dr. Whooves swallowed hard, years of scientific rationality warring with desperate need.
“I…I don’t need your deals” he stammered, turning his attention away from Alastor and toward his research. "I can find another way. There has to be a way, a formula, anything but—"
"*But* you already know the truth, don't you?" Alastor interjected smoothly, the glint in his eye growing sharper. "You’ve reached the limits of your science, and time is slipping away like sand through your fingers. You're not just looking for a solution; you're hunting for a miracle."
Dr. Whooves clenched his jaw, fighting against the despair that threatened to drown him. “Miracles aren’t real! They’re fairy tales!”
Dr. turned to face the Radio Demon, however, the pony only saw a reflective mirror in front of him. The mirror's surface rippled like disturbed water, and suddenly Dr. Whooves wasn't seeing his own reflection anymore. Instead, he saw a hospital room - Rose's hospital room - but not as it was now. This was yet to come.
"Code Blue! We need a crash cart in here now!"
The Dr. watched in horror as medical staff rushed around Rose's bed. Her coat had lost all color, the monitors screaming their warning as her vital signs plummeted. Nurse Redheart was performing chest compressions while another nurse prepared the defibrillator.
"She's crashing! No pulse!"
"Clear!" The jolt made Rose's frail body arch off the bed. The monitor continued its terrible droning flatline.
"Again! Clear!" Another shock. Nothing.
"Come on, Rose, stay with us!" Nurse Redheart's voice cracked as she resumed compressions. "Gear, You need to leave!"
Through the window, the Dr. could see himself - future him - being held back by hospital staff, fighting desperately to get to her. "Let me in! Rose! ROSE!"
"Push one of epinephrine!"
"BP's still dropping!"
"Clear!" A third shock. The monitor remained unchanged.
Rose's face, already so pale, began to take on a bluish tint. Her beautiful mane, the one that had always smelled of roses even through the hospital sterility, lay limp and dull against the pillow. Her chest rose and fell one final time, so gentle it was barely noticeable.
"Time of death..."
"No..." Dr. Whooves pressed his hands against the mirror, as if he could somehow reach through and change what he was seeing. "No, please..."
The scene continued mercilessly. He watched himself break free, rushing to Rose's bedside, desperately trying to continue CPR even as the medical staff gently tried to pull him away.
"Rose, please! Don't leave me! I can fix this, I can..." His future self's voice broke into sobs. "I'm sorry... I'm so sorry... I wasn't smart enough... I couldn't..."
The Dr. staggered back from the mirror, tears streaming down his face. The vision faded, leaving only his own broken reflection - and Alastor's grinning face behind him.
"Fairy tales, you say?" Alastor's voice was soft, almost gentle, but carried an undercurrent of cruel satisfaction. "Then tell me, my dear Dr. ... what will science do to prevent that little scene from playing out in exactly three days' time?"
“This…This isn’t right!” Dr. Whooves whispered, the warmth of hope fading from his heart. He stood frozen, gripped by a chilling realization that his worst fears were not just possible—they were imminent. “I…I know I can find her a cure…”
“Deny it all you want,” Alastor taunted, his smile stretched impossibly wide. “But what you saw is what shall be if things remain as they are”
“This…This can’t be meant to be” Gear Whooves whispered, a desperate surge of defiance igniting within him.
“Can’t it?” Alastor leaned in closer, his voice a conspiratorial whisper. “Fate is a funny little thing, isn’t it? A web of choices and consequences. You’ve woven your threads, Dr. , and soon they shall all tangle into one inevitable knot.”
“Is…is there anything you can do to help?” Dr. Whooves asked, his voice trembling with uncertainty.
A part of him knew the price that came with deals made in shadows, but desperation clawed at his insides. He couldn't let Rose slip away; he wouldn't.
"I'm not certain you'll want my assistance," Alastor remarked, strolling through the laboratory and spinning his cane between his fingers. "After all, you're a pony who puts faith in technology instead of relying on the magic others possess."
"Magic?" Dr. Whooves scoffed, fighting to steady his breath. "You think I could rely on something so unpredictable? Science is the only way! It has laws, constants…"
"Then I'll make you a deal," Alastor declared, his voice slicing through the air as a scroll materialized before him, the parchment twisting and curling like ethereal smoke. "Sign this, and I promise your fates will be forever altered."
"Naturally, this will come at a price," Alastor interjected, his eyes flashing with a malevolent, almost predatory delight. "What that price will be is my little secret... consider it a... Blind Agreement." The Radio demon unleashed a sibilant laugh that reverberated through the lab, each note ringing like a malevolent chime of doom.
“And if I promise to do this, my Wife will be okay?” The Dr. asked, his voice barely a whisper as he fought against the tide of despair that threatened to drown him.
"My Dear Dr. , You have my word," Alastor said as he extended his glowing hand. "A demon is always bound to his word, after all!”
The green flames cast eerie shadows across the lab, making the medical equipment and scattered research papers seem almost alive in their dancing light. The contract hung suspended in the air between them, its edges crackling with otherworldly energy.
"I... I don't know," Dr. Whooves took a step back, his scientific mind warring against his desperate heart. The image of Rose's final moments still burned in his mind, but something about this felt wrong. Fundamentally, catastrophically wrong.
Alastor's grin widened, if that was even possible, radio static crackling around him as he watched the Dr. 's internal struggle. The demon's patience seemed infinite - after all, he knew that every second that ticked by was another second closer to Rose's fate.
"There's no rush my dear Dr. ," Alastor crooned, his voice oozing with feigned concern. "Take your time... because every moment wasted is one step closer to a tragedy you can't bear to witness."
Alastor grinned as music began to play from his microphone cane. "So you want to change what lies ahead," the Radio Demon sang, his voice an eerie melody entwined with sinister glee. "For you dread what you've just seen through the glass..."
"So if you pay the price, and you make a deal with me,” The demon's eyes glowed brighter as he continued his song, shadows dancing around them. “The day she takes her final breath will never come to pass..."
Dr. Whooves watched, transfixed, as Alastor moved through the lab with theatrical grace. "You can trust in me, I'm not as bad as you've been told. You'll find I'm rather fair. To save your mare, you need to sign the scroll."
"I understand you have your reservations, not knowing what I'll ask from you. It's reason to think twice.” The contract glowed eerily as Alastor's song continued. “But I give you my word, you both will be safe and sound, although you'll soon learn magic never comes without a price..."
"You can trust in me, I'm not as bad as you recall.” The Radio Demon's grin widened impossibly as he delivered the final verses. “You'll find I'm quite sincere. To change your future, you have to risk it all!"
As the last note faded, Alastor's grin grew wider. He held up one finger, then a second, his voice playful but carrying an undercurrent of dark anticipation.
"Going once...Going twice..."
Dr. Whooves stared at the glowing contract, Rose's face flashing through his mind. The vision of her final moments played again in his thoughts, and he knew he couldn't let that future come to pass. His scientific principles screamed at him to stop, to think rationally, but his heart...
"Deal!" The word escaped his lips before he could stop it, driven by pure desperation and love.
“Then Sign” Alastor said handing the pony a black and red demonic looking pen that dripped with an inky darkness, the tip swirling with an unsettling energy.
With shaking hands, Dr. Whooves took the pen, feeling it pulse against his skin as though it had a life of its own. His heart raced in time with the music still echoing through the lab, a grotesque symphony of temptation and dread.
"Now, now," Alastor cooed, leaning closer as though he could smell the desperation wafting off the Dr. . "Don't fret! The ink is but a mere formality.”
Dr. Whooves pressed the pen to the parchment, watching as the dark ink seemed to writhe and spread across the surface like living shadows. Each letter of his signature felt heavier than the last, as though he were signing away more than just his name.
The moment he finished the final stroke, the contract burst into green flames. The pen dissolved into shadow between his fingers, and a surge of energy coursed through his body. His mind suddenly exploded with knowledge - complex formulas, impossible technologies, theories that defied the very laws of physics he'd studied his whole life. It was overwhelming, beautiful, and terrifying all at once.
"There we are!" Alastor declared, clapping his hands together with theatrical delight. "Knowledge beyond your wildest dreams, my dear Dr. ! The power to bend technology to your will, to create marvels that your fellow ponies couldn't even imagine! More than enough to save your precious Rose."
Dr. Whooves staggered slightly as more information flooded his consciousness. Blueprints for machines that couldn't possibly exist danced behind his eyes. He could feel the hum of every piece of equipment in his lab, could understand their innermost workings with perfect clarity.
"And... what do I owe you in return?" he asked, his voice trembling slightly as the magnitude of what he'd just done began to sink in.
Alastor's grin somehow grew even wider, his eyes glowing with malicious delight. "Oh, don't worry about that just yet! You'll find out when the time is right." He twirled his microphone cane playfully. "For now, focus on saving your beloved. After all..." his voice dropped to a sinister whisper, "time is still ticking!"
With that, Alastor vanished in a burst of static and shadow, leaving Dr. Whooves alone in his lab. The pony looked down at his hands, feeling the power thrumming through him. He turned to his workbench, and for the first time in days, he knew exactly what he needed to do.
But in the back of his mind, a quiet voice wondered just what price he would eventually have to pay for this miracle.
“Good Luck~” Alastor echoed in the silence, his laughter still echoing faintly in the corners of the dimly lit lab.
The knowledge crystallized in Dr. Whooves' mind with perfect clarity - he needed both. A machine to stabilize and deliver the treatment, and a serum to cure the disease itself. His hands moved with newfound certainty as he began gathering components, his enhanced understanding guiding every action.
The serum's formula appeared in his thoughts like a completed puzzle. He could see how the molecular structures needed to align, how to combine elements that should have been impossible to merge.
"Base solution requires a stabilized matrix..." Dr. Whooves muttered, his hands moving with inhuman precision. "Quantum-charged particles suspended in a thaumaturgically-enhanced plasma... yes, yes, that's it."
He grabbed vials and beakers, the glass clinking as he worked. "Add the modified stem cells... three drops of concentrated phoenix tears - how did I even know about those? No, no, focus..." His mane became even more disheveled as he shook his head, continuing his work.
"Temperature must be exactly 42.3 degrees... cellular regeneration catalyst... temporal stability agent to prevent molecular decay..." The mixture began to glow with that ethereal blue-white light as he stirred it. "Now the nano-machines... they'll need to be programmed to target the corrupted cells..."
Moving to the delivery chamber's construction, his hands flew over metal and wire. "Primary containment field requires a quantum-harmonics stabilizer... recursive temporal dampeners to prevent chronological feedback... bio-rhythmic synchronization array..."
The machine took shape as he worked, each piece fitting perfectly into place. "Power coupling must be calibrated to one part per million... any deviation could cause a cascade failure..." Circuits and components seemed to assemble themselves under his touch. "Integration matrix online... quantum field stabilized..."
"Final step - molecular binding agent derived from... from..." He paused, his voice catching as the knowledge flowed through him. "From tears of pure love mixed with starlight? This can't be science, and yet... and yet I know it's right."
The serum's glow pulsed in perfect rhythm with the machine's humming. "It's ready," he breathed, hardly daring to believe it. "The cure is ready."
With everything prepared, Gear left his lab and went to the hospital to get his wife. The corridors of Ponyville General Hospital felt both familiar and foreign, each step echoing the weight of the life he was about to alter forever. The sterile smell of antiseptic stung his nostrils, but his determination shielded him from the chill of despair that hung in the air.
However, his first stop wasn’t to see his wife. It was get her discharged from the cold confines of the hospital room. He approached the nurse's station with a fervor that made the staff exchange worried glances.
"Excuse me," he began, his voice steady despite the turmoil within. "I need to discharge Rose immediately. It's urgent."
The head nurse, a kind mare with weary eyes, raised an eyebrow. "Dr. Whooves? Are you certain? She's still quite weak, and—"
"I know my wife better than anyone," he interrupted, his tone sharp but respectful. "She needs to be with me. I… I have a way to help her."
The nurse hesitated, concern etched on her face. “Sir, Roseluck is in no condition to leave just yet. The Dr. s insist on monitoring her—”
“NO” he barked, frustration bubbling beneath his calm facade. “I refuse to watch her die! I’ve found a cure! A real cure! And if you don’t let me take her, I may very well lose her. The hospital can’t save her now, but I can!”
“Sir, you are obviously under an immense amount of stress,” the nurse replied, her voice softer now but still firm. “You need to consider—”
“I’ll handle this, Coldheart” Nurse Redheart said as she stepped forward. “Gear…you look terrible…when was the last time you slept?”
“I don’t know…two or three days” he admitted, his breath hitching at the concern in her eyes. “But there’s no time for that now. Rose’s life is at stake.”
Redheart's gaze softened, but her expression remained serious. "You know we can't just let her go against medical advice. It's been a rough few days for everyone, and we want to help her as best as we can."
"You don't understand," Dr. Whooves pleaded with the hospital staff, the precious serum secured in his saddlebag. "I've found a cure. I can save her!"
"Dr. Whooves," Nurse Redheart spoke gently but firmly, "your wife is in critical condition. We can't release her, and we certainly can't administer an untested treatment. It could kill her."
"She's dying anyway!" His voice cracked with desperation. "Please, you have to—"
"I'm sorry," a new voice said as the head physician approached. "But we have protocols. Without proper testing and documentation, we can't allow experimental treatments. Especially not in her condition."
Dr. Whooves felt the power thrumming through him, sensing every piece of technology in the hospital. The security cameras, the electronic locks, the monitoring equipment – they all called to him like a symphony waiting to be conducted.
"I understand," he said quietly, backing away from the nurse's station. But as he turned the corner, his eyes began to glow faintly. He could see the digital pathways of the entire hospital in his mind.
*A security camera in the east wing suddenly turned away from the corridor.*
"System malfunction in Ward C," a voice announced over the intercom, drawing the staff's attention away from Rose's wing. "All available personnel please respond."
*Electronic locks clicked open and shut in a carefully orchestrated pattern, creating a clear path to Rose's room while blocking pursuit routes.*
*Monitors at the nurse's station began displaying old footage on a loop, hiding his movements.*
Dr. Whooves slipped into Rose's room, finding her conscious but weak. "Gear?" she whispered. "What are you—"
"Trust me," he said softly, carefully disconnecting her from the hospital equipment. The machines continued to display normal readings, masking her removal. "I found a way to help you. But we have to go now."
He helped her onto his back, her frail form lighter than he remembered. The IV stand's wheels moved silently across the floor, guided by his new powers.
*Emergency lights began flashing in the opposite wing, accompanied by blaring alarms.*
"Code Blue in Emergency!" The announcement sent the remaining staff running away from their position.
Moving swiftly but carefully, Dr. Whooves carried Rose through the hospital's winding corridors. Security cameras turned away as they passed, doors opened automatically, and elevator controls responded to his will. Not a single staff member crossed their path.
As they reached the hospital's side exit, he heard the distant chaos of the staff discovering the various "malfunctions" he'd caused. But by then, they were already driving away from the hospital, heading back to his lab where the delivery chamber waited.
"What did you do?" Rose asked weakly, her head resting against his shoulder, her breath raspy but steady.
"Whatever I had to," he answered, feeling the serum pulse in his satchel. "Whatever I had to."
Author's Note
Okay. So part of me felt it was time to delve into another Deal Chapter, Plus...I kinda wanted another excuse for Alastor to break into song. This is only part 1 of 2 so you've got something to look forward to.
Alrighty folks
You know what time it is?
It's Question Time Fuckers!
Thanks for yet another awesome chapter!
So with the Sun Knights now after Twilight now. I'm guessing it won't be long before she'll arrive in Ponyville and possibly make a deal with Alastor for protection from her pursuers.
Since we now know that Rarity lost her father to the Sun Knights. When Twilight does get to Ponyville and meets her. Will Rarity take any aggressive action against Twilight when she learns that her brother is the captain of the knights?
Okay so. Twilight is already in Ponyville. She arrived in Chapter 22: Golden Oak about a week before Scarlett's B-Day in chapter 23, as for a deal....I'm not sure yet.
Now on to the second part, Would you? You lost your father to the Sun Knights..and you learn that your talking to the Sister of the Captain of said knights...I don't know bout you but I would be kinda hostile towards her
That's all the questions and remember if you want to ask something go for it. I will always address your questions right down here.
And As Always, Stay Tuned Folks